Western Civilization: A Brief History - PDF Free Download (2024)

S E V E NTH

E D ITIO N

WESTERN CIVILIZATION: A BRIEF HISTORY Jackson J. Spielvogel The Pennsylvania State University

Australia • Brazil • Japan • Korea • Mexico • Singapore • Spain • United Kingdom • United States

Western Civilization: A Brief History, Seventh Edition Jackson J. Spielvogel Publisher: Suzanne Jeans Senior Sponsoring Editor: Nancy Blaine Senior Development Editor: Margaret McAndrew Beasley Assistant Editor: Lauren Floyd

© 2011, 2008, 2005 Wadsworth, Cengage Learning ALL RIGHTS RESERVED. No part of this work covered by the copyright herein may be reproduced, transmitted, stored, or used in any form or by any means graphic, electronic, or mechanical, including but not limited to photocopying, recording, scanning, digitizing, taping, Web distribution, information networks, or information storage and retrieval systems, except as permitted under Section 107 or 108 of the 1976 United States Copyright Act, without the prior written permission of the publisher.

Editorial Assistant: Emma Goehring Senior Media Editor: Lisa Ciccolo Executive Marketing Manager: Diane Wenckebach Marketing Coordinator: Lorreen Pelletier Marketing Communications Manager: Christine Dobberpuhl Senior Content Project Manager: Lauren Wheelock Senior Art Director: Cate Rickard Barr Production Technology Analyst: Lori Johnson

For product information and technology assistance, contact us at Cengage Learning Customer & Sales Support, 1-800-354-9706 For permission to use material from this text or product, submit all requests online at www.cengage.com/permissions. Further permissions questions can be emailed to [emailprotected].

Library of Congress Control Number: 2009934494 ISBN-13: 978-0-495-57147-6 ISBN-10: 0-495-57147-4

Print Buyer: Karen Hunt Senior Rights Acquisitions Account Manager— Text: Tim Sisler Production Service: Orr Book Services

Wadsworth 20 Channel Center Street Boston, MA 02210 USA

Text Designer: Shawn Girsberger Senior Photo Editor: Jennifer Meyer Dare Cover Designer: Shawn Girsberger Cover Image: Jan Griffier (c. 1645–1718), A Fete and View of a City (oil on copper)//Galleria Sabauda, Turin, Italy. Photo © Alinari/The Bridgeman Art Library Compositor: Glyph International

Cengage Learning is a leading provider of customized learning solutions with office locations around the globe, including Singapore, the United Kingdom, Australia, Mexico, Brazil and Japan. Locate your local office at international.cengage.com/region Cengage Learning products are represented in Canada by Nelson Education, Ltd. For your course and learning solutions, visit www.cengage.com. Purchase any of our products at your local college store or at our preferred online store www.ichapters.com.

Printed in the United States of America 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 13 1 2 11 1 0 0 9

ABOUT THE AUTHOR J A C K S O N J . SPI ELVO G EL is associate professor emeritus of history at The Pennsylvania State University. He received his Ph.D. from The Ohio State University, where he specialized in Reformation history under Harold J. Grimm. His articles and reviews have appeared in such journals as Moreana, Journal of General Education, Catholic Historical Review, Archiv für Reformationsgeschichte, and American Historical Review. He has also contributed chapters or articles to The Social History of the Reformation, The Holy Roman Empire: A Dictionary Handbook, the Simon Wiesenthal Center Annual of Holocaust Studies, and Utopian Studies. His work has been supported by fellowships from the Fulbright Foundation and the Foundation for Reformation Research. At Penn State, he helped inaugurate the Western civilization courses as well as a popular course on Nazi Germany. His book Hitler and Nazi Germany was published in 1987 (fifth edition, 2005). He is the author of Western Civilization, first published in 1991 (seventh edition, 2009), and the coauthor (with William Duiker) of World History, first published in 1994 (sixth edition, 2010). Professor Spielvogel has won five major universitywide teaching awards. During the year 1988–1989, he held the Penn State Teaching Fellowship, the university’s most prestigious teaching award. In 1996, he won the Dean Arthur Ray Warnock Award for Outstanding Faculty Member, and in 2000, he received the Schreyer Honors College Excellence in Teaching Award. TO DIANE, WHOSE LOVE AND SUPPORT MADE IT ALL POSSIBLE J.J.S.

B R I E F CONTENTS

DOCUMENTS MAPS

16 TOWARD A NEW HEAVEN AND A NEW EARTH:

xv

THE SCIENTIFIC REVOLUTION AND THE EMERGENCE OF MODERN SCIENCE 340

xviii

CHRONOLOGIES FEATURES PREFACE

xx

17 THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY: AN AGE

xxi

OF ENLIGHTENMENT 358

xxii

ACKNOWLEDGMENTS

18 THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY: EUROPEAN

xxvi

INTRODUCTION TO STUDENTS OF WESTERN CIVILIZATION xxix STUDYING FROM PRIMARY SOURCE MATERIALS xxxi

STATES, INTERNATIONAL WARS, AND SOCIAL CHANGE 377

19 A REVOLUTION IN POLITICS: THE ERA OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND NAPOLEON 398

20 THE INDUSTRIAL REVOLUTION AND ITS IMPACT ON EUROPEAN SOCIETY 421

1

THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS 1

21 REACTION, REVOLUTION, AND ROMANTICISM,

2

THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES 25

22 AN AGE OF NATIONALISM AND REALISM, 1850–1871 463

3

THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

4

THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

5

THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

6

THE ROMAN EMPIRE

7

LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD 130

8

EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000 154

9

THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES 175

44

24 AN AGE OF MODERNITY, ANXIETY, AND

85

IMPERIALISM, 1894–1914 507

108

195

11 THE LATER MIDDLE AGES: CRISIS AND

DISINTEGRATION IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY 220

12 RECOVERY AND REBIRTH: THE RENAISSANCE

23 MASS SOCIETY IN AN “AGE OF PROGRESS,” 1871–1894 484

66

10 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

1815–1850 442

25 THE BEGINNING OF THE TWENTIETH-CENTURY CRISIS: WAR AND REVOLUTION 533

26 THE FUTILE SEARCH FOR STABILITY: EUROPE BETWEEN THE WARS, 1919–1939 558

27 THE DEEPENING EUROPEAN CRISIS: WORLD WAR II 582

28 COLD WAR AND A NEW WESTERN WORLD, 1945–1965 607

29 PROTEST AND STAGNATION: THE WESTERN WORLD, 1965–1985 631

30 AFTER THE FALL: THE WESTERN WORLD IN A GLOBAL AGE (SINCE 1985) 651

242

13 REFORMATION AND RELIGIOUS WARFARE

GLOSSARY 677

14 EUROPE AND THE WORLD: NEW ENCOUNTERS,

CHAPTER NOTES 693

IN THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY 1500–1800

267

290

15 STATE BUILDING AND THE SEARCH FOR ORDER IN THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY

iv

315

PRONUNCIATION GUIDE 684 INDEX 702

D E TA I L ED CONTENTS

DOCUMENTS MAPS

xv

The Hebrews: “The Children of Israel” 27

xviii

CHRONOLOGIES FEATURES

The United Kingdom 27 The Divided Kingdom 28 The Spiritual Dimensions of Israel 29 The Neighbors of the Israelites 32

xx

xxi

PREFACE xxii ACKNOWLEDGMENTS

The Assyrian Empire 33

xxvi

Organization of the Empire 33 The Assyrian Military Machine 33 Assyrian Society and Culture 35

INTRODUCTION TO STUDENTS OF WESTERN CIVILIZATION xxix STUDYING FROM PRIMARY SOURCE MATERIALS xxxi

1

The Persian Empire 36 Cyrus the Great (559–530 b.c.) 36 Expanding the Empire 37 Governing the Empire 38 The Great King 38 Persian Religion 40

THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS 1

The First Humans 2

Conclusion

The Hunter-Gatherers of the Old Stone Age 2 The Neolithic Revolution (c. 10,000–4000 b.c.) 3

The Emergence of Civilization Civilization in Mesopotamia

5 7

19

20

22

Suggestions for Further Reading 23 Discovery

2

24

THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES 25

On the Fringes of Civilization 26 The Impact of the Indo-Europeans

26

THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS 44 45

Minoan Crete 45 The First Greek State: Mycenae 46

47

Homer and Homeric Greece 47 Homer’s Enduring Importance 48

Daily Life in Ancient Egypt: Family and Marriage 21 Conclusion

43

The Greeks in a Dark Age (c. 1100–c. 750 b.c.)

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

The Egyptian Diet

Discovery

Early Greece

Egyptian Civilization: “The Gift of the Nile” 13 The Impact of Geography 14 The Old and Middle Kingdoms 15 Society and Economy in Ancient Egypt 16 The Culture of Egypt 17 Disorder and a New Order: The New Kingdom

Suggestions for Further Reading 41

3

6

The City-States of Ancient Mesopotamia Empires in Ancient Mesopotamia 9 The Culture of Mesopotamia 11

40

The World of the Greek City-States (c. 750–c. 500 b.c.) 49 The Polis 49 A New Military System: The Greek Way of War Colonization and the Growth of Trade 50 Tyranny in the Greek Polis 51 Sparta 51 Athens 52

49

The High Point of Greek Civilization: Classical Greece 53 The Challenge of Persia 53 The Growth of an Athenian Empire in the Age of Pericles 54 The Great Peloponnesian War 55 The Decline of the Greek States (404–338 b.c.) 56 v

The Culture and Society of Classical Greece 56 The Writing of History 56 Greek Drama 57 The Arts: The Classical Ideal 57 The Greek Love of Wisdom 58 Greek Religion 60 Daily Life in Classical Athens 61 OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

Women in Athens and Sparta Conclusion

The Roman Conquest of the Mediterranean (264–133 b.c.) 90 The Struggle with Carthage 91 The Eastern Mediterranean 93 The Nature of Roman Imperialism 93 Evolution of the Roman Army 93

Society and Culture in the Roman World 94 Roman Religion 94 The Growth of Slavery 95

62

63

FILM & HISTORY

Spartacus (1960)

Suggestions for Further Reading 64 Discovery

4

THE HELLENISTIC WORLD 66

Macedonia and the Conquests of Alexander 67 Philip and the Conquest of Greece 67 Alexander the Great 67 F IL M & HI ST O RY

Alexander (2004)

The Decline and Fall of the Roman Republic (133–31 b.c.) 100 Social, Economic, and Political Problems 101 The Reforms of the Gracchi 101 A New Role for the Roman Army: Marius and Sulla The Collapse of the Republic 102

71

The World of the Hellenistic Kingdoms 72 Hellenistic Monarchies 72 The Threat from the Celts 73 Political Institutions 73 Hellenistic Cities 74 Economic Trends in the Hellenistic World 74 New Opportunities for Women 75

Culture in the Hellenistic World 77 New Directions in Literature 77 Hellenistic Art 77 A Golden Age of Science 78 Philosophy: New Schools of Thought

79

105

Discovery

6

107

THE ROMAN EMPIRE 108 109

The New Order 109 Augustan Society 111 The Augustan Age 111

The Early Empire (14–180)

111

Suggestions for Further Reading 82 Discovery

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

Conclusion

81 84

101

Suggestions for Further Reading 106

The Julio-Claudians 111 The Five “Good Emperors” (96–180) 112 The Roman Empire at Its Height: Frontiers and Provinces 112 Prosperity in the Early Empire 114

Mystery Religions 80 Jews in the Hellenistic World 81

Trade and the Products of Trade

116

Roman Culture and Society in the Early Empire 118

THE ROMAN REPUBLIC 85

The Emergence of Rome

86

The Greeks in Italy 86 The Etruscans 87 Early Rome 87

The Roman Republic (c. 509–264 b.c.) 88 The Roman State 88 The Roman Conquest of Italy 89 vi

Conclusion

The Age of Augustus (31 b.c.–a.d. 14)

Religion in the Hellenistic World 80

5

96

The Roman Family 97 The Evolution of Roman Law 98 The Development of Literature 98 Roman Art 100 Values and Attitudes 100

65

D E TA I L E D C O N T E N T S

The Golden Age of Latin Literature 118 The Silver Age of Latin Literature 118 The Upper-Class Roman Family 120 Imperial Rome 120 The Gladiatorial Shows 121

Transformation of the Roman World: Crises in the Third Century 122 Political and Military Woes 122 Economic and Social Crises 123

The Carolingian Intellectual Renewal Life in the Carolingian World 158

Transformation of the Roman World: The Rise of Christianity 123 The Religious World of the Roman Empire 123 The Jewish Background 123 The Origins of Christianity 124 The Growth of Christianity 125

Disintegration of the Carolingian Empire 161 Invasions of the Ninth and Tenth Centuries 161

The Emerging World of Lords and Vassals

Roman Authorities and a Christian on Christianity 126 128

The Zenith of Byzantine Civilization 166

Suggestions for Further Reading 128 Discovery

7

The Macedonian Dynasty 166

129

The Slavic Peoples of Central and Eastern Europe 168

LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD 130

The Late Roman Empire

Development of the Christian Church 138 The Power of the Pope 138 The Monks and Their Missions 138 Christianity and Intellectual Life 142

143

The Reign of Justinian (527–565) 143 From Eastern Roman to Byzantine Empire 145

The Rise of Islam 147

Suggestions for Further Reading 173 Discovery

9

174

THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES 175

Land and People in the High Middle Ages

176

The New Agriculture 176 Life of the Peasantry 178 The Aristocracy of the High Middle Ages 179

The New World of Trade and Cities 181 The Revival of Trade 181 The Growth of Cities 182 Life in the Medieval City 184 Industry in Medieval Cities 184

Life in a Medieval Town

185

The Intellectual and Artistic World of the High Middle Ages 186

150

Suggestions for Further Reading 151 153

EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000 154

The World of the Carolingians

171

173

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

Muhammad 147 The Teachings of Islam 147 The Spread of Islam 149

8

Conclusion

131

The Ostrogothic Kingdom of Italy 134 The Visigothic Kingdom of Spain 135 The Frankish Kingdom 135 Anglo-Saxon England 136 The Society of the Germanic Kingdoms 136

Discovery

The World of Islam 170 Islamic Civilization

The Germanic Kingdoms 134

Conclusion

Western Slavs 168 Southern Slavs 168 Eastern Slavs 169

131

The Reforms of Diocletian and Constantine The Empire’s New Religion 132 The End of the Western Empire 133

The Byzantine Empire

163

Vassalage 164 Fief-Holding 164 The Manorial System 165

O PPO SI N G VIEW POINTS

Conclusion

158

155

Charlemagne and the Carolingian Empire (768–814) 155

The Rise of Universities 186 A Revival of Classical Antiquity 187 The Revival of Roman Law 189 The Development of Scholasticism 189 Literature in the High Middle Ages 189 Romanesque Architecture: “A White Mantle of Churches” 190 The Gothic Cathedral 191 Conclusion

192

Suggestions for Further Reading 193 Discovery

194 Detailed Contents

vii

RISE OF KINGDOMS AND 10 THE THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER 195

The Emergence and Growth of European Kingdoms, 1000–1300 196 England in the High Middle Ages 196 The Growth of the French Kingdom 197 F IL M & HI ST O RY

The Lion in Winter (1968)

198

Christian Reconquest: The Spanish Kingdoms 200 The Lands of the Holy Roman Empire: Germany and Italy 201 New Kingdoms in Northern and Eastern Europe 203 Impact of the Mongol Empire 204 The Development of Russia 204

232

Culture and Society in an Age of Adversity 235 The Development of Vernacular Literature Art and the Black Death 236 Changes in Urban Life 237

235

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

238

240

Discovery

241

AND REBIRTH: THE 12 RECOVERY RENAISSANCE 242 Characteristics of the Italian Renaissance 243 The Making of Renaissance Society

Background to the Crusades The Early Crusades 212

212

The Siege of Jerusalem: Christian and Muslim Perspectives 214 The Crusades of the Thirteenth Century Effects of the Crusades 216

243

Economic Recovery 243 Social Changes in the Renaissance 245 Family and Marriage in Renaissance Italy 246

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

215

The Italian States in the Renaissance Machiavelli and the New Statecraft

248 249

The Intellectual Renaissance in Italy

250

Italian Renaissance Humanism 250

216

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

Suggestions for Further Reading 217

The Renaissance Prince: The Views of Machiavelli and Erasmus 251

219

LATER MIDDLE AGES: 11 THE CRISIS AND DISINTEGRATION IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY 220

A Time of Troubles: Black Death and Social Crisis 221 The Black Death 221 Economic Dislocation and Social Upheaval

226

The Hundred Years’ War 226 Political Instability 228 viii

Boniface VIII and the Conflict with the State The Papacy at Avignon (1305–1378) 234 The Great Schism 234 The Conciliar Movement 234

Suggestions for Further Reading 240

The Crusades 211

War and Political Instability

The Decline of the Church 232

Conclusion 205

Growth of the Papal Monarchy 206 New Religious Orders and Spiritual Ideals 207 Popular Religion in the High Middle Ages 209 Voices of Protest and Intolerance 209

Discovery

Western Europe: England and France 230 The German Monarchy 231 The States of Italy 231

Inventions and New Patterns 239

Christianity and Medieval Civilization 206

Conclusion

Joan of Arc (1948), The Messenger: The Story of Joan of Arc (1999) 229

Entertainment in the Middle Ages

The Recovery and Reform of the Catholic Church 205 The Problems of Decline 205 The Cluniac Reform Movement Reform of the Papacy 205

FILM & HISTORY

D E TA I L E D C O N T E N T S

Education in the Renaissance The Impact of Printing 252

The Artistic Renaissance

252

254

Early Renaissance Art 254 The Artistic High Renaissance 255 The Northern Artistic Renaissance 256

The European State in the Renaissance 224

258

The Renaissance State in Western Europe 259 Central Europe: The Holy Roman Empire 260 The Struggle for Strong Monarchy in Eastern Europe 261 The Ottoman Turks and the End of the Byzantine Empire 261

The Church in the Renaissance 262 The Problems of Heresy and Reform 262

The Renaissance Papacy 262 Conclusion

New Horizons: The Portuguese and Spanish Empires 292

263

Suggestions for Further Reading 264 Discovery

266

AND RELIGIOUS 13 REFORMATION WARFARE IN THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY 267

Prelude to Reformation

268

Christian or Northern Renaissance Humanism 268 Church and Religion on the Eve of the Reformation 269

Martin Luther and the Reformation in Germany 269 The Early Luther 270 The Rise of Lutheranism 271 Organizing the Church 272 Germany and the Reformation: Religion and Politics

The Spread of the Protestant Reformation

273

275

The Reformation in England 277 John Calvin and the Development of Calvinism 278

279

Politics and the Wars of Religion in the Sixteenth Century 283

Conclusion

283

286

14

289

EUROPE AND THE WORLD: NEW ENCOUNTERS, 1500–1800 290

On the Brink of a New World

The Impact of European Expansion 306 The Conquered 306 The Conquerors 308

309

Economic Conditions in the Sixteenth Century 310 The Growth of Commercial Capitalism 311 Mercantilism 311 Overseas Trade and Colonies: Movement Toward Globalization 311 312

Suggestions for Further Reading 313 314

BUILDING AND THE 15 STATE SEARCH FOR ORDER IN THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY

315

Social Crises, War, and Rebellions 316 The Witchcraft Hysteria 316 The Thirty Years’ War 318 Rebellions 318

The Practice of Absolutism: Western Europe 319

287

Suggestions for Further Reading 288 Discovery

China 304 Japan 304 The Americas 305

Discovery

The Society of Jesus 280 A Revived Papacy 282 The Council of Trent 282

Elizabeth (1998)

West Meets East: An Exchange of Royal Letters 303

Conclusion 279

The Catholic Reformation 280

F I L M & HI ST O RY

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

Toward a World Economy 310

A Reformation Debate: Conflict at Marburg 276

The French Wars of Religion (1562–1598) Philip II and Militant Catholicism 283 Revolt of the Netherlands 284 The England of Elizabeth 284

Africa: The Slave Trade 298 The West in Southeast Asia 300 The French and British in India 302

The Mission (1986)

O PPO SI N G VIEW POINTS

The Family 279 Religious Practices and Popular Culture

New Rivals on the World Stage 298

FILM & HISTORY

The Zwinglian Reformation 275 The Radical Reformation: The Anabaptists 275

The Social Impact of the Protestant Reformation

The Development of a Portuguese Maritime Empire 292 Voyages to the New World 294 The Spanish Empire in the New World 295

291

The Motives for Expansion 291 The Means for Expansion 292

France: Foundations of Absolutism 320 The Reign of Louis XIV (1643–1715) 320 The Decline of Spain 322

Absolutism in Central and Eastern Europe

323

The German States 323 The Emergence of Austria 323 Russia: From Fledgling Principality to Major Power 324 The Ottoman Empire 327 The Limits of Absolutism 327 Detailed Contents

ix

Suggestions for Further Reading 355

Limited Monarchy: The Dutch Republic and England 328

Discovery

The Golden Age of the Dutch Republic 328 England and the Emergence of Constitutional Monarchy 328

EIGHTEENTH CENTURY: AN 17 THE AGE OF ENLIGHTENMENT 358

I MAG ES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

Dutch Domesticity

329

The Enlightenment

The Flourishing of European Culture 333

336

Women in the Age of the Enlightenment: Rousseau and Wollstonecraft 367

339

Culture and Society in the Enlightenment

A NEW HEAVEN 16 TOWARD AND A NEW EARTH: THE

SCIENTIFIC REVOLUTION AND THE EMERGENCE OF MODERN SCIENCE 340

Background to the Scientific Revolution

341

Ancient Authors and Renaissance Artists 341 Technological Innovations and Mathematics 341 Renaissance Magic 342

Toward a New Heaven: A Revolution in Astronomy 342

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

A New Heaven? Faith versus Reason

346

Advances in Medicine and Chemistry 347 Vesalius 347 Harvey 347 Chemistry 348

x

354

D E TA I L E D C O N T E N T S

Conclusion

373

374

Suggestions for Further Reading 375 Discovery

376

INTERNATIONAL WARS, AND SOCIAL CHANGE 377

The European States 378 Enlightened Absolutism? 378 The Atlantic Seaboard States 379

380

Absolutism in Central and Eastern Europe 381 Enlightened Absolutism Revisited 385

Wars and Diplomacy 349

Toward a New Earth: Descartes, Rationalism, and a New View of Humankind 350

Conclusion

372

The Institutional Church 372 Toleration and Religious Minorities 372 Popular Religion in the Eighteenth Century

Marie Antoinette (2006)

Women in the Origins of Modern Science 348

The Scientific Method 351 The Scientific Societies 352 Science and Society 353 Science and Religion 353

Religion and the Churches

FILM & HISTORY

The Spread of Scientific Knowledge 351

368

Innovations in Art, Music, and Literature 368 The High Culture of the Eighteenth Century 370 Popular Culture 370 Crime and Punishment 371

EIGHTEENTH CENTURY: 18 THE EUROPEAN STATES,

Copernicus 343 Kepler 343 Galileo 344 Newton 345

Margaret Cavendish 348 Maria Winkelmann 349 Debates on the Nature of Women

366

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

Suggestions for Further Reading 337 Discovery

359

The Paths to Enlightenment 359 The Philosophes and Their Ideas 361 The Social Environment of the Philosophes

The Changing Faces of Art 333 A Wondrous Age of Theater 334 Conclusion

357

386

The Seven Years’ War (1756–1763) 386

Economic Expansion and Social Change 388 Population and Food 388 Family, Marriage, and Birthrate Patterns 389 New Methods of Finance 390 European Industry 390 Mercantile Empires and Worldwide Trade 391

The Social Order of the Eighteenth Century The Peasants 392

391

The Nobility 392 The Inhabitants of Towns and Cities IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

The Aristocratic Way of Life Conclusion

The Social Impact of the Industrial Revolution 432

392

Population Growth 432 The Growth of Cities 433 New Social Classes: The Industrial Middle Class 434 New Social Classes: Workers in the Industrial Age 434 Efforts at Change: The Workers 437 Efforts at Change: Reformers and Government 438

393

396

Suggestions for Further Reading 396 Discovery

19

397

A REVOLUTION IN POLITICS: THE ERA OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND NAPOLEON 398

The Beginning of the Revolutionary Era: The American Revolution 399 The War for Independence 399 Forming a New Nation 400 Social Structure of the Old Regime 401 Other Problems Facing the French Monarchy 402

402

From Estates-General to National Assembly Destruction of the Old Regime 403

402

O PPO SI N G VIEW POINTS

The Natural Rights of the French People: Two Views 405 The Radical Revolution 407 Reaction and the Directory 411

The Age of Napoleon 412 The Rise of Napoleon 412 The Domestic Policies of Emperor Napoleon 414 Napoleon’s Empire and the European Response 415 Conclusion

419

Suggestions for Further Reading 419 Discovery

420

Suggestions for Further Reading 439 Discovery

441

REVOLUTION, AND 21 REACTION, ROMANTICISM, 1815–1850 442 Conservative Domination 443 Conservatives in the European States

421

The Industrial Revolution in Great Britain 422 Origins of the Industrial Revolution 422 Technological Changes and New Forms of Industrial Organization 423 The Great Exhibition: Britain in 1851 426

The Spread of Industrialization 428 Industrialization on the Continent 428 Centers of Continental Industrialization 429 The Industrial Revolution in the United States 429 Limiting the Spread of Industrialization 431

447

The Ideologies of Change 448 Liberalism 448 Nationalism 450 Early Socialism 450

Revolution and Reform, 1830–1850 450 The Revolutions of 1830 The Revolutions of 1848

450 452

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

Response to Revolution: Two Perspectives 454

Culture in an Age of Reaction and Revolution: The Mood of Romanticism 456 The Characteristics of Romanticism 457 Romantic Poets and the Love of Nature 457 Romanticism in Art 458 Romanticism in Music 459 Conclusion

INDUSTRIAL REVOLUTION 20 THE AND ITS IMPACT ON EUROPEAN SOCIETY

438

The Conservative Order, 1815–1830 443

Background to the French Revolution 400

The French Revolution

Conclusion

460

Suggestions for Further Reading 460 Discovery

462

AGE OF NATIONALISM AND 22 AN REALISM, 1850–1871 463 The France of Napoleon III 464 Louis Napoleon: Toward the Second Empire 464 The Second Napoleonic Empire 464 Foreign Policy: The Mexican Adventure 465 Foreign Policy: The Crimean War 465

National Unification: Italy and Germany

466

The Unification of Italy 466 The Unification of Germany 467 Detailed Contents

xi

Nation Building and Reform: The National State in Mid-Century 470 The Austrian Empire: Toward a Dual Monarchy 470 Imperial Russia 472 Great Britain: The Victorian Age 474 The United States: Slavery and War 474 The Emergence of a Canadian Nation 475

Industrialization and the Marxist Response

1894–1914

476

Science and Culture in an Age of Realism 478 A New Age of Science 478 Charles Darwin and the Theory of Organic Evolution 478 Realism in Literature 479 Realism in Art 480

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

The Struggle for the Right to Vote

483

SOCIETY IN AN 23 MASS “AGE OF PROGRESS,” 1871–1894 484

The Growth of Industrial Prosperity 485 New Products 485 New Markets 486 New Patterns in an Industrial Economy 486 Women and Work: New Job Opportunities 489 Organizing the Working Classes 489 Population Growth 490 Emigration 491 Transformation of the Urban Environment 491 The Social Structure of a Mass Society 494 The “Woman Question”: The Role of Women 495

Advice to Women: Two Views 498

Mass Leisure 500

The National State 500 Western Europe: The Growth of Political Democracy 501 Central and Eastern Europe: Persistence of the Old Order 502 Conclusion

504

Suggestions for Further Reading 505 Discovery xii

506

D E TA I L E D C O N T E N T S

520

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

White Man’s Burden, Black Man’s Burden Responses to Imperialism 525 Results of the New Imperialism 527 New Directions and New Crises 527 Crises in the Balkans, 1908–1913 528 Conclusion

530

Suggestions for Further Reading 530 Discovery

532

496

497

The Middle-Class Family

520

Impetus for the New Imperialism The Creation of Empires 520

International Rivalry and the Coming of War 527

The Emergence of a Mass Society 490

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

516

Jews in the European Nation-State 517 The Transformation of Liberalism: Great Britain 517 France: Travails of the Third Republic 518 Growing Tensions in Germany 518 Austria-Hungary: The Problem of the Nationalities 518 Industrialization and Revolution in Imperial Russia 518 The Rise of the United States 519 The Growth of Canada 519

The New Imperialism

I MAG ES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

510

The Movement for Women’s Rights 514

481

Education in the Mass Society

Developments in the Sciences: A New Physics 508 Toward a New Understanding of the Irrational: Nietzsche 509 Sigmund Freud and Psychoanalysis 509 The Impact of Darwin: Social Darwinism and Racism The Culture of Modernity 511

Politics: New Directions and New Uncertainties 514

Suggestions for Further Reading 482 Discovery

507

Toward the Modern Consciousness: Intellectual and Cultural Developments 508

Marx and Marxism 476

Conclusion

AGE OF MODERNITY, 24 AN ANXIETY, AND IMPERIALISM,

BEGINNING OF THE 25 THE TWENTIETH-CENTURY CRISIS: WAR AND REVOLUTION 533

The Road to World War I 534 Nationalism and Internal Dissent 534 Militarism 534 The Outbreak of War: The Summer of 1914 535

The Great War

536

1914–1915: Illusions and Stalemate 537 1916–1917: The Great Slaughter 538

521

DEEPENING EUROPEAN 27 THE CRISIS: WORLD WAR II 582

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

Life in the Trenches The Widening of the War

539

540

F I L M & HI ST O RY

Paths of Glory (1957)

Prelude to War 583

543

The Home Front: The Impact of Total War

War and Revolution

The “Diplomatic Revolution,” 1933–1937 583 The Path to War in Europe, 1938–1939 583

544

545

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

The Munich Conference: Two Views

The Russian Revolution 546 The Last Year of the War 550

The Path to War in Asia

The Course of World War II

The Peace Settlement 551 The Treaty of Versailles

Three Voices of Peacemaking The Other Peace Treaties Conclusion

552

554

554

The New Order

Suggestions for Further Reading 555 Discovery

26

557

The Home Front

THE FUTILE SEARCH FOR STABILITY: EUROPE BETWEEN THE WARS, 1919–1939 558

An Uncertain Peace: The Search for Security

Conclusion Discovery 562

563

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS

575

Nightmares and New Visions: Art and Music 576 The Search for the Unconscious in Literature 577 The Unconscious in Psychology 578 The “Heroic Age of Physics” 578

581

Who Started the Cold War? American and Soviet Perspectives 609 Globalization of the Cold War

611

Europe and the World: Decolonization 612

Cultural and Intellectual Trends in the Interwar Years 574

Discovery

WAR AND A NEW WESTERN 28 COLD WORLD, 1945–1965 607 Confrontation of the Superpowers 608

Radio and Movies 573 Mass Leisure 574

Suggestions for Further Reading 580

606

Development of the Cold War 608

The Expansion of Mass Culture and Mass Leisure 573

579

604

Suggestions for Further Reading 605

The Retreat from Democracy 563 Fascist Italy 564 Hitler and Nazi Germany 566 The Soviet Union 570 Authoritarian States 572

Conclusion

599

The Costs of World War II 601 Allied War Conferences 601

The Democratic States 561

Triumph of the Will (1934)

597

Aftermath of the War 601

559

European States and the World: The Colonial Empires

596

The Mobilization of Peoples 597 Civilians on the Front Line: The Bombing of Cities

The French Policy of Coercion, 1919–1924 559 The Hopeful Years, 1924–1929 559 The Great Depression 560

F I L M & HI ST O RY

593

The Nazi Empire 593 The Holocaust 594 The New Order in Asia

The Authoritarian and Totalitarian States

587

Victory and Stalemate 587 The War in Asia 588 The Turning Point of the War, 1942–1943 590 The Last Years of the War 591

551

O PPO SI N G VIEW POINTS

586

586

Africa: The Struggle for Independence 613 Conflict in the Middle East 614 Asia: Nationalism and Communism 616

Recovery and Renewal in Europe 617 The Soviet Union: From Stalin to Khrushchev 617 Eastern Europe: Behind the Iron Curtain 618 Western Europe: The Revival of Democracy and the Economy 619 Western Europe: The Move Toward Unity 622

The United States and Canada: A New Era American Politics and Society in the 1950s

622 623

Detailed Contents

xiii

An Age of Upheaval: America in the 1960s 623 The Development of Canada 624

Postwar Society and Culture in the Western World 624 The Structure of European Society 624 Women in the Postwar Western World 625 Postwar Art 626 Postwar Literature 627 The Revival of Religion 627 The Explosion of Popular Culture 628 Conclusion

629

Suggestions for Further Reading 629 Discovery

1965–1985 631

A Culture of Protest 632 632

I MAG ES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

Youth Culture in the 1960s

633

The Feminist Movement 635 Antiwar Protests 635

A Divided Western World 636 Stagnation in the Soviet Union 636 Conformity in Eastern Europe 636 Western Europe: The Winds of Change 637 The European Community 639 The United States: Turmoil and Tranquillity 639 Canada 640

The Cold War: The Move to Détente 640 The Vietnam War 640 F IL M & HI ST O RY

Dr. Strangelove, Or: How I Learned to Stop Worrying and Love the Bomb (1964) 641 China and the Cold War 643 The Practice of Détente 643 The Limits of Détente 643

Society and Culture in the Western World 644 The World of Science and Technology 644 The Environment and the Green Movements 644 Postmodern Thought 645 Trends in Art, Literature, and Music 646 Popular Culture: Image and Globalization 647 648

Suggestions for Further Reading 649 Discovery

xiv

650

D E TA I L E D C O N T E N T S

Toward a New Western Order 652 The Revolutionary Era in the Soviet Union 652 Eastern Europe: The Revolutions of 1989 and the Collapse of the Communist Order 655 The Reunification of Germany 657 The Disintegration of Yugoslavia 657 Western Europe and the Search for Unity 660

The Lives of Others (2006)

AND STAGNATION: 29 PROTEST THE WESTERN WORLD,

Conclusion

(SINCE 1985) 651

FILM & HISTORY

630

A Revolt in Sexual Mores 632 Youth Protest and Student Revolt

THE FALL: THE WESTERN 30 AFTER WORLD IN A GLOBAL AGE

661

The Unification of Europe 662 The United States: Move to the Center Contemporary Canada 664

662

After the Cold War: New World Order or Age of Terrorism? 664 The End of the Cold War 664 An Age of Terrorism? 665 Terrorist Attack on the United States 666

New Directions and New Problems in Western Society 667 Transformation in Women’s Lives 667 Guest Workers and Immigrants 668

Western Culture Today 670 Varieties of Religious Life 670 Art in the Age of Commerce: The 1980s and 1990s 670 The Digital Age 670

Toward a Global Civilization 672 The Global Economy 672 Globalization and the Environmental Crisis 673 The Social Challenges of Globalization 673 New Global Movements and New Hopes 673 Suggestions for Further Reading 675 Discovery

676

Glossary 677 Pronunciation Guide 684 Chapter Notes 693 Index 702

D OCUMENTS

This page constitutes an extension of the copyright page. We have made every effort to trace the ownership of all copyrighted material and to secure permission from copyright holders. In the event of any question arising as to the use of any material, we will be pleased to make the necessary corrections in future printings. We thank the following authors, publishers, and agents for permission to use the material indicated.

C H A P T E R

THE CODE OF HAMMURABI

1

10

Pritchard, James; Ancient Near Eastern Texts Relating To The Old Testament—Third Edition With Supplement. © 1950, 1955, 1969, renewed 1978 by Princeton University Press. Reprinted by permission of Princeton University Press.

THE GREAT FLOOD

13

From The Epic Of Gilgamesh translated with an introduction by N. K. Sandars (Penguin Classics 1960, Third edition 1972). Copyright © N. K. Sandars, 1960, 1964, 1972. Reproduced by permission of Penguin Books Ltd.

SIGNIFICANCE OF THE NILE RIVER AND THE PHARAOH 14 Pritchard, James; Ancient Near Eastern Texts Relating To The Old Testament—Third Edition With Supplement. © 1950, 1955, 1969, renewed 1978 by Princeton University Press. Reprinted by permission of Princeton University Press.

A FATHER’S ADVICE

21

Pritchard, James; Ancient Near Eastern Texts Relating To The Old Testament—Third Edition With Supplement. © 1950, 1955, 1969, renewed 1978 by Princeton University Press. Reprinted by permission of Princeton University Press.

Relating To The Old Testament—Third Edition With Supplement. © 1950, 1955, 1969, renewed 1978 by Princeton University Press. Reprinted by permission of Princeton University Press. King Sennacherib Describes His Siege of Jerusalem (701 b.c.). Pritchard, James; Ancient Near Eastern Texts Relating To The Old Testament—Third Edition With Supplement. © 1950, 1955, 1969, renewed 1978 by Princeton University Press. Reprinted by permission of Princeton University Press. King Ashurbanipal (669–626 b.c.) Describes His Treatment of Conquered Babylon. From The Might That Was Assyria by H.W.F. Saggs. Copyright © 1984 by Sidgwick & Jackson Limited.

A DINNER WITH THE PERSIAN KING

C H A P T E R

HOMER’S IDEAL OF EXCELLENCE

48

52

From The Lives of the Noble Grecians and Romans by Plutarch, translated by John Dryden and edited by Arthur H. Clough.

2

THE COVENANT AND THE LAW: THE BOOK OF EXODUS 30 Scripture taken from the Holy Bible, New International Version. Copyright © 1973, 1978, 1984 International Bible Society. Used by permission of Zondervan. All rights reserved.

®

THE HEBREW PROPHETS: MICAH, ISAIAH, AND AMOS 31 Scripture taken from the Holy Bible, New International Version. Copyright © 1973, 1978, 1984 International Bible Society. Used by permission of Zondervan. All rights reserved.

®

THE ASSYRIAN MILITARY MACHINE

3

From The Iliad by Homer, translated by E. V. Rieu, Revised and updated by Peter Jones with D. C. H. Rieu, Edited with an introduction and notes by Peter Jones (Penguin Classics, 1950, Revised translation 2003). Copyright © the Estate of E. V. Rieu, 1946. Revised translation and Introduction and Notes copyright © Peter V. Jones, 2003. Reprinted with permission of Penguin Books Ltd.

THE LYCURGAN REFORMS C H A P T E R

39

Reprinted by permission of the publishers and the Trustees of the Loeb Classical Library from Athenaeus: The Deipnosophists, Loeb Classical Library Vol. II, translated by C. B. Gulick, Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, Copyright © 1928, by the President and Fellows of Harvard College. The Loeb Classical Library is a registered trademark of the President and Fellows of Harvard.

34

King Sennacherib (704–681 b.c.) Describes a Battle with the Elamites in 691 b.c. Pritchard, James; Ancient Near Eastern Texts

ATHENIAN DEMOCRACY: THE FUNERAL ORATION OF PERICLES 55 From The History of the Peloponnesian War by Thucydides, translated by Rex Warner, with an introduction and notes by M. I. Finley (Penguin Classics, 1954, Revised edition 1972). Translation copyright © Rex Warner, 1954. Introduction and Appendices copyright © 1972. Reproduced by permission of Penguin Books, Ltd. and Curtis Brown Group Ltd.

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS: WOMEN IN ATHENS AND SPARTA 62 Xenophon, Oeconomicus. Reprinted by permission of the publishers and the Trustees of the Loeb Classical Library from Xenophon, Memorabilia and Oeconomicus, Loeb Classical Library Vol. IV, xv

translated by E. C. Marchant and O. J. Todd, Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, Copyright © 1930, by the President and Fellows of Harvard College. The Loeb Classical Library is a registered trademark of the President and Fellows of Harvard. Xenophon, Constitution of the Spartans, Aristotle, Politics, and Plutarch, Lycurgus. From Ancient Greece: Social and Historical Documents from Archaic Times to the Death of Socrates. Edited by Matthew Dillon and Lynda Garland. London: Routledge, 1994, pp. 393–95. Copyright © 1994 Matthew Dillion and Lynda Garland. C H A P T E R

4

70

From The Campaigns of Alexander the Great by Arrian, translated by Aubrey de Selincourt and revised with an introduction and notes by J. R. Hamilton (Penguin Classics 1958, Revised edition 1971). Copyright © the Estate of Aubrey de Selincourt, 1958. Introduction and Notes copyright © J. R. Hamilton, 1971. Reproduced by permission of Penguin Books Ltd.

76

From The Hellenistic Period: Historical Sources in Translation by Roger S. Bagnall and Peter Derow, pp. 281–82, 246. Copyright © 1981, 2004 by Roger S. Bagnall and Peter Derow. Published 2004 by Blackwell Publishing.

THE STOIC IDEAL OF HARMONY WITH GOD

5

From The Early History Of Rome: Books I–V Of The History Of Rome From Its Foundation by Livy, translated by Aubrey de Selincourt with an introduction by R. M. Ogilvie (Penguin Classics 1960, Reprinted with a new introduction 1971). Copyright © the Estate of Aubrey de Selincourt, 1960.

THE ASSASSINATION OF JULIUS CAESAR

103

From The Lives of the Noble Grecians and Romans by Plutarch, translated by John Dryden and edited by Arthur H. Clough. DOCUMENTS

119

From The Love Books of Ovid, translated by J. Lewis May. Published 1930 by Rarity Press.

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS: ROMAN AUTHORITIES AND A CHRISTIAN ON CHRISTIANITY 126 An exchange between Pliny and Trajan. From The Letters of the Younger Pliny, translated with an introduction by Betty Radice (Penguin Classics 1963, Reprinted 1969). Copyright © Betty Radice, 1963, 1969. Reproduced by permission of Penguin Books Ltd. From Origen, Contra Celsum. Translated by Henry Chadwick. Copyright © 1953. Reprinted with the permission of Cambridge University Press. C H A P T E R

7

GERMANIC CUSTOMARY LAW: THE ORDEAL

137

From Translations and Reprints from the Original Sources of European History, Series I, Vol. 4. Translated by A. C. Howland. (Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 1898).

139

From A Treasury of Early Christianity by Anne Freemantle. Copyright © 1953 by Mentor Books. Reprinted by permission of Anne Freemantle.

IRISH MONASTICISM AND THE PENITENTIAL

141

From Medieval Handbooks of Penance, edited by John T. McNeill and Helena M. Garner. Copyright © 1990 by Columbia University Press. Reprinted by permission of the publisher.

148

From The Koran, translated by N. J. Dawood (Penguin Classics 1956, Fifth revised edition 1990). Copyright © N. J. Dawood, 1956, 1959, 1966, 1968, 1974, 1990, 1993, 1997, 1999, 2003. Reproduced by permission of Penguin Books Ltd. C H A P T E R

8

THE ACHIEVEMENTS OF CHARLEMAGNE

99

From Roman Civilization, Vol. I by Naphtali Lewis and Meyer Reinhold. Copyright © 1955 Columbia University Press. Reprinted by permission of the publisher.

xvi

From The Letters of the Younger Pliny, translated with an introduction by Betty Radice (Penguin Classics 1963, Reprinted 1969). Copyright © Betty Radice, 1963, 1969. Reproduced by permission of Penguin Books Ltd.

THE QUR’AN: THE PILGRIMAGE

97

Reprinted by permission of the publishers and the Trustees of the Loeb Classical Library from Livy: History of Rome, Book 34, Loeb Classical Library Vol. II–IV, translated by B. O. Foster, Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, Copyright © 1935 by the President and Fellows of Harvard College. The Loeb Classical Library is a registered trademark of the President and Fellows of Harvard College.

THE TWELVE TABLES

THE DAILY LIFE OF AN UPPER-CLASS ROMAN 117

THE LIFE OF SAINT ANTHONY

CINCINNATUS SAVES ROME: A ROMAN MORALITY TALE 90

CATO THE ELDER ON WOMEN

110

From Roman Civilization, Vol. I by Naphtali Lewis and Meyer Reinhold. Copyright © 1955 Columbia University Press. Reprinted by permission of the publisher.

80

From Hellenistic Philosophy: Stoics, Epicureans, Sceptics, Second Edition, A. A. Long. Copyright © 1986 by A. A. Long. Reprinted by permission of the University of California Press and Gerald Duckworth & Co. Ltd. C H A P T E R

6

THE ACHIEVEMENTS OF AUGUSTUS

OVID AND THE ART OF LOVE

ALEXANDER MEETS AN INDIAN KING

A NEW AUTONONY FOR WOMEN?

C H A P T E R

156

From Einhard, The Life of Charlemagne, translated by Samuel Epes Turner (New York: Harper & Brothers, 1880).

ADVICE FROM A CAROLINGIAN MOTHER

159

Reprinted from Handbook for William: A Carolingian Woman’s Counsel for Her Son, by Dhouda of Septimania, translated and with an introduction by Carol Neel, by permission of

the University of Nebraska Press. Copyright © 1991 by the University of Nebraska Press.

A WESTERN VIEW OF THE BYZANTINE EMPIRE 167 From The Works of Liudprand of Cremona, translated by F. A. Wright, copyright © 1930 by Routledge and Sons. Reprinted with permission.

A MUSLIM’S DESCRIPTION OF THE RUS

169

From The Vikings by Johannes Brøndsted, translated by Kalle Skov (Penguin Books, 1965) copyright © Johannes Brøndsted, 1960, 1965. Reproduced by permission of Penguin Books Ltd. C H A P T E R

THE ELIMINATION OF MEDIEVAL FORESTS

177

From Abbot Suger on the Abbey Church of St. Denis and Its Art Treasures, edited and translated by Erwin Panofsky. Copyright © 1946, renewed 1973 by Princeton University Press. Reprinted with permission of Dr. G. S. Panofsky.

180

From Not in God’s Image: Women in History from the Greeks to Victorians by Julia O’Faolain and Lauro Martines. Copyright © 1973 by Julia O’Faolain and Lauro Martines. Reprinted by permission of the authors.

AN ITALIAN BANKER DISCUSSES TRADING BETWEEN EUROPE AND CHINA 183 Edited by Henry Yule and Henry Cordier, Cathay and the Way Thither, 2d ed. (London: Hakluyt Society, 1913–16), vol. 3, pp. 151–155.

UNIVERSITY STUDENTS AND VIOLENCE AT OXFORD 188 From The Story of Oxford by Cecil Headlam, 1907. C H A P T E R

MAGNA CARTA

1 0

199

From University of Pennsylvania Translation and Reprints, translated by E. P. Cheyney (Philadelphia, Pa: University of Pennsylvania Press), 1897, Volume I, No. 6, pp. 6–16.

A MIRACLE OF SAINT BERNARD

207

From A History of Medieval Europe, 2nd ed., by R. H. C. Davis (London: Longman Group, 1988) pp. 265–66. Copyright © 1957, 1988 by Longman Group UK Limited. Reprinted by permission of Pearson Education Ltd.

TREATMENT OF THE JEWS

C H A P T E R

THE BLACK DEATH

211

From The Jews of Angevin England, Joseph Jacobs (London: David Nutt, 1893), p. 45.

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS: THE SIEGE OF JERUSALEM: CHRISTIAN AND MUSLIM PERSPECTIVES 214 Fulcher of Chartres, Chronicle of the First Crusade. From The First Crusade: The Chronicle of Fulcher of Chartres and Other

1 1

223

From The Decameron by Giovanni Boccaccio, translated by Frances Winwar, pp. xxii–xxiv, xxviii–xxix. Reprinted by permission of The Limited Editions Club.

THE TRIAL OF JOAN OF ARC

9

WOMEN IN MEDIEVAL THOUGHT

Source Materials, 2nd ed., edited by Edward Peters (University of Pennsylvania Press, 1998), pp. 90–91. Account of Ibn al-Athir. From Arab Historians of the Crusades, edited and translated by E. J. Costello. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1969.

228

From The Trial of Joan of Arc, translated by W. P. Barret. Copyright © 1932 by Gotham House, Inc.

BONIFACE VIII’S DEFENSE OF PAPAL SUPREMACY 233 From Select Historical Documents of the Middle Ages by Ernest F. Henderson. London: George Bell & Sons, 1896.

DANTE’S VISION OF HELL

236

From The Divine Comedy by Dante Alighieri, translated by John Ciardi. Copyright 1954, 1957, 1959, 1960, 1961, 1965, 1967, 1970 by the Ciardi Family Publishing Trust. Used by permission of W. W. Norton & Company, Inc. C H A P T E R

A RENAISSANCE BANQUET

1 2

244

Reprinted from Food in History by Reay Tannahill, copyright © 1973, 1988 by Reay Tannahill.

MARRIAGE NEGOTIATIONS

247

From The Society of Renaissance Florence, edited by Gene Brucker. Copyright © 1971 by Gene Brucker. Reprinted with permission of The Renaissance Society of America.

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS: THE RENAISSANCE PRINCE: THE VIEWS OF MACHIAVELLI AND ERASMUS 251 Machiavelli, The Prince (1513). From The Prince by Machiavelli, translated by David Wootton, pp. 51–52. Copyright © 1995 by Hackett Publishing Company, Inc. Reprinted by permission of Hackett Publishing Company, Inc. All rights reserved. Erasmus, Education of a Christian Prince (1516). From The Education of a Christian Prince, by Erasmus, translated by L. K. Born. Copyright © 1936 by Columbia University Press. Reprinted with permission of the publisher.

A WOMAN’S DEFENSE OF LEARNING

253

Laura Cereta, “Defense of the Liberal Instruction of Women.” From Her Immaculate Hand: Selected Works by and about the Women Humanists of Quattrocentro Italy, edited by Margaret King and Albert Rabil (Pegasus Press, Asheville, NC, 2000). Reprinted by permission. Continues on page 698

Documents

xvii

MAPS

Map 1.1 Spot Map Spot Map Spot Map Spot Map Map 1.2 Spot Map Map 1.3 Map 2.1 Spot Map Map 2.2 Map 2.3 Map 3.1 Spot Map Map 4.1 Map 4.2 Map 5.1 Spot Map Map 5.2 Map 5.3 Map 6.1 Map 6.2 Spot Map Map 6.3 Map 7.1 Map 7.2 Map 7.3 Map 7.4 Spot Map Map 7.5 Map 8.1 Spot Map Map 8.2 xviii

The Spread of Homo sapiens sapiens 3 Harappa and Mohenjo-Daro 5 The Yellow River, China 6 Central Asian Civilization 6 Caral, Peru 6 The Ancient Near East 7 Hammurabi’s Empire 9 Ancient Egypt 15 The Israelites and Their Neighbors in the First Millennium b.c. 28 Phoenician Colonies and Trade Routes, c. 800 b.c. 32 The Assyrian and Neo-Babylonian Empires 33 The Persian Empire at the Time of Darius 37 Ancient Greece (c. 750–338 b.c.) 46 Minoan Crete and Mycenaean Greece 46 The Conquests of Alexander the Great 69 The Hellenistic Kingdoms 72 Ancient Italy 86 The City of Rome 87 Roman Conquests in the Mediterranean, 264–133 b.c. 92 Roman Dominions in the Late Republic, 31 b.c. 104 The Roman Empire from Augustus to Trajan (14–117) 113 Trade Routes and Products in the Roman Empire, c. 200 115 Silk Road 117 Imperial Rome 120 Divisions of the Late Roman Empire, c. 300 132 The Germanic Kingdoms of the Old Western Empire 135 The Spread of Christianity, 400–800 142 The Byzantine Empire in the Time of Justinian 145 The Byzantine Empire, c. 750 146 The Spread of Islam 149 The Carolingian Empire 157 Division of the Carolingian Empire by the Treaty of Verdun, 843 161 Invasions of the Ninth and Tenth Centuries 162

Map 8.3 Spot Map Map 8.4 Spot Map Spot Map Map 9.1 Map 9.2 Map 10.1 Map 10.2 Map 10.3 Map 10.4 Spot Map Map 10.5 Map 11.1 Map 11.2 Spot Map Spot Map Spot Map Map 12.1 Map 12.2 Map 13.1 Spot Map Spot Map Map 13.2 Spot Map Map 14.1 Spot Map Spot Map Spot Map Map 14.2 Spot Map Spot Map Spot Map Spot Map Map 15.1

A Typical Manor 165 The Byzantine Empire in 1025 167 The Migrations of the Slavs 168 The Abbasid Caliphate at the Height of Its Power 170 Flanders as a Trade Center 181 Medieval Trade Routes 182 Main Intellectual Centers of Medieval Europe 187 England and France, 1154–1337 200 Christian Reconquests in the Western Mediterranean 201 The Holy Roman Empire in the Twelfth Century 202 Northern and Eastern Europe, c. 1150 203 The Mongol Empire in the Thirteenth Century 204 The Early Crusades 213 Spread of the Black Death 222 The Hundred Years’ War 227 The Holy Roman Empire in the Fourteenth Century 231 The States of Italy in the Fourteenth Century 232 Avignon 234 Renaissance Italy 248 Europe in the Second Half of the Fifteenth Century 260 The Empire of Charles V 274 Zwingli’s Zürich 275 Calvin’s Geneva 278 Catholics and Protestants in Europe by 1560 280 The Netherlands 284 European Discoveries and Possessions in the Fifteenth and Sixteenth Centuries 293 Lands of the Maya 295 The Aztec Empire 295 Lands of the Inca 297 Triangular Trade in the Atlantic Economy 299 Southeast Asia, c. 1700 301 The Mughal Empire 302 The Qing Empire 304 The West Indies 305 The Thirty Years’ War 319

Map 15.2 Map 15.3 Map 15.4 Spot Map Map 17.1 Spot Map Map 18.1 Spot Map Map 18.2 Spot Map Spot Map Map 19.1 Spot Map Map 19.2 Map 20.1 Map 20.2 Map 21.1 Map 21.2 Spot Map Spot Map Map 21.3 Spot Map Map 22.1 MAP 22.2 Map 22.3 Map 22.4

The Growth of Brandenburg-Prussia 323 The Growth of the Austrian Empire 324 Russia: From Principality to Nation-State 326 Civil War in England 330 The Enlightenment in Europe 361 Religious Populations of Eighteenth-Century Europe 372 Europe in 1763 382 Pugachev’s Rebellion 385 Battlefields of the Seven Years’ War 387 North America, 1763 399 North America, 1783 400 French Expansion During the Revolutionary Wars, 1792–1799 409 Revolt in Saint-Domingue (Haiti) 411 Napoleon’s Grand Empire in 1810 416 The Industrial Revolution in Britain by 1850 425 The Industrialization of Europe by 1850 430 Europe After the Congress of Vienna, 1815 444 Latin America in the First Half of the Nineteenth Century 446 The Balkans by 1830 447 Italy, 1815 447 The Distribution of Languages in NineteenthCentury Europe 451 The Crimean War 465 The Unification of Italy 467 The Unification of Germany 469 Europe in 1871 471 Ethnic Groups in the Dual Monarchy, 1867 472

Map 23.1 Map 23.2 Spot Map Spot Map Map 24.1 Map 24.2 Map 24.3 Map 25.1 Spot Map Map 25.2 Map 25.3 Map 25.4 Spot Map Spot Map Map 27.1 Map 27.2 Map 27.3 Map 27.4 Map 27.5 Spot Map Map 28.1 Map 28.2 Map 28.3 Spot Map Spot Map Map 30.1 Spot Map Map 30.2 Map 30.3 Spot Map

The Industrial Regions of Europe at the End of the Nineteenth Century 488 Population Growth in Europe, 1820–1900 492 Palestine 517 Canada, 1871 519 Africa in 1914 523 Asia in 1914 524 The Balkans in 1913 529 Europe in 1914 535 The Schlieffen Plan 536 The Western Front, 1914–1918 538 The Eastern Front, 1914–1918 540 Europe in 1919 553 The Middle East in 1919 554 Eastern Europe in the 1920s 573 Changes in Central Europe, 1936–1939 585 World War II in Europe and North Africa 589 World War II in Asia and the Pacific 590 The Holocaust 596 Territorial Changes After World War II 603 The Korean War 611 Decolonization in Africa 614 Decolonization in the Middle East 615 Decolonization in Asia 616 European Economic Community, 1957 622 Southeast Asia at the Time of the Vietnam War 642 The New Europe 653 Chechnya 655 The Lands of the Former Yugoslavia, 1995 659 European Union, 2007 663 Quebec 664

Maps

xix

C H R ONOLOGI ES

The First Humans 2

Important Works of the Scientific Revolution

The Egyptians

Works of the Philosophes 366

17

349

The Israelites 29

France and Britain in the Eighteenth Century

The Ancient Empires 38

Central and Eastern Europe in the Eighteenth Century

Archaic Greece: Sparta and Athens

53

The French Revolution

381

412

Macedonia and the Conquests of Alexander 69

The Napoleonic Era, 1799–1815

The Roman Conquest of Italy and the Mediterranean 93

Reaction, Reform, and Revolution: The European States, 1815–1850 456

The Decline and Fall of the Roman Republic The Late Roman Empire The Germanic Kingdoms

102

The Unification of Italy

134

468

The Byzantine Empire 146

The National State

The Rise of Islam

The National States, 1871–1894

150

Byzantium, the Slavs, and the Islamic World Growth of the European Kingdoms

171

204 210

Politics, 1894–1914

503

519

The New Imperialism: Asia The Road to World War I

The Crusades 216 The Decline of the Church

475

The New Imperialism: Africa 522

The Catholic Church in the High Middle Ages The Hundred Years’ War

417

468

The Unification of Germany

136

The Russian Revolution

231

525 536

550

World War I 550

235

The Italian States in the Renaissance 249

Fascist Italy

The European State in the Renaissance 261

Nazi Germany

Luther’s Reform Movement 272

The Soviet Union

New Reform Movements 278

Prelude to War, 1933–1939 587

The Catholic Reformation

The Course of World War II 593

283

Wars of Religion in the Sixteenth Century

385

284

566

The Cold War

570 572

612

The Portuguese and Spanish Empires in the Sixteenth Century 297

The Soviet Union and Satellite States in Eastern Europe 619 Western Europe

622

New Rivals on the World Stage 306

The Soviet Bloc

637

Absolutism in Western Europe 322

Western Europe, 1965–1985 638

Absolutism in Central and Eastern Europe 327

The Fall of the Soviet Bloc 657

Limited Monarchy and Republics 332

Western Europe Since 1985 662

xx

F EATURES

FILM & HISTORY Alexander (2004)

71

Spartacus (1960)

96

The Lion in Winter (1968)

Marie Antoinette (2006) Paths of Glory (1957) 198

380

543

Triumph of the Will (1934)

575

Joan of Arc (1948), The Messenger: The Story of Joan of Arc (1999) 229

Dr. Strangelove, Or: How I Learned to Stop Worrying and Love the Bomb (1964) 641

Elizabeth (1998)

The Lives of Others (2006)

286

The Mission (1986)

661

309

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS Women in Athens and Sparta

62

Roman Authorities and a Christian on Christianity

The Natural Rights of the French People: Two Views 405

126

The Siege of Jerusalem: Christian and Muslim Perspectives

214

Response to Revolution: Two Perspectives

The Renaissance Prince: The Views of Machiavelli and Erasmus 251

Advice to Women: Two Views 496

A Reformation Debate: Conflict at Marburg

Three Voices of Peacemaking

276

West Meets East: An Exchange of Royal Letters

303

A New Heaven? Faith versus Reason 346 Women in the Age of the Enlightenment: Rousseau and Wollstonecraft 367

White Man’s Burden, Black Man’s Burden

454 521

552

The Munich Conference: Two Views 586 Who Started the Cold War? American and Soviet Perspectives 609

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE The Egyptian Diet

20

The Aristocratic Way of Life 393

Trade and the Products of Trade Life in a Medieval Town

Entertainment in the Middle Ages Dutch Domesticity

329

116

185

The Middle-Class Family

498

The Struggle for the Right to Vote 238

516

Life in the Trenches 539 Youth Culture in the 1960s

633

xxi

P R EFACE

DURING A VISIT to Great Britain, where he studied as a

young man, Mohandas Gandhi, the leader of the effort to liberate India from British colonial rule, was asked what he thought of Western civilization. “I think it would be a good idea,” he replied. Gandhi’s response was as correct as it was clever. Western civilization has led to great problems as well as great accomplishments, but it remains a good idea. And any complete understanding of today’s world must take into account the meaning of Western civilization and the role it has played in history. Despite modern progress, our society still greatly reflects our religious traditions, our political systems and theories, our economic and social structures, and our cultural heritage. I have written this brief history of Western civilization to assist a new generation of students in learning more about the past that has shaped them and the world in which they live. At the same time, for this edition, as in the previous ones, I have added considerable new material on world history to show the impact other parts of the world have had on the West. Certainly, the ongoing struggle with terrorists since 2001 has dramatized the intricate relationship between the West and the rest of the world. It is important then to show not only how Western civilization has affected the rest of the world but also how it has been influenced since its beginnings by contact with other peoples around the world. Another of my goals was to write a well-balanced work in which the political, economic, social, religious, intellectual, cultural, and military aspects of Western civilization would be integrated into a chronologically ordered synthesis. Moreover, I wanted to avoid the approach that is quite common in other brief histories of Western civilization— an approach that makes them collections of facts with little continuity from section to section. Instead, I sought to keep the story in history. Narrative history effectively transmits the knowledge of the past and is the form that best enables students to remember and understand the past. At the same time, I have not overlooked the need for the kind of historical analysis that makes students aware that historians often disagree in their interpretations of the past.

Features of the Text To enliven the past and let readers see for themselves the materials that historians use to create their pictures of the past, xxii

I have included in each chapter primary sources (boxed documents) that are keyed to the discussion in the text. The documents include examples of the religious, artistic, intellectual, social, economic, and political aspects of Western life. Such varied sources as a description of the life of an upperclass Roman, advice from a Carolingian mother to her son, marriage negotiations in Renaissance Italy, a debate in the Reformation era, and the diary of a German soldier at Stalingrad all reveal in vivid fashion what Western civilization meant to the individual men and women who shaped it by their activities. Questions at the end of each source aid students in analyzing the documents. The enthusiastic response to the primary sources led me to evaluate the content of each document carefully and add new documents throughout the text, including a new feature called Opposing Viewpoints, which presents a comparison of two or three primary sources in order to facilitate student analysis of historical documents. This feature appears in fifteen chapters and includes such topics as “Roman Authorities and a Christian on Christianity,” “The Renaissance Prince: The Views of Machiavelli and Erasmus,” “Advice to Women: Two Views,” and “Who Started the Cold War? American and Soviet Perspectives.” Focus questions are included to help students evaluate these documents as well. Two additional new features have been added to this new edition. Images of Everyday Life are found in ten chapters. This feature combines three or four illustrations with a lengthy caption to provide insight into different aspects of social life, including “The Egyptian Diet,” “Entertainment in the Middle Ages,” “The Aristocratic Way of Life,” and “Youth Culture in the 1960s.” A third new feature is Film & History, which presents a brief analysis of the plot as well as the historical significance, value, and accuracy of eleven films, including such movies as Alexander, The Lion in Winter, Marie Antoinette, Triumph of the Will, and The Lives of Others. Discovery sections at the end of every chapter, provide assignable questions relating to primary source materials in the text. These sections engage students in “reading” and analyzing specific evidence—images, documents, maps, and timelines to help them practice the skills of historical analysis and to connect the various threads of Western civilization. A new section entitled “Studying

from Primary Source Materials” appears in the front of the book to introduce students to the language and tools of analyzing historical evidence—documents, photos, artwork, and maps. Each chapter has a lengthy introduction and conclusion to help maintain the continuity of the narrative and to provide a synthesis of important themes. Anecdotes in the chapter introductions convey more dramatically the major theme or themes of each chapter. Detailed chronologies reinforce the events discussed in the text, and illustrated timelines at the end of each chapter enable students to see at a glance the major developments of an era. Many of the timelines also show parallel developments in different cultures or nations. The Suggestions for Further Reading review the most recent literature on each period and also point readers to some of the older “classic” works in each field. Chapter notes have been moved to the end of the book. Updated maps and illustrations serve to deepen readers’ understanding of the text. Detailed map captions are designed to enrich students’ awareness of the importance of geography to history, and numerous spot maps enable students to see at a glance the region or subject being discussed in the text. To facilitate understanding of cultural movements, illustrations of artistic works discussed in the text are placed near the discussions. Chapter outlines and focus questions, including critical thinking questions, at the beginning of each chapter give students a useful overview and guide them to the main subjects of each chapter. The focus questions are then repeated at the beginning of each major section in the chapter. A glossary of important terms (boldfaced within the text) and a pronunciation guide are included to maximize reader comprehension and aid in review.

New to This Edition As preparation for the revision of Western Civilization: A Brief History, I reexamined the entire book and analyzed the comments and reviews of colleagues who have found the book to be a useful instrument for introducing their students to the history of Western civilization. In making revisions for this edition, I sought to build on the strengths of the previous editions and above all to maintain the balance, synthesis, and narrative qualities that characterized those editions. To keep up with the ever-growing body of historical scholarship, new or revised material has been added throughout the book on all of the following topics: Chapter 1: the Neolithic Age; the Sumerians and their social classes; the Babylonian creation epic, Enuma Elish; the crowns of Egypt’s kings; end of the Old Kingdom in Egypt

Chapter 2: the Medes Chapter 3: the Greek way of war Chapter 4: background of Macedonia; Philip’s military reforms in Macedonia Chapter 5: evolution of the Roman army; Julius Caesar Chapter 6: Romanization in the provinces; trading connections between the Roman Empire and the Han Empire of China; culture and society in the Early Empire; development of the early Christian church, including new material on early Christian women and new material on the Four Gospels; new sections, “Cities and Romanization” and “Roman Law and Romanization” Chapter 7: migration of German tribes and fusion of Germans and Romans Chapter 8: new section, “The Significance of Charlemagne” Chapter 9: the influence of Asia and the Middle East on Western technological innovations Chapter 10: background to the Crusades and the Peasants’ Crusade of Peter the Hermit; new section, “Monasticism and Social Services” Chapter 11: the impact of the Black Death on women Chapter 13: the role of popular culture and the role of cities in the spread of Luther’s ideas; the Elizabethan religious settlement Chapter 18: impact of overseas trade on European cities; new section, “Mercantile Empires and World Trade” Chapter 19: financial crisis in France before the Revolution; fear of invasion in 1792 and the Marseillaise; the Directory; response to Napoleon in the German states and Prussia Chapter 20: pollution in cities in the nineteenth century; workhouses in Britain Chapter 22: new table on expansion of the British electorate in the nineteenth century Chapter 26: mass education and upward mobility in the Stalinist era; new sections, “Retreat from Democracy” and “German Expressionists” Chapter 27: Germany’s union with Austria; Czech pact with France; Chamberlain; invasion of Poland; invasion of the Soviet Union; impact of the Battle of Midway; new section, “The Costs of World War II” Chapters 28 and 29 were reorganized and expanded to create three chapters. Chapter 28 is now titled “Cold War and a New Western World, 1945–1965.” New material on the Cold War, including the Truman Doctrine and the Berlin Air Lift Chapter 29 is now titled “Protest and Stagnation: The Western World, 1965–1985.” New material on the nonWestern world; Vietnam War Preface

xxiii

Chapter 30 is now titled “After the Fall: The Western World in a Global Age (Since 1985).” New material on Russia under Yeltsin and Putin; Eastern Europe, Germany, France, and the United States since 1985; the war in Iraq; and guest workers and immigrants The “Suggestions for Further Reading” at the end of each chapter were thoroughly updated and organized under subheadings to make them more useful. New illustrations were added to every chapter. Because courses in Western civilization at American and Canadian colleges and universities follow different chronological divisions, the text is available in both onevolume and two-volume versions to fit the needs of instructors. Teaching and learning ancillaries include the following:

For the Instructor PowerLecture CD-ROM with ExamView® This dual platform, all-in-one multimedia resource includes the Instructor’s Resource Manual; Test Bank (includes key term identification, multiple-choice, essay, and true-or-false questions); and Microsoft® PowerPoint® slides of both lecture outlines and images and maps from the text that can be used as offered or customized by importing personal lecture slides or other material. Also included is ExamView, an easy-to-use assessment and tutorial system that allows instructors to create, deliver, and customize tests in minutes. Instructors can build tests with as many as 250 questions using up to twelve question types, and using ExamView’s complete word-processing capabilities, they can enter an unlimited number of new questions or edit existing ones. HistoryFinder This searchable online database allows instructors to quickly and easily download thousands of assets, including art, photographs, maps, primary sources, and audio and video clips. Each asset downloads directly into a Microsoft PowerPoint slide, allowing instructors to easily create exciting PowerPoint presentations for their classrooms. eInstructor’s Resource Manual Prepared by Eugene Larson of Los Angeles Pierce College, this manual has many features, including chapter outlines and summaries, lecture suggestions, map exercises, discussion questions for primary sources, suggested debate and research topics, and suggested Web links and video collections. Available on the instructor’s companion Web site. WebTutor™ on Blackboard® WebTutor™ on WebCT® WebTutor™ on Angel® With WebTutor’s text-specific, preformatted content and total flexibility, instructors can easily create and manage their xxiv

PREFACE

own custom course Web site. WebTutor’s course management tool gives instructors the ability to provide virtual office hours, post syllabi, set up threaded discussions, track student progress with the quizzing material, and much more. For students, WebTutor offers real-time access to a full array of study tools, including animations and videos that bring the book’s topics to life, plus chapter outlines, summaries, learning objectives, glossary flashcards (with audio), practice quizzes, and Web links.

For the Student Book Companion Site A Web site for students that features a wide assortment of resources to help students master the subject matter (www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/ westcivbrief 7e). The Web site, prepared by Eugene Larson of Los Angeles Pierce College, includes learning objectives, a glossary, flashcards, crossword puzzles, tutorial quizzes, critical thinking exercises, Web links, and map exercises. CL eBook This interactive multimedia e-book links out to rich media assets such as MP3 chapter summaries. Through this e-book, students can also access self-test quizzes, chapter outlines, focus questions, chronology exercises, critical thinking questions (for which the answers can be e-mailed to their instructors), primary source documents with critical thinking questions, and interactive (zoomable) maps. Available on iChapters. iChapters Save your students time and money. Tell them about www.iChapters.com for choice in formats and savings and a better chance to succeed in your class. iChapters. com, Cengage Learning’s online store, is a single destination for more than 10,000 new textbooks, eTextbooks, eChapters, study tools, and audio supplements. Students have the freedom to purchase a la carte exactly what they need when they need it. Students can save 50 percent on the electronic textbook and can pay as little as $1.99 for an individual eChapter. Wadsworth Western Civilization Resource Center Wadsworth’s Western Civilization Resource Center gives your students access to a “virtual reader” with hundreds of primary sources such as speeches, letters, legal documents and transcripts, and poems, along with maps, simulations, timelines, and additional images that bring history to life, as well as interactive assignable exercises. A map feature including Google Earth™ coordinates and exercises will aid in student comprehension of geography and use of maps. Students can compare the traditional textbook map with an aerial view of the location today. It’s an ideal resource for study, review, and research. In addition to this map feature, the resource center also provides blank maps for student review and testing.

Writing for College History Prepared by Robert M. Frakes of Clarion University, this brief handbook for survey courses in American history, Western civilization and European history, and world civilization guides students through the various types of writing assignments they encounter in a history class. Providing examples of student writing and candid assessments of student work, this text focuses on the rules and conventions of writing for the college history course. The History Handbook Prepared by Carol Berkin of Baruch College, City University of New York, and Betty Anderson of Boston University, this book teaches students both basic and history-specific study skills such as how to read primary sources, research historical topics, and correctly cite sources. Substantially less expensive than comparable skill-building texts, The History Handbook also offers tips for Internet research and evaluating online sources. Doing History: Research and Writing in the Digital Age Prepared by Michael J. Galgano, J. Chris Arndt, and Raymond M. Hyser of James Madison University. Whether students are starting down the path as a history major or simply looking for a straightforward and systematic guide to writing a successful paper, they will find this an indispensable handbook to guide historical research. This text’s “soup to nuts” approach to researching and writing about history addresses every step of the process, from locating sources and gathering information to writing clearly and making proper use of various citation styles to avoid plagiarism. Students will also learn how to make the most of every tool available—especially the technology that makes the process both efficient and effective. The Modern Researcher, sixth edition Prepared by Jacques Barzun and Henry F. Graff of Columbia University, this classic introduction to the techniques of research and the art of expression is used widely in history courses but is also appropriate for writing and research methods in other departments. Barzun and Graff thoroughly cover every aspect of research, from the selection of a topic through the gathering, analysis, writing, revision, and publication of findings, presenting the process not as a set of rules but through actual cases that put the subtleties of research in a useful context. Part One covers the principles and methods of research; Part Two covers writing, speaking, and getting one’s work published. Reader Program Cengage Learning publishes a number of readers, some containing exclusively primary sources,

others a combination of primary and secondary sources, and some designed to guide students through the process of historical inquiry. Visit http://cengage.com/history for a complete list of readers. Rand McNally Historical Atlas of Western Civilization, second edition This valuable resource features over forty-five maps, including ones highlighting Classical Greece and Rome; documenting European civilization during the Renaissance; following events in Germany, Russia, and Italy leading up to World Wars I and II; tracing the dissolution of communism in 1989; documenting language and religion in the Western world; and describing the industrialization and increasing unification of Europe. Document Exercise Workbook Prepared by Donna Van Raaphorst of Cuyahoga Community College, this collection of exercises based on primary sources is available in two volumes. Music of Western Civilization Available free to adopters and for a small fee to students, this CD contains many of the musical selections highlighted in the text and provides a broad sampling of the important musical pieces of Western civilization. Exploring the European Past This collection of documents and readings gives students firsthand insights into the various periods of the past. Each module also includes rich visual sources that help put the documents into context, helping students understand the work of the historian.

Custom Options Nobody knows your students like you, so why not give them a text that is tailor-fit to their needs? Cengage Learning offers custom solutions for your course—whether it’s making a small modification to Western Civilization: A Brief History to match your syllabus or combining multiple sources to create something truly unique. You can pick and choose chapters, include your own material, and add additional map exercises along with the Rand McNally Atlas to create a text that fits the way you teach. Ensure that your students get the most out of their textbook dollars by giving them exactly what they need. Contact your Cengage Learning representative to explore custom solutions for your course.

Preface

xxv

A C K N O WLEDGMENTS

I WOULD LIKE TO THANK the many teachers and students who have used previous editions of Western Civilization: A Brief History. I am gratified by their enthusiastic response to a textbook that was intended to put the story back in history and capture the imagination of the reader. I especially thank the many teachers and students who made the effort to contact me personally to share their enthusiasm. I am deeply grateful to John Soares for his assistance in preparing the map captions and to Charmarie Blaisdell of

Paul Allen University of Utah Gerald Anderson North Dakota State University Susan L. H. Anderson Campbell University Letizia Argenteri University of San Diego Roy A. Austensen Illinois State University James A. Baer Northern Virginia Community College—Alexandria James T. Baker Western Kentucky University Patrick Bass Morningside College John F. Battick University of Maine Frederic J. Baumgartner Virginia Polytechnic Institute Phillip N. Bebb Ohio University Anthony Bedford Modesto Junior College F. E. Beemon Middle Tennessee State University Joel Benson Northwest Missouri State University Robert L. Bergman Glendale Community College Leonard R. Berlanstein University of Virginia Douglas T. Bisson Belmont University xxvi

Northeastern University for her detailed suggestions on women’s history. Daniel Haxall of Kutztown University and Kathryn Spielvogel of SUNY-Buffalo provided valuable assistance with materials on postwar art, popular culture, and Postmodern art and thought. Thanks to Wadsworth’s comprehensive review process, many historians were asked to evaluate my manuscript and review each edition. I am grateful to the following for the innumerable suggestions that have greatly improved my work:

Charmarie Blaisdell Northeastern University Stephen H. Blumm Montgomery County Community College Hugh S. Bonar California State University Werner Braatz University of Wisconsin—Oshkosh Alfred S. Bradford University of Missouri Maryann E. Brink College of William & Mary Blaine T. Browne Broward Community College J. Holden Camp, Jr. Hillyer College, University of Hartford Jack Cargill Rutgers University Martha Carlin University of Wisconsin— Milwaukee Elizabeth Carney Clemson University Kevin K. Carroll Arizona State University Yuan-Ling Chao Middle Tennessee State University Eric H. Cline Xavier University Michael Clinton Gwynedd Mercy College Robert Cole Utah State University William J. Connell Rutgers University

Nancy Conradt College of DuPage Marc Cooper Southwest Missouri State Caitlin Corning George Fox University Richard A. Cosgrove University of Arizona David A. Crain South Dakota State University Michael A. Crane Jr. (student) Everett Community College Steve Culbertson Owens Community College Luanne Dagley Pellissippi State Technical Community College Marion F. Deshmukh George Mason University Michael F. Doyle Ocean County College Michael Duckett Dawson College Laura Dull Delta College Roxanne Easley Central Washington University James W. Ermatinger University of Nebraska—Kearney Charles T. Evans Northern Virginia Community College Porter Ewing Los Angeles City College Carla Falkner Northeast Mississippi Community College

Steven Fanning University of Illinois—Chicago Ellsworth Faris California State University—Chico Gary B. Ferngren Oregon State University Mary Helen Finnerty Westchester Community College Eve Fisher South Dakota State University Lucien Frary Rider University A. Z. Freeman Robinson College Marsha Frey Kansas State University Frank J. Frost University of California—Santa Barbara Frank Garosi California State University—Sacramento Lorettann Gascard Franklin Pierce College Richard M. Golden University of North Texas Manuel G. Gonzales Diablo Valley College Amy G. Gordon Denison University Richard J. Grace Providence College Hanns Gross Loyola University John F. Guilmartin Ohio State University Jeffrey S. Hamilton Gustavus Adolphus College J. Drew Harrington Western Kentucky University James Harrison Siena College Derek Hastings Oakland University A. J. Heisserer University of Oklahoma Rowena Hernández-Múzquiz Old Dominion University Betsey Hertzler Mesa Community College Robert Herzstein University of South Carolina Shirley Hickson North Greenville College Martha L. Hildreth University of Nevada Boyd H. Hill, Jr. University of Colorado—Boulder

Michael Hofstetter Bethany College Donald C. Holsinger Seattle Pacific University Frank L. Holt University of Houston W. Robert Houston University of South Alabama David R. C. Hudson Texas A&M University Paul Hughes Sussex County Community College Richard A. Jackson University of Houston Fred Jewell Harding University Jenny M. Jochens Towson State University William M. Johnston University of Massachusetts Allen E. Jones Troy State University George Kaloudis Rivier College Jeffrey A. Kaufmann Muscatine Community College David O. Kieft University of Minnesota Patricia Killen Pacific Lutheran University William E. Kinsella Jr. Northern Virginia Community College—Annandale James M. Kittelson Ohio State University Doug Klepper Santa Fe Community College Mark Klobas Scottsdale Community College Cynthia Kosso Northern Arizona University Clayton Miles Lehmann University of South Dakota Diana Chen Lin Indiana University, Northwest Ursula W. MacAffer Hudson Valley Community College Anthony Makowski Delaware County Community College Harold Marcuse University of California—Santa Barbara Mavis Mate University of Oregon Tom Maulucci State University of New York— Fredonia

T. Ronald Melton Brewton Parker College Jack Allen Meyer University of South Carolina Eugene W. Miller Jr. The Pennsylvania State University—Hazleton David Mock Tallahassee Community College John Patrick Montano University of Delaware Rex Morrow Trident Technical College Thomas M. Mulhern University of North Dakota Pierce Mullen Montana State University Frederick I. Murphy Western Kentucky University William M. Murray University of South Florida Otto M. Nelson Texas Tech University Sam Nelson Willmar Community College John A. Nichols Slippery Rock University Lisa Nofzinger Albuquerque Technical Vocational Institute Heather O’Grady-Evans Elmira College Chris Oldstone-Moore Augustana College Donald Ostrowski Harvard University James O. Overfield University of Vermont Matthew L. Panczyk Bergen Community College Kathleen Parrow Black Hills State University Jonathan Perry University of Central Florida Carla Rahn Phillips University of Minnesota Keith Pickus Wichita State University Linda J. Piper University of Georgia Janet Polasky University of New Hampshire Thomas W. Porter Randolph-Macon College Charles A. Povlovich California State University—Fullerton Acknowledgments

xxvii

Nancy Rachels Hillsborough Community College Charles Rearick University of Massachusetts— Amherst Jerome V. Reel Jr. Clemson University Paul Reuter Jefferson State Community College Joseph Robertson Gadsden State Community College Jonathan Roth San Jose State University Constance M. Rousseau Providence College Julius R. Ruff Marquette University Richard Saller University of Chicago Magdalena Sanchez Texas Christian University Bonnie F. Saunders Glendale Community College Jack Schanfield Suffolk County Community College Richard Schellhammer University of West Alabama Roger Schlesinger Washington State University Joanne Schneider Rhode Island College Thomas C. Schunk University of Wisconsin—Oshkosh Denise Scifres Hinds Community College

Kyle C. Sessions Illinois State University Colleen M. Shaughnessy Zeena Endicott College Linda Simmons Northern Virginia Community College—Manassas Donald V. Sippel Rhode Island College Douglas R. Skopp State University of New York— Plattsburgh Glen Spann Asbury College John W. Steinberg Georgia Southern University Paul W. Strait Florida State University James E. Straukamp California State University— Sacramento Brian E. Strayer Andrews University Fred Suppe Ball State University Ruth Suyama Los Angeles Mission College Roger Tate Somerset Community College Tom Taylor Seattle University Jack W. Thacker Western Kentucky University Janet A. Thompson Tallahassee Community College

The editors at Cengage Wadsworth have been both helpful and congenial at all times. I especially wish to thank Clark Baxter, whose clever wit, wisdom, gentle prodding, and good friendship have added much depth to our working relationship. Margaret McAndrew Beasley thoughtfully, wisely, efficiently, and pleasantly guided the overall development of this edition. I also thank Nancy Blaine for her valuable insights. I want to express my gratitude to John Orr, whose good humor, well-advised suggestions, and generous verbal support made the production process easier. Bruce Emmer, was, as usual, an outstanding copyeditor. Abigail Baxter provided valuable assistance in obtaining permissions for the illustrations.

xxviii

ACKNOWLEDGMENTS

David S. Trask Guilford Technical Community College Thomas Turley Santa Clara University John G. Tuthill University of Guam Maarten Ultee University of Alabama Donna L. Van Raaphorst Cuyahoga Community College Nancy G. Vavra University of Colorado—Boulder Allen M. Ward University of Connecticut Richard D. Weigel Western Kentucky University Michael Weiss Linn-Benton Community College Richard S. Williams Washington State University Arthur H. Williamson California State University— Sacramento Katherine Workman Wright State University Judith T. Wozniak Cleveland State University Walter J. Wussow University of Wisconsin— Eau Claire Edwin M. Yamauchi Miami University

Above all, I thank my family for their support. The gifts of love, laughter, and patience from my daughters, Jennifer and Kathryn; my sons, Eric and Christian; my daughters-in-law, Liz and Laurie; and my sons-in-law, Daniel and Eddie, were enormously appreciated. I also wish to acknowledge my grandchildren, Devyn, Bryn, Drew, Elena, Sean, and Emma, who bring great joy to my life. My wife and best friend, Diane, contributed editorial assistance, wise counsel, good humor, and the loving support that made it possible for me to accomplish a project of this magnitude. I could not have written the book without her.

I N T R O D U C T ION TO STUDENTS O F W E S T ERN CI VI LI ZATI ON

CIVILIZATION, as historians define it, first emerged between five and six thousand years ago when people in different parts of the world began to live in organized communities with distinct political, military, economic, and social structures. Religious, intellectual, and artistic activities assumed important roles in these early societies. The focus of this book is on Western civilization, a civilization that originated primarily on the continent of Europe.

Defining Western Civilization Western civilization has evolved considerably over the centuries. Although the concept of the West did not yet exist at the time of the Mesopotamians and Egyptians, their development of writing, their drafting of law codes, and their practice of different roles based on gender all eventually influenced what became Western civilization. Although the Greeks did not conceive of Western civilization as a cultural entity, their artistic, intellectual, and political contributions were crucial to the foundations of Western civilization. The Romans developed a remarkable series of accomplishments that were fundamental to the development of Western civilization, which came to consist largely of lands in Europe conquered by the Romans, in which Roman cultural and political ideals were gradually spread. Nevertheless, people in these early civilizations viewed themselves as subjects of states or empires, not as members of Western civilization. With the rise of Christianity during the Late Roman Empire, however, peoples in Europe began to identify themselves as part of a civilization different from other civilizations. In the fifteenth century, Renaissance intellectuals began to identify this civilization not only with Christianity but also with the intellectual and political achievements of the ancient Greeks and Romans. Important to the development of the idea of a distinct Western civilization were encounters with other peoples. Between 700 and 1500, encounters with the world of Islam helped define the West. But after 1500, as European ships began to move into other parts of the world, encounters with peoples in Asia, Africa, and the Americas not only had an impact on the civilizations found there but also affected how people in the West defined themselves. At the same time, as they set up colonies, Europeans began

to transplant a sense of Western identity to other areas of the world, especially North America and parts of Latin America, that have come to be considered part of Western civilization. As the concept of Western civilization has evolved over the centuries, so have the values and unique features associated with it. Science played a crucial role in the development of modern Western civilization. The societies of the Greeks, the Romans, and the medieval Europeans were based largely on a belief in the existence of a spiritual order; a dramatic departure to a natural or material view of the universe occurred in the seventeenth-century Scientific Revolution. Science and technology have been important in the growth of today’s modern and largely secular Western civilization, although antecedents to scientific development also existed in Greek and medieval thought and practice, and religion remains a component of the Western world today. Many historians have viewed the concept of political liberty, belief in the fundamental value of every individual, and a rational outlook based on a system of logical, analytical thought as unique aspects of Western civilization. Of course, the West has also witnessed horrendous negations of liberty, individualism, and reason. Racism, slavery, violence, world wars, totalitarian regimes—these, too, form part of the complex story of what constitutes Western civilization.

The Dating of Time In our examination of Western civilization, we need also to be aware of the dating of time. In recording the past, historians try to determine the exact time when events occurred. World War II in Europe, for example, began on September 1, 1939, when Hitler sent German troops into Poland, and ended on May 7, 1945, when Germany surrendered. By using dates, historians can place events in order and try to determine the development of patterns over periods of time. If someone asked you when you were born, you would reply with a number, such as 1990. In the United States, we would all accept that number without question because it is part of the dating system followed in the Western world (Europe and the Western Hemisphere). In this system, xxix

events are dated by counting backward or forward from the birth of Jesus Christ (assumed to be the year 1). An event that took place four hundred years before the birth of Jesus would be dated 400 b.c. (before Christ). Dates after the birth of Jesus are labeled a.d. These letters stand for the Latin words anno Domini, which mean “in the year of the Lord.” Thus an event that took place two hundred years after the birth of Jesus is written a.d. 200, or “in the year of the Lord 200.” It can also be written as 200, just as you would not give your birth year as a.d. 1990 but simply as 1990. Historians also make use of other terms to refer to time. A decade is ten years, a century is one hundred years, and a millennium is one thousand years. Thus “the fourth century b.c.” refers to the fourth period of one hundred years counting backward from 1, the assumed date of the birth of Jesus. Since the first century b.c. would be the years 100 b.c. to 1 b.c., the fourth century b.c. would be the years 400 b.c. to 301 b.c. We could say, then, that an event in 350 b.c. took place in the fourth century b.c. “The fourth century a.d.” refers to the fourth period of one hundred years after the birth of Jesus. Since the first period of one hundred years would be the years 1 to 100, the fourth period or fourth century would be the years 301

xxx

to 400. We could say, then, that an event in 350 took place in the fourth century. Likewise, the first millennium b.c. refers to the years 1000 b.c. to 1 b.c.; the second millennium a.d. refers to the years 1001 to 2000. Some historians now prefer to use the abbreviations b.c.e. (“before the Common Era”) and c.e. (“Common Era”) instead of b.c. and a.d. This is especially true of world historians, who prefer to use symbols that are not so Western or Christianoriented. The dates, of course, remain the same. Thus 1950 b.c.e. and 1950 b.c. would be the same year. In keeping with current usage by many historians of Western civilization, this book uses the notations b.c. and a.d. The dating of events can also vary from people to people. Most people in the Western world use the Western calendar, also known as the Gregorian calendar after Pope Gregory XIII, who refined it in 1582. The Hebrew calendar uses a different system in which the year 1 is the equivalent of the Western year 3760 b.c., considered to be the date of the creation of the world according to the Bible. Thus the Western year 2010 is the year 5770 on the Hebrew calendar. The Islamic calendar begins year 1 on the day Muhammad fled Mecca, which is the year 622 on the Western calendar.

I N T R O D U C T I O N T O S T U D E N T S O F W E S T E R N C I V I L I Z AT I O N

STUD YIN G F R O M P RI MARY SOURCE MATERI AL S

ASTRONOMERS INVESTIGATE THE universe through telescopes. Biologists study the natural world by collecting plants and animals in the field and then examining them with microscopes. Sociologists and psychologists study human behavior through observation and controlled laboratory experiments. Historians study the past by examining historical “evidence” or “source” materials—church or town records, letters, treaties, advertisements, paintings, menus, literature, buildings, clothing—anything and everything written or created by our ancestors that give clues about their lives and the times in which they lived. Historians refer to written material as “documents.” Excerpts of more than 150 documents—some in shaded boxes and others in the text narrative itself—appear in every chapter of this textbook. Each chapter also includes several photographs of buildings, paintings, and other kinds of historical evidence. As you read each chapter, the more you examine all this “evidence,” the more you will understand the main ideas of the course. This introduction to studying historical evidence, along with the visual summaries at the end of each chapter, will help you learn how to look at evidence the way historians do. The better you become at reading evidence, the better the grade you will earn in your course.

Source Material Comes in Two Main Types: Primary and Secondary Primary evidence is material that comes to us exactly as it left the pen of the person who wrote it. Letters between King Louis XIV of France and the king of Tonkin (now Vietnam) are primary evidence (p. 303). So is the court transcript of a witchcraft trial in France (p. 317), a play by Shakespeare (p. 336), or a diagram of the solar system drawn by Copernicus (p. 343). Secondary evidence is an account by someone about the life or activity of someone else. A story about Abraham Lincoln written by his secretary of war would give us primary source information about Lincoln by someone who knew him. Reflections about Lincoln’s presidency written by a historian might give us insights into how, for example, Lincoln governed during wartime. But because the historian did not know Lincoln in person, we would

consider this a secondary source of information about Lincoln. Secondary sources such as historical essays (and textbooks such as this one) can therefore by very helpful in understanding the past. But it is important to remember that a secondary source can reveal as much about its author as it does about its subject.

Reading Documents We will turn to a specific document in a moment and analyze it in some detail. For now, however, the following are a few basic things to be aware of—and to ask yourself—as you read any written document.

1. Who wrote it? The author of the textbook answers this question for you at the beginning of each document in the book. But your instructors may give you other documents to read, and the authorship of each document is the first question you need to answer. 2. What do we know about the author of the document? The more you know about the author, the more meaningful and reliable the information you can extract from the document. 3. Is it a primary or secondary document? 4. When was the document written? 5. What is the purpose of the document? Closely tied to the question of document type is the document’s purpose. A work of fiction might have been written to entertain, whereas an official document was written to convey a particular law or decree to subjects, citizens, or believers. 6. Who was the intended audience? A play is meant to be performed by actors on a stage before a group of onlookers whereas Martin Luther’s Ninety-Five Theses were posted publicly and intended to be seen by ordinary citizens. 7. Can you detect a bias in this document? As the two documents on the Siege of Jerusalem (p. 214) suggest, firsthand accounts of the Crusades written by Christian and Muslims tend to differ. Each may be “accurate” as far as the writer is concerned, but your job as a historian is to decide whether this written evidence gives a reliable account of what happened. You cannot always believe everything you read, but the more you read, the more you can decide what is, in fact, accurate. xxxi

“Reading” and Studying Photographs and Artwork This book pays close attention to primary source and written documents, but contemporary illustrations can also be analyzed to provide understanding of a historical period. A historian might ask questions about a painting like the one below to learn more about life in a medieval town. The more you study and learn about medieval social history, the more information this painting will reveal. To help you look at and interpret art like a historian, ask yourself the following questions:

Snark/Art Resource, NY

1. By looking closely at just the buildings, what do you learn about the nature of the medieval town dwellings and the allotment of space within the town? Why were medieval towns arranged in this fashion? Why would this differ from modern urban planning? 2. By examining the various activities being shown, what kinds of groups would you expect to find in a medieval town? What do you learn about medieval methods of production? How do they differ from modern methods of production? What difference would this make in the nature of community organization and life? 3. By examining what the people in the street are wearing, what do you judge to be their economic status? Would that be typical of a medieval town? Why or why not? 4. What do you think the illustrator of this piece was trying to communicate about life in a medieval town? Based on your knowledge of medieval towns, would you agree with his assessment? Why or why not? 5. What do you think was the social class of the illustrator? Why?

Medieval Town xxxii

Reading and Studying Maps Historical events do not just “happen”; they happen in a specific place. It is important to learn all you can about that place, and a good map can help you do this. Your textbook includes several kinds of maps. The pullout map of Europe bound into the inside front cover of the textbook is a good place to start. Map basics include taking care to read and understand every label on whatever map you study. The textbook’s pullout map has labels for six kinds of information. Each of the following is important:

1. 2. 3. 4. 5.

Name of countries Names of major cities Names of oceans and large bodies of water Names of rivers Longitude and latitude. Lines of longitude extend from the North Pole to the South Pole; one such line intersects Iceland in the top left (or northwest) corner of the map. Lines of latitude circle the globe east to west and intersect lines of longitude. These imaginary lines place countries and oceans in their approximate setting on the face of the earth. Not every map includes latitude and longitude. 6. Mileage scale. A mileage scale shows how far apart, in miles and kilometers, each location is from other locations.

Most Maps Include Three Basic Types of Information 1. The boundaries of countries, cities, empires, and other kinds of “political” information: A good map shows each political division in a different color to make them all easy to find. The color of each region or country is the decision of the mapmaker (also known as a cartographer). 2. Mountains, oceans, rivers, and other “physical” or “topographic” information: The mountains on this kind of map have been rendered by the cartographer: Switzerland and Norway are mountainous; Germany and Belarus are flat. 3. Latitude, longitude, a mileage scale, and other information: These elements help the reader place the information in some kind of context. Some maps include an N with an arrow that points north. Most maps show northern areas (Alaska, Norway, etc) at the top. A map that does not do this is not misleading or wrong. But if an N arrow does not appear on the map, be sure you know where north is. “Political” information tends to change a great deal: maps usually change after the winners of a major war take more territory. “Physical” information changes slowly:

S T U D Y I N G F R O M P R I M A RY S O U R C E M AT E R I A L S

Po

200

300 Kilometers

100

200 Miles

NORTHUMBRIA

R.

Rubicon R.

ni

ne

Loire

Bordeaux

GRAECIA (GREATER GREECE)

Sicily

1. Where each Crusade began. (Note the places that send the most Crusades and those that send none.) 2. How far each Crusade traveled. (Note the mileage key.) 3. Which route each Crusade took. (Why did none make the trip only on land?) 4. How much time passed between the end of one Crusade and the beginning of another. (Did the rate of Crusades accelerate or slow down over time? What does this suggest?)

UMAYYAD KINGDOM OF SPAIN

R.

Alps

PEOPLES

VENETIA

Milan

nee s

PAPAL STATES

SPANISH MARCH

Corsica

at

Sardinia

Se a DUCHY OF BENEVENTO

Barcelona

Toledo

SLAVIC

BAVARIA

ri

Syracuse

R.

Lyons

AQUITAINE

Pyr e

Messana

Da nu be

ALEMANNI BURGUNDY

Thurii

Carthage

R.

r

TRIBUTARY

AUSTRASIA

NEUSTRIA

Brindisi

O

Mainz

Paris Se ine

BRITTANY

e

de

MAGNA

Verdun

Atlantic Ocean

Elb

tic

SAXONY

R.

Capua Cumae Naples

CA

Sardinia

SA MN ITE S M PA Tarentum NI A

Bal

R.

Rome

LATIUM

400 Miles

R.

s. M t N ES BI SA

Veii

600 Kilometers

DANISH MARCH

EAST ANGLIA FRISIA ESSEX WESSEX WEST KENT Rhine WALES SUSSEX Aachen

LY RI A

400 200

MERCIA

WALES

IL

en

Corsica

Tiber R. Tarquinia

Ap

ETRURIA

North Sea

York

IRELAND

200

a

100

Se

Ad

latitude, rivers, disGAUL s l p A tances, and the like do not change. In addition, many maps include informaA dr i at i c tion about the spread of Sea disease, the location of cathedrals and universities, trade routes, and any number of other things. Tyr r heni an Sea There is no real limit to the kinds of information Mediterranean I on ia n Sea a map can show, and the Se a more information a map can display clearly, the Ancient Italy more useful it is. Any good map will include a “legend” stating the information that makes the map useful. The more detailed the map, the more information the mapmaker should provide in the legend. Again, note that only the names of oceans, large bodies of water, and rivers, the “physical” features in a map, really exist in nature. They are relatively changeless. All other features on a map are made up and change fairly often. The maps you see here and on the next page all show the same familiar “boot” we call Italy. But all or part of this landmass has also been called Latium, Campania, the duchy of Benevento, the Papal States, the kingdom of the Two Sicilies, Tuscany, Lombardy, Piedmont, and Savoy. Populations and place names change; mountains and oceans do not, at least not much. Whenever you have trouble finding a region or a place on a map, look for a permanent feature to help you get your bearings. In addition to kingdoms, cities, and mountains, maps can show the physical proximity of any two or more ideas, movements, or developments. Map 10.5 (p. 213) shows the movement of several Crusades of the eleventh and twelfth centuries. Note that the legend associates the color of a Crusade’s route (shown as a line) with its duration in years. This map makes it possible to see a number of useful things at a glance that could take several maps to describe, including the following:

Córdoba

Rome

Mediterranean Sea

ic

BYZANTINE EMPIRE

Frankish kingdom, 768

Sicily

Territories gained by Charlemagne

The Carolingian Empire

SWITZERLAND FRANCE

AUSTRIAN EMPIRE P

LOMB LO L O AR ARDY ARD A RDY RD R D VENETIA

SAVO OY Turi Tu T u n

Po

PIE IIED IE E EDM MONT Genoa

Nice

Magenta Milan Solferino V Ven Veni Ve eni een nniiccee R.

PAR PA P A MA A RO ROMAGN M G GNA GN N NA A MOD M DE D ENA Floor oorence re

TUSCANY Y PAPAL STATES

KINGD KIN GDOM OF GDO PIEDMONT NT

Ad

ri

Corrssic ica Rom Ro R oome om m

OTTOMAN EMPIRE

at

ic

Se

a

Naples

Sardinia a

Mediterranean Seaa KIIN ING NG GDOM M Kingdom of Piedmont, before 1859 To kingdom of Piedmont, 1859 To kingdom of Piedmont, 1860 To kingdom of Italy, 1866, 1870

OF T OF THE HE E Messssiiina Mess na n

TWO O SI SIC CIIIL L LIIES E Sicily ly ly 0

100

200

300 Kilomete ters rs

100

200 Miles

The Unification of Italy

5. Which crusaders actually made it to the eastern Mediterranean and which did not. (Consider any correlation between route and timing.) 6. The names of the Crusader States themselves. Another kind of invasion appears in Map 11.1 (p. 222). This map shows the steady progress of the Black Death from the Black Sea and the Mediterranean north and west through Europe. Using the legend, find the shade of Studying from Primary Source Materials

xxxiii

R U S S I A

tic S

ea

color that corresponds to the first 0 2500 500 750 Kilometers Arctic Ocean outbreak of plague, in December 0 225 50 500 Miles 1347, and follow the spread of Norwegian disease, shown here in six-month Sea intervals, as you follow the colors SWEDEN northward. FINLAND NORW N NO AY Helsi He H e nki The document on page 223 Stockholm m Talli T llllinn llinn nn Oslo Os sloo slo and the image on page 224 bring ESTO ES E S ST NIA A North Riga Sea vividly to mind how the horrors LATVIA LATV VIA I l Copenhagen C Copen open p ha hage hhagen aagen ggen en Ba LLI LIT IITH T UANIA A DENM EN EN ENM NM MARK ARK AR RK Moscow of the plague’s physical sympVilln Viln llni n us Minsk UNIT UN N ED D Dublin li NETHE NETH THERLAND ER RLAN RL RLAND RLA R LA AND NDS BELARUS Ber eerli er r n KING KIN K IN N DOM M Amste stte ste terrdam m IREL ELA EL AND toms touched its individual vicWarsa saaw R Y BELGI BELG BEL BE B ELG EL E L LGI LG GIIU G UM M POLAND Londo L don do e GERMANY tims. Map 11.1 brings to mind Kiev Pragu Pra agu ag agu guuee Brus ruuuss eels russ rus Dn CZECH REPUBL C LIC LI L IIC C Paris iepe UKRAINE Sei SLOVAKIA IA A another aspect of this horror by ne R. LIEC L CHTENSTEIN C ENST V Vienna Brati rati aatisla atisla slava sl At l ant i c A UST U RIA A MO O LD D O VA LUXEMBOURG G Budape p e est es st Beern Chisi C Ch h nau a au u tracking the plague’s ruthless and Lju Ljub Lju Ljubl juubb jana jubl janaa HUNGARY N RY RY SWIT WIIT W WIT IITZ T ERLAN ERLAND ER RLA RL RLAN R L LA LAN AN A N Oc e an Zagreb Za Z agre greeebb D ROMANIA SLOV OVE OV VE ENIA NIA N A Zagre FRANCE anube Po R . CROAT ROAT ROAT OATIA O IA A irresistible advance, month by R Bucharest ha est est es Saara raaj raj ajevo Belgr B lgr lgr grad rad aade de.. de IITAL LY B BOSNI SNI S SN NIIA-H N A--H A -HERZEG EG GOVINA A month, year by year. The more Black Sea SERBIA IA A Sofia Eb MONTE EN NEG NE EG E GRO G RO OS ro Rome me me BULGARI ARI AR A RIA RI R I R. Skop S kkop op pje pj Tiranaa MACE ACED ACE CE C ED E D O ON ONI ONIA N NIA IA I information you can gather from PO ORTU UGAL L AL LB LB BAN NIA N IA IA Madrid Ankara the map, the more the document Lissbon SPAIN GREE G EC CE C E TURKEY anean r r e Athen A then ns n s t i d Se Me and visuals can tell you about the a horrors of the plague. The New Europe A happier kind of movement, the advance of learning, appears in Map 9.2 (p. 187). For this map, it is important to identify the symbols for universities and schools and to see where they appear on the map. Because education does not tend to move as a wave, as the plague did, each symbol represents a place where learning flourished more than it did in places without a symbol of some kind. Map 11.1 makes it clear that the plague began in one part of Europe and touched nearly every region as it passed through it. Map 9.2 shows that education works differently; some people have better access to it than others. Your job as a historian is to recognize this and then to figure out why. h in

Do

R.

n R.

. r R

Vo lg

KAZAKHSTAN aR .

ian sp Ca

GEOR G RGIA IA IA Tbili b si bi

Ba u Baku Ba

a Se

ARM RME R RM MEN NIA N IA A

Yerevan aan n

AZER AZE A AZ ZER ZE Z E ER RBA BAIJ B AIIJJJAN

IRAN

Putting It Together: Reading and Studying Documents, Supported by Images © Réunion des Musées Nationaux/Art Resource, NY

Learning to read a document is no different from learning to read a restaurant menu. The more you practice, the quicker your eyes will find the lobster and pastries.

Let Us Explore a Pair of Primary Sources As the introduction to this reading makes clear, King Louis XIV of France is writing the king of Tonkin to ask permission to send Christian missionaries to Southeast Asia. But this exchange of letters tells a great deal more than that. Before you read this document, take a careful look at this portrait of Louis XIV. As this image makes clear, Louis xxxiv

King Louis XIV

S T U D Y I N G F R O M P R I M A RY S O U R C E M AT E R I A L S

lived during an age of flourishes and excess. Among many other questions, including some that appear later, you may ask yourself how Louis’s manner of speaking reflects the public presentation you see in his portrait. Your textbook does not show a corresponding portrait of the king of Tonkin, but you might try to create a picture of him in your mind as you read this response to the letter he receives from his fellow ruler. The following questions about this document are the kinds of questions your instructor would ask about the document.

1. Why does Louis refer to the king of Tonkin, whom he never met, as his “very dear and good friend” (line 2)? Do you think that this French king would begin a conversation with, say, a French shopkeeper in quite the same way? If not, why does he identify more with a fellow king than with a fellow Frenchman?

A Letter to the King of Tonkin from Louis XIV 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35

36 37 Most high, most excellent, most mighty and most magnanimous Prince, our very dear and good friend, may it please God to increase 38 39 your greatness with a happy end! We hear from our subjects who were in your Realm what pro- 40 tection you accorded them. We appreciate this all the more since we 41 have for you all the esteem that one can have for a prince as illustri- 42 ous through his military valor as he is commendable for the justice which he exercises in his Realm. We have even been informed that you have not been satisfied to extend this general protection to our 43 subjects but, in particular, that you gave effective proofs of it to 44 Messrs. Deydier and de Bourges. We would have wished that they 45 might have been able to recognize all the favors they received from 46 you by having presents worthy of you offered you; but since the war 47 which we have had for several years, in which all of Europe had 48 banded together against us, prevented our vessels from going to the 49 Indies, at the present time, when we are at peace after having gained 50 many victories and expanded our Realm through the conquest of 51 several important places, we have immediately given orders to the 52 Royal Company to establish itself in your kingdom as soon as possi- 53 ble, and have commanded Messrs. Deydier and de Bourges to re54 main with you in order to maintain a good relationship between 55 our subjects and yours, also to warn us on occasions that might 56 present themselves when we might be able to give you proofs of our 57 esteem and of our wish to concur with your satisfaction as well as 58 with your best interests. 59 By way of initial proof, we have given orders to have brought 60 to you some presents which we believe might be agreeable to you. 61 But the one thing in the world which we desire most, both for you 62 and for your Realm, would be to obtain for your subjects who have 63 already embraced the law of the only true God of heaven and earth, 64 the freedom to profess it, since this law is the highest, the noblest, 65 the most sacred and especially the most suitable to have kings reign 66 absolutely over the people. 67 We are even quite convinced that, if you knew the truths and 68 the maxims which it teaches, you would give first of all to your 69

2. How often do you imagine that the king of France had to persuade people to do what he wanted rather than order them to do so? Who might these people have been? 3. Note that Louis uses what is referred to as the “royal we,” referring to himself in the plural. When does the king of Tonkin refer to himself in the first person (“I”), and when does he refer to himself in the plural (“we”)? 4. Why does Louis say that he is writing at that particular time rather than earlier (lines 13–18)? 5. How does Louis say that Christian missionaries will be good for Tonkin and its people (lines 28–33)? What reason in Louis’s own letter makes you wonder if converting the people of Tonkin to Christianity is “the one thing in the world which we desire most”? 6. Does the king of Tonkin seem pleased to hear from Louis and by his request (lines 43–53)? How does he refer to the gift Louis offers him?

subjects the glorious example of embracing it. We wish you this incomparable blessing together with a long and happy reign, and we pray God that it may please Him to augment your greatness with the happiest of endings. Written at Saint-Germain-en-Laye, the 10th day of January, 1681, Your very dear and good friend, Louis

Answer from the King of Tonkin to Louis XIV The King of Tonkin sends to the King of France a letter to express to him his best sentiments, saying that he was happy to learn that fidelity is a durable good of man and that justice is the most important of things. Consequently practicing of fidelity and justice cannot but yield good results. Indeed, though France and our Kingdom differ as to mountains, rivers, and boundaries, if fidelity and justice reign among our villages, our conduct will express all of our good feelings and contain precious gifts. Your communication, which comes from a country which is a thousand leagues away, and which proceeds from the heart as a testimony of your sincerity, merits repeated consideration and infinite praise. Politeness toward strangers is nothing unusual in our country. There is not a stranger who is not well received by us. How then could we refuse a man from France, which is the most celebrated among the kingdoms of the world and which for love of us wishes to frequent us and bring us merchandise? These feelings of fidelity and justice are truly worthy to be applauded. As regards your wish that we should cooperate in propagating your religion, we do not dare to permit it, for there is an ancient custom, introduced by edicts, which formally forbids it. Now, edicts are promulgated only to be carried out faithfully; without fidelity nothing is stable. How could we disdain a wellestablished custom to satisfy a private friendship? . . . We beg you to understand well that this is our communication concerning our mutual acquaintance. This then is my letter. We send you herewith a modest gift, which we offer you with a glad heart. This letter was written at the beginning of winter and on a beautiful day.

Studying from Primary Source Materials

xxxv

7. Louis mentions his gratitude for the good treatment of some French subjects when they were “in your realm.” What do you imagine these Frenchmen were actually doing there? Do you imagine they were invited, or did they arrive on their own? How does the king of Tonkin respond when Louis mentions his appreciation for the “protection” they were accorded (lines 53–58)? Protection from what, do you suppose? 8. What reason does the king of Tonkin give for refusing Louis’s offer of Christian missionaries (lines 59–64)? He takes care to explain to Louis that “edicts are promulgated . . . nothing is stable.” What does this suggest about the king of Tonkin’s attitude toward Louis and the “incomparable blessing” of faith in the Christian god? How many French people (or Europeans, for that

xxxvi

matter) is the king of Tonkin likely to have met? What French person or persons might have already expressed to the king the ideas that Louis offers? 9. Compare the final line of each letter. What significance do you draw from the fact that Louis names the day, month, year, and location in which he writes? Apart from later historians, to whom in particular would this information be of greatest interest? What is the significance of the king of Tonkin’s closing line? If you can propose thoughtful answers to these questions, you will have gotten to know the material very well and will be ready for whatever examinations and papers await you in your course.

S T U D Y I N G F R O M P R I M A RY S O U R C E M AT E R I A L S

CHAPTER 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

The First Humans

Q

How did the Paleolithic and Neolithic Ages differ, and how did the Neolithic Revolution affect the lives of men and women?

Q

Nik Wheeler/CORBIS

The Emergence of Civilization What are the characteristics of civilization, and what are some explanations for why early civilizations emerged?

Q

How are the chief characteristics of civilization evident in ancient Mesopotamia?

c

Civilization in Mesopotamia Ruins of the ancient Sumerian city of Uruk

Egyptian Civilization: ‘‘The Gift of the Nile’’

Q

What are the basic features of the three major periods of Egyptian history? What elements of continuity are there in the three periods? What are their major differences?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

In what ways were the civilizations of Mesopotamia and Egypt alike? In what ways were they different?

IN 1849, A DARING YOUNG Englishman made a hazardous journey into the deserts and swamps of southern Iraq. Moving south down the banks of the Euphrates River while braving high winds and temperatures that reached 120 degrees Fahrenheit, William Loftus led a small expedition in search of the roots of civilization. As he said, ‘‘From our childhood we have been led to regard this place as the cradle of the human race.’’ Guided by native Arabs into the southernmost reaches of Iraq, Loftus and his small group of explorers were soon overwhelmed by what they saw. He wrote, ‘‘I know of nothing more exciting or impressive than the first sight of one of these great piles, looming in solitary grandeur from the surrounding plains and marshes.’’ One of these piles, known to the natives as the mound of Warka, contained the ruins of Uruk, one of the first cities in the world and part of the world’s first civilization. Southwest Asia was one area in the world where civilization began. Although Western civilization did not yet exist, its origins can be traced back to the ancient Near East, where people in Southwest Asia and in Egypt, in northeastern Africa, developed organized societies, invented writing, and created the ideas and institutions that we associate with civilization. The later Greeks and Romans, 1

who played such a crucial role in the development of Western civilization, were nourished and influenced by these older Near Eastern societies. It is appropriate, therefore, to begin our story of Western civilization with the early civilizations of Southwest Asia and Egypt. Before considering them, however, we must briefly examine prehistory and observe how human beings made the shift from hunting and gathering to agricultural communities and ultimately to cities and civilization.

The First Humans

Q Focus Question: How did the Paleolithic and

Neolithic Ages differ, and how did the Neolithic Revolution affect the lives of men and women?

Historians rely primarily on documents to create their pictures of the past, but no written records exist for the prehistory of humankind. In their absence, the story of early humanity depends on archaeological and, more recently, biological information, which anthropologists and archaeologists use to formulate theories about our early past. The earliest humanlike creatures---known as hominids--existed in Africa as long as three to four million years ago. Known as Australopithecines, they flourished in East and South Africa and were the first hominids to make simple stone tools. A second stage in early human development occurred around 1.5 million years ago when Homo erectus (‘‘upright human being’’) emerged. Homo erectus made use of larger and more varied tools and was the first hominid to leave Africa and to move into both Europe and Asia. Around 250,000 years ago, a third and crucial stage in human development began with the emergence of Homo sapiens (‘‘wise human being’’). By 100,000 B.C., two groups of Homo sapiens had developed. One type was the Neanderthal, whose remains were first found in the Neander valley in Germany. Neanderthal remains have since been found in both Europe and the Middle East and have been dated to between 100,000 and 30,000 B.C. Neanderthals relied on a variety of stone tools and were the first early people to bury their dead. The first anatomically modern humans, known as Homo sapiens sapiens (‘‘wise, wise human being’’), appeared in Africa between 200,000 and 150,000 years ago. Recent evidence indicates that they began to spread outside Africa around 70,000 years ago. Map 1.1 shows probable dates for different movements, although many of these are still unconfirmed. By 30,000 B.C., Homo sapiens sapiens had replaced the Neanderthals, who had largely become extinct, and by 10,000 B.C., members of 2

CHRONOLOGY The First Humans Australopithecines

flourished c. 2--4 million years ago

Homo erectus

flourished c. 100,000--1.5 million years ago

Homo sapiens Neanderthals

flourished c. 100,000--30,000 B.C.

Homo sapiens sapiens

emerged c. 200,000 B.C.

the Homo sapiens sapiens species could be found throughout the world. By that time, it was the only human species left. All humans today, be they Europeans, Australian Aborigines, or Africans, belong to the same subspecies.

The Hunter-Gatherers of the Old Stone Age One of the basic distinguishing features of the human species is the ability to make tools. The earliest tools were made of stone, and the term Paleolithic (Greek for ‘‘old stone’’) Age is used to designate this early period of human history (c. 2,500,000--10,000 B.C.). For hundreds of thousands of years, humans relied on hunting and gathering for their daily food. Paleolithic peoples had a close relationship with the world around them, and over a period of time, they came to know which animals to hunt and which plants to eat. They did not know how to grow crops or raise animals, however. They gathered wild nuts, berries, fruits, and a variety of wild grains and green plants. Around the world, they hunted and consumed different animals, including buffalo, horses, bison, wild goats, and reindeer. In coastal areas, fish were a rich source of nourishment. The hunting of animals and the gathering of wild plants no doubt led to certain patterns of living. Archaeologists and anthropologists have speculated that Paleolithic people lived in small bands of twenty to thirty. They were nomadic, moving from place to place to follow animal migrations and vegetation cycles. Hunting depended on careful observation of animal behavior patterns and required a group effort for success. Over the years, tools became more refined and more useful. The invention of the spear, and later the bow and arrow, made hunting considerably easier. Harpoons and fishhooks made of bone increased the catch of fish. Both men and women were responsible for finding food---the chief work of Paleolithic people. Since women bore and raised the children, they generally stayed close to the camps, but they played an important role in acquiring food by gathering berries, nuts, and grains. Men hunted wild animals, an activity that often took them far from camp.

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

60˚

40,0 00000 000 00 yeears ars ag ar ago ago go

7000,00 7 0,000 ,00 ,0 00 yyears ago g 30˚

25,000 yearss ag aggo o

EUROPE

NORTH AMERICA AM

Atlantic At Ocean 30˚

15,000– 15 000 12 12, 22,000 00000 00 yearss aggo

Pacific 200, 00, 00, 00,0 ,,000 00 000 00 60˚ 60 yeears ago o Indian 90˚

6 ˚ 60

ASIA

AFRICA 0˚

20, 20,0 20 20,00 0,0 ,0000 000 0– 11555,000 000 0000 yea ye earss ag go

Ocean

180˚

Ocean 150˚

120˚

90˚

SOUTH A AMERICA

50,0 50 ,000 0000 000 yyear arrs ag ago ag AUSTRALIA

30˚

30˚

The spread of Homo sapiens sapiens 60˚

60˚

ANTARCTICA MAP 1.1 The Spread of Homo sapiens sapiens. Homo sapiens sapiens spread from Africa

beginning about 70,000 years ago. Living and traveling in small groups, these anatomically modern humans were hunter-gatherers. Although groups of people advanced beyond their old hunting grounds at a rate of only 2 or 3 miles per generation, this was enough to populate the world in tens of thousands of years. Q Given that some diffusion of humans occurred during ice ages, how would such climate change affect humans and their movements, especially from Asia to Australia and Asia to View an animated version of this map or related maps at North America? www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

Because both men and women played important roles in providing for the band’s survival, scientists believe that a rough equality existed between men and women. Indeed, some speculate that both men and women made the decisions that affected the activities of the Paleolithic band. Some groups of Paleolithic peoples, especially those who lived in cold climates, found shelter in caves. Over time, they created new types of shelter as well. Perhaps the most common was a simple structure of wood poles or sticks covered with animal hides. The systematic use of fire, which archaeologists believe began around 500,000 years ago, made it possible for the caves and humanmade structures to have a source of light and heat. Fire also enabled early humans to cook their food, making it taste better, last longer, and in the case of some plants, such as wild grain, easier to chew and digest. The making of tools and the use of fire---two important technological innovations of Paleolithic peoples--remind us how crucial the ability to adapt was to human survival. But Paleolithic peoples did more than just survive. The cave paintings of large animals found in

southwestern France and northern Spain bear witness to the cultural activity of Paleolithic peoples. A cave discovered in southern France in 1994 (known as the Chauvet Cave, after the leader of the expedition that found it) contains more than three hundred paintings of lions, oxen, owls, bears, and other animals. Most of these are animals that Paleolithic people did not hunt, which suggests to some scholars that the paintings were made for religious or even decorative purposes. The discoverers were overwhelmed by what they saw: ‘‘There was a moment of ecstasy. . . . They overflowed with joy and emotion. . . . These were moments of indescribable madness.’’1

The Neolithic Revolution (C. 10,000--4000 B.C.) The end of the last ice age around 10,000 B.C. was followed by what is called the Neolithic Revolution, a significant change in living patterns that occurred in the New Stone Age (Neolithic is Greek for ‘‘new stone’’). The name New Stone Age is misleading, however. Although Neolithic peoples made a new type of polished T HE F IRST H UMANS

3

stone ax, this was not the major change that occurred after 10,000 B.C.

4

c

Consequences of the Neolithic Revolution The growing of crops on a regular basis gave rise to more permanent settlements, which historians refer to as Neolithic farming villages or towns. One of the oldest and most extensive agricultural villages was C¸atal Hu¨yu¨k, located in modern-day Turkey. Its walls enclosed 32 acres, and its population probably reached six thousand inhabitants during its high point from 6700 to 5700 B.C. People lived in simple mudbrick houses that were built so close to one another that there were few streets. To get to their homes, people had to walk along the rooftops and then enter the house through a hole in the roof. Archaeologists have discovered twelve cultivated products in C¸atal Hu¨yu¨k, including fruits, nuts, and three kinds of wheat. Artisans made weapons and jewelry that were traded with neighboring people. Religious shrines housing figures of gods and goddesses have been found at C¸atal Hu¨yu¨k, as have a number of female statuettes.

Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY

An Agricultural Revolution The biggest change was the shift from hunting animals and gathering plants for sustenance (food gathering) to producing food by systematic agriculture (food production). The planting of grains and vegetables provided a regular supply of food, while the domestication of animals, such as sheep, goats, cattle, and pigs, added a steady source of meat, milk, and fibers such as wool for clothing. Larger animals could also be used as beasts of burden. The growing of crops and the taming of food-producing animals created a new relationship between humans and nature. Historians speak of this as an agricultural revolution. Revolutionary change is dramatic and requires great effort, but the ability to acquire food on a regular basis gave humans greater control over their environment. It also allowed them to give up their nomadic ways of life and begin to live in settled communities. Systematic agriculture probably developed independently between 8000 and 7000 B.C. in various parts of the world. Different plants were cultivated in each: wheat, barley, and lentils in the Near East; rice and millet in southern Asia; millet and yams in western Africa; and beans, potatoes, and corn in the Americas. The Neolithic agricultural revolution needed a favorable environment. In the Near East, the upland areas above the Fertile Crescent (present-day northern Iraq and southern Turkey) were more conducive to systematic farming than the river valleys. This region received the necessary rainfall and was the home of two wild plant species (barley and wheat) and four wild animal species (pigs, cows, goats, and sheep) that humans eventually domesticated.

Statue from Ain Ghazal. This life-size statue made of plaster, sand, and crushed chalk dating from 6500 B.C. was discovered in 1984 in Ain Ghazal, an archaeological site near Amman, Jordan. It is among the oldest known statues of the human figure. Although it appears lifelike, its features are considered generic rather than a portrait of an individual face. The purpose and meaning of this sculpture may never be known.

Molded with noticeably large breasts and buttocks, these ‘‘earth mothers’’ perhaps symbolically represented the fertility of both ‘‘mother earth’’ and human mothers. The shrines and the statues point to the role of religion in the lives of these Neolithic peoples. The Neolithic Revolution had far-reaching consequences. Once people settled in villages or towns, they built permanent houses for protection and other structures for the storage of goods. As organized communities stockpiled food and accumulated material goods, they

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

began to engage in trade. People also began to specialize in certain crafts, and a division of labor developed. Pottery was made from clay and baked in a fire to make it hard. The pots were used for cooking and to store grains. Woven baskets were also used for storage. Stone tools became refined as flint blades were employed to make sickles and hoes for use in the fields. Obsidian---a volcanic glass that was easily flaked---was also used to create very sharp tools. In the course of the Neolithic Age, many of the food plants still in use today began to be cultivated. Moreover, fibers from plants such as flax were used to make thread that was woven into cloth. The change to systematic agriculture in the Neolithic Age also had consequences for the relationship between men and women. Men assumed the primary responsibility for working in the fields and herding animals, jobs that kept them away from the home. Although women also worked in the fields, many remained behind to care for the children, weave clothes, and perform other tasks that required labor close to home. In time, as work outside the home was increasingly perceived as more important than work done at home, men came to play the more dominant role in society, a basic pattern that would persist until our own times. Other patterns set in the Neolithic Age also proved to be enduring elements of human history. Fixed dwellings, domesticated animals, regular farming, a division of labor, men holding power---all of these are part of the human story. Despite all our modern scientific and technological progress, human survival still depends on the growing and storing of food, an accomplishment of people in the Neolithic Age. The Neolithic Revolution was truly a turning point in human history. New Developments Between 4000 and 3000 B.C., significant technical developments began to transform the Neolithic towns. The invention of writing enabled records to be kept, and the use of metals marked a new level of human control over the environment and its resources. Already before 4000 B.C., craftspeople had discovered that certain rocks could be heated to liquefy metals embedded in them. The metals could then be cast in molds to produce tools and weapons that were more refined than stone instruments. Although copper was the first metal to be made into tools, after 4000 B.C., craftspeople in western Asia discovered that combining copper and tin created bronze, a much harder and more durable metal than copper. Its widespread use has led historians to call the period from around 3000 to 1200 B.C. the Bronze Age; thereafter, bronze was increasingly replaced by iron. At first, Neolithic settlements were mere villages. But as their inhabitants mastered the art of farming, more complex human societies began to emerge. As wealth

increased, these societies began to develop armies and to build walled towns and cities. By the beginning of the Bronze Age, the concentration of larger numbers of people in the river valleys of Southwest Asia and Egypt was leading to a whole new pattern for human life.

The Emergence of Civilization

Q Focus Question: What are the characteristics of

civilization, and what are some explanations for why early civilizations emerged?

As we have seen, early human beings formed small groups that developed a simple culture that enabled them to survive. As human societies grew and developed greater complexity, a new form of human existence---called civilization---came into being. A civilization is a complex culture in which large numbers of human beings share a number of common elements. Historians have identified a number of basic characteristics of civilization. These include (1) an urban focus: cities became the centers of political, economic, social, cultural, and religious development; (2) a distinct religious structure: the gods were deemed crucial to the community’s success, and professional priestly classes regulated relations with the gods; (3) new political and military structures: an organized government bureaucracy arose to meet the administrative demands of the growing population, and armies were organized to gain land and power and for defense; (4) a new social structure based on economic power: while kings and an upper class of priests, political leaders, and warriors dominated, there also existed a large group of free men (farmers, artisans, craftspeople) and at the very bottom, socially, a class of slaves; (5) the development of writing: kings, priests, merchants, and artisans used writing to keep records; and (6) new forms of significant artistic and intellectual activity: for example, monumental architectural structures, usually religious, occupied a prominent place in urban environments. The civilizations that developed in Southwest Asia and Harappa s du In iver Egypt, the foreR Mohenjo-Daro runners of Western civilization, will be INDIA examined in detail in this chapter. But Arabian civilization also deSea veloped independently in other parts 0 200 400 600 Kilom om meete teers rs of the world. Be0 200 400 Miles tween 3000 and 1500 B.C., the valleys Harappa and Mohenjo-Daro T HE E MERGENCE

OF

C IVILIZATION

5

R.

ow

Yan gtz e

R.

Ye ll

n

O xu

. sR

6

of Caral also develAm a n R. oped a system of zo irrigation by divertMo Moche ing a river more than Chavin ha de d Huantar an r a mile upstream into PERU their fields. Caa Caral Why early civiMachu ach Picchu u Pa c i f i c lizations developed Ocean d Cuzco es remains difficult to M ts explain. One theory . 0 250 500 750 0K Kil illom oome m ters maintains that chal0 250 500 Miless lenges forced human beings to make ef- Caral, Peru forts that resulted in the rise of civilization. Some scholars have argued that material forces, such as the growth of food surpluses, made possible the specialization of labor and development of large communities with bureaucratic organization. But the area of the Fertile Crescent (see Map 1.2), in which Mesopotamian civilization emerged, was not naturally conducive to agriculture. Abundant food could be produced only with a massive human effort to manage the water, an undertaking that required organization and led to civilized societies. Other historians have argued that nonmaterial forces, primarily religious, provided the sense of unity and purpose that made such organized living possible. And some scholars doubt that we will ever discover the actual causes of early civilization. A

of the Indus River in India supported a flourishing civilization that extended hundreds of miles from the Himalayas to the coast of the Arabian Sea. Two major cities, Harappa and Mohenjo-Daro, were at the heart of this South Asian civilization. Many written records of the Indus valley civilization exist, but their language has not yet been deciphered. This Indus valley civilization carried on extensive trade with cities in Southwest Asia. Another river valley civilization emerged along the Yellow River in northern China about 4,000 years ago. Under the Shang dynasty of kings, 0 2 0 400 200 00 600 00 00 Kilom 0 ometers rs which ruled from 0 2 0 200 400 M Miillees es 1750 to 1122 B.C., this civilization contained impressive Anyang A an Yellow cities with huge city Sea Luoyan Lu Luo ya g yan walls, royal palaces, and large royal Huai R. tombs. A system of irrigation enMajor regions of the abled this early late Shang state Chinese civilization to maintain a prosThe Yellow River, China perous farming society ruled by an aristocratic class whose major concern was war. Scholars have believed for a long time that civilization emerged only in four areas, in the fertile river valleys of the Tigris and Euphrates, the Nile, the Indus, and the (Uzbekistan) Yellow River---that is, in Southwest Caspian Sea Asia, Egypt, India, and China. Recently, (Turkmenistan) however, archaeologists have discovered two other (Modern state names are in parentheses) early civilizations. 0 300 600 Kilometers One of these flour0 300 Miles ished in Central Asia (in what are now the Central Asian Civilization republics of Turkmenistan and Uzbekistan) around 4,000 years ago. People in this civilization built mudbrick buildings, raised sheep and goats, had bronze tools, used a system of irrigation to grow wheat and barley, and had a writing system. Another early civilization was discovered in the Supe River valley of Peru. At the center of this civilization was the city of Caral, which flourished around 2600 B.C. It contained buildings for officials, apartment buildings, and grand residences, all built of stone. The inhabitants

Civilization in Mesopotamia

Q Focus Question: How are the chief characteristics of civilization evident in ancient Mesopotamia?

The Greeks spoke of the valley between the Tigris and Euphrates Rivers as Mesopotamia, the ‘‘land between the rivers.’’ The region receives little rain, but the soil of the plain of southern Mesopotamia was enlarged and enriched over the years by layers of silt deposited by the rivers. In late spring, the Tigris and Euphrates overflow their banks and deposit their fertile silt, but since this flooding depends on the melting of snows in the upland mountains where the rivers begin, it is irregular and sometimes catastrophic. In such circumstances, farming could be accomplished only with human intervention in the form of irrigation and drainage ditches. A complex system was required to control the flow of the rivers and produce the crops. Large-scale irrigation made possible the expansion of agriculture in this region, and the abundant food provided the material base for the emergence of civilization in Mesopotamia.

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

MAP 1.2 The Ancient Near East. The Fertile Crescent encompassed land with access to water. Employing flood management and irrigation systems, the peoples of the region established civilizations based on agriculture. These civilizations developed writing, law codes, and economic specialization. Q What geographic aspects of the Mesopotamian city-states made conflict between them View an animated version of this map or related maps at www.cengage.com/ likely? history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

The City-States of Ancient Mesopotamia The creators of Mesopotamian civilization were the Sumerians, a people whose origins remain unclear. By 3000 B.C., they had established a number of independent cities in southern Mesopotamia, including Eridu, Ur, Uruk, Umma, and Lagash. There is evidence that the Sumerians were not the first people in the region. A number of Sumerian agricultural and craft terms are not Sumerian in origin, indicating that the Sumerians adopted some aspects of preexisting settlements. As the Sumerian cities grew larger, they came to exercise political and economic control over the surrounding

countryside, forming city-states. These city-states were the basic units of Sumerian civilization. Sumerian Cities Sumerian cities were surrounded by walls. Uruk, for example, occupied an area of approximately 1,000 acres encircled by a wall 6 miles long with defense towers located every 30 to 35 feet along the wall. City dwellings, built of sun-dried bricks, included both the small flats of peasants and the larger dwellings of the civic and priestly officials. Although Mesopotamia had little stone or wood for building purposes, it did have plenty of mud. Mudbricks, easily shaped by hand, were C IVILIZATION

IN

M ESOPOTAMIA

7

British Museum, London, UK/The Bridgeman Art Library

c

The ‘‘Royal Standard’’ of Ur. This detail is from the ‘‘Royal Standard’’ of Ur, a box dating from around 2700 B.C. that was discovered in a stone tomb from the royal cemetery of the Sumerian city-state of Ur. The scenes on one side of the box depict the activities of the king and his military forces. Shown in the bottom panel are four Sumerian battle chariots. Each chariot held two men, one who held the reins and the other armed with a spear for combat. A special compartment in the chariot held a number of spears. The charging chariots are seen defeating the enemy. In the middle band, the Sumerian soldiers round up the captured enemies. In the top band, the captives are presented to the king, who has alighted from his chariot and is shown standing above all the others in the center of the panel.

left to bake in the hot sun until they were hard enough to use for building. People in Mesopotamia were remarkably inventive with mudbricks, constructing some of the largest brick buildings in the world. The most prominent building in a Sumerian city was the temple, which was dedicated to the chief god or goddess of the city and often built atop a massive stepped tower called a ziggurat. The Sumerians believed that gods and goddesses owned the cities, and much wealth was used to build temples as well as elaborate houses for the priests and priestesses who served the gods. Priests and priestesses, who supervised the temples and their property, had great power. The temples owned much of the city land and livestock and served not only as the physical center of the city but also its economic and political center. In fact, historians believe that in the early stages of a few citystates, priests and priestesses may have played an important role in ruling. The Sumerians believed that the gods ruled the cities, making the state a theocracy (government by a divine authority). However, ruling power was primarily in the hands of worldly figures known as kings. Kingship Sumerians viewed kingship as divine in origin; they believed kings derived their power from the gods and were the agents of the gods. As one person said in a 8

petition to his king, ‘‘You in your judgment, you are the son of Anu [god of the sky]; your commands, like the word of a god, cannot be reversed; your words, like rain pouring down from heaven, are without number.’’2 Regardless of their origins, kings had power---they led armies, initiated legislation, supervised the building of public works, provided courts, and organized workers for the irrigation projects on which Mesopotamian agriculture depended. The army, the government bureaucracy, and the priests and priestesses all aided the kings in their rule. Economy and Society The economy of the Sumerian city-states was primarily agricultural, but commerce and industry became important as well. The people of Mesopotamia produced woolen textiles, pottery, and metalwork. Foreign trade, which was primarily a royal monopoly, could be extensive. Royal officials imported luxury items, such as copper and tin, aromatic woods, and fruit trees, in exchange for dried fish, wool, barley, wheat, and goods produced by Mesopotamian metalworkers. Traders traveled by land to the Mediterranean in the west and by sea to India in the east. The invention of the wheel around 3000 B.C. led to carts with wheels that made the transport of goods easier. Sumerian city-states probably contained four major social groups: elites, dependent commoners, free commoners,

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

TABLE 1.1 Some Semitic Languages

Akkadian Arabic Aramaic Assyrian Babylonian

Canaanitic Hebrew Phoenician Syriac

NOTE: Languages in italic type are no longer spoken.

.

As the number of Sumerian city-states grew and the states expanded, conflicts arose as city-state fought city-state for control of land and water. The fortunes of various citystates rose and fell over the centuries. The constant wars, with their burning and sacking of cities, left many Sumerians in deep despair, as is evident in the words of this Sumerian poem from the city of Ur: ‘‘Ur is destroyed, bitter is its lament. The country’s blood now fills its holes like hot bronze in a mold. Bodies dissolve like fat in the sun. Our temple is destroyed; the gods have abandoned us, like migrating birds. Smoke lies on our city like a shroud.’’ Located on the flat land of Mesopotamia, the Sumerian city-states were also open to invasion. To the north of the Sumerian city-states lived the Akkadians. We call them a Semitic people because of the language they spoke (see Table 1.1). Around 2340 B.C., Sargon, leader of the Akkadians, overran the Sumerian city-states and established an empire that included most of Mesopotamia as well as lands westward to the Mediterranean. But the Akkadian empire eventually disintegrated, and its end by 2100 B.C. brought a return to the system of warring citystates until Ur-Nammu of Ur succeeded in reunifying most of Mesopotamia. But this final flowering of Sumerian culture collapsed with the coming of the Amorites. Under Hammurabi, the Amorites, or Old Babylonians, a large group of Semitic-speaking seminomads, created a new empire. Hammurabi (1792--1750 B.C.) employed a welldisciplined army of foot soldiers who carried axes, spears,

R ris

Empires in Ancient Mesopotamia

and copper or Nineveh bronze daggers. He Ashur M learned to divide his E Eup hrate S O s opponents and subR. P O TA M due them one by Bab byyl ylo lo lon I A Nip Ni Nip ipppu ippur pur u one. Using such Lagash L ag h Lar La L aarrssaa methods, he gained U Ur Eridu Arabian control of Sumer Perrsia sian D e s e r t Gu ulf and Akkad and reunified Mesopotamia 0 200 400 Kilometers almost to the old 0 200 Miles borders created by Sargon of Akkad. Hammurabi’s empire After his conquests, Sumerian civilization he called himself ‘‘the sun of Babylon, Hammurabi’s Empire the king who has made the four quarters of the world subservient,’’ and established a new capital at Babylon, north of Akkad. He also built temples, defensive walls, and irrigation canals; encouraged trade; and brought about an economic revival. Indeed, Hammurabi saw himself as a shepherd to his people: ‘‘I am indeed the shepherd who brings peace, whose scepter is just. My benevolent shade was spread over my city. I held the people of the lands of Sumer and Akkad safely on my lap.’’3 Hammurabi left his dynasty strong enough that it survived until the 1550s B.C., when the Kassites from the northeast took over. Tig

and slaves. Elites included royal and priestly officials and their families. Dependent commoners included the elites’ clients, who worked for the palace and temple estates. Free commoners worked as farmers, merchants, fishers, scribes, and craftspeople. Probably 90 percent or more of the population were farmers. They could exchange their crops for the goods of the artisans in town markets. Slaves belonged to palace officials, who used them mostly in building projects; temple officials, who used mostly female slaves to weave cloth and grind grain; and rich landowners, who used them for farming and domestic work.

The Code of Hammurabi Hammurabi is best remembered for his law code, a collection of 282 laws. For centuries, laws had regulated people’s relationships with one another in the lands of Mesopotamia, but only fragments of these earlier codes survive. Although many scholars today view Hammurabi’s collection less as a code of laws and more as the attempt of Hammurabi to portray himself as the source of justice to the people, the code still gives us a glimpse of the Babylonian society of his time (see the box on p. 10). The Code of Hammurabi reveals a society with a system of strict justice. Penalties for criminal offenses were severe and varied according to the social class of the victim. A crime against a member of the upper class (a noble) was punished more severely than the same offense against a member of the lower class. Moreover, the principle of ‘‘an eye for an eye, a tooth for a tooth’’ was fundamental to this system of justice. This meant that punishments should fit the crime: ‘‘If a freeman has destroyed the eye of a member of the aristocracy, they shall destroy his eye.’’ Hammurabi’s code also had an impact on legal ideas in Southwest Asia for hundreds of years, as the following verse from the Hebrew Bible demonstrates: ‘‘If anyone injures his neighbor, whatever he has done must be done to him: fracture C IVILIZATION

IN

M ESOPOTAMIA

9

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

for fracture, eye for eye, tooth for tooth. As he has injured the other, so he is to be injured’’ (Leviticus 24:19--20). Hammurabi’s code took the responsibilities of public officials very seriously. The governor of an area and city officials were expected to catch burglars. If they failed to do so, the officials in the district where the crime was committed had to replace the lost property. If murderers were not found, the officials had to pay a fine to the relatives of the murdered person. The law code also furthered the proper performance of work with what amounted to consumer protection laws. Builders were held responsible for the buildings they constructed. If a house collapsed and caused the death of the owner, the builder was put to death. If the collapse caused the death of the son of the owner, the son of the builder was put to death. If goods were destroyed by the collapse, they had to be replaced and the house itself reconstructed at the builder’s expense. The largest number of laws in the Code of Hammurabi focused on marriage and the family. Parents arranged marriages for their children. After marriage, the parties involved signed a marriage contract; without it, no one was considered legally married. The husband provided a bridal payment, and the woman’s parents were responsible for a dowry to the new husband. As in many patriarchal societies, women had far fewer privileges and rights in marriage than men. A 10

woman’s place was in the home, and failure to fulfill her expected duties was grounds for divorce. If she was not able to bear children, her husband could divorce her, but he did have to return the dowry to her family. If his wife tried to leave home to engage in business, thus neglecting her house, her husband could divorce her and did not have to repay the dowry. Furthermore, a wife who was a ‘‘gadabout, . . . neglecting her house [and] humiliating her husband,’’ could be drowned. We do know that in practice not all women remained at home. Some worked in the fields and others in business, where they were especially prominent in the running of taverns. Women were guaranteed some rights, however. If a woman was divorced without good reason, she received the dowry back. A woman could seek divorce and get her dowry back if her husband was unable to show that she had done anything wrong. In theory, a wife was guaranteed use of her husband’s property in the event of his death. The mother could also decide which of her sons would receive an inheritance. Sexual relations were strictly regulated as well. Husbands, but not wives, were permitted sexual activity outside marriage. A wife and her lover caught committing adultery were pitched into the river, although if the husband pardoned his wife, the king could pardon the guilty man. Incest was strictly forbidden. If a father had incestuous relations with his daughter, he would be banished.

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

Incest between a son and mother resulted in both being burned. Fathers ruled their children as well as their wives. Obedience was duly expected: ‘‘If a son has struck his father, they shall cut off his hand.’’ If a son committed a serious enough offense, his father could disinherit him, although fathers were not permitted to disinherit their sons arbitrarily.

The Culture of Mesopotamia A spiritual worldview was of fundamental importance to Mesopotamian culture. To the peoples of Mesopotamia, the gods were living realities who affected all aspects of life. It was crucial, therefore, that the correct hierarchies be observed. Leaders could prepare armies for war, but success depended on a favorable relationship with the gods. This helps explain the importance of the priestly class and is the reason why even the kings took great care to dedicate offerings and monuments to the gods. The Importance of Religion One of the most famous accounts from the ancient Near East of the creation of the universe was the Babylonian creation epic known as the Enuma Elish. The name comes from the first three words of the first two lines of the poem: When on high the heavens were not yet named, And below, the earth was not called by a name.

The Enuma Elish tells how the god Marduk was endowed with absolute power by the other gods to do battle with Tiamat, a primordial goddess who personified the forces of watery chaos. Marduk defeats Tiamat in battle and proceeds to create the universe by dividing Tiamat in two, one part becoming the heavens and the other the earth, with her breasts as mountains. From her eyes came the Tigris and Euphrates Rivers. The Enuma Elish was recited during the New Year festival celebrated in honor of Marduk in the city of Babylon, which the all-powerful god founded as an earthly residence for the gods after his creation of the universe. The Mesopotamians viewed their city-states as earthly copies of a divine model and order. Each city-state was sacred because it was linked to a god or goddess. Hence Nippur, the earliest center of Sumerian religion, was dedicated to Enlil, the god of wind. Moreover, located at the heart of each city-state was a temple complex. Occupying several acres, this sacred area consisted of a ziggurat with a temple at the top dedicated to the god or goddess who owned the city. The temple complex was the true center of the community. The main god or goddess dwelt there symbolically in the form of a statue, and the

ceremony of dedication included a ritual that linked the statue to the god or goddess and thus supposedly harnessed the power of the deity for the city’s benefit. Considerable wealth was poured into the construction of temples and other buildings used for the residences of priests and priestesses who helped the gods. Although the gods literally owned the city, the temple complex used only part of the land and rented out the remainder. The temples dominated individual and commercial life, an indication of the close relationship between Mesopotamian religion and culture. The physical environment had an obvious impact on the Mesopotamian view of the universe. Ferocious floods, heavy downpours, scorching winds, and oppressive humidity were all part of the local climate. These conditions and the resulting famines easily convinced Mesopotamians that this world was controlled by supernatural forces and that the days of human beings ‘‘are numbered; whatever he may do, he is but wind,’’ as The Epic of Gilgamesh laments. In the presence of nature, Mesopotamians could easily feel helpless, as this poem relates: The rampant flood which no man can oppose, Which shakes the heavens and causes earth to tremble, In an appalling blanket folds mother and child, Beats down the canebrake’s full luxuriant greenery, And drowns the harvest in its time of ripeness.4

The Mesopotamians discerned cosmic rhythms in the universe and accepted its order but perceived that it was not completely safe because of the presence of willful, powerful cosmic powers that they identified with gods and goddesses. With its numerous gods and goddesses animating all aspects of the universe, Mesopotamian religion was polytheistic. The four most important deities were An, Enlil, Enki, and Ninhursaga. An was the god of the sky and hence the most important force in the universe. Since his basic essence was authority, he was also viewed as the source or active principle of all authority, including the earthly power of rulers and fathers alike. Enlil, god of wind, was considered the second greatest power of the visible universe. In charge of the wind and thus an expression of the legitimate use of force, Enlil became the symbol of the proper use of force on earth as well. Enki was god of the earth. Since the earth was the source of life-giving waters, Enki was also god of rivers, wells, and canals. More generally, he represented the waters of creativity and was responsible for inventions and crafts. Ninhursaga began as a goddess associated with soil, mountains, and vegetation. Eventually, however, she was worshiped as a mother goddess, a ‘‘mother of all C IVILIZATION

IN

M ESOPOTAMIA

11

their livers or other organs. Supposedly, features seen in the organs of the sacrificed animals foretold events to come. One handbook predicted that if the animal organ had shape x, the outcome of the military campaign would be y. Private individuals relied on cheaper divinatory techniques. These included interpreting patterns of smoke from burning incense or the pattern formed when oil was poured into water. The Mesopotamian arts of divination arose out of the desire to discover the purposes of the gods: if people could decipher the signs that foretold events, the events would be predictable, and humans could act wisely.

children,’’ who manifested her power by giving birth to kings and conferring the royal insignia on them. Human beings’ relationship with their gods was based on subservience since, according to Sumerian myth, human beings were created to do the manual labor the gods were unwilling to do for themselves. Moreover, humans were insecure because they could never be sure what the gods would do. But humans did make attempts to circumvent or relieve their anxiety by discovering the intentions of the gods; these efforts gave rise to the development of the arts of divination. Divination took a variety of forms. A common form, at least for kings and priests who could afford it, involved killing animals, such as sheep or goats, and examining

Re´union des Muse´es Nationaux/Art Resource, NY

The Cultivation of New Arts and Sciences The realization of writing’s great potential was another aspect of Mesopotamian culture. The oldest Mesopotamian texts date to around 3000 B.C. and were written by the Sumerians, who used a cuneiform (‘‘wedge-shaped’’) system of writing. Using a reed stylus, they made wedge-shaped impressions on clay tablets, which were then baked or dried in the sun. Once dried, these tablets were virtually indestructible, and the several hundred thousand that have been discovered have served as a valuable source of information for modern scholars. Sumerian writing evolved from drawings of physical objects to simplified and stylized signs, leading eventually to a phonetic system that made possible the written expression of abstract ideas.

c

The Development of Cuneiform Writing. Pictured here is the cone of Uruinimgina, an example of cuneiform writing from an early Sumerian dynasty. The inscription announces reductions in taxes. The table shows the development of writing from pictographic signs to cuneiform characters.

Pictographic sign, c. 3100 B.C.

star

?sun over horizon

dingir, an

?stream

ear of barley

u4, ud

a

se

day, sun

water, seed, son

bull’s head

bowl

head + bowl

lower leg

?shrouded body

ku2

du, gin, gub

lu2

to eat

to walk, to stand

man

Cuneiform sign, c. 2400 B.C.

Cuneiform sign c. 700 B.C. (turned through 90°) Phonetic value* Meaning

god, sky

ˆ

Courtesy Andromeda Oxford Limited, Oxford, England

Interpretation

gu4

barley

ox

nig2, ninda food, bread

*Some signs have more than one phonetic value and some sounds are represented by more than one sign; for example, u4 means the fourth sign with the phonetic value u.

12

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

THE GREAT FLOOD The great poem of Mesopotamian literature, The Epic of Gilgamesh, includes an account by Utnapishtim (a Mesopotamian forerunner of the biblical Noah), who had built a ship and survived the flood unleashed by the gods to destroy humankind. This selection recounts how the god Ea advised Utnapishtim to build a boat and how he came to land his boat at the end of the flood. In this section, Utnapishtim is telling his story to Gilgamesh.

The Epic of Gilgamesh ‘‘In those days the world teemed, the people multiplied, the world bellowed like a wild bull, and the great god was aroused by the clamor. Enlil heard the clamor and he said to the gods in council, ‘The uproar of mankind is intolerable and sleep is no longer possible by reason of the babel.’ So the gods agreed to exterminate mankind. Enlil did this, but Ea [Sumerian Enki, god of the waters] because of his oath warned me in a dream . . . , ‘Tear down your house and build a boat, abandon possessions and look for life, despise worldly goods and save your soul alive. Tear down your house, I say, and build a boat. . . . Then take up into the boat the seed of all living creatures. . . .’ [Utnapishtim did as he was told, and then the destruction came.] ‘‘For six days and six nights the winds blew, torrent and tempest and flood overwhelmed the world, tempest and flood

Mesopotamian peoples used writing primarily for record keeping. They also produced monumental texts, documents that were intended to last forever, such as inscriptions etched in stone on statues and royal buildings. Numerous texts were prepared for teaching purposes. Schools for scribes were in operation by 2500 B.C. They were necessary because much time was needed to master the cuneiform system of writing. The primary goal of scribal education was to produce professionally trained scribes for careers in the temples and palaces, the military, and government. Pupils were male and primarily from wealthy families. Writing was important because it enabled a society to keep records and maintain knowledge of previous practices and events. Writing also made it possible for people to communicate ideas in new ways, which is especially evident in Mesopotamian literary works. The most famous piece of Mesopotamian literature was The Epic of Gilgamesh, an elaborate poem that records the exploits of a legendary king of Uruk. Gilgamesh---wise, strong, and perfect in body, part man, part god---befriends a hairy beast named Enkidu. Together they set off in pursuit of heroic deeds. When Enkidu dies, Gilgamesh experiences the pain of mortality and embarks on a search for the secret of immortality. But his efforts fail (see the box above), and Gilgamesh remains mortal. The desire for

raged together like warring hosts. When the seventh day dawned the storm from the south subsided, the sea grew calm, the flood was stifled; I looked at the face of the world and there was silence, all mankind was turned to clay. The surface of the sea stretched as flat as a rooftop; I opened a hatch and the light fell on my face. Then I bowed low, I sat down and I wept, the tears streamed down my face, for on every side was the waste of water. I looked for land in vain, but fourteen leagues distant there appeared a mountain, and there the boat grounded; on the mountain of Nisir the boat held fast, she held fast and did not budge. . . . When the seventh day dawned I loosed a dove and let her go. She flew away, but finding no resting-place she returned. Then I loosed a swallow, and she flew away but finding no resting-place she returned. I loosed a raven, she saw that the waters had retreated, she ate, she flew around, she cawed, and she did not come back. Then I threw everything open to the four winds, I made a sacrifice and poured out a libation on the mountain top.’’

Q What does this selection from The Epic of Gilgamesh tell you about the relationship between the Mesopotamians and their gods? How might you explain the difference between this account and the biblical flood story in Genesis?

immortality, one of humankind’s great searches, ends in complete frustration. Everlasting life, this Mesopotamian epic makes clear, is only for the gods. Mesopotamians also made outstanding achievements in mathematics and astronomy. In math, the Sumerians devised a number system based on 60, using combinations of 6 and 10 for practical solutions. Geometry was used to measure fields and erect buildings. In astronomy, the Sumerians made use of units of 60 and charted the heavenly constellations. Their calendar was based on twelve lunar months and was brought into harmony with the solar year by adding an extra month from time to time.

Egyptian Civilization: ‘‘The Gift of the Nile’’

Q Focus Questions: What are the basic features of the

three major periods of Egyptian history? What elements of continuity are there in the three periods? What are their major differences?

Although contemporaneous with Mesopotamia, civilization in Egypt evolved along somewhat different lines. Of central importance to the development of Egyptian E GYPTIAN C IVILIZATION : ‘‘T HE G IFT

OF THE

N ILE ’’

13

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

civilization was the Nile River. That the Egyptian people recognized its significance is apparent in this Hymn to the Nile (also see the box above): ‘‘The bringer of food, rich in provisions, creator of all good, lord of majesty, sweet of fragrance. . . . He who . . . fills the magazines, makes the granaries wide, and gives things to the poor. He who makes every beloved tree to grow. . . .’’5 Egypt, like Mesopotamia, was a river valley civilization.

The Impact of Geography The Nile is a unique river, beginning in the heart of Africa and coursing northward for thousands of miles. It is the longest river in the world. Thanks to the Nile, an area several miles wide on both banks of the river was capable of producing abundant harvests. The ‘‘miracle’’ of the 14

Nile was its annual flooding. The river rose in the summer from rains in Central Africa and the Ethiopian highlands, crested in Egypt in September and October, and left a deposit of silt that enriched the soil. The Egyptians called this fertile land the ‘‘Black Land’’ because it was dark from the silt and the lush crops that grew on it. Beyond these narrow strips of fertile fields lay the deserts (the ‘‘Red Land’’). Unlike the floods of Mesopotamia’s rivers, the flooding of the Nile was gradual and usually predictable, and the river itself was seen as life-enhancing, not lifethreatening. Although a system of organized irrigation was still necessary, the small villages along the Nile could make the effort without the massive state intervention that was required in Mesopotamia. Egyptian civilization consequently tended to remain more rural, with many

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

Nile also served as a unifying factor in Egyptian history. In ancient times, the Nile was the fastest way to travel through the land, making both transportation and communication easier. Winds from the north pushed sailboats south, and the current of the Nile carried them north. Often when they headed downstream (north), people used long poles or paddles to propel their boats forward. Unlike Mesopotamia, which was subject to constant invasion, Egypt was blessed by natural barriers that fostered isolation, protected it from invasion, and gave it a sense of security. These barriers included the deserts to the west and east; the cataracts (rapids) on the southern part of the Nile, which made defense relatively easy; and the Mediterranean Sea to the north. These barriers, however, were effective only when combined with Egyptian fortifications at strategic locations. Nor did they prevent the development of trade. Indeed, there is evidence of very early trade between Egypt and Mesopotamia. In essence, Egyptian geography and topography played important roles in the early history of the country. The regularity of the Nile floods and the relative isolation of the Egyptians created a sense of security that was accompanied by a feeling of MAP 1.3 Ancient Egypt. Egyptian civilization centered on the life-giving water and changelessness. To the ancient Egypflood silts of the Nile River, with most of the population living in Lower Egypt, where tians, when the Nile flooded each year, the river splits to form the Nile delta. Most of the pyramids, built during the Old ‘‘the fields laugh and people’s faces Kingdom, are clustered at the entrance to the delta. light up.’’ Unlike people in MesoQ How did the lands to the east and west of the river make invasions of Egypt difficult? potamia, Egyptians faced life with a spirit of confidence in the stability of things. Egyptian civilization was characterized by a resmall population centers congregated along a narrow markable degree of continuity over thousands of years. band on both sides of the Nile. About 100 miles before it empties into the Mediterranean, the river splits into two major branches, forming the delta, a triangular-shaped The Old and Middle Kingdoms territory called Lower Egypt to distinguish it from Upper Egypt, the land upstream to the south (see Map 1.3). The basic framework for the study of Egyptian history was provided by Manetho, an Egyptian priest and hisEgypt’s important cities developed at the tip of the delta. torian who lived in the early third century B.C. He divided Even today, most of Egypt’s people are crowded along the Egyptian history into thirty-one dynasties of kings. Using banks of the Nile River. Manetho’s and other lists of kings, modern historians The surpluses of food that Egyptian farmers grew in the fertile Nile valley made Egypt prosperous. But the have divided Egyptian history into three major periods E GYPTIAN C IVILIZATION : ‘‘T HE G IFT

OF THE

N ILE ’’

15

known as the Old Kingdom, the Middle Kingdom, and the New Kingdom. These were periods of long-term stability characterized by strong monarchical authority, competent bureaucracy, freedom from invasion, the construction of temples and pyramids, and considerable intellectual and cultural activity. But between the periods of stability were intervals known as the Intermediate Periods, characterized by weak political structures and rivalry for leadership, invasions, a decline in building activity, and a restructuring of society. According to the Egyptians’ own tradition, their land consisted initially of numerous populated areas ruled by tribal chieftains. Around 3100 B.C., the first Egyptian royal dynasty, under a king called Menes, united Upper and Lower Egypt into a single kingdom. Henceforth the king would be called ‘‘king of Upper and Lower Egypt,’’ and one of his symbols would be the Double Crown, combining the White Crown of Upper Egypt and the Red Crown of Lower Egypt. Just as the Nile served to unite Upper and Lower Egypt physically, kingship served to unite the two areas politically. The Old Kingdom The Old Kingdom encompassed the third through sixth dynasties of Egyptian kings, lasting from around 2686 to 2181 B.C. It was an age of prosperity and splendor, made visible in the construction of the greatest and largest pyramids in Egypt’s history. The capital of the Old Kingdom was located at Memphis, south of the delta. Kingship was a divine institution in ancient Egypt and formed part of a universal cosmic scheme (see the box on p. 14): ‘‘What is the king of Upper and Lower Egypt? He is a god by whose dealings one lives, the father and mother of all men, alone by himself, without an equal.’’6 In obeying their king, subjects helped maintain the cosmic order. A breakdown in royal power could only mean that citizens were offending divinity and weakening the universal structure. Among the various titles of Egyptian kings, pharaoh (originally meaning ‘‘great house’’ or ‘‘palace’’) eventually came to be the most common. Although they possessed absolute power, Egyptian kings were supposed to rule not arbitrarily but according to set principles. The chief principle was called Ma’at, a spiritual precept that conveyed the idea of truth and justice, especially right order and harmony. To ancient Egyptians, this fundamental order and harmony had existed throughout the universe since the beginning of time. Pharaohs were the divine instruments who maintained it and were themselves subject to it. Although theoretically absolute in their power, in practice Egyptian kings did not rule alone. Initially, members of the king’s family performed administrative tasks, but by the fourth dynasty, a bureaucracy with 16

regular procedures had developed. Especially important was the office of vizier, ‘‘steward of the whole land.’’ Directly responsible to the king, the vizier was in charge of the bureaucracy, with its numerous departments, including police, justice, river transport, and public works. Agriculture and the treasury were the most important departments. Agriculture was, of course, the backbone of Egyptian prosperity, and the treasury collected taxes, which were paid in kind. A careful assessment of land and tenants was undertaken to provide the tax base. For administrative purposes, Egypt was divided into provinces or nomes, as they were later called by the Greeks---twenty-two in Upper Egypt and twenty in Lower Egypt. A governor, called by the Greeks a nomarch, was head of each nome and was responsible to the king and vizier. Nomarchs, however, tended to build up large holdings of land and power within their nomes, creating a potential rivalry with the pharaohs. The Middle Kingdom Despite the theory of divine order, the Old Kingdom eventually collapsed, ushering in a period of disorder. Eventually, a new royal dynasty managed to pacify all Egypt and inaugurated the Middle Kingdom, a new period of stability lasting from around 2055 to 1650 B.C. Several factors contributed to its vitality. The nome structure was reorganized. The boundaries of each nome were now settled precisely, and the obligations of the nomes to the state were clearly delineated. Nomarchs were confirmed as hereditary officeholders but with the understanding that their duties must be performed faithfully. These included the collection of taxes for the state and the recruitment of labor forces for royal projects, such as stone quarrying. The Middle Kingdom was characterized by a new concern on the part of the pharaohs for the people. In the Old Kingdom, the pharaoh had been viewed as an inaccessible god-king. Now he was portrayed as the shepherd of his people with the responsibility to build public works and provide for the public welfare. As one pharaoh expressed it, ‘‘He [a particular god] created me as one who should do that which he had done, and to carry out that which he commanded should be done. He appointed me herdsman of this land, for he knew who would keep it in order for him.’’7

Society and Economy in Ancient Egypt Egyptian society had a simple structure in the Old and Middle Kingdoms; basically, it was organized along hierarchical lines with the god-king at the top. The king was surrounded by an upper class of nobles and priests who participated in the elaborate rituals of life that surrounded the pharaoh. This ruling class ran the

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

CHRONOLOGY The Egyptians Early Dynastic Period (dynasties 1--2)

c. 3100--2686 B.C.

Old Kingdom (dynasties 3--6)

c. 2686--2181 B.C.

First Intermediate Period (dynasties 7--10)

c. 2180--2055 B.C.

Middle Kingdom (dynasties 11--12)

c. 2055--1650 B.C.

Second Intermediate Period (dynasties 13--17)

c. 1650--1550 B.C.

New Kingdom (dynasties 18--20)

c. 1550--1070 B.C.

Postempire Egypt (dynasties 21--31)

1070--30 B.C.

government and managed its own landed estates, which provided much of its wealth. Below the upper classes were merchants and artisans. Merchants engaged in active trade up and down the Nile as well as in town and village markets. Some merchants also engaged in international trade; they were sent by the king to Crete and Syria, where they obtained wood and other products. Expeditions traveled into Nubia for ivory and down the Red Sea to Punt for incense and spices. Egyptian artisans displayed unusually high standards of craftsmanship and beauty and produced an incredible variety of goods: stone dishes; beautifully painted boxes made of clay; wooden furniture; gold, silver, and copper tools and containers; paper and rope made of papyrus; and linen clothing. The largest number of people in Egypt simply worked the land. In theory, the king owned all the land but granted portions of it to his subjects. Large sections were in the possession of nobles and the temple complexes. Most of the lower classes were serfs or common people who were bound to the land and cultivated the estates. They paid taxes in the form of crops to the king, nobles, and priests, lived in small villages or towns, and provided military service and forced labor for building projects.

The Culture of Egypt Egypt produced a culture that dazzled and awed its later conquerors. The Egyptians’ technical achievements alone, especially visible in the construction of the pyramids, demonstrated a measure of skill unique in the world at that time. To the Egyptians, all of these achievements were part of a cosmic order suffused with the presence of the divine. Spiritual Life in Egyptian Society The Egyptians had no word for religion because it was an inseparable aspect of existence in the world in which they lived. The Egyptians had a remarkable number of gods associated with heavenly bodies and natural forces---hardly unusual in view of the importance to Egypt’s well-being of the sun,

the river, and the fertile land along its banks. The sun was the source of life and hence worthy of worship. A sun cult developed, and the sun god took on different forms and names, depending on his specific function. He was worshiped as Atum in human form and as Re, who had a human body but the head of a falcon. The pharaoh took the title ‘‘Son of Re’’ because he was regarded as the earthly embodiment of Re. River and land deities included Osiris and Isis with their child Horus, who was related to the Nile and to the sun as well. Osiris became especially important as a symbol of resurrection. A famous Egyptian myth told of the struggle between Osiris, who brought civilization to Egypt, and his evil brother Seth, who killed him, cut his body into fourteen parts, and tossed them into the Nile. Osiris’ faithful wife, Isis, found the pieces and, with help from other gods, restored Osiris to life. As a symbol of resurrection and as judge of the dead, Osiris took on an important role for the Egyptians. By identifying with Osiris, one could hope to gain new life, just as Osiris had done. The dead, embalmed and mummified, were placed in tombs (in the case of kings, in pyramidal tombs), given the name of Osiris, and by a process of magical identification became Osiris. Like Osiris, they would then be reborn. The flood of the Nile and the new life it brought to Egypt were symbolized by Isis gathering all of Osiris’ parts together and were celebrated each spring in the festival of the new land. Later Egyptian spiritual practice began to emphasize morality by stressing Osiris’ role as judge of the dead. The dead were asked to give an account of their earthly deeds to show whether they deserved a reward. Other means were also employed to gain immortality. Magical incantations, preserved in the Book of the Dead from the period of the New Kingdom, were used to ensure a favorable journey to a happy afterlife. Specific instructions explained what to do when confronted by the judge of the dead. These instructions had two aspects. The negative confession gave a detailed list of what one had not done: I I I I I I I I I

have have have have have have have have have

not not not not not not not not not

committed evil against men. mistreated cattle. blasphemed a god. . . . done violence to a poor man. . . . made anyone sick. . . . killed. . . . caused anyone suffering. . . . had sexual relations with a boy. defiled myself.8

Later the supplicant made a speech listing his good actions: ‘‘I have done that which men said and that with E GYPTIAN C IVILIZATION : ‘‘T HE G IFT

OF THE

N ILE ’’

17

British Museum, London, UK//HIP/Art Resource, NY

c

Osiris as Judge of the Dead. According to the Book of the Dead, after making a denial of offenses (the ‘‘negative confession’’), the deceased experienced the ‘‘weighing of the heart.’’ Shown here is a judgment scene from the Book of the Dead of Hunefer, a royal scribe who died around 1285 B.C. Hunefer’s heart is placed on one side of a balance scale; on the other side is the feather of Ma’at, the goddess of truth. For Hunefer, heart and feather are of equal weight, so the god Anubis ushers him into the presence of Osiris, seated on his throne at the right. A ‘‘swallowing monster,’’ a hybrid creature of crocodile, lion, and hippopotamus, stood ready at the scale to devour the deceased if he failed the test.

which gods are content. . . . I have given bread to the hungry, water to the thirsty, clothing to the naked, and a ferry-boat to him who was marooned. I have provided divine offerings for the gods and mortuary offerings for the dead.’’9 The Pyramids One of the great achievements of Egyptian civilization, the building of pyramids, occurred in the time of the Old Kingdom. Pyramids were not built in isolation but as part of a larger complex dedicated to the dead---in effect, a city of the dead. The area included a large pyramid for the king’s burial, smaller pyramids for his family, and mastabas, rectangular structures with flat roofs, as tombs for the pharaoh’s noble officials. The tombs were well prepared for their residents. The rooms were furnished and stocked with numerous supplies, including chairs, boats, chests, weapons, games, dishes, and a variety of foods. The Egyptians believed that human beings had two bodies, a physical one and a spiritual one, which they called the ka. If the physical body was properly preserved (that is, mummified) and the tomb furnished with all the various objects of regular life, the ka could return and continue its life despite the death of the physical body. 18

To preserve the physical body after death, the Egyptians practiced mummification, a process of slowly drying a dead body to prevent it from decomposing. Special workshops, run by priests, performed this procedure, primarily for the wealthy families who could afford it. According to Herodotus, an ancient Greek historian (see Chapter 3) who visited Egypt around 450 B.C., ‘‘The most refined method is as follows: first of all they draw out the brain through the nostrils with an iron hook. . . . Then they make an incision in the flank with a sharp Ethiopian stone through which they extract all the internal organs.’’10 The liver, lungs, stomach, and intestines were placed in four special jars that were put in the tomb with the mummy. The priests then covered the corpse with a natural salt that absorbed the body’s water. Later, they filled the body with spices and wrapped it with layers of linen soaked in resin. At the end of the process, which took about seventy days, a lifelike mask was placed over the head and shoulders of the mummy, which was then sealed in a case and placed in its tomb in a pyramid. The largest and most magnificent of all the pyramids was built under King Khufu. Constructed at Giza around 2540 B.C., this famous Great Pyramid covers 13 acres,

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

Will and Deni McIntyre/Photo Researchers, Inc.

c

The Pyramids at Giza. The three pyramids at Giza, across the Nile River from Cairo, are the most famous in Egypt. At the rear is the largest of the three pyramids, the Great Pyramid of Khufu. Next to it is the pyramid of Khafre. In the foreground is the smaller pyramid of Menkaure standing behind the even smaller pyramids for the pharaohs’ wives. Covering almost 13 acres, the Great Pyramid of Khufu is immense. It is estimated that the Great Pyramid contains 2.3 million stone blocks, each weighing about 2.5 tons.

measures 756 feet at each side of its base, and stands 481 feet high. Its four sides are almost precisely oriented to the four points of the compass. The interior included a grand gallery to the burial chamber, which was built of granite with a lidless sarcophagus for the pharaoh’s body. The Great Pyramid still stands as a visible symbol of the power of Egyptian kings and the spiritual conviction that underlay Egyptian society. No later pyramid ever matched its size or splendor. But an Egyptian pyramid was not just the king’s tomb; it was also an important symbol of royal power. It could be seen for miles as a visible reminder of the glory and might of the ruler, who was a living god on earth. Art and Writing Commissioned by kings or nobles for use in temples and tombs, Egyptian art was largely functional. Wall paintings and statues of gods and kings in temples served a strictly spiritual purpose. They were an integral part of the performance of ritual, which was thought necessary to preserve the cosmic order and hence the well-being of Egypt. Likewise, the mural scenes and sculptured figures found in the tombs had a specific

function. They were supposed to aid the journey of the deceased into the afterworld. Egyptian art was also formulaic. Artists and sculptors were expected to observe a strict canon of proportions that determined both form and presentation. This canon gave Egyptian art a distinctive appearance for thousands of years. Especially characteristic was the convention of combining the profile, semiprofile, and frontal views of the human body in relief work and painting in order to represent each part of the body accurately. The result was an art that was highly stylized yet still allowed distinctive features to be displayed. Writing in Egypt emerged during the first two dynasties. The Greeks later labeled Egyptian writing hieroglyphics, meaning ‘‘priest carvings’’ or ‘‘sacred writings.’’ Hieroglyphs were symbols that depicted objects and had a sacred value at the same time. Although hieroglyphs were later simplified into two scripts for writing purposes, they never developed into an alphabet. Egyptian hieroglyphs were initially carved in stone, but later the two simplified scripts were written on papyrus, a paper made from the papyrus reed that grew along the Nile. Most of the ancient Egyptian literature that has come down to us was written on papyrus rolls and wooden tablets.

Disorder and a New Order: The New Kingdom The Middle Kingdom was brought to an end by a new period of instability. An incursion into the delta region by a people known as the Hyksos initiated this second age of disorder. The Hyksos, a Semitic-speaking people, infiltrated Egypt in the seventeenth century B.C. and came to dominate much of Egypt. However, the presence of the Hyksos was not entirely negative for Egypt. They taught the Egyptians to make bronze for use in new agricultural tools and weapons. The Hyksos also brought new aspects of warfare to Egypt, including the horse-drawn war chariot, a heavier sword, and the compound bow. Eventually, a new line of pharaohs---the eighteenth dynasty--made use of the new weapons to throw off Hyksos domination, reunite Egypt, establish the New Kingdom (c. 1550--1070 B.C.), and launch the Egyptians along a new militaristic and imperialistic path. During the period of the New Kingdom, Egypt became the most powerful state in the Middle East. The Egyptians occupied Canaan and Syria but permitted local princes to rule under Egyptian control. Egyptian armies also moved westward into Libya E GYPTIAN C IVILIZATION : ‘‘T HE G IFT

OF THE

N ILE ’’

19

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE is seen standing in his boat using his throwstick to hunt birds. He holds three birds in his right hand while a cat retrieves two in its claws and holds the wings of another in its teeth. The basic diet of the poor consisted chiefly of bread, and the baking of bread was an important task in all households. The tomb painting on the right, from the eighteenth-dynasty tomb of Mennah, shows two men carrying grain while slave girls fight over leftovers in the background.

and expanded Egypt’s border to the south by conquering the African kingdom of Nubia. The eighteenth dynasty was not without its own troubles, however. Amenhotep IV (c. 1364--1347 B.C.) introduced the worship of Aten, god of the sun disk, as the chief god and pursued his worship with great enthusiasm. Changing his own name to Akhenaten (‘‘Servant of Aten’’), the pharaoh closed the temples of other gods and especially endeavored to lessen the power of Amon-Re and his priesthood at Thebes. Akhenaten strove to reduce the priests’ influence by replacing Thebes as the capital of Egypt with Akhetaten (‘‘Horizon of Aten’’), a new city located at modern Tell el-Amarna, 200 miles north of Thebes. Akhenaten’s attempt at religious change failed. It was too much to ask Egyptians to ignore their traditional ways and beliefs, especially since they saw the destruction of the old gods as subversive of the very cosmic order on which Egypt’s survival and continuing prosperity depended. Moreover, the priests at Thebes were unalterably opposed to the changes, which diminished their influence and power. At the same time, Akhenaten’s preoccupation with religion caused him to ignore foreign affairs and led

to the loss of both Syria and Palestine. Akhenaten’s changes were soon undone after his death by those who influenced his successor, the boy-pharaoh Tutankhamen (1347--1338 B.C.). Tutankhamen returned the government to Thebes and restored the old gods. The Aten experiment had failed to take hold, and the eighteenth dynasty itself came to an end in 1333 B.C. The nineteenth dynasty managed to restore Egyptian power one more time. Under Rameses II (c. 1279--1213 B.C.), the Egyptians regained control of Palestine but were unable to reestablish the borders of their earlier empire. New invasions in the thirteenth century by the ‘‘Sea Peoples,’’ as the Egyptians called them, destroyed Egyptian power in Palestine and drove the Egyptians back within their old frontiers. The days of Egyptian empire were ended, and the New Kingdom itself expired with the end of the twentieth dynasty in 1070 B.C. For the next thousand years, despite periodical revivals of strength, Egypt was dominated by Libyans, Nubians, Persians, and finally Macedonians after the conquest of Alexander the Great (see Chapter 4). In the first century B.C., Egypt became a province in Rome’s mighty empire.

c

c

Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY

Werner Forman/Art Resource, NY

The Egyptian Diet. The diet of the upper and lower classes in ancient Egypt varied considerably. Meat and fowl, including beef, goat, pork, goose, and pigeons, were on the tables of the rich. Although done for sport as well as food, hunting waterfowl in the stands of papyrus reeds that grew along the river’s banks was a favorite pastime of the Egyptian upper classes. Shown on the left is a hunting scene from the eighteenth-dynasty tomb of Nebamun in Thebes. Nebamun, a nobleman,

20

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

Daily Life in Ancient Egypt: Family and Marriage Ancient Egyptians had a very positive attitude toward daily life on earth and followed the advice of the wisdom literature, which suggested that people marry young and establish a home and family. Monogamy was the general rule, although a husband was allowed to keep additional wives if his first wife was childless. Pharaohs were entitled to harems; the queen, however, was acknowledged as the Great Wife, with a status higher than that of the other wives. The husband was master in the house, but wives were very much respected and in charge of the household and education of the children. From a book of wise sayings came this advice: If you are a man of standing, you should found your household and love your wife at home as is fitting. Fill her belly; clothe her back. Ointment is the prescription for her body. Make her heart glad as long as you live. She is a profitable field for her lord. You should not contend with her at law, and keep her far from gaining control. . . . Let her heart be soothed through what may accrue to you; it means keeping her long in your house.11

Women’s property and inheritance remained in their hands, even in marriage. Although most careers and public offices were closed to women, some did operate businesses. Peasant women worked long hours in the fields and at numerous domestic tasks, especially weaving cloth. Upperclass women could function as priestesses, and a few queens even became pharaohs in their own right. Most famous was Hatshepsut in the New Kingdom. She served as regent for her stepson Thutmosis III but assumed the throne for herself and remained in power until her death. Hatshepsut’s reign was a prosperous one, as is especially evident in her building activity. She is most famous for the temple dedicated to herself at Deir el Bahri on the west bank of the Nile at Thebes. As pharaoh, Hatshepsut sent out military expeditions, encouraged mining, fostered agriculture, and sent a trading expedition to lower Africa. Hatshepsut’s official statues sometimes show her clothed and bearded like a king. She was referred to as ‘‘His Majesty.’’ That Hatshepsut was aware of her unusual position is evident from an inscription she had placed on one of her temples. It read, ‘‘Now my heart turns to and fro, in thinking what will the people say, they who shall see E GYPTIAN C IVILIZATION : ‘‘T HE G IFT

OF THE

N ILE ’’

21

show the close and affectionate relationship parents had with both sons and daughters. Although marriages were arranged, some of the surviving love poems from ancient Egypt indicate an element of romance in some marriages. Marriages could and did end in divorce, which was allowed, apparently with compensation for the wife. Adultery, however, was strictly prohibited, and punishments were severe, especially for women, who could have their noses cut off or be burned at the stake.

my monument in after years, and shall speak of what I have done.’’ Marriages were arranged by parents. The primary concerns were family and property, and clearly the chief purpose of marriage was to produce children, especially sons (see the box on p. 21). From the New Kingdom came this piece of wisdom: ‘‘Take to yourself a wife while you are a youth, that she may produce a son for you.’’12 Daughters were not slighted, however. Numerous tomb paintings CONCLUSION Although early civilizations emerged in different parts of the world, the foundations of Western civilization were laid by the Mesopotamians and Egyptians. They developed cities and struggled with the problems of organized states. They developed writing to keep records and created literature. They constructed monumental architecture to please their gods, symbolize their power, and preserve their culture for all time. They developed new political, military, social, and religious structures to deal with the basic problems of human existence and organization. These first literate civilizations left detailed records that allow us to view how they grappled with three of the fundamental problems that humans have pondered: the nature of human relationships, the nature of the universe, and the role of divine forces in the cosmos. Although later

peoples in Western civilization would provide different answers from those of the Mesopotamians and Egyptians, it was they who first posed the questions, gave answers, and wrote them down. At the same time, although the concept of the West did not yet exist, the Mesopotamians’ and Egyptians’ development of writing and a system of numbers, their creation of law codes, and their practice of different roles based on gender would all eventually influence what became Western civilization. By the middle of the second millennium B.C., the creative impulse of the Mesopotamian and Egyptian civilizations was beginning to wane. The invasion of the Sea Peoples around 1200 B.C. ushered in a whole new pattern of petty states and new kingdoms that would lead to the largest empires the ancient Near East had seen.

TIMELINE 5000

B.C.

2500

2000

B.C.

B.C.

Mesopotamia

1500

B.C.

1000

B.C.

Code of Hammurabi Early Dynastic Age of Sumerian city-states Beginning of cuneiform

Egypt

Babylonian kingdom

Akhenaten’s religious upheaval

Great Pyramid Egypt—Middle Kingdom Emergence of Egyptian civilization

Egypt—Old Kingdom

Egypt—New Kingdom

India Indus valley civilization

China Shang dynasty

Central Asia Central Asian civilization

South America Caral, Supe River valley of Peru

22

C H A P T E R 1 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: THE FIRST CIVILIZATIONS

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING The Ancient World For a beautifully illustrated introduction to the ancient world, see Past Worlds: The Times Atlas of Archaeology (Maplewood, N.J., 1988), written by an international group of scholars. A detailed history of the ancient world with chapters written by different specialists is available in the twelve volumes of The Cambridge Ancient History, now in its third edition. Less detailed but sound surveys can be found in L. De Blois and R. J. van der Spek, An Introduction to the Ancient World, trans. S. Mellor (London, 1997), and S. W. Bauer, The History of the Ancient World (New York, 2007). The following works are of considerable value in examining the prehistory of humankind: S. Mithen, After the Ice: A Global Human History, 20,000--5000 B.C.. (Cambridge, Mass., 2006); N. Wade, Before the Dawn: Recovering the Lost History of Our Ancestors (New York, 2006); and D. Lewis-Williams and D. Pearce, Inside the Neolithic Mind (London, 2005). For studies of the role of women in prehistory, see E. Barber, Women’s Work: The First 20,000 Years (New York, 1994), and J. M. Adovasio, O. Soffer, and J. Page, The Invisible Sex: Uncovering the True Roles of Women in Prehistory (New York, 2007). The Ancient Near East Excellent reference tools on the ancient Near East can be found in P. Bienkowski and A. Milward, eds., Dictionary of the Ancient Near East (Philadelphia, 2000), and G. Leick, Who’s Who in the Ancient Near East (London, 1999). General surveys of Mesopotamia and Egypt include A. B. Knapp, The History and Culture of Ancient Western Asia and Egypt (Chicago, 1987), and H. J. Nissen, The Early History of the Ancient Near East, 9000--2000 B.C. (Chicago, 1988). For a detailed survey, see A. Kuhrt, The Ancient Near East, c. 3000--330 B.C., 2 vols. (London, 1995). A brief recent survey can be found in M. van de Mieroop, A History of the Ancient Near East, ca. 3000--323 B.C., 2d ed. (Oxford, 2006). H. W. F. Saggs, Babylonians (Norman, Okla., 1995), and G. Leick, The Babylonians (London, 2003), provide an overview of the peoples of ancient Mesopotamia. On the economic and social history of the ancient Near East, see D. C. Snell, Life in the Ancient Near East (New Haven, Conn., 1997). Ancient Mesopotamia General works on ancient Mesopotamia include J. N. Postgate, Early Mesopotamia: Society and Economy at

the Dawn of History (London, 1992), and S. Pollack, Ancient Mesopotamia (Cambridge, 1999). A beautifully illustrated survey can be found in M. Roaf, Cultural Atlas of Mesopotamia and the Ancient Near East (New York, 1996). The world of the Sumerians has been well described in S. N. Kramer, The Sumerians (Chicago, 1963) and History Begins at Sumer (New York, 1959). See also the summary of the historical and archaeological evidence by H. Crawford, Sumer and the Sumerians, 2d ed. (Cambridge, 2004). The fundamental work on the spiritual perspective of ancient Mesopotamia is T. Jacobsen, The Treasures of Darkness: A History of Mesopotamian Religion (New Haven, Conn., 1976), but also see J. Botte´ro, Religion in Ancient Mesopotamia (Chicago, 2001). On daily life, see S. Bertman, Handbook to Life in Ancient Mesopotamia (New York, 2003). Ancient Egypt For a good introduction to ancient Egypt, see the beautifully illustrated works by M. Hayes, The Egyptians (New York, 1997); D. P. Silverman, ed., Ancient Egypt (New York, 1997); and M. Millman, Imagining Egypt (New York, 2007). Other general surveys include I. Shaw, ed., The Oxford History of Ancient Egypt (New York, 2000), and D. J. Brewer, Ancient Egypt: Foundations of a Civilization (New York, 2005), on Egypt before the period of the Old Kingdom. On Akhenaten and his religious changes, see D. P. Silverman et al., Akhenaten and Tutankhamun: Revolution and Restoration (New York, 2006). Egyptian religion is covered in S. Quirke, Ancient Egyptian Religion (London, 1992). On Egyptian culture in general, see J. A. Wilson, The Culture of Ancient Egypt (Chicago, 1956). An important study on women is G. Robins, Women in Ancient Egypt (Cambridge, Mass., 1993). Daily life can be examined in E. Strouhal, Life of the Ancient Egyptians (Norman, Okla., 1992).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

C ONCLUSION

23

24

CHAPTER 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

On the Fringes of Civilization What is the significance of Indo-European-speaking peoples?

Alinari/Regione Umbria/Art Resource, NY

Q

The Hebrews: ‘‘The Children of Israel’’

Q

In what ways was the Jewish faith unique in the ancient Near East, and how did it evolve over time? Who were the neighbors of the Israelites, and what was their significance?

Q

What methods and institutions did the Assyrians use to amass and maintain their empire?

The Persian Empire

Q

What methods and institutions did the Persians use to amass and maintain their empire, and how did these differ from those of the Assyrians?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

What is the relationship between the political history of the Israelites and the evolution of their religious beliefs?

c

The Assyrian Empire A medieval Italian manuscript version of the judgment of Solomon

AROUND 970 B.C., Solomon came to the throne of Israel, a small state in western Asia. He was lacking in military prowess but excelled in many other ways. Through trade and a series of foreign alliances, he created a strong, flourishing state. But he was especially famed for his skill as a judge. When two women came before him, each claiming that the same infant was her natural child, Solomon ordered his servant to cut the child in half and give half to each woman. The first woman objected: ‘‘Please, my lord, give her the living baby! Don’t kill him!’’ The second woman replied, ‘‘Neither I nor you shall have him. Cut him in two!’’ Then Solomon rendered his judgment: ‘‘Give the living baby to the first woman. Do not kill him; she is his mother.’’ According to the biblical account, ‘‘When all Israel heard the verdict the king had given, they held the king in awe, because they saw that he had wisdom from God to administer justice.’’ After Solomon’s death, Israel began to disintegrate. But how had such a small nation been able to survive as long as it did in a Near East dominated by mighty empires? The weakening of Egypt around 1200 B.C. left no dominant powers in the Near East, allowing a patchwork of petty kingdoms and city-states to emerge, especially in Syria and Canaan. One of these small states, the Hebrew nation known as Israel, has played a 25

Adam Woolfitt/CORBIS

role in Western civilization completely disproportionate to its size. The Hebrews played a minor part in the politics of the ancient Near East, but their spiritual heritage, in the form of Judeo-Christian values, is one of the basic pillars of Western civilization. The small states did not last. Ever since the first city-states had arisen in the Near East around 3000 B.C., there had been a movement toward the creation of larger territorial states with more sophisticated systems of control. This process reached a high point in the first millennium B.C. with the assembling of vast empires. Between 1000 and 500 B.C., the Assyrians, the Chaldeans, and the Persians all established empires that encompassed large areas of the ancient Near East. Each had impressive and grandiose capital cities that emphasized the power and wealth of its rulers. Each brought peace and order for a time by employing new administrative techniques. Each eventually fell to other conquerors. In the long run, these large empires had less impact on Western civilization than the Hebrew people. In human history, the power of ideas is often more significant than the power of empires.

Q Focus Question: What is the significance of IndoEuropean-speaking peoples?

Western civilization took root in Mesopotamia and Egypt, but significant developments were also taking place on the fringes of these cultures. Farming had spread into the Balkan peninsula of Europe by 6500 B.C., and by 4000 B.C. it was well established in southern France, central Europe, and the coastal regions of the Mediterranean. Although migrating farmers from the Near East may have brought some farming techniques into Europe, historians now believe that the Neolithic peoples of Europe domesticated animals and began to farm largely on their own. One outstanding feature of late Neolithic Europe was the building of megalithic structures. Megalith is Greek for ‘‘large stone.’’ Radiocarbon dating, a technique that allows scientists to determine the age of objects, shows that the first megalithic structures were built around 4000 B.C., more than a thousand years before the great pyramids were built in Egypt. Between 3200 and 1500 B.C., standing stones that were placed in circles or lined up in rows were erected throughout the British Isles and northwestern France. Other megalithic constructions have been found as far north as Scandinavia and as far south as the islands of Corsica, Sardinia, and Malta. Some archaeologists have demonstrated that the stone circles were used as observatories to detect not only such simple astronomical phenomena as the midwinter and midsummer sunrises but also such sophisticated observations as the major and minor standstills of the moon. 26

c

On the Fringes of Civilization Stonehenge. The Bronze Age in northwestern Europe is known for its megaliths, or large standing stones. Between 3200 and 1500 B.C., standing stones arranged in circles or lined up in rows were erected throughout the British Isles and northwestern France. The most famous of these megalithic constructions is Stonehenge in England.

By far the most famous of these megalithic constructions is Stonehenge in England. Stonehenge consists of a series of concentric rings of standing stones. Its construction sometime between 2100 and 1900 B.C. was no small accomplishment. The eighty bluestones used at Stonehenge, for example, weigh 4 tons each and were transported to the site from their original source 135 miles away. Like other megalithic structures, Stonehenge indicates a remarkable awareness of astronomy on the part of its builders, as well as an impressive coordination of workers.

The Impact of the Indo-Europeans For many historians, both the details of construction and the purpose of the megalithic structures of Europe remain a mystery. Also puzzling is the role of Indo-European people. The name Indo-European refers to people who used a language derived from a single parent tongue. IndoEuropean languages include Greek, Latin, Persian, Sanskrit, and the Germanic languages (see Table 2.1). It has been suggested that the original Indo-European-speaking peoples were based somewhere in the steppe region north of the Black Sea or in southwestern Asia, in modern Iran or Afghanistan. Although there had been earlier migrations, around 2000 B.C. these people began major nomadic

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

TABLE 2.1 Some Indo-European Languages

SUBFAMILY

LANGUAGES

Indo-Iranian Balto-Slavic

Sanskrit, Persian Russian, Serbo-Croatian, Czech, Polish, Lithuanian Greek Latin, Romance languages (French, Italian, Spanish, Portuguese, Romanian) Irish, Gaelic Swedish, Danish, Norwegian, German, Dutch, English

Hellenic Italic Celtic Germanic

NOTE: Languages in italic type are no longer spoken.

movements into Europe (including present-day Italy and Greece), India, and western Asia. One group of IndoEuropeans who moved into Asia Minor and Anatolia (modern Turkey) around 1750 B.C. coalesced with the native peoples to form the Hittite kingdom with its capital at Hattusha (Bogazko¨y in modern Turkey). The Hittite Empire Starting around 1600 B.C., the Hittites assembled their own empire in western Asia and even threatened the power of the Egyptians. The Hittites were the first of the Indo-European peoples to make use of iron, enabling them to construct weapons that were stronger and cheaper to make because of the widespread availability of iron ore. Hittite power faltered around 1200 B.C., in part due to internal problems but also as a result of attacks from the west by the Sea Peoples, groups of unknown origin who moved across the Mediterranean in the late thirteenth and early twelfth centuries B.C., and also by an aggressive tribe known as the Gasga, who raided Hittite cities. By 1190 B.C., Hittite power was at an end. During its heyday, however, the Hittite Empire was one of the great powers in western Asia. The Hittite ruler, known as the Great King, controlled the core areas of the kingdom but in western and southern Anatolia and Syria allowed local rulers to swear allegiance to him as vassals. Constant squabbling over succession to the throne, however, tended to weaken royal authority at times. During its height, the Hittite Empire also demonstrated an interesting ability to assimilate other cultures into its own. In languages, literature, art, law, and religion, the Hittites borrowed much from Mesopotamia as well as the native peoples that they had subdued. Recent scholarship has stressed the important role of the Hittites in transmitting Mesopotamian culture, as they transformed it, to later Western civilization in the Mediterranean area, especially to the Mycenaean Greeks (see Chapter 3). The crumbling of the Hittite kingdom and the weakening of Egypt after 1200 B.C. left a power vacuum in

western Asia, allowing a patchwork of petty kingdoms and city-states to emerge, especially in the area at the eastern end of the Mediterranean Sea. The Hebrews were one of these peoples.

The Hebrews: ‘‘The Children of Israel’’

Q Focus Questions: In what ways was the Jewish faith

unique in the ancient Near East, and how did it evolve over time? Who were the neighbors of the Israelites, and what was their significance?

The Hebrews were a Semitic-speaking people who had a tradition concerning their origins and history that was eventually written down as part of the Hebrew Bible, known to Christians as the Old Testament. Describing themselves originally as nomads organized in clans, the Hebrews’ tradition states that they were descendants of the patriarch Abraham, who had migrated from Mesopotamia to Canaan, where they became identified as the ‘‘Children of Israel.’’ Again according to tradition, a drought in Canaan caused many Hebrews to migrate to Egypt, where they lived peacefully until they were enslaved by pharaohs who used them as laborers on building projects. These Hebrews remained in bondage until Moses led them eastward out of Egypt in the Exodus, which some historians have argued would have occurred in the first half of the thirteenth century B.C. According to the biblical account, the Hebrews then wandered for many years in the desert until they entered Canaan. Organized into twelve tribes, they became embroiled in conflict with the Philistines, a people who had settled in the coastal area of Canaan but were beginning to move into the inland areas. Many scholars today doubt that the early books of the Hebrew Bible reflect the true history of the early Israelites. They argue that the early books of the Bible, written centuries after the events described, preserve only what the Israelites came to believe about themselves and that recent archaeological evidence often contradicts the details of the biblical account. Some of these scholars have even argued that the Israelites were not nomadic invaders but indigenous peoples in the Canaanite hill country. What is generally agreed, however, is that between 1200 and 1000 B.C., the Israelites emerged as a distinct group of people, possibly organized in tribes or a league of tribes, who established a united kingdom known as Israel.

The United Kingdom The first king of the Israelites was Saul (c. 1020--1000 B.C.), who initially achieved some success in the ongoing struggle with the Philistines. But after his death in a disastrous T HE H EBREWS : ‘‘T HE C HILDREN

OF

I SRAEL’’

27

battle with this enemy, a brief period of anarchy ensued until one of Saul’s lieutenants, David (c. 1000--970 B.C.), reunited the Israelites, defeated the Philistines, and established control over all of Canaan (see Map 2.1). According to the biblical account, some of his conquests led to harsh treatment for the conquered people: ‘‘David also defeated the Moabites. He made them lie down on the ground and measured them off with a length of cord. Every two lengths of them were put to death, and the third length was allowed to live. So the Moabites became subject

to David and brought tribute.’’1 Among David’s conquests was the city of Jerusalem, which he made into the capital of a united kingdom. David centralized Israel’s political organization and accelerated the integration of the Israelites into a settled community based on farming and urban life. David’s son Solomon (c. 970--930 B.C.) did even more to strengthen royal power. He expanded the political and military establishments and was especially active in extending the trading activities of the Israelites. Solomon is best known for his building projects, the most famous of which was the Temple in Jerusalem. The Israelites viewed the Temple as the symbolic center of their religion and hence of the kingdom of Israel itself. The Temple now housed the Ark of the Covenant, a holy chest containing the sacred relics of the Hebrew religion and, symbolically, the throne of the invisible God of Israel. Under Solomon, ancient Israel was at the height of its power, but his efforts to extend royal power throughout his kingdom led to dissatisfaction among some of his subjects.

The Divided Kingdom After Solomon’s death, tensions in Israel between the northern and southern tribes led to the establishment of two separate kingdoms---the kingdom of Israel, composed of the ten northern tribes, with its capital eventually at Samaria, and the southern kingdom of Judah, consisting of two tribes, with its capital at Jerusalem. In 722 or 721 B.C., the Assyrians destroyed Samaria, overran the kingdom of Israel, and deported many Israelites to other parts of the Assyrian Empire. These dispersed Israelites (the ‘‘ten lost tribes’’) merged with neighboring peoples and gradually lost their identity. The southern kingdom of Judah was also forced to pay tribute to Assyria but managed to retain its independence as Assyrian power declined. A new enemy, however, appeared on the horizon. The Chaldeans brought the final destruction of Assyria, conquered the kingdom of Judah, and completely destroyed Jerusalem in 586 B.C. Many people from Judah were deported to Babylonia; the memory of their exile is still evoked in the stirring words of Psalm 137: MAP 2.1 The Israelites and Their Neighbors in the First Millennium B. C. United under Saul, David, and Solomon,

greater Israel split into two states—Israel and Judah—after the death of Solomon. With power divided, the Israelites could not resist invasions that dispersed many Jews from Canaan. Some, such as the ‘‘ten lost tribes,’’ never returned. Others were sent to Babylon but were later allowed to return under the rule of the Persians. Q Why was Israel more vulnerable to the Assyrian Empire than Judah was? 28

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

By the rivers of Babylon, we sat and wept when we remembered Zion. . . . How can we sing the songs of the Lord while in a foreign land? If I forget you, O Jerusalem, may my right hand forget its skill. May my tongue cling to the roof of my mouth if I do not remember you, if I do not consider Jerusalem my highest joy.2

c

Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY

CHRONOLOGY The Israelites

Exiles from Judah. The Assyrians overran the kingdom of Israel in 722 or 721 B.C., destroyed the capital city of Samaria, and then began an assault on the kingdom of Judah. In this eighth-century relief from the palace of Sennacherib at Nineveh, captives with animals and baggage are shown on their way into exile after the Assyrian conquest of the fortified town of Lachish in Judah in 701 B.C. A woman and child have been allowed to travel on the cart. The Assyrians failed, however, to take Jerusalem, and Judah remained independent, although it was forced to pay tribute to the Assyrians.

But the Babylonian captivity of the people of Judah did not last. A new set of conquerors, the Persians, destroyed the Chaldean kingdom but allowed the people of Judah to return to Jerusalem and rebuild their city and temple. The revived kingdom of Judah remained under Persian control until the conquests of Alexander the Great in the fourth century B.C. The people of Judah survived, eventually becoming known as the Jews and giving their name to Judaism, the religion of Yahweh, the Israelite God.

The Spiritual Dimensions of Israel The spiritual perspective of the Israelites evolved over time. Early Israelites probably worshiped many gods, including nature spirits dwelling in trees and rocks. For some Israelites, Yahweh was the chief god of Israel, but many, including kings of Israel and Judah, worshiped other gods as well. It was among the Babylonian exiles that Yahweh, the God of Israel, came to be regarded as the only God. After the return of these exiles to Judah, their point of view eventually became dominant, and pure monotheism, the belief that there is only one God, came to be the major tenet of Judaism. ‘‘I Am the Lord Your God’’: Ruler of the World According to the Jewish conception, there is but one God,

Saul---first king

c. 1020--1000 B.C.

King David

c. 1000--970 B.C.

King Solomon

c. 970--930 B.C.

Northern kingdom of Israel destroyed by Assyria

722 or 721 B.C.

Southern kingdom of Judah falls to Chaldeans; destruction of Jerusalem

586 B.C.

Return of exiles to Jerusalem

538 B.C.

whom the Jews called Yahweh. God is the creator of the world and everything in it. To the Jews, the gods of all other peoples were merely idols. The Jewish God ruled the world; he was subject to nothing. All peoples were his servants, whether they knew it or not. This God was also transcendent. He had created nature but was not in nature. The stars, moon, rivers, wind, and other natural phenomena were not divinities or suffused with divinity, as other peoples of the ancient Near East believed, but they were God’s handiwork. All of God’s creations could be admired for their awesome beauty but not worshiped as gods. This omnipotent creator of the universe was not removed from the life he had created, however, but was a just and good God who expected goodness from his people. If they did not obey his will, they would be punished. But he was also a God of mercy and love: ‘‘The Lord is gracious and compassionate, slow to anger and rich in love. The Lord is good to all; he has compassion on all he has made.’’3 Despite the powerful dimensions of God as creator and sustainer of the universe, the Jewish message also emphasized that each person could have a personal relationship with this powerful being. As the psalmist sang, ‘‘My help comes from the Lord, the Maker of heaven and earth. He will not let your foot slip---he who watches over you will not slumber.’’4 ‘‘You Only Have I Chosen’’: Covenant and Law Three aspects of the Hebrew religious tradition had special significance: the covenant, law, and the prophets. The Israelites believed that during the Exodus from Egypt, when Moses supposedly led his people out of bondage into the ‘‘promised land,’’ a special event occurred that determined the Jewish experience for all time. According to tradition, God entered into a covenant or contract with the tribes of Israel, who believed that Yahweh had spoken to them through Moses (see the box on p. 30). The Israelites promised to obey Yahweh and follow his law. In return, Yahweh promised to take special care of his chosen people, ‘‘a peculiar treasure unto me above all people.’’ T HE H EBREWS : ‘‘T HE C HILDREN

OF

I SRAEL’’

29

THE COVENANT AND

THE

During the Exodus from Egypt, the Hebrews are said to have made a covenant with Yahweh. They agreed to obey their God and follow his law. In return, Yahweh promised to take special care of his chosen people. This selection from the biblical book of Exodus describes the making of the covenant and God’s commandments to the Israelites.

Exodus 19:1--8 In the third month after the Israelites left Egypt---on the very day--they came to the desert of Sinai. After they set out from Rephidim, they entered the desert of Sinai, and Israel camped there in the desert in front of the mountain. Then Moses went up to God, and the Lord called to him from the mountain, and said, ‘‘This is what you are to say to the house of Jacob and what you are to tell the people of Israel: ‘You yourselves have seen what I did to Egypt, and how I carried you on eagles’ wings and brought you to myself. Now if you obey me fully and keep my covenant, then out of all nations you will be my treasured possession. Although the whole earth is mine, you will be for me a kingdom of priests and a holy nation.’ These are the words you are to speak to the Israelites.’’ So Moses went back and summoned the elders of the people and set before them all the words the Lord had commanded him to speak. The people all responded together, ‘‘We will do everything the Lord has said.’’ So Moses brought their answer back to the Lord.

Exodus 20:1--17 And God spoke all these words: ‘‘I am the Lord your God, who brought you out of Egypt, out of the land of slavery. You shall have

This covenant between Yahweh and his chosen people could be fulfilled, however, only by obedience to the law of God. Law became a crucial element of the Jewish world and had a number of different dimensions. In some instances, it set forth specific requirements, such as payments for offenses. Most important, since the major characteristic of God was his goodness, ethical concerns stood at the center of the law. Sometimes these took the form of specific standards of moral behavior: ‘‘You shall not murder. You shall not commit adultery. You shall not steal.’’5 But these concerns were also expressed in decrees that regulated the economic, social, religious, and political life of the community, since God’s laws of morality applied to all areas of life. These laws made no class distinctions and emphasized the protection of the poor, widows, orphans, and slaves. The Prophets The Israelites believed that certain religious leaders or ‘‘holy men,’’ called prophets, were sent by God to serve as his voice to his people. The golden age of the prophets began in the mid-eighth century B.C. and 30

LAW: THE BOOK OF EXODUS no other gods before me. You shall not make for yourself an idol in the form of anything in heaven above or on the earth beneath or in the waters below. You shall not bow down to them or worship them; for I, the Lord your God, am a jealous God, punishing the children for the sin of the fathers to the third and fourth generation of those who hate, but showing love to a thousand generations of those who love me and keep my commandments. You shall not misuse the name of the Lord your God, for the Lord will not hold anyone guiltless who misuse his name. Remember the Sabbath day by keeping it holy. Six days you shall labor and do all your work, but the seventh day is a Sabbath to the Lord your God. On it you shall not do any work, neither you, nor your son or daughter, nor your manservant or maidservant, nor your animals, nor the alien within your gates. For in six days the Lord made the heavens and the earth, the sea, and all that is in them, but he rested on the seventh day. Therefore the Lord blessed the Sabbath day and made it holy. Honor your father and your mother, so that you may live long in the land the Lord your God is giving you. You shall not murder. You shall not commit adultery. You shall not steal. You shall not give false testimony against your neighbor. You shall not covet your neighbor’s house. You shall not covet your neighbor’s wife, or his manservant or maidservant, his ox or donkey, or anything that belongs to your neighbor.’’

Q What was the nature of the covenant between Yahweh and the Israelites? What was its moral significance for the Israelites? How might you explain its differences from Hammurabi’s Code?

continued during the time when the people of Israel and Judah were threatened by Assyrian and Chaldean conquerors. These ‘‘men of God’’ went through the land warning the Israelites that they had failed to keep God’s commandments and would be punished for breaking the covenant: ‘‘I will punish you for all your iniquities.’’ Amos prophesied the fall of the northern kingdom of Israel to Assyria; twenty years later, Isaiah said the kingdom of Judah too would fall (see the box on p. 31). Out of the words of the prophets came new concepts that enriched the Jewish tradition and ultimately Western civilization, including a notion of universalism and a yearning for social justice. Although the Jews’ religious practices gave them a sense of separateness from other peoples, the prophets transcended this by embracing a concern for all humanity. All nations would someday come to the God of Israel: ‘‘All the earth shall worship you.’’ A universal community of all people under God would someday be established by Israel’s effort. This vision encompassed the elimination of war and the

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

THE HEBREW PROPHETS: MICAH, ISAIAH, The Hebrew prophets warned the Israelites that they must obey God’s commandments or face being punished for breaking their covenant with God. These selections from the biblical prophets Micah, Isaiah, and Amos make clear that God’s punishment would fall on the Israelites for their sins. Even the Assyrians, as Isaiah indicated, would be used as God’s instrument to punish them.

Micah 6:9--16 Listen! The Lord is calling to the city---and to fear your name is wisdom---‘‘Heed the rod and the One who appointed it. Am I still to forget, O wicked house, your ill-gotten treasures . . . ? Shall I acquit a man with dishonest scales, with a bag of false weights? Her rich men are violent; her people are liars and their tongues speak deceitfully. Therefore, I have begun to destroy you, to ruin you because of your sins. You will eat but not be satisfied; your stomach will still be empty. You will store up but save nothing, because what you save I will give to the sword. You will plant but not harvest; you will press olives but not use the oil on yourselves, you will crush grapes but not drink the wine. . . . Therefore I will give you over to ruin and your people to derision; you will bear the scorn of the nations.’’

AND

AMOS

Isaiah 10:1--6 Woe to those who make unjust laws, to those who issue oppressive decrees, to deprive the poor of their rights and withhold justice from the oppressed of my people, making their prey and robbing the fatherless. What will you do on the day of reckoning, when disaster comes from afar? To whom will you run for help? Where will you leave your riches? Nothing will remain but to cringe among the captives or fall among the slain. Yet for all this, his anger is not turned away, his hand is still upraised. ‘‘Woe to the Assyrian, the rod of my anger, in whose hand is the club of my wrath! I send him against a godless nation, I dispatch him against a people who anger me, to seize loot and snatch plunder, and to trample them down like mud in the streets.’’

Amos 3:1--2 Hear this word the Lord has spoken against you, O people of Israel---against the whole family I brought up out of Egypt: ‘‘You only have I chosen of all the families of the earth; therefore, I will punish you for all your sins.’’

Q

What did the Hebrew prophets focus on as the transgressions of the Israelities? What do these selections tell you about the nature of the Israelities as a ‘‘chosen’’ people?

c

Giraudon/Art Resource, NY

establishment of peace for all the nations of the world. In the words of the prophet Isaiah, ‘‘He will judge between the nations and will settle disputes for many people. They will beat their swords into plowshares and their spears into pruning hooks. Nation will not take up sword against nation, nor will they train for war anymore.’’6 The prophets also cried out against social injustice. They condemned the rich for causing the poor to suffer, denounced luxuries as worthless, and warned of dire punishments for these sins. God’s command was to live justly, share with one’s neighbors, care for the poor and the unfortunate, and act with compassion. When God’s command was not followed, the social fabric of the community was threatened. These proclamations by Israel’s prophets became a source for Western ideals of social justice, even if they have never been perfectly realized. Although the prophets eventually developed a sense of universalism, the demands of the Jewish religion---the Hebrew Law. Because of the supposed covenant between Yahweh and the Israelites, law became an important part of Jewish life. Seen here is a twelfth-century manuscript page of the Mishneh Torah, a fourteen-volume study of all of Jewish law by Moses Maimonides, the foremost Jewish philosopher of the Middle Ages.

T HE H EBREWS : ‘‘T HE C HILDREN

OF

I SRAEL’’

31

A tl a n ti c Ocean

GA GAUL

Rhin e R .

Po R .

Corsica Cors ica ica ic ca

Gade G aade d s

c Baleari

Isla

s nd Sard rddinnia

250 500 750 Kilometers 250

500 Miles

Sici SSic ici ic cilyy ci

Med

Trip polis olis oli is is

Cret ette ete

iterra

Cyprrus us

nean Sea

Tigris R .

hrate s

Byblos B Sidon Tyre

R.

Nauc N Na a ratiss Ni l e

Phoenicia Area of Phoenician settlement Phoenician trade routes

ASIA MINOR

GR GREE GR REE C E Ath Athe A At the the hennss

p Eu

R.

Red R d Sea

Phoenician Colonies and Trade Routes, c. 800 B. C.

They charted new routes, not only in the Mediterranean but also in the Atlantic Ocean, where they sailed south along the west coast of Africa. The Phoenicians established a number of colonies in the western Mediterranean, including settlements in southern Spain, Sicily, and Sardinia. Carthage, the Phoenicians’ most famous colony, was located on the North African coast. Culturally, the Phoenicians are best known as transmitters. Instead of using pictographs or signs to represent whole words and syllables as the Mesopotamians and Egyptians did, the Phoenicians simplified their writing by using twenty-two different signs to represent the sounds of their speech. These twenty-two characters or letters could be used to spell out all the words in the Phoenician language. Although the Phoenicians were not the only people to invent an alphabet, theirs would have special significance because it was eventually passed on to the Greeks. From the Greek alphabet was derived the Roman alphabet that we still use today (see Table 2.2). The Phoenicians

TABLE 2.2 A Comparison of the Phoenician, Greek, and Latin Alphabets (Letters A--F)

SOURCE: Andrew Robinson, The Story of Writing (London: Thames & Hudson, 1995), p. 170. 32

Black Sea

Y

The Israelites were not the only people living in Canaan. The Philistines, who invaded from the sea, established five towns on the coastal plain of the region. They settled down as farmers and eventually entered into conflict with the Israelites. Although the Philistines were newcomers to the area, the Phoenicians had resided there for some time but now found themselves with a new independence. A Semitic-speaking people, the Phoenicians resided along the Mediterranean coast on a narrow band of land 120 miles long. They had rebuilt their major cities after destruction by the Sea Peoples. Their newfound political independence helped the Phoenicians expand the trade that was already the foundation of their prosperity. In fact, the Phoenician city of Byblos had been the principal distribution center for Egyptian papyrus outside Egypt (the Greek word for book, biblos, is derived from the name Byblos). The chief cities of Phoenicia---Byblos, Tyre, and Sidon---were ports on the eastern Mediterranean, but they also served as distribution centers for the lands to the east in Mesopotamia. The Phoenicians themselves produced a number of goods for foreign markets, including purple dye, glass, wine, and lumber from the famous cedars of Lebanon. In addition, the Phoenicians improved their ships and became great international sea traders.

R.

AL

SPAIN

Cart Cart Carthage arrthhage haaag hag g

The Neighbors of the Israelites

Da nub e

IT

obligation to obey their God---encouraged a separation between the Jews and their non-Jewish neighbors. Unlike most other peoples of the Near East, Jews could not simply be amalgamated into a community by accepting the gods of their conquerors and their neighbors. To remain faithful to the demands of their God, they might even have to refuse loyalty to political leaders.

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

achieved much while independent, but they ultimately fell subject to the Assyrians, Chaldeans, and Persians.

The Assyrian Empire

Q Focus Question: What methods and institutions did

the Assyrians use to amass and maintain their empire?

resources of the empire. The Assyrians also developed an efficient system of communication to administer their empire more effectively. A network of posting stages was established throughout the empire that used relays of horses (mules or donkeys in mountainous terrain) to carry messages. The system was so effective that a provincial governor anywhere in the empire (except Egypt) could send a query and receive an answer from the king within a week.

is gr Ti

The existence of independent states in Canaan was possible only because of the power vacuum existing in the The Assyrian Military Machine ancient Near East after the demise of the Hittite kingdom and the weakening of Egypt. But this condition did not The ability of the Assyrians to conquer and maintain an last; new empires soon came to dominate vast stretches of empire was due to a combination of factors. Over many the ancient Near East. The first of these empires emerged years of practice, the Assyrians developed effective military in Assyria, an area whose location on the upper Tigris leaders and fighters. They were able to enlist and deploy River brought it into both cultural and political contact troops numbering in the hundreds of thousands, although with southern Mesopotamia. most campaigns were not conducted on such a large scale. In Although part of Mesopotamia, Assyria, with its hills 845 B.C., an Assyrian army of 120,000 men crossed the Euand adequate, if not ample, rainfall, had a different terphrates on a campaign. Size alone was not decisive, however. rain and climate. The Assyrians were a Semiticspeaking people who exploited the use of iron weapons to establish an empire by Cas pia n Assyrian Empire, c. 700 B.C. 700 B.C. that included Mesopotamia, parts of S ea the Iranian plateau, sections of Asia Minor, Neo-Babylonian Empire, c. 562 B.C. Syria, Canaan, and Egypt down to Thebes ASIA Kho hhoorrs rsa s bad (see Map 2.2). Ashurbanipal (669--626 B.C.) MINOR Nineveh veh was one of the strongest Assyrian rulers, but Nimrud it was already becoming apparent during his Tau Euphra Ashur rus Mts. tes reign that the Assyrian Empire was greatly SYRIA ELAM R. overextended. Internal strife intensified as CYP PRU PR US S PH HOENICIA A Susa S R. powerful Assyrian nobles gained control of Babylon on n Byblos vast territories and waged their own private M ed i t e r r a n e a n Ty yre yre BABYLONIA BA BABYLON Y N Sea military campaigns. Moreover, subject peoUr ples, such as the Babylonians, greatly reJerusaalem m Persian ead sented Assyrian rule and rebelled against it. CANA CA CANA AA AN N DSea Gulf Arabian a Soon after Ashurbanipal’s reign, the Assyrian Desert Empire began to disintegrate rapidly. The Mem mphis capital city of Nineveh fell to a coalition of Chaldeans and Medes in 612 B.C., and in 605 EGYPT Y B.C. the rest of the empire was finally divided Ni le between the coalition powers. Red 0 200 400 600 Kilometers R Sahara

Organization of the Empire At its height, the Assyrian Empire was ruled by kings whose power was considered absolute. Under their leadership, the empire became well organized. By eliminating governorships held by nobles on a hereditary basis and instituting a new hierarchy of local officials directly responsible to the king, the Assyrian kings gained greater control over the

.

T bes The es

Sea

200

400 Miles

MAP 2.2 The Assyrian and Neo-Babylonian Empires. The Assyrian Empire expanded in large part due to its brutal military methods. It maintained its rule through use of a common language and religion, along with extremely violent suppression of internal revolts. It was overthrown by Chaldeans in Babylonia, leading to the Neo-Babylonian Empire epitomized by Nebuchadnezzar. Q Why was control of Babylonia crucial to both empires? View an animated version of this map or related maps at www.cengage.com/history/ spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

T HE A SSYRIAN E MPIRE

33

THE ASSYRIAN MILITARY MACHINE The Assyrians won a reputation for having a mighty military machine. They were able to use a variety of military tactics and were successful whether they were employing guerrilla warfare, fighting set battles, or laying siege to cities. In these three selections, Assyrian kings describe their military conquests.

King Sennacherib (704--681 B.C.) Describes a Battle with the Elamites in 691 B.C. At the command of the god Ashur, the great Lord, I rushed upon the enemy like the approach of a hurricane. . . . I put them to rout and turned them back. I transfixed the troops of the enemy with javelins and arrows. . . . I cut their throats like sheep. . . . My prancing steeds, trained to harness, plunged into their welling blood as into a river; the wheels of my battle chariot were bespattered with blood and filth. I filled the plain with the corpses of their warriors like herbage. . . . As to the sheikhs of the Chaldeans, panic from my onslaught overwhelmed them like a demon. They abandoned their tents and fled for their lives, crushing the corpses of their troop as they went. . . . In their terror they passed scalding urine and voided their excrement into their chariots.

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

Q As seen in their own descriptions, what did Assyrian kings believe was important for military success? Do you think their accounts may be exaggerated? Why?

The Assyrian army was extremely well organized and disciplined. It included a standing army of infantrymen as its core, accompanied by cavalrymen and horse-drawn war chariots that were used as mobile platforms for shooting arrows. Moreover, the Assyrians had the advantage of having the first large armies equipped with iron weapons. The Hittites had been the first to develop iron metallurgy, but iron came to be used extensively only after new methods for hardening it became common after 1000 B.C. Another factor in the army’s success was its ability to use various military tactics (see the box above). The Assyrians were skilled at waging guerrilla war in the mountains and set battles on open ground and were especially renowned for siege warfare. They would hammer a city’s walls with heavy, wheeled siege towers and armored battering rams while sappers dug tunnels to undermine the walls’ foundations and cause them to collapse. The besieging Assyrian armies learned to cut off supplies so effectively that if a city did not fall to them, the inhabitants could be starved into submission. 34

A final factor in the effectiveness of the Assyrian military machine was its ability to create a climate of terror as an instrument of war. The Assyrians became famous for their terror tactics, although some historians believe that their policies were no worse than those of other conquerors. As a matter of regular policy, the Assyrians laid waste the land in which they were fighting, smashing dams, looting and destroying towns, setting crops on fire, and cutting down trees, particularly fruit trees. The Assyrians were especially known for committing atrocities on their captives. King Ashurnasirpal II recorded this account of his treatment of prisoners: 3000 of their combat troops I felled with weapons. . . . Many of the captives taken from them I burned in a fire. Many I took alive; from some of these I cut off their hands to the wrist, from others I cut off their noses, ears and fingers; I put out the eyes of many of the soldiers. . . . I burned their young men and women to death.7

After conquering another city, the same king wrote, ‘‘I fixed up a pile of corpses in front of the city’s gate. I flayed

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

the nobles, as many as had rebelled, and spread their skins out on the piles. . . . I flayed many within my land and spread their skins out on the walls.’’8 (Obviously not a king to play games with!) Note that this policy of extreme cruelty to prisoners was not used against all enemies but was reserved primarily for those who were already part of the empire and then rebelled against Assyrian rule.

Assyrian Society and Culture

c

Werner Forman/Art Resource, NY

Unlike the Hebrews, the Assyrians were not fearful of mixing with other peoples. In fact, the Assyrian policy of deporting many prisoners of newly conquered territories to Assyria created a polyglot society in which ethnic differences were not very important. It has been estimated that over a period of three centuries, between four and five million people were deported to Assyria, resulting in a population that was very racially and linguistically mixed. What gave identity to the Assyrians themselves was their language, although even that was akin to that of their southern neighbors in Babylonia, who also spoke a Semitic tongue. Religion was also a cohesive force. Assyria was literally ‘‘the land of Ashur,’’ a reference to its chief god. The king, as the human representative of the god Ashur, provided a unifying focus. Agriculture formed the principal basis of Assyrian life. Assyria was a land of farming villages with relatively few significant cities, especially in comparison to southern Mesopotamia. Unlike the river valleys, where farming required the minute organization of large numbers of

people to control irrigation, Assyrian farms received sufficient moisture from regular rainfall. Trade was second to agriculture in economic importance. For internal trade, metals, such as gold, silver, copper, and bronze, were used as a medium of exchange. Various agricultural products also served as a form of payment or exchange. Because of their geographical location, the Assyrians served as middlemen and participated in an international trade in which they imported timber, wine, and precious metals and stones while exporting textiles produced in palaces, temples, and private villas. Assyrian culture was a hybrid. The Assyrians assimilated much of Mesopotamian civilization and saw themselves as guardians of Sumerian and Babylonian culture. Ashurbanipal, for example, established a large library at Nineveh that included the available works of Mesopotamian history. Assyrian religion reflected this assimilation of other cultures as well. Although the Assyrians’ national god Ashur was their chief deity, virtually all the other gods and goddesses were Mesopotamian. Among the best-known objects of Assyrian art are the relief sculptures found in the royal palaces in three of the Assyrian capital cities, Nimrud, Nineveh, and Khorsabad. These reliefs, which were begun in the ninth century B.C. and reached their high point in the reign of Ashurbanipal in the seventh, depicted two different kinds of subject matter: ritual or ceremonial scenes, revolving around the person of the king, and scenes of hunting and war. The latter show realistic action scenes of the king and his

King Ashurbanipal’s Lion Hunt. This relief, sculptured on alabaster as a decoration for the northern palace in Nineveh, depicts King Ashurbanipal engaged in a lion hunt. Lion hunts were not conducted in the wild but under controlled circumstances. The king and his retainers faced lions released from cages in an arena. The purpose was to glorify the king as a conqueror of the king of beasts. Relief sculpture, one of the best-known forms of Assyrian art, reached its high point under Ashurbanipal at about the time that the Assyrian Empire began to disintegrate.

T HE A SSYRIAN E MPIRE

35

warriors engaged in battle or hunting animals, especially lions. These pictures depict a strongly masculine world where discipline, brute force, and toughness are the enduring values, indeed, the very values of the Assyrian military monarchy.

The Persian Empire

Q Focus Question: What methods and institutions did

the Persians use to amass and maintain their empire, and how did these differ from those of the Assyrians?

The Chaldeans, a Semitic-speaking people, had gained ascendancy in Babylonia by the seventh century and came to form the chief resistance to Assyrian control of Mesopotamia. After the collapse of the Assyrian Empire, the Chaldeans, under their king Nebuchadnezzar II (605--562 B.C.), regained for Babylonia a position as the leading power in the ancient Near East. Nebuchadnezzar rebuilt Babylon as the center of his empire, giving it a reputation as one of the great cities of the ancient world. Babylon was surrounded by great walls, 8 miles in length, encircled by a moat filled by the Euphrates River. The city was adorned with temples and palaces; most famous of all were the Hanging Gardens, known as one of the Seven Wonders of the ancient world. These were supposedly built to satisfy Nebuchadnezzar’s wife, a princess from the land of Media, who missed the mountains of her homeland. A series of terraces led to a plateau, an artificial mountain, at the top of which grew the lush gardens irrigated by water piped to the top. According to the account of a first-century A.D. author, the impression of the gardens from a distance was quite remarkable: On the top of the citadel are the hanging gardens, a wonder celebrated in the tales of the Greeks. . . . Columns of stone were set up to sustain the whole work, and on these was laid a floor of squared blocks, strong enough to hold the earth which is thrown upon it to a great depth, as well as the water with which they irrigate the soil; and the structure supports trees of such great size that the thickness of their trunks equals a measure of eight cubits [about 12 feet]. They tower to a height of fifty feet, and they yield as much fruit as if they were growing in their native soil. . . . To those who look upon the trees from a distance, real woods seem to be overhanging their native mountains.9

But the splendor of the Neo-Babylonian Empire proved to be short-lived when Babylon fell to the Persians in 539 B.C. The Persians were an Indo-European-speaking people related to the Medes. Both peoples probably formed part of the great waves of Indo-European migrations into 36

the Mediterranean, the Near East, and India. The Persians lived to the southeast of the Medes, who occupied the western Iranian plateau south of the Caspian Sea. Primarily nomadic, both Medes and Persians were organized in clans. Leaders of both peoples were petty kings assisted by a group of warriors who formed a class of nobles. By 735 B.C., the Medes had begun to form a confederation of the various tribes, and around the beginning of the seventh century, they became unified under a monarchy. The Persians did likewise under the Achaemenid dynasty established in Persis in southern Iran. About fifty years later, the Persians were made subject to the Medes. The Medes now constituted a powerful state and joined the Babylonians in attacking the Assyrians. After the capture of Nineveh in 612 B.C., King Cyaxares established a Median empire, the first Iranian empire known to the ancient Near East.

Cyrus the Great (559--530 B.C.) In 559 B.C., Cyrus became the leader of the Persians, united them under his rule, and went on the offensive against the Medes. In 550 B.C., he established Persian control over Media, making it the first Persian satrapy, or province. Three years later, Cyrus defeated the prosperous Lydian kingdom in western Asia Minor, and Lydia became another Persian satrapy (see Map 2.3). Cyrus’ forces then went on to conquer the Greek city-states that had been established on the Ionian coast. Cyrus then turned eastward, subduing the eastern part of the Iranian plateau, Sogdiana, and even western India. His eastern frontiers secured, Cyrus entered Mesopotamia in 539 and captured Babylon. His treatment of Babylonia showed remarkable restraint and wisdom. Babylonia was made into a Persian province under a Persian satrap, but many government officials were kept in their positions. Cyrus took the title ‘‘King of All, Great King, Mighty King, King of Babylon, King of the Land of Sumer and Akkad, King of the Four Rims [of the earth], the Son of Cambyses the Great King, King of Anshan’’10 and insisted that he stood in the ancient, unbroken line of Babylonian kings. By appealing to the vanity of the Babylonians, he won their loyalty. Cyrus also issued an edict permitting the Jews, who had been brought to Babylon in the sixth century B.C., to return to Jerusalem with their sacred temple objects and to rebuild their temple as well. To his contemporaries, Cyrus the Great was deserving of his epithet. The Greek historian Herodotus recounted that the Persians viewed him as a ‘‘father,’’ a ruler who was ‘‘gentle, and procured them all manner of goods.’’11 Certainly, Cyrus must have been an unusual ruler for his time, a man who demonstrated considerable wisdom and compassion in the conquest and

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

MAP 2.3 The Persian Empire at the Time of Darius. Cyrus the Great united the Persians

and led them in successful conquest of much of the Near East. By the time of Darius, the Persian Empire was the largest the world had yet seen. The Persians allowed religious tolerance and gave some government positions to natives of conquered territories. Q How did Persian policies attempt to overcome the difficulties of governing far-flung provinces?

organization of his empire. Cyrus gained the favor of the priesthoods in his conquered lands by restoring temples and permitting religious toleration. He won approval by using not only Persians but also native peoples as government officials in their own states. Unlike the Assyrian rulers of an earlier empire, he had a reputation for mercy. Medes, Babylonians, and Hebrews all accepted him as their legitimate ruler. Indeed, the Hebrews regarded him as the anointed one of God: I am the Lord who says of Cyrus, ‘‘He is my shepherd and will accomplish all that I please’’; he will say of Jerusalem, ‘‘Let it be rebuilt’’; and of the temple, ‘‘Let its foundations be laid.’’ This is what the Lord says to his anointed, to Cyrus, whose right hand I take hold of to subdue nations before him.12

Cyrus had a genuine respect for ancient civilizations---in building his palaces, he made use of Assyrian, Babylonian, Egyptian, and Lydian practices.

Expanding the Empire Cyrus’ successors extended the territory of the Persian Empire. His son Cambyses (530--522 B.C.) undertook a successful invasion of Egypt and made it into a satrapy with Memphis as its capital. Darius (521--486 B.C.) added a new Persian province in western India that extended to the Indus River and moved into Europe proper, conquering Thrace and making the Macedonian king a vassal. A revolt of the Ionian Greek cities in 499 B.C. resulted in temporary freedom for these communities in western Asia Minor. Aid from the Greek mainland, most notably from Athens, encouraged the Ionians to invade Lydia and burn Sardis, center of the Lydian satrapy. This event led to Darius’ involvement with the mainland Greeks. After reestablishing control of the Ionian Greek cities, Darius undertook an invasion of the Greek mainland, which culminated in the famous Athenian victory in the Battle of Marathon in 490 B.C. (see Chapter 3). T HE P ERSIAN E MPIRE

37

CHRONOLOGY The Ancient Empires The Assyrians Height of power

700 B.C.

Ashurbanipal

669--626 B.C.

Capture of Nineveh

612 B.C.

Destruction of the Assyrian Empire

605 B.C

The Chaldeans Ascendancy in Babylonia

600s B.C.

Height of Neo-Babylonian Empire under King Nebuchadnezzar II

605--562 B.C.

Fall of Babylon

539 B.C

c

The Art Archive/Gianni Dagli Orti

The Persians

Darius, the Great King. Darius ruled the Persian Empire from 521 to 486 B.C. He is shown here on his throne in Persepolis, a new capital city that he built. In his right hand, Darius holds the royal staff, in his left, a lotus blossom with two buds, a symbol of royalty.

Governing the Empire By the reign of Darius, the Persians had created the largest empire the world had yet seen. As noted earlier, it not only included all the old centers of power in the Near East, Egypt, Mesopotamia, and Assyria but also extended into Thrace and Asia Minor in the west and into India in the east. For administrative purposes, the empire had been divided into around twenty satrapies. Each of these provinces was ruled by a governor or satrap, literally, a ‘‘protector of the kingdom.’’ Although Darius had not introduced the system of satrapies, he organized it more rationally. He created a sensible system for calculating the tribute that each satrapy owed to the central government 38

Unification under Achaemenid dynasty

600s B.C.

Persian control over Medes

550 B.C.

Conquests of Cyrus the Great

559--530 B.C

Cambyses and conquest of Egypt

530--522 B.C.

Reign of Darius

521--486 B.C.

and gave satraps specific civil and military duties. They collected tributes, were responsible for justice and security, raised military levies for the royal army, and normally commanded the military forces within their satrapies. In terms of real power, the satraps were miniature kings with courts imitative of the Great King’s. From the time of Darius on, satraps were men of Persian descent. The major satrapies were given to princes of the royal family, and their position became essentially hereditary. The minor satrapies were placed in the hands of Persian nobles. Their offices, too, tended to pass from father to son. The hereditary nature of the governors’ offices made it necessary to provide some checks on their power. Consequently, royal officials at the satrapal courts acted as spies for the Great King. An efficient system of communication was crucial to sustaining the Persian Empire. Well-maintained roads facilitated the rapid transit of military and government personnel. One in particular, the so-called Royal Road, stretched from Sardis, the center of Lydia in Asia Minor, to Susa, the chief capital of the Persian Empire. Like the Assyrians, the Persians established staging posts equipped with fresh horses for the king’s messengers.

The Great King In this vast administrative system, the Persian king occupied an exalted position. All subjects were the king’s servants, and he was the source of all justice, possessing the power of life and death over everyone. Persian kings were

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

A DINNER

WITH THE

The Persian kings lived in luxury as a result of their conquests and ability to extract taxes from their conquered subjects. In this selection, we read a description of how a Persian king dined with his numerous guests.

Athenaeus, The Deipnosophists Heracleides of Cumae, author of the Persian History, writes in the second book of the work entitled Equipment: ‘‘All who attend upon the Persian kings when they dine first bathe themselves and then serve in white clothes, and spend nearly half the day on preparations for the dinner. Of those who are invited to eat with the king, some dine outdoors, in full sight of anyone who wishes to look on; others dine indoors in the king’s company. Yet even these do not eat in his presence, for there are two rooms opposite each other, in one of which the king has his meal, in the other the invited guests. The king can see them through the curtain at the door, but they cannot see him. Sometimes, however, on the occasion of a public holiday, all dine in a single room with the king, in the great hall. And whenever the king commands a symposium [drinking-bout following the dinner], which he does often, he has about a dozen companions at the drinking. When they have finished dinner, that is the king by himself, the guests in the other room, these fellow-drinkers are summoned by one of the eunuchs; and entering they drink with him, though even

largely secluded and not easily accessible. They resided in a series of splendid palaces. Darius in particular was a palace builder on a grand scale. His description of the construction of a palace in the chief Persian capital of Susa demonstrated what a truly international empire Persia was: This is the . . . palace which at Susa I built. From afar its ornamentation was brought. . . . The cedar timber was brought from a mountain named Lebanon; the Assyrians brought it to Babylon, and from Babylon the Carians and Ionians brought it to Susa. Teakwood was brought from Gandara and from Carmania. The gold which was used here was brought from Sardis and from Bactria. The stone---lapis lazuli and carnelian---was brought from Sogdiana. . . . The silver and copper were brought from Egypt. The ornamentation with which the wall was adorned was brought from Ionia. The ivory was brought from Ethiopia, from India, and from Arachosia. The stone pillars were brought from . . . Elam. The artisans who dressed the stone were Ionians and Sardians. The goldsmiths who wrought the gold were Medes and Egyptians. . . . Those who worked the baked brick [with figures] were Babylonians. The men who adorned the wall were Medes and Egyptians. At Susa here a splendid work was ordered; very splendid did it turn out.13

But Darius was unhappy with Susa. He did not really consider it his homeland, and it was oppressively hot in the summer months. He built another residence at

PERSIAN KING

they do not have the same wine; moreover, they sit on the floor, while he reclines on a couch supported by feet of gold, and they depart after having drunk to excess. In most cases the king breakfasts and dines alone, but sometimes his wife and some of his sons dine with him. And throughout the dinner his concubines sing and play the lyre; one of them is the soloist, the others sing in chorus. And so . . . the ‘king’s dinner,’ as it is called, will appear prodigal to one who merely hears about it, but when one examines it carefully it will be found to have been got up with economy and even with parsimony; and the same is true of the dinners among other Persians of high station. For one thousand animals are slaughtered daily for the king; these comprise horses, camels, oxen, asses, deer, and most of the small animals; many birds are also consumed, including Arabian ostriches---and the creature is large---geese, and cocks. And of all these only moderate portions are served to each of the king’s guests, and each of them may carry home whatever he leaves untouched at the meal. But the greater part of these meats and other foods are taken into the courtyard for the body-guard and light-armed troopers maintained by the king; there they divide all the half-eaten remnants of meat and bread and share them in equal portions. . . .’’

Q What does this description of a royal dinner tell you about the nature of Persian kingship?

Persepolis, a new capital located to the southeast of the old one at a higher elevation. The policies of Darius also tended to widen the gap between the king and his subjects. As the Great King himself said of all his subjects, ‘‘What was said to them by me, night and day it was done.’’14 Over a period of time, the Great Kings in their greed came to hoard immense quantities of gold and silver in the various treasuries located in the capital cities. Both their hoarding of wealth and their later overtaxation of their subjects are seen as crucial factors in the ultimate weakening of the Persian Empire (see the box above). In its heyday, however, the empire stood supreme, and much of its power depended on the military. By the time of Darius, the Persian monarchs had created a standing army of professional soldiers. This army was truly international, composed of contingents from the various peoples who made up the empire. At its core was a cavalry force of ten thousand and an elite infantry force of ten thousand Medes and Persians known as the Immortals because they were never allowed to fall below ten thousand in number. When one was killed, he was immediately replaced. The Persians made effective use of their cavalry, especially for operating behind enemy lines and breaking up lines of communication. T HE P ERSIAN E MPIRE

39

His teachings were eventually written down in the third century A.D. in the Zend Avesta. Like the Hebrews’, Zoroaster’s spiritual message was monotheistic. To Zoroaster, Ahuramazda was the only god, and the religion he preached was the only perfect one. Ahuramazda (‘‘Wise Lord’’) was the supreme deity who brought all things into being:

c

Re´union des Muse´es Nationaux/Art Resource, NY

This I ask of You, O Ahuramazda; answer me well: Who at the Creation was the first father of Justice?--Who assigned their path to the sun and the stars?--Who decreed the waxing and waning of the moon, if it was not You?--- . . . Who has fixed the earth below, and the heaven above with its clouds that it might not be moved?--Who has appointed the waters and the green things upon the earth?--Who has harnessed to the wind and the clouds their steeds?--- . . . Thus do I strive to recognize in You, O Wise One, Together with the Holy Spirit, the Creator of all things.15

Archers of the Persian Guard. One of the main pillars supporting the Persian Empire was the military. This frieze, composed of enameled brick, depicts members of the famous infantry force known as the Immortals, so called because their number was never allowed to drop below ten thousand. Anyone killed would be replaced immediately. The men in the frieze carry the standard lance and bow and arrow of the infantry.

Persian Religion Of all the Persians’ cultural contributions, the most original was their religion, Zoroastrianism. According to Persian tradition, its founder, Zoroaster (also known as Zarathustra), was born in 660 B.C. After a period of wandering and solitude, he experienced revelations that caused him to be revered as a prophet of the ‘‘true religion.’’

According to Zoroaster, Ahuramazda also possessed abstract qualities or states that all humans should aspire to, such as good thought, right, and piety. Although Ahuramazda was supreme, he was not unopposed. At the beginning of the world, the good spirit of Ahuramazda was opposed by the evil spirit, known as Ahriman. Humans also played a role in this cosmic struggle between good and evil. Ahuramazda, the creator, gave all humans free will and the power to choose between right and wrong. The good person chooses the right way of Ahuramazda. Zoroaster taught that there would be an end to the struggle between good and evil. Ahuramazda would eventually triumph, and at the last judgment at the end of the world, the final separation of good and evil would occur. Individuals, too, would be judged. Each soul faced a final evaluation of its actions. If a person had performed good deeds, he or she would achieve paradise; if evil deeds, the soul would be thrown into an abyss of torment.

CONCLUSION Around 1200 B.C., the decline of the Hittites and the Egyptians had created a void in the Near East that allowed a number of small states to emerge and flourish temporarily. All of them were eventually overshadowed by the rise of the great empires of the Assyrians, Chaldeans, and Persians. The Assyrian Empire was the first to unite almost all of the ancient Near East. Even larger, however, was the empire of the Great Kings of Persia. Although it owed much to the administrative

40

organization created by the Assyrians, the Persian Empire had its own peculiar strengths. Persian rule was tolerant as well as efficient. Conquered peoples were allowed to keep their own religions, customs, and methods of doing business. The many years of peace that the Persian Empire brought to the Near East facilitated trade and the general wellbeing of its peoples. It is no wonder that many peoples expressed their gratitude for being subjects of the Great Kings of Persia.

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

The Hebrews were one of these peoples. They created no empire and were dominated by the Assyrians, Chaldeans, and Persians. Nevertheless, they left a spiritual legacy that influenced much of the later development of Western civilization. The evolution of Hebrew monotheism helped Judaism become one of the world’s great religions; it influenced the development of both Christianity and Islam. When we speak of the Judeo-Christian

heritage of Western civilization, we refer not only to the concept of monotheism but also to ideas of law, morality, and social justice that have become important parts of Western culture. On the western fringes of the Persian Empire, another relatively small group of people, the Greeks, were evolving cultural and political ideals that would also have an important impact on Western civilization. It is to the Greeks that we now turn.

TIMELINE 1000

Hebrews

B.C.

800

600

B.C.

Creation of monarchy in Israel

400

B.C.

B.C.

200

B.C.

Chaldeans destroy Jerusalem Golden age of Hebrew prophecy Assyria destroys northern kingdom of Israel

Assyrians

Return of Babylonian exiles to Jerusalem

Height of Assyrian Empire Assyrian Empire destroyed

Babylonians

Hanging Gardens of Babylon Height of Neo-Babylonian Empire

Persians

Conquests of Cyrus

Reign of Darius

Rise of Zoroastrianism

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING General Surveys For excellent general surveys of the material covered in this chapter, see A. Kuhrt, The Ancient Near East, c. 3000--330 B.C., vol. 2 (London, 1995), and M. van de Mieroop, A History of the Ancient Near East, ca. 3000--323 B.C., 2d ed. (Oxford, 2006).

Sea Peoples and Hittites On the Sea Peoples, see the standard work by N. Sandars, The Sea Peoples: Warriors of the Ancient Mediterranean (London, 1978). Surveys on the Hittites can be found in O. R. Gurney, The Hittites, rev. ed. (Harmondsworth, England, 1990), and T. Bryce, The Kingdom of the Hittites, 2d ed. (Oxford, 2006). See also T. Bryce, Life and Society in the Hittite World (Oxford, 2002). C ONCLUSION

41

Ancient Israel There is an enormous literature on ancient Israel. Two good studies on the archaeological aspects are A. Mazar, Archaeology of the Land of the Bible (New York, 1992), and A. Ben-Tor, ed., The Archaeology of Ancient Israel (New Haven, Conn., 1992). See also N. Silberman, The Bible Unearthed: Archaeology’s New Vision of Ancient Israel (New York, 2002). For historical narratives, see J. M. Miller and J. H. Hayes, A History of Ancient Israel and Judah (Philadelphia, 1986); M. Grant, The History of Ancient Israel (New York, 1984); and H. Shanks, Ancient Israel: A Short History from Abraham to the Roman Destruction of the Temple, rev. ed. (Englewood Cliffs, N.J., 1999). For another perspective, see N. P. Lemche, Ancient Israel: A New History of Israelite Society (Sheffield, England, 1988). On the origins of the Israelites, see W. G. Dever, Who Were the Early Israelites and Where Did They Come From? (Grand Rapids, Mich., 2003). Religion of Israel For general studies on the religion of Israel, see R. Albertz, A History of Israelite Religion in the Old Testament Period (Louisville, Ky., 1994), and W. J. Doorly, The Religion of Israel (New York, 1997). The role of the prophets is given a new interpretation in N. Podhoretz, The Prophets (New York, 2002). The Phoenicians For a good account of Phoenician domestic and overseas expansion, see D. Harden, The Phoenicians, rev. ed. (Harmondsworth, England, 1980). See also M. E. Aubet, The

42

Phoenicians and the West: Politics, Colonies and Trade, 2d ed. (Cambridge, 2001), and G. Markoe, Phoenicians (London, 2000), on Phoenician society. The Assyrian Empire A detailed account of Assyrian political, economic, social, military, and cultural history is H. W. F. Saggs, The Might That Was Assyria (London, 1984). A. T. Olmstead, History of Assyria (Chicago, 1975), is a basic survey of the Assyrian Empire. The Neo-Babylonian Empire can be examined in H. W. F. Saggs, Babylonians (Norman, Okla., 1995). The Persian Empire The classic work on the Persian Empire is A. T. Olmstead, History of the Persian Empire (Chicago, 1948), but see also L. Allen, The Persian Empire (Chicago, 2005), and J. M. Cook, The Persian Empire (New York, 1983), for new material and fresh interpretations. On the history of Zoroastrianism, see S. A. Nigosian, The Zoroastrian Faith: Tradition and Modern Research (New York, 1993).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

C H A P T E R 2 THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST: PEOPLES AND EMPIRES

43

Copyright 2009 Cengage Learning. All Rights Reserved. May not be copied, scanned, or duplicated, in whole or in part.

CHAPTER 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

British Museum, London, UK/The Bridgeman Art Library

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

Early Greece

Q

How did the geography of Greece affect Greek history?

The Greeks in a Dark Age (c. 1100--c. 750 B.C.)

Q

Who was Homer, and why was his work used as the basis for Greek education?

Q

What were the chief features of the polis, or city-state, and how did the major city-states of Athens and Sparta differ?

The High Point of Greek Civilization: Classical Greece

Q

What did the Greeks mean by democracy, and in what ways was the Athenian political system a democracy? What effect did the two great conflicts of the fifth century B.C.---the Persian Wars and the Peloponnesian War---have on Greek civilization?

The Culture and Society of Classical Greece

Q

On what ideals was Classical Greek art based, and how were these ideals expressed? What questions did the Greek philosophers pose, and what answers did they suggest?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

44

Why is the civilization of the Greeks considered the cornerstone of the Western intellectual tradition?

c

The World of the Greek City-States (c. 750--c. 500 B.C.)

A bust of Pericles

IN 431 B.C., WAR ERUPTED as two dramatically different Greek city-states---Athens and Sparta---fought for domination of the Greek world. The people of Athens felt secure behind their walls and in the first winter of the war held a public funeral to honor those who had died in battle. On the day of the ceremony, the citizens of Athens joined in a procession, with the relatives of the dead wailing for their loved ones. As was the custom in Athens, one leading citizen was asked to address the crowd, and on this day it was Pericles who spoke to the people. He talked about the greatness of Athens and reminded the Athenians of the strength of their political system: ‘‘Our constitution,’’ he said, ‘‘is called a democracy because power is in the hands not of a minority but of the whole people. When it is a question of settling private disputes, everyone is equal before the law. Just as our political life is free and open, so is our day-to-day life in our relations with each other. . . . Here each individual is interested not only in his own affairs but in the affairs of the state as well.’’ In this famous Funeral Oration, Pericles gave voice to the ideal of democracy and the importance of the individual. It was the Greeks who constructed the intellectual foundations of our Western heritage.

They asked some basic questions about human life that still dominate our own intellectual pursuits: What is the nature of the universe? What is the purpose of human existence? What is our relationship to divine forces? What constitutes a community? What constitutes a state? What is true education? What are the true sources of law? What is truth itself, and how do we realize it? Not only did the Greeks provide answers to these questions, but they created a system of logical, analytical thought to examine them. This rational outlook has remained an important feature of Western civilization. The remarkable story of ancient Greek civilization begins with the arrival of the first Greeks around 1900 B.C. By the eighth century B.C., the characteristic institution of ancient Greek life, the polis or city-state, had emerged. Greek civilization flourished and reached its height in the Classical era of the fifth century B.C., which has come to be closely identified with the achievements of Athenian democracy.

Early Greece

Q Focus Question: How did the geography of Greece affect Greek history?

Geography played an important role in Greek history. Compared to the landmasses of Mesopotamia and Egypt, Greece was compact: its mountainous peninsula encompassed only 45,000 square miles of territory, about the same as the state of Louisiana. The mountains and the sea were especially significant. Much of Greece consists of small plains and river valleys surrounded by mountain ranges 8,000 to 10,000 feet high. The mountainous terrain had the effect of isolating Greeks from one another. Consequently, Greek communities tended to follow their own separate paths and develop their own way of life. As time went on, these communities became attached to their independence and were only too willing to fight one another to gain advantage. No doubt the small size of these independent Greek communities fostered participation in political affairs and unique cultural expressions, but the rivalry among these communities also led to the bitter warfare that ultimately devastated Greek society. The sea also influenced the evolution of Greek society. Greece had a long seacoast, dotted by bays and inlets that provided numerous harbors. The Greeks also inhabited a number of islands to the west, south, and particularly the east of the Greek mainland. It is no accident that the Greeks became seafarers who sailed out into the Aegean and the Mediterranean first to make contact with the outside world and later to establish colonies that would spread Greek civilization throughout the Mediterranean region. Topography helped determine the major territories into which Greece was ultimately divided. South of the Gulf of Corinth was the Peloponnesus, virtually an island

(see Map 3.1). Consisting mostly of hills, mountains, and small valleys, the Peloponnesus was the location of Sparta, as well as the site of Olympia, where famous athletic games were held. Northeast of the Peloponnesus was the Attic peninsula (or Attica), the home of Athens, hemmed in by mountains to the north and west and surrounded by the sea to the south and east. Northwest of Attica was Boeotia in central Greece with its chief city of Thebes. To the north of Boeotia was Thessaly, which contained the largest plains and became a great producer of grain and horses. To the north of Thessaly lay Macedonia, which was not of much importance in Greek history until 338 B.C., when a Macedonian king, Philip II, conquered the Greeks.

Minoan Crete The earliest civilization in the Aegean region emerged on the large island of Crete, southeast of the Greek mainland. A Bronze Age civilization that used metals, especially bronze, in making weapons had been established there by 2800 B.C. This forgotten civilization was rediscovered at the turn of the twentieth century by the English archaeologist Arthur Evans, who named it ‘‘Minoan’’ after Minos, a legendary king of Crete. In language and religion, the Minoans were not Greek, although they did have some influence on the peoples of the Greek mainland. Evans’s excavations on Crete at the beginning of the twentieth century led to the discovery of an enormous palace complex at Knossus, near modern Heracleion, that was most likely the center of a far-ranging ‘‘sea empire,’’ probably largely commercial. We know from archaeological remains that the people of Minoan Crete were accustomed to sea travel and had made contact with the more advanced civilization of Egypt. The Minoan civilization reached its height between 2000 and 1450 B.C. The palace at Knossus, the royal seat of the kings, demonstrates the prosperity and power of this civilization. It was an elaborate structure built around a central courtyard and included numerous private living rooms for the royal family and workshops for making decorated vases, small sculptures, and jewelry. Even bathrooms, with elaborate drains, were part of the complex. The rooms were decorated with frescoes in bright colors showing sporting events and naturalistic scenes that have led some observers to conclude that the Cretans had a great love of nature. The centers of Minoan civilization on Crete suffered a sudden and catastrophic collapse around 1450 B.C. The cause of this destruction has been vigorously debated. Some historians believe that a tsunami triggered by a powerful volcanic eruption on the island of Thera was responsible for the devastation. Most historians, however, maintain that the destruction was the result of invasion and pillage by mainland Greeks known as the Mycenaeans. E ARLY G REECE

45

Bosporus

MACEDONIA

THRACE

Propontis (Sea of Marmara))

EPIRUS Mt Olympus

Hellespont Troy

Aegean Sea

THESSA ALY LY

Corcyr yrra

Mt Parnassus Delphi

Euboe oeeeaa

Argos oss

Sam amoos os

Athen Ath A thhens ns

Miletus Dellos De D os Pa oss Par

PE ELO LOPONN PONNES SUS MESSE ENIIA EN A

IONIA

Thebe bbes be e

ATT AT ATTI TIICA A

Corinth Olympia

Chioos

BOEOTIIA B

Gulff off Corinth i th

Ionian Sea

Les esbos b bos

Spartaa

LACO LA C N CO NIIA

Halicaarna rnnnaassus

Amo A mo m rgos Rhode des ess

Sea of Crete

Mediterranean Sea 0 0

100

200 100 0

Knossu Kno sssu us

Crete

300 Kilometers 200 Miles

MAP 3.1 Ancient Greece (c. 750–338 B. C.). Between 750 and 500 B.C., the city-state emerged as the central institution in Greek life. Classical Greece lasted from about 500 to 338 B.C. and marked the high point of Greek civilization in the arts, science, philosophy, and politics but also the period of the Persian Wars and the Peloponnesian War. Q How does the geography of Greece help explain the rise and development of the Greek city-state?

The First Greek State: Mycenae The term Mycenaean is derived from Mycenae, a remarkable fortified site first excavated by the amateur German archaeologist Heinrich Schliemann. Mycenae was one center in a Greek civilization that flourished between 1600 and 1100 B.C. The Mycenaean Greeks were part of the IndoEuropean family of peoples (see Chapter 2) who spread from their original location into southern and western Europe, India, and Iran. One group entered the territory of Greece from the north around 1900 B.C. and managed to gain control of the Greek mainland and develop a civilization. Mycenaean civilization, which reached its high point between 1400 and 1200 B.C., consisted of a number of powerful monarchies based in fortified palace complexes. 46

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

Like Mycenae itself, the palaces were built on hills and surrounded by gigantic stone walls. These various centers of power probably formed a loose confederacy of independent Mycena Myc M ycceena nnae na ae states, with Mycenae beh enoss Tir Tiryyns ns ns ing the strongest. Next OOrccchom Pyl y os MYCE CE ENA NA AEA EA E AN in importance to the GR R EE E E ECE CE E kings in these states were Th a Thera The the army commanders, Sea of Crete priests, and the bureauKnoossus Kno Knossu sssus ss ssu 0 50 100 150 Ki Kil ilomet ometers omet ers crats who kept careful CRE RETE RETE RE TE 0 50 100 Miles records. The free citizenry included peasants, Minoan Crete and Mycenaean soldiers, and artisans, and Greece

the lowest rung of the social ladder consisted of serfs and slaves. The Mycenaeans were, above all, a warrior people who prided themselves on their heroic deeds in battle. Some scholars believe that the Mycenaeans, led by Mycenae itself, spread outward militarily, conquering Crete and making it part of the Mycenaean world. The most famous of all their supposed military adventures has come down to us in the epic poetry of Homer (discussed in the next few pages). Did the Mycenaean Greeks, led by Agamemnon, king of Mycenae, indeed sack the city of Troy on the northwestern coast of Asia Minor around 1250 B.C., as Homer described? Since the excavations of Heinrich Schliemann, begun in 1870, scholars have debated this question. Many believe that Homer’s account does have a basis in fact. By the late thirteenth century B.C., Mycenaean Greece was showing signs of serious trouble. Mycenae itself was torched around 1190 B.C., and other Mycenaean centers show similar patterns of destruction as new waves of Greekspeaking invaders moved in from the north. By 1100 B.C., the Mycenaean culture was coming to an end, and the Greek world was entering a new period of considerable insecurity.

The Greeks in a Dark Age (c. 1100--c. 750 B.C.)

After the collapse of Mycenaean civilization, Greece entered a difficult period in which the population declined and food production dropped. Because of the dire conditions and our meager knowledge about the period, historians call it the Dark Age. Not until 850 B.C. did farming revive. At the same time, some new developments were forming the basis for a revived Greece. During the Dark Age, large numbers of Greeks left the mainland and migrated across the Aegean Sea to various islands and especially to the western shores of Asia Minor, a strip of territory that came to be called Ionia. The Greeks who resided there were called Ionians. Two other major groups of Greeks settled in established parts of Greece. The Aeolian Greeks, located in northern and central Greece, colonized the large island of Lesbos and the adjacent territory of the mainland. The Dorians established themselves in southwestern Greece, especially in the Peloponnesus, as well as on some of the islands in the south Aegean Sea, including Crete. Other important activities occurred in the Dark Age as well. Greece saw a revival of some

The Iliad and the Odyssey, the great epic poems of early Greece, were based on stories that had been passed down from generation to generation. It is generally assumed that early in the eighth century B.C., Homer made use of these oral traditions to compose the Iliad, his epic of the Trojan War. The war was precipitated by Paris, a prince of Troy, whose kidnapping of Helen, wife of the king of the Greek state of Sparta, outraged all the Greeks. Under the leadership of the Spartan king’s brother, Agamemnon of Mycenae, the Greeks attacked Troy. Ten years later, the Greeks finally won and sacked the city. But the Iliad is not so much the story of the war itself as it is the tale of the Greek hero Achilles and how the ‘‘wrath of Achilles’’ led to disaster. As is true of all great literature, the Iliad abounds in universal lessons. Underlying them all is the clear message, as one commentator has observed, that ‘‘men will still come and go like the generations of leaves in the forest; that [man] will still be weak, and the gods strong and incalculable; that the quality of a man matters more than his achievement; that

c

work used as the basis for Greek education?

Homer and Homeric Greece

AAAC/Topham/The Image Works

Q Focus Question: Who was Homer, and why was his

trade and some economic activity besides agriculture. Iron came into use for the construction of weapons. And at some point in the eighth century B.C., the Greeks adopted the Phoenician alphabet to give themselves a new system of writing. Near the very end of this Dark Age appeared the work of Homer, who has come to be viewed as one of the greatest poets of all time.

The Slaying of Hector. This scene from a Corinthian Greek vase painting depicts the final battle between Achilles and the Trojan hero Hector, a scene taken from Homer’s Iliad. The Iliad is Homer’s masterpiece and was important to later Greeks as a means of teaching the aristocratic values of courage and honor.

T HE G REEKS

IN A

DARK A GE ( C . 1100-- C . 750 B . C .)

47

HOMER’S IDEAL The Iliad and the Odyssey were used as basic texts for the education of Greeks for hundreds of years in antiquity. This passage from the Iliad, describing a conversation between Hector, prince of Troy, and his wife, Andromache, illustrates the Greek ideal of gaining honor through combat. At the end of the passage, Homer also reveals what became the Greek attitude toward women: women are supposed to spin and weave and take care of their households and their children.

Homer, Iliad Hector looked at his son and smiled, but said nothing. Andromache, bursting into tears, went up to him and put her hand in his. ‘‘Hector,’’ she said, ‘‘you are possessed. This bravery of yours will be your end. You do not think of your little boy or your unhappy wife, whom you will make a widow soon. Some day the Achaeans [Greeks] are bound to kill you in a massed attack. And when I lose you I might as well be dead. . . . I have no father, no mother, now. . . . I had seven brothers too at home. In one day all of them went down to Hades’ House. The great Achilles of the swift feet killed them all. . . . ‘‘So you, Hector, are father and mother and brother to me, as well as my beloved husband. Have pity on me now; stay here on the tower; and do not make your boy an orphan and your wife a widow. . . .’’ ‘‘All that, my dear,’’ said the great Hector of the glittering helmet, ‘‘is surely my concern. But if I hid myself like a coward and refused to fight, I could never face the Trojans and the Trojan ladies in their trailing gowns. Besides, it would go against the grain, for

violence and recklessness will still lead to disaster, and that this will fall on the innocent as well as on the guilty.’’1 The Odyssey, Homer’s other masterpiece, is an epic romance that recounts the journeys of a Greek hero named Odysseus after the fall of Troy and his ultimate return to his wife. But there is a larger vision here as well: the testing of the heroic stature of Odysseus until, by both cunning and patience, he prevails. In the course of this testing, the underlying moral message is ‘‘that virtue is a better policy than vice.’’2 Although the Iliad and the Odyssey supposedly deal with the heroes of the Mycenaean age of the thirteenth century B.C., many scholars believe that they really describe the social conditions of the Dark Age. According to the Homeric view, Greece was a society based on agriculture in which a landed warrior-aristocracy controlled much wealth and exercised considerable power. Homer’s world reflects the values of aristocratic heroes.

Homer’s Enduring Importance This explains the importance of Homer to later generations of Greeks. Homer did not so much record 48

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

OF

EXCELLENCE

I have trained myself always, like a good soldier, to take my place in the front line and win glory for my father and myself. . . .’’ As he finished, glorious Hector held out his arms to take his boy. But the child shrank back with a cry to the bosom of his girdled nurse, alarmed by his father’s appearance. He was frightened by the bronze of the helmet and the horsehair plume that he saw nodding grimly down at him. His father and his lady mother had to laugh. But noble Hector quickly took his helmet off and put the dazzling thing on the ground. Then he kissed his son, dandled him in his arms, and prayed to Zeus and the other gods: ‘‘Zeus; and you other gods, grant that this boy of mine may be, like me, preeminent in Troy; as strong and brave as I; a mighty king of Ilium. May people say, when he comes back from battle, ‘Here is a better man than his father.’ Let him bring home the bloodstained armor of the enemy he has killed, and make his mother happy.’’ Hector handed the boy to his wife, who took him to her fragrant breast. She was smiling through her tears, and when her husband saw this he was moved. He stroked her with his hand and said: ‘‘My dear, I beg you not to be too much distressed. No one is going to send me down to Hades before my proper time. But Fate is a thing that no man born of woman, coward or hero, can escape. Go home now, and attend to your own work, the loom and the spindle, and see that the maidservants get on with theirs. War is men’s business; and this war is the business of every man in Ilium, myself above all.’’

Q What important ideals for Greek men and women are revealed in this passage from the Iliad?

history as make it. The Greeks regarded the Iliad and the Odyssey as authentic history recorded by one poet, Homer. These masterpieces gave the Greeks an idealized past with a cast of heroes and came to be used as standard texts for the education of generations of Greek males. As one Athenian stated, ‘‘My father was anxious to see me develop into a good man . . . and as a means to this end he compelled me to memorize all of Homer.’’3 The values Homer taught were essentially the aristocratic values of courage and honor (see the box above). A hero strives for excellence, which the Greeks called arete. In the warrioraristocratic world of Homer, arete is won in struggle or contest. Through his willingness to fight, the hero protects his family and friends, preserves his own honor and that of his family, and earns his reputation. In the Homeric world, aristocratic women, too, were expected to pursue excellence. Penelope, for example, the wife of Odysseus, the hero of the Odyssey, remains faithful to her husband and displays great courage and intelligence in preserving their household during her husband’s long absence. Upon his return, Odysseus praises her: ‘‘Madame, there is not a man in the wide world who

could find fault with you. For your fame has reached heaven itself, like that of some perfect king, ruling a populous and mighty state with the fear of god in his heart, and upholding the right.’’4 Homer gave the Greeks a model of heroism, honor, and nobility. But in time, as a new world of city-states emerged in Greece, new values of cooperation and community also transformed what the Greeks learned from Homer.

The World of the Greek City-States (c. 750--c. 500 B.C.)

Q Focus Question: What were the chief features of the

polis, or city-state, and how did the major city-states of Athens and Sparta differ?

In the eighth century B.C., Greek civilization burst forth with new energies, beginning the period that historians have called the Archaic Age of Greece. Two major developments stand out in this era: the evolution of the polis as the central institution in Greek life and the Greeks’ colonization of the Mediterranean and Black Seas.

The Polis The Greek polis (plural, poleis) developed slowly during the Dark Age and by the eighth century B.C. had emerged as a truly unique and fundamental institution in Greek society. In a physical sense, the polis encompassed a town or city or even a village and its surrounding countryside. But each had a central place where the citizens of the polis could assemble for political, social, and religious activities. In some poleis, this central meeting point was a hill, which could serve as a place of refuge during an attack and later in some sites came to be the religious center on which temples and public monuments were erected. Below this acropolis would be an agora, an open space that served both as a place where citizens could assemble and as a market. Poleis varied greatly in size, from a few square miles to a few hundred square miles. The larger ones were the product of consolidation. The territory of Attica, for example, had once had twelve poleis but eventually became a single polis (Athens) through a process of amalgamation. The population of Athens grew to about 250,000 by the fifth century B.C. Most poleis were much smaller, consisting of only a few hundred to several thousand people. Although our word politics is derived from the Greek term polis, the polis itself was much more than just a political institution. It was, above all, a community of citizens in which all political, economic, social, cultural, and religious activities were focused. As a community, the polis consisted of citizens with political rights (adult

males), citizens with no political rights (women and children), and noncitizens (slaves and resident aliens). All citizens of a polis possessed basic rights, but these were coupled with responsibilities. The Greek philosopher Aristotle argued that the citizen did not just belong to himself; ‘‘we must rather regard every citizen as belonging to the state.’’ The unity of citizens was important and often meant that states would take an active role in directing the patterns of life. However, the loyalty that citizens had to their poleis also had a negative side. Poleis distrusted one another, and the division of Greece into fiercely patriotic sovereign units helped bring about its ruin. Greece was not a united country but a geographical concept. The cultural unity of the Greeks did not mean much politically.

A New Military System: The Greek Way of War As the polis developed, so did a new military system. In earlier times, wars in Greece had been fought by aristocratic cavalry soldiers---nobles on horseback. These aristocrats, who were large landowners, also dominated the political life of their poleis. But by the end of the eighth century and the start of the seventh, a new military order came into being that was based on hoplites, heavily armed infantrymen who wore bronze or leather helmets, breastplates, and greaves (shin guards). Each carried a round shield, a short sword, and a thrusting spear about 9 feet long. Hoplites advanced into battle as a unit, forming a phalanx (a rectangular formation) in tight order, usually eight ranks deep. As long as the hoplites kept their order, were not outflanked, and did not break, they either secured victory or, at the very least, suffered no harm. The phalanx was easily routed, however, if it broke its order. The safety of the phalanx depended on the solidarity and discipline of its members. As one seventh-century B.C. poet noted, a good hoplite was ‘‘a short man firmly placed upon his legs, with a courageous heart, not to be uprooted from the spot where he plants his legs.’’5 The hoplite force had political as well as military repercussions. The aristocratic cavalry was now outdated. Since each hoplite provided his own armor, men of property, both aristocrats and small farmers, made up the new phalanx. Those who could become hoplites and fight for the state could also challenge aristocratic control. In the new world of the Greek city-states, war became an integral part of the Greek way of life. The Greek philosopher Plato described war as ‘‘always existing by nature between every Greek city-state.’’6 The Greeks created a tradition of warfare that became a prominent element of Western civilization. For example, the Greeks devised excellent weapons and body armor, making effective use of technological improvements. Greek armies T HE WORLD

OF THE

G REEK C ITY-S TATES ( C . 750-- C . 500 B . C .)

49

Resource, NY, Rome

c /Scala/Art

The Hoplite Forces. The Greek hoplites were infantrymen equipped with large round shields and long thrusting spears. In battle, they advanced in tight phalanx formation and were dangerous opponents as long as this formation remained unbroken. This vase painting of the seventh century B.C. shows two groups of hoplite warriors engaged in battle. The piper on the left is leading another line of soldiers preparing to enter the fray.

included a large number of citizen-soldiers, who gladly accepted the need for training and discipline, giving them an edge over their opponents’ often far larger armies of mercenaries. Moreover, the Greeks displayed a willingness to engage the enemy head-on, thus deciding a battle quickly and with as few casualties as possible. Finally, the Greeks demonstrated the effectiveness of heavy infantry in determining the outcome of battle. All of these features of Greek warfare remained characteristic of Western military tactics for centuries.

Colonization and the Growth of Trade Between 750 and 550 B.C., large numbers of Greeks left to settle in distant lands. Poverty and land hunger created by the growing gulf between rich and poor, overpopulation, and the development of trade were all factors that led to the establishment of colonies. Some Greek colonies were simply trading posts or centers for the transshipment of goods to Greece. Most were larger settlements that included good agricultural land taken from the native 50

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

populations in those areas. Each colony was founded as a polis and was usually independent of the metropolis (‘‘mother polis’’) that had established it. In the western Mediterranean, new Greek settlements were established along the coastline of southern Italy, southern France, eastern Spain, and northern Africa west of Egypt. To the north, the Greeks set up colonies in Thrace, where they sought good farmland to grow grains. Greeks also settled along the shores of the Black Sea and secured the approaches to it with cities on the Hellespont and Bosporus, most noticeably Byzantium, site of the later Constantinople (Istanbul). By establishing these settlements, the Greeks spread their culture throughout the Mediterranean basin. Colonization also led to increased trade and industry. The Greeks on the mainland sent their pottery, wine, and olive oil to these areas; in return, they received grains and metals from the west and fish, timber, wheat, metals, and slaves from the Black Sea region. In many poleis, the expansion of trade and industry created a new group of rich men who desired political privileges commensurate with their wealth but found them impossible to gain because of the power of the ruling aristocrats.

Tyranny in the Greek Polis The desires of these new groups opened the door to the rise of tyrants in the seventh and sixth centuries B.C. They were not necessarily oppressive or wicked, as our word tyrant connotes. Greek tyrants were rulers who seized power by force and who were not subject to the law. Support for the tyrants came from the new rich, who made their money in trade and industry, as well as from poor peasants, who were in debt to landholding aristocrats. Both groups were opposed to the domination of political power by aristocratic oligarchies. Tyrants usually achieved power by a local coup d’e´tat and maintained it by using mercenary soldiers. Once in power, they built marketplaces, temples, and walls that created jobs, glorified the city, and enhanced their own popularity. Tyrants also favored the interests of merchants and traders. Despite these achievements, however, tyranny fell out of favor by the end of the sixth century B.C. Its very nature as a system outside the law seemed contradictory to the ideals of the Greek community. Although tyranny did not last, it played a significant role in the course of Greek history by ending the rule of narrow aristocratic oligarchies. The end of tyranny opened the door to greater numbers of people in government. Although this trend culminated in the development of democracy in some communities, in other states expanded oligarchies of one kind or another managed to remain in power. Greek states exhibited considerable variety in their governmental structures; this can perhaps best be seen by examining the two most famous and most powerful Greek city-states, Sparta and Athens.

Sparta The Spartans originally occupied four small villages in the southwestern Peloponnesus, in an area known as Laconia, that eventually became unified into a single polis. This unification made Sparta a strong community in the region and enabled the Spartans to conquer the neighboring Laconians. Many Laconians became periokoi, free inhabitants but not citizens who were required to pay taxes and perform military service for Sparta. Other Laconians became helots (the name is derived from a Greek word for ‘‘capture’’). They were bound to the land and forced to work on farms and as household servants for the Spartans. When the land in Laconia proved unable to support the growing number of Spartan citizens, the Spartans looked for additional territory nearby and, beginning around 730 B.C., undertook the conquest of neighboring Messenia despite its larger size and population. Messenia possessed a large, fertile plain ideal for growing grain. After its conquest, which was not completed until the

seventh century B.C., the Messenians were made helots and forced to work for the Spartans. The New Sparta To ensure control over their conquered Laconian and Messenian helots, the Spartans decided to create a military state. By the early sixth century B.C., they had transformed Sparta into a military camp (see the box on p. 52). The lives of all Spartans were now rigidly organized. At birth, each child was examined by state officials who decided whether it was fit to live. Infants judged unfit were left to die. Boys were taken from their mothers at the age of seven and put under control of the state. They lived in military-style barracks, where they were subjected to harsh discipline to make them tough and given an education that stressed military training and obedience to authority. At twenty, Spartan males were enrolled in the army for regular military service. Although allowed to marry, they continued to live in the barracks and ate all their meals in public dining halls with their fellow soldiers. Meals were simple; the famous Spartan black broth consisted of a piece of pork boiled in blood, salt, and vinegar, causing a visitor who ate in a public mess to remark that he now understood why Spartans were not afraid to die. At thirty, Spartan males were allowed to vote in the assembly and live at home, but they stayed in the army until the age of sixty. While their husbands remained in military barracks until age thirty, Spartan women lived at home. Because of this separation, Spartan women had greater freedom of movement and greater power in the household than was common for women elsewhere in Greece. They were encouraged to exercise and remain fit to bear and raise healthy children. Like the men, Spartan women engaged in athletic exercises in the nude. Many Spartan women upheld the strict Spartan values, expecting their husbands and sons to be brave in war. The story is told that as a Spartan mother was burying her son, an old woman came up to her and said, ‘‘You poor woman, what a misfortune.’’ ‘‘No,’’ replied the other, ‘‘because I bore him so that he might die for Sparta and that is what has happened, as I wished.’’7 Another Spartan woman, as she was handing her son his shield, told him to come back carrying his shield or being carried on it. The Spartan State The Spartan government was headed by two kings, who led the Spartan army on its campaigns. A group of five men, known as the ephors, were elected each year and were responsible for the education of youth and the conduct of all citizens. A council of elders, composed of the two kings and twenty-eight citizens over the age of sixty, decided on the issues that would be presented to an assembly. This assembly of all male citizens did not debate but only voted on the issues put before it by the council of elders. T HE WORLD

OF THE

G REEK C ITY-S TATES ( C . 750-- C . 500 B . C .)

51

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

To make their new military state secure, the Spartans deliberately turned their backs on the outside world. Foreigners, who might bring in new ideas, were discouraged from visiting Sparta. Nor were Spartans, except for military reasons, encouraged to travel abroad where they might pick up new ideas that might prove dangerous to the stability of the state. Likewise, Spartan citizens were discouraged from studying philosophy, literature, or the arts---subjects that might encourage new thoughts. The art of war and of ruling was the Spartan ideal; all other arts were frowned on. In the sixth century, Sparta used its military might and the fear it inspired to gain greater control of the Peloponnesus by organizing an alliance of almost all the Peloponnesian states. Sparta’s strength enabled it to dominate this Peloponnesian League and determine its policies. By 500 B.C., the Spartans had organized a powerful military state that maintained order and stability in the Peloponnesus. Raised from early childhood to believe that 52

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

total loyalty to the Spartan state was the basic reason for existence, the Spartans viewed their strength as justification for their militaristic ideals and regimented society.

Athens By 700 B.C., Athens had established a unified polis on the peninsula of Attica. Although early Athens had been ruled by a monarchy, by the seventh century it had fallen under the control of its aristocrats. They possessed the best land and controlled political and religious life by means of a council of nobles, assisted by a board of nine archons. Although an assembly of full citizens did exist, it possessed few powers. Near the end of the seventh century B.C., Athens faced political turmoil because of serious economic problems. Many Athenian farmers found themselves sold into slavery when they were unable to repay the loans they had

borrowed from their aristocratic neighbors, pledging themselves as collateral. Over and over, cries arose to cancel the debts and give land to the poor. Athens seemed on the verge of civil war. The Reforms of Solon The ruling Athenian aristocrats responded to this crisis by choosing Solon, a reform-minded aristocrat, as sole archon in 594 B.C. and giving him full power to make changes. Solon canceled all current land debts, outlawed new loans based on humans as collateral, and freed people who had fallen into slavery for debts. He refused, however, to carry out the redistribution of the land and hence failed to deal with the basic cause of the economic crisis. Like his economic reforms, Solon’s political measures were also a compromise. Though by no means eliminating the power of the aristocracy, they opened the door to the participation of new people, especially the nonaristocratic wealthy, in the government. But Solon’s reforms, though popular, did not solve Athens’ problems. Aristocratic factions continued to vie for power, and the poorer peasants resented Solon’s failure to institute land redistribution. Internal strife finally led to the very institution Solon had hoped to avoid---tyranny. Pisistratus, an aristocrat, seized power in 560 B.C. Pursuing a foreign policy that aided Athenian trade, Pisistratus remained popular with the merchants. But the Athenians rebelled against his son and ended the tyranny in 510 B.C. Although the aristocrats attempted to reestablish an oligarchy, Cleisthenes, another aristocratic reformer, opposed this plan and, with the backing of the Athenian people, gained the upper hand in 508 B.C. The reforms of Cleisthenes now established the basis for Athenian democracy. The Reforms of Cleisthenes A major aim of Cleisthenes’ reforms was to weaken the power of traditional localities and regions, which had provided the foundation for aristocratic strength. He made the demes, the villages and townships of Attica, the basic units of political life. Cleisthenes enrolled all the citizens of the demes in ten new tribes, each of which contained inhabitants located in the rural districts of Attica, the coastal areas, and Athens. The ten tribes thus contained a cross section of the population and reflected all of Attica, a move that gave local areas a basic role in the political structure. Each of the ten tribes chose fifty members by lot each year for a new Council of Five Hundred, which was responsible for the administration of both foreign and financial affairs and prepared the business that would be handled by the assembly. This assembly of all male citizens had final authority in the passing of laws after free and open debate; thus Cleisthenes’ reforms strengthened the central role of the assembly of citizens in the Athenian political system.

CHRONOLOGY Archaic Greece: Sparta and Athens Sparta Conquest of Messenia

c. 730--710 B.C.

Beginning of Peloponnesian League

c. 560--550 B.C.

Athens Solon’s reforms

594--593 B.C.

Tyranny of Pisistratus

c. 560--556 and 546--527 B.C.

Deposition of Hippias---end of tyranny

510 B.C

Cleisthenes’ reforms

c. 508--501 B.C

The reforms of Cleisthenes laid the foundations for Athenian democracy. More changes would come in the fifth century B.C. when the Athenians themselves would begin to use the word democracy to describe their system (from the Greek words demos, ‘‘people,’’ and kratia, ‘‘power,’’ thus ‘‘power to the people’’). By 500 B.C., Athens was more united than it had ever been and was about to assume a more important role in Greek affairs.

The High Point of Greek Civilization: Classical Greece

Q Focus Questions: What did the Greeks mean by

democracy, and in what ways was the Athenian political system a democracy? What effect did the two great conflicts of the fifth century B.C.---the Persian Wars and the Peloponnesian War---have on Greek civilization?

Classical Greece is the name given to the period from around 500 B.C. to the conquest of Greece by the Macedonian king Philip II in 338 B.C. It was a time of brilliant achievement, much of it associated with the flowering of democracy in Athens under the leadership of Pericles. Many of the lasting contributions of the Greeks occurred during this period. The age began with a mighty confrontation between the Greek states and the mammoth Persian Empire.

The Challenge of Persia As Greek civilization expanded throughout the Mediterranean, it was inevitable that it would come into contact with the Persian Empire to the east. The Ionian Greek cities in western Asia Minor had already fallen subject to the Persian Empire by the mid-sixth century B.C. An unsuccessful revolt by the Ionian cities in 499, assisted by the Athenian navy, led the Persian ruler Darius to seek revenge by attacking the mainland Greeks in 490. T HE H IGH P OINT

OF

G REEK C IVILIZATION : C LASSICAL G REECE

53

The Persians landed an army on the plain of Marathon, only 26 miles from Athens. There a mostly Athenian army, though clearly outnumbered, went on the attack and defeated the Persians decisively. Xerxes, the new Persian monarch after the death of Darius in 486 B.C., vowed revenge and renewed the invasion of Greece. In preparation for the attack, some of the Greek states formed a defensive league under Spartan leadership, while the Athenians pursued a new military policy by developing a navy. By the time of the Persian invasion in 480 B.C., the Athenians had produced a fleet of about two hundred vessels. Xerxes led a massive invasion force into Greece: close to 150,000 troops, almost seven hundred naval ships, and hundreds of supply ships to keep their large army fed. The Greeks hoped to stop the Persians at the pass of Thermopylae along the main road into central Greece. A Greek force numbering close to nine thousand, under the leadership of the Spartan king Leonidas and his contingent of three hundred Spartans, held off the Persian army for several days. The Spartan troops were especially brave. When told that Persian arrows would darken the sky in battle, one Spartan warrior supposedly responded, ‘‘That is good news. We will fight in the shade!’’ Unfortunately for the Greeks, a traitor told the Persians how to use a mountain path to outflank the Greek force. King Leonidas and the three hundred Spartans fought to the last man. The Athenians, now threatened by the onslaught of the Persian forces, abandoned their city. While the Persians sacked and burned Athens, the Greek fleet remained offshore near the island of Salamis and challenged the Persian navy to fight. Although the Greeks were outnumbered, they managed to outmaneuver the Persian fleet and utterly defeated it. A few months later, early in 479 B.C., the Greeks formed the largest Greek army seen up to that time and decisively defeated the Persian army at Plataea, northwest of Attica. The Greeks had won the war and were now free to pursue their own destiny.

The Growth of an Athenian Empire in the Age of Pericles After the defeat of the Persians, Athens stepped in to provide new leadership against the Persians by forming a confederation called the Delian League. Organized in the winter of 478--477 B.C., the Delian League was dominated by the Athenians from the beginning. Its main headquarters was the island of Delos, but its chief officials, including the treasurers and commanders of the fleet, were Athenian. Under the leadership of the Athenians, the Delian League pursued the attack against the Persian Empire. Virtually all of the Greek states in the Aegean were liberated from Persian control. Arguing that the 54

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

Persian threat was now over, some members of the Delian League wished to withdraw. But the Athenians forced them to remain in the league and to pay tribute. ‘‘No secession’’ became Athenian policy. The Delian League was rapidly becoming the nucleus of an Athenian empire. At home, Athenians favored the new imperial policy, especially in the 450s B.C., when an aristocrat named Pericles began to play an important political role. Under Pericles, Athens embarked on a policy of expanding democracy at home while severing its ties with Sparta and expanding its new empire abroad. This period of Athenian and Greek history, which historians have subsequently labeled the Age of Pericles, witnessed the height of Athenian power and the culmination of its brilliance as a civilization. In the Age of Pericles, the Athenians became deeply attached to their democratic system. The sovereignty of the people was embodied in the assembly, which consisted of all male citizens over eighteen years of age. In the 440s, that was probably a group of about 43,000. Not all attended, however, and the number present at the meetings, which were held every ten days on a hillside east of the Acropolis, seldom reached 6,000. The assembly passed all laws and made final decisions on war and foreign policy. Routine administration of public affairs was handled by a large body of city magistrates, usually chosen by lot without regard to class and usually serving one-year terms. This meant that many male citizens held public office at some time in their lives. A board of ten officials known as generals (strategoi) were elected by public vote to guide affairs of state, although their power depended on the respect they had attained. Generals were usually wealthy aristocrats, even though the people were free to select others. The generals could be reelected, enabling individual leaders to play an important political role. Pericles’ reelection fifteen times as a general made him one of the leading politicians between 461 and 429 B.C. All public officials were subject to scrutiny and could be deposed from office if they lost the people’s confidence. After 488 B.C., the Athenians occasionally made use of a tactic called ostracism. Members of the assembly could write on a broken pottery fragment (ostrakon) the name of the person they most disliked or considered most harmful to the polis. A person who received a majority (if at least six thousand votes were cast) was exiled for ten years. Pericles expanded the Athenians’ involvement in democracy, which was what Athenians had come to call their form of government (see the box on p. 55). Power was in the hands of the people: male citizens voted in the assemblies and served as jurors in the courts. Lower-class citizens were now eligible for public offices formerly closed to them. Pericles also introduced state pay for officeholders, including the widely held jury duty. This meant that even poor citizens could hold public office

ATHENIAN DEMOCRACY: THE FUNERAL ORATION In his History of the Peloponnesian War, the Greek historian Thucydides presented his reconstruction of the eulogy given by Pericles in the winter of 431–430 B.C. to honor the Athenians killed in the first campaigns of the Great Peloponnesian War. It is a magnificent, idealized description of the Athenian democracy at its height.

Thucydides, History of the Peloponnesian War Our constitution is called a democracy because power is in the hands not of a minority but of the whole people. When it is a question of settling private disputes, everyone is equal before the law; when it is a question of putting one person before another in positions of public responsibility, what counts is not membership of a particular class, but the actual ability which the man possesses. No one, so long as he has it in him to be of service to the state, is kept in political obscurity because of poverty. And just as our political life is free and open, so is our day-to-day life in our relations with each other. We do not get into a state with our next-door neighbor if he enjoys himself in his own way, nor do we give him the kind of black looks which, though they do no real harm, still do hurt people’s feeling. We are free and tolerant in our private lives; but in public affairs we keep to the law. This is because it commands our deep respect. We give our obedience to those whom we put in positions of authority, and we obey the laws themselves, especially those which

and afford to participate in public affairs. Nevertheless, although the Athenians developed a system of government that was unique in its time in which citizens had equal rights and the people were the government, aristocrats continued to hold the most important offices, and many people, including women, slaves, and foreigners residing in Athens, were not given the same political rights. The Athenian pursuit of democracy at home was coupled with increasing imperialism abroad. Citing the threat of the Persian fleet in the Aegean, the Athenians moved the Delian League treasury from the island of Delos to Athens itself in 454 B.C. Members were charged a fee (tribute) for the Athenian claim of protection. Pericles also used the money in the league treasury, without the approval of its members, to build new temples in Athens, an arrogant reminder that the Delian League had become the Athenian Empire. But Athenian imperialism alarmed the other Greek states, and soon all Greece was confronted with a new war.

The Great Peloponnesian War During the forty years after the defeat of the Persians, the Greek world divided into two major camps: Sparta and

OF

PERICLES

are for the protection of the oppressed, and those unwritten laws which it is an acknowledged shame to break. . . . Here each individual is interested not only in his own affairs but in the affairs of the state as well: even those who are mostly occupied with their own business are extremely well-informed on general politics---this is a peculiarity of ours: we do not say that a man who takes no interest in politics is a man who minds his own business; we say that he has no business here at all. We Athenians, in our own persons, take our decisions on policy or submit them to proper discussions: for we do not think that there is an incompatibility between words and deeds; the worst thing is to rush into action before the consequences have been properly debated. . . . Taking everything together, then, I declare that our city is an education to Greece, and I declare that in my opinion each single one of our citizens, in all the manifold aspects of life, is able to show himself the rightful lord and owner of his own person and do this, moreover, with exceptional grace and exceptional versatility. And to show that this is no empty boasting for the present occasion, but real tangible fact, you have only to consider the power which our city possesses and which has been won by those very qualities which I have mentioned.

Q In the eyes of Pericles, what are the ideals of Athenian democracy? In what ways does Pericles exaggerate his claims? Why would the Athenian passion for debate described by Pericles have been distasteful to the Spartans?

its supporters and the Athenian Empire. In his classic History of the Peloponnesian War, the great Greek historian Thucydides pointed out that the basic long-range cause of the Peloponnesian War was the fear that Sparta and its allies had of the growing Athenian Empire. Then, too, Athens and Sparta had built two very different kinds of societies, and neither state was able to tolerate the other’s system. A series of disputes finally led to the outbreak of war in 431 B.C. At the beginning of the war, both sides believed they had winning strategies. The Athenians planned to remain behind the protective walls of Athens while the overseas empire and the navy kept them supplied. Pericles knew perfectly well that the Spartans and their allies could beat the Athenians in pitched battles, which was the chief aim of the Spartan strategy. The Spartans and their allies attacked Athens, hoping that the Athenians would send out their army to fight beyond the walls. But Pericles was convinced that Athens was secure behind its walls and retaliated by sending out naval excursions to ravage the seacoast of the Peloponnesus. In the second year of the war, however, plague devastated the crowded city of Athens and wiped out possibly T HE H IGH P OINT

OF

G REEK C IVILIZATION : C LASSICAL G REECE

55

one-third of the population. Pericles himself died the following year (429 B.C.), a severe loss to Athens. Despite the ravages of the plague, the Athenians fought on in a struggle that dragged on for another twenty-seven years. A crushing blow came in 405 B.C. when the Athenian fleet was destroyed at Aegospotami on the Hellespont. Athens was besieged and surrendered in 404. Its walls were torn down, the navy was disbanded, and the Athenian Empire was destroyed. The great war was finally over.

The Decline of the Greek States (404--338 B.C.) The Great Peloponnesian War weakened the major Greek states and led to new alliances among the poleis. After the defeat of Athens in 404 B.C., the Spartans established control over Greece. Oligarchies of local leaders in cooperation with Spartan garrisons were imposed on states ‘‘liberated’’ from Athenian imperialism. But the harsh policies of the oligarchs soon led to a reaction. In Athens, rebellion enabled the Athenians to reestablish their democracy in 403 B.C. and even to rebuild their navy and again become an important force in the Greek world. To maintain its newly organized leadership in Greek affairs, Sparta encouraged a Greek crusade against the Persians as a common enemy. But the Persians had learned the lessons of Greek politics and offered financial support to Athens and other Greek states to oppose Spartan power within Greece itself, thus beginning a new war that finally ended in 386 B.C. The city-state of Thebes, in Boeotia, north of Athens, now began to exert its influence. Under the leader Epaminondas, the Thebans dramatically defeated the Spartan army at the Battle of Leuctra in 371 B.C. Spartan power declined, but Theban ascendancy was short-lived. After the death of Epaminondas in the Battle of Mantinea in 362 B.C., the Thebans could no longer dominate Greek politics. Yet the Greek states continued their petty wars, seemingly oblivious to the growing danger to the north, where King Philip II of Macedonia was developing a unified state that would finally end the destructive fratricide of the Greek states by imposing Macedonian authority.

The Culture and Society of Classical Greece

Q Focus Questions: On what ideals was Classical Greek

art based, and how were these ideals expressed? What questions did the Greek philosophers pose, and what answers did they suggest?

The age known as Classical Greece was a time of remarkable intellectual and cultural growth throughout the 56

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

Greek world, and Periclean Athens was the most important center of Classical Greek culture.

The Writing of History History as we know it, the systematic analysis of past events, was a Greek creation. Herodotus (c. 484--c. 425 B.C.) was the author of The Persian Wars, a work commonly regarded as the first real history in Western civilization. The Greek word historia (from which we derive our word history) means ‘‘research’’ or ‘‘investigation,’’ and it is in the opening line of Herodotus’ History that we find the first recorded use of the word: These are the researches [historia] of Herodotus of Halicarnassus, which he publishes, in the hope of thereby preserving from decay the remembrance of what men have done, and of preventing the great and wonderful actions of the Greeks and the Barbarians from losing their due meed [reward] of glory; and withal to put on record what were their grounds of feud.8

The central theme of Herodotus’ work is the conflict between the Greeks and the Persians, which he viewed as a struggle between freedom and despotism. Herodotus traveled extensively and questioned many people to obtain his information. Although he was a master storyteller and sometimes included considerable fanciful material, Herodotus was also capable of exhibiting a critical attitude toward the materials he used. Thucydides (c. 460--c. 400 B.C.) was a far better historian, indeed, the greatest of the ancient world. Thucydides was an Athenian and a participant in the Peloponnesian War. He had been elected a general, but a defeat in battle led the Athenian assembly to send him into exile, which gave him the opportunity to concentrate on writing his History of the Peloponnesian War. Unlike Herodotus, Thucydides was not concerned with divine forces or gods as causal factors in history. He saw war and politics in purely rational terms, as the activities of human beings. He examined the causes of the Peloponnesian War in a clear and objective fashion, placing much emphasis on the accuracy of his facts. As he stated: And with regard to my factual reporting of the events of the war I have made it a principle not to write down the first story that came my way, and not even to be guided by my own general impressions; either I was present myself at the events which I have described or else I heard of them from eye-witnesses whose reports I have checked with as much thoroughness as possible.9

Thucydides also provided remarkable insight into the human condition. He believed that political situations recur in similar fashion and that the study of history is therefore of great value in understanding the present.

Greek Drama Drama, as we know it, was created by the Greeks and was clearly intended to do more than entertain. It was used to educate citizens and was supported by the state for that reason. Plays were presented in outdoor theaters as part of a religious festival. The form of Greek plays remained rather stable. Three male actors who wore masks acted all the parts. A chorus, also male, played the role of groups of people or served as narrators. Action was very limited because the emphasis was on the story and its meaning. The first Greek dramas were tragedies, plays based on the suffering of a hero and usually ending in disaster. Aeschylus (525--456 B.C.) is the first tragedian whose plays are known to us. Although he wrote ninety tragedies, only seven have survived. As was customary in Greek tragedy, his plots were simple. The entire drama focused on a single tragic event and its meaning. Greek tragedies were sometimes presented in a trilogy (a set of three plays) built around a common theme. The only complete trilogy we possess, called the Oresteia, was written by Aeschylus. The theme of this trilogy is derived from Homer. Agamemnon, the king of Mycenae, returns a hero from the defeat of Troy. His wife, Clytemnestra, avenges the sacrificial death of her daughter Iphigenia by murdering Agamemnon, who had been responsible for Iphigenia’s death. In the second play of the trilogy, Agamemnon’s son Orestes avenges his father by killing his mother. Orestes is now pursued by the Furies, who torment him for killing his mother. Evil acts breed evil acts and suffering is one’s lot, suggests Aeschylus. But Orestes is put on trial and acquitted by Athena, the patron goddess of Athens. Personal vendetta has been eliminated, and law has prevailed. Another great Athenian playwright was Sophocles (c. 496--406 B.C.), whose most famous play was Oedipus the King. The oracle of Apollo foretells how a man (Oedipus) will kill his own father and marry his mother. Despite all attempts at prevention, the tragic events occur. Although it appears that Oedipus suffered the fate determined by the gods, Oedipus also accepts that he himself as a free man must bear responsibility for his actions: ‘‘It was Apollo, friends, Apollo, that brought this bitter bitterness, my sorrows, to completion. But the hand that struck me was none but my own.’’’10 The third outstanding Athenian tragedian, Euripides (c. 485--406 B.C.), tried to create more realistic characters. His plots also became more complex and reflected a greater interest in real-life situations. Perhaps the greatest of all his plays was The Bacchae, which dealt with the introduction of the hysterical rites associated with Dionysus, god of wine. Euripides is often seen as a skeptic who questioned traditional moral and religious values.

Euripides was also critical of the traditional view that war was glorious. He portrayed war as brutal and barbaric. Greek tragedies dealt with universal themes still relevant in our day. They probed such problems as the nature of good and evil, the conflict between spiritual values and the demands of the state or family, the rights of the individual, the nature of divine forces, and human nature. Over and over, the tragic lesson was repeated: humans were free and yet could operate only within limitations imposed by the gods. The real task was to cultivate the balance and moderation that led to awareness of one’s true position. But the pride in human accomplishment and independence is real. As the chorus chants in Sophocles’ Antigone, ‘‘Is there anything more wonderful on earth, our marvelous planet, than the miracle of man?’’11 Greek comedy developed later than tragedy. The plays of Aristophanes (c. 450--c. 385 B.C.), who used both grotesque masks and obscene jokes to entertain the Athenian audience, are examples of Old Comedy, which was used to attack or savagely satirize both politicians and intellectuals. In The Clouds, for example, Aristophanes characterized the philosopher Socrates as the operator of a thought factory where people could learn deceitful ways to handle other people. Of special importance to Aristophanes was his opposition to the Peloponnesian War. Lysistrata, performed in 411 B.C., at a time when Athens was in serious danger of losing the war, conveyed a comic but effective message against the war.

The Arts: The Classical Ideal The arts of the Western world have been largely dominated by the artistic standards established by the Greeks of the Classical period. Classical Greek art did not aim at experimentation for experiment’s sake but was concerned with expressing eternally true ideals. The subject matter was the human being, presented as an object of great beauty. The Classical style, based on the ideals of reason, moderation, balance, and harmony in all things, was meant to civilize the emotions. In architecture, the most important structure was the temple dedicated to a god or goddess. Because Greek religious ceremonies were held at altars in the open air, temples were not used to enclose the faithful, as modern churches are. At the center of Greek temples were walled rooms that housed the statues of deities and treasuries in which gifts to the gods and goddesses were safeguarded. These central rooms were surrounded by a screen of columns that give Greek temples their open structure. The columns were originally made of wood but were changed to limestone in the seventh century and to marble in the fifth century B.C. Some of the finest examples of Greek Classical architecture were built in fifth-century B.C. Athens. T HE C ULTURE

AND

S OCIETY

OF

C LASSICAL G REECE

57

58

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

Adam Crowley/Photodisc/Getty Images

Philosophy is a Greek word that literally means ‘‘love of wisdom.’’ Early Greek philosophers were concerned with the development of critical or rational thought about the nature of the universe and the place of divine forces in it. The Sophists, however, were a group of philosophical teachers in fifth-century Athens who rejected such speculation as foolish; they argued that understanding the universe was beyond the reach of the human mind. It was more Doric, Ionic, and Corinthian Orders. The size and shape of a column constituted one of the most important for individuals to imimportant aspects of Greek temple architecture. The Doric order, with plain capitals and no base, developed first in the Dorian Peloponnesus and was rather simple in comparison to the slender Ionic column, which had prove themselves, so the only an elaborate base and spiral-shaped capitals, and the Corinthian column, which featured leaf-shaped capitals. worthwhile object of study was human behavior. The Sophists were wandering scholars who sold their services as profesThe most famous building, regarded as the greatest exsional teachers to the young men of Greece, especially those ample of the Classical Greek temple, is the Parthenon, of Athens. The Sophists stressed the importance of rhetoric built between 447 and 432 B.C. The master builders Ic(the art of persuasive speaking) in winning debates and tinus and Callicrates directed the construction of this swaying an audience, a skill that was especially valuable in temple consecrated to Athena, the patron goddess of democratic Athens. To the Sophists, there was no absolute Athens. The Parthenon typifies the principles of Classical right or wrong---what was right for one individual might be architecture: the search for calm, clarity, and freedom from superfluous detail. The individual parts of the temple were constructed in accordance with certain mathematical ratios also found in nature. The architects’ concern with these laws of proportion is paralleled by the attempt of Greek philosophers to understand the general laws underlying the natural world. Greek sculpture also developed a Classical style that differed significantly from the artificial stiffness of earlier periods. Statues of the male nude, the favorite subject of Greek sculptors, now exhibited more relaxed attitudes; their faces were self-assured; their bodies were flexible and smooth-muscled. Although the figures possessed natural features that made them lifelike, Greek sculptors sought to achieve not realism but a standard of ideal beauty. Polyclitus, a fifth-century B.C. sculptor, wrote a treatise (now lost) on a canon of proportions that he illustrated in a work known as the Doryphoros. His theory maintained that the use of ideal proportions, based on mathematical The Parthenon. The arts in Classical Greece were designed to express the eternal ideals ratios found in nature, could produce an ideal of reason, moderation, symmetry, balance, and harmony. In architecture, the most form was the temple, and the classic example of this kind of architecture is the human form, beautiful in its perfected and important Parthenon, built between 447 and 432 B.C. Located on the Acropolis in Athens, the refined features. This search for ideal beauty Parthenon was dedicated to Athena, the patron goddess of the city, but it also served as a was the dominant aspect of Classical sculpture. shining example of the power and wealth of the Athenian Empire.

c

c

Art Resource, NY

The Greek Love of Wisdom

Scala/Art Resource, NY

c

Doryphoros. This statue, known as the Doryphoros, or spear carrier, is a Roman copy of the original work by the fifth-century B.C. sculptor Polyclitus, who believed it illustrated the ideal proportions of the human figure. Classical Greek sculpture moved away from the stiffness of earlier figures but retained the young male nude as the favorite subject. The statues became more lifelike, with relaxed poses and flexible, smooth-muscled bodies. The aim of sculpture, however, was not realism but rather the expression of ideal beauty.

wrong for another. True wisdom consisted of being able to perceive and pursue one’s own good. Because of these ideas, many people viewed the Sophists as harmful to society and especially dangerous to the values of young people. One of the critics of the Sophists was Socrates (469-399 B.C.). Because he left no writing of his own, we know about him only from his pupils, especially his most famous one, Plato. By occupation, Socrates was a stonemason, but his true love was philosophy. He taught a number of pupils, but not for pay, because he believed that the goal of education was only to improve the individual.

He made use of a teaching method that is still known by his name. The Socratic method employs a question-andanswer technique to lead pupils to see things for themselves using their own reason. Socrates believed that all real knowledge is within each person; only critical examination was needed to call it forth. This was the real task of philosophy, since ‘‘the unexamined life is not worth living.’’ Socrates’ questioning of authority led him into trouble. Athens had had a tradition of free thought and inquiry, but defeat in the Peloponnesian War had created an environment much less tolerant of open debate and soul-searching. Socrates was accused and convicted of corrupting the youth of Athens by his teaching. An Athenian jury sentenced him to death. One of Socrates’ disciples was Plato (c. 429--347 B.C.), considered by many the greatest philosopher of Western civilization. Unlike his master Socrates, who wrote nothing, Plato wrote a great deal. He was fascinated with the question of reality: How do we know what is real? According to Plato, a higher world of eternal, unchanging Ideas or Forms has always existed. To know these Forms is to know truth. These ideal Forms constitute reality and can only be apprehended by a trained mind, which, of course, is the goal of philosophy. The objects that we perceive with our senses are simply reflections of the ideal Forms. Hence they are shadows, while reality is found in the Forms themselves. Plato’s ideas of government were set out in a dialogue he titled The Republic. Based on his experience in Athens, Plato had come to distrust the workings of democracy. It was obvious to him that individuals could not attain an ethical life unless they lived in a just and rational state. Plato’s search for the just state led him to construct an ideal state in which the population was divided into three basic groups. At the top was an upper class, a ruling elite, the philosopher-kings: ‘‘Unless either philosophers become kings in their countries or those who are now called kings and rulers come to be sufficiently inspired with a genuine desire for wisdom; unless, that is to say, political power and philosophy meet together . . . there can be no rest from troubles . . . for states, nor yet, as I believe, for all mankind.’’12 The second group consisted of citizens who showed courage, the warriors who protected the society. All the rest made up the masses, essentially people driven not by wisdom or courage but by desire. They would be the producers of society---the artisans, tradesmen, and farmers. In Plato’s ideal state, each group fulfilled its assigned role, creating a society that functioned harmoniously. The needs of the community, rather than the happiness of the individual, were Plato’s concern, and he focused on the need for the guardians or rulers, above all, to be removed from any concerns for wealth or prestige so that they could strive for what was best for the community. To rid the guardians of these desires, Plato urged that they live together, forgoing both private property and family life. Plato believed that T HE C ULTURE

AND

S OCIETY

OF

C LASSICAL G REECE

59

women, too, could be rulers; in this he departed radically from the actual practices of the Greek states. Plato established a school at Athens known as the Academy. One of his pupils, who studied there for twenty years, was Aristotle (384--322 B.C.), who later became a tutor to Alexander the Great. Aristotle did not accept Plato’s theory of ideal Forms. Instead he believed that by examining individual objects, we can perceive their form and arrive at universal principles; however, these principles do not exist as a separate higher world of reality beyond material things but are a part of things themselves. Aristotle’s interests, then, lay in analyzing and classifying things based on thorough research and investigation. His interests were wide-ranging, and he wrote treatises on an enormous number of subjects: ethics, logic, politics, poetry, astronomy, geology, biology, and physics. Like Plato, Aristotle wished for an effective form of government that would rationally direct human affairs. Unlike Plato, he did not seek an ideal state based on the embodiment of an ideal Form of justice; he tried to find the best form of government through a rational examination of existing governments. For his Politics, Aristotle examined the constitutions of 158 states and arrived at general categories for organizing governments. He identified three good forms of government: monarchy, aristocracy, and constitutional government. But based on his examination, he warned that monarchy can easily turn into tyranny, aristocracy into oligarchy, and constitutional government into radical democracy or anarchy. He favored constitutional government as the best form for most people. Aristotle’s philosophical and political ideas played an enormous role in the development of Western thought during the Middle Ages (see Chapter 9). So did his ideas on women. Aristotle believed that marriage was meant to provide mutual comfort between man and woman and contributed to the overall happiness of a community: ‘‘The community needs both male and female excellences or it can only be half-blessed.’’13 Nevertheless, Aristotle maintained that women were biologically inferior to men: ‘‘A woman is, as it were, an infertile male. She is female in fact on account of a kind of inadequacy.’’ Therefore, according to Aristotle, women must be subordinated to men, not only in the community but also in marriage: ‘‘The association between husband and wife is clearly an aristocracy. The man rules by virtue of merit, and in the sphere that is his by right; but he hands over to this wife such matters as are suitable for her.’’14

Greek Religion Greek religion was intricately connected to every aspect of daily life; it was both social and practical. Public festivals, which originated in religious practices, served specific functions: boys were prepared to be warriors, girls to be 60

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

mothers. Since religion was related to every aspect of life, citizens had to have a proper attitude toward the gods. Religion was a civic cult necessary for the well-being of the state. Temples dedicated to a god or goddess were the major buildings in Greek society. Homer gave an account of the gods that provided Greek religion with a definite structure. Over a period of time, most Greeks came to accept a common religion based on twelve chief gods and goddesses who were thought to live on Mount Olympus, the highest mountain in Greece. Among the twelve were Zeus, the chief deity and father of the gods; Athena, goddess of wisdom and crafts; Apollo, god of the sun and poetry; Aphrodite, goddess of love; and Poseidon, brother of Zeus and god of the seas and earthquakes. The twelve Olympian gods were common to all Greeks, who thus shared a basic polytheistic religion. Each polis usually singled out one of the twelve Olympians as a guardian deity of its community. Athena was the patron goddess of Athens, for example. Because it was desirable to have the gods look favorably on one’s activities, ritual assumed enormous proportions in Greek religion. Prayers were often combined with gifts to the gods based on the principle ‘‘I give to you, the gods, so that you will give in return.’’ Ritual also meant sacrifices of animals or food. Animals were burned on an altar in front of a temple or a small altar in front of a home. Festivals also developed as a way to honor the gods and goddesses. Some of these (the Panhellenic celebrations) were important to all Greeks and were held at special locations, such as those dedicated to the worship of Zeus at Olympia or to Apollo at Delphi. Numerous events were held in honor of the gods at the great festivals, including athletic competitions to which all Greeks were invited. The first such games were held at the Olympic festival in 776 B.C. and then held every four years thereafter to honor Zeus. Initially, the Olympic contests consisted of foot races and wrestling, but later, boxing, javelin throwing, and various other contests were added. The Greeks also had a great desire to know the will of the gods. To do so, they made use of the oracle, a sacred shrine dedicated to a god or goddess who revealed the future. The most famous was the oracle of Apollo at Delphi, located on the side of Mount Parnassus, overlooking the Gulf of Corinth. At Delphi, a priestess listened to questions while in a state of ecstasy that was believed to be induced by Apollo. Her responses were interpreted by the priests and given in verse form to the person asking questions. Representatives of states and individuals traveled to Delphi to consult the oracle of Apollo. States might inquire whether they should undertake a military expedition; individuals might raise such questions as ‘‘Heracleidas asks whether he will have offspring from the wife he has now.’’ Responses were often enigmatic and at times even politically motivated. Croesus, the king of Lydia in Asia

The Greek city-state was, above all, a male community: only adult male citizens took part in public life. In Athens, this meant the exclusion of women, slaves, and foreign residents, or roughly 85 percent of the population in Attica. Of the 150,000 citizens in Athens, about 43,000 were adult males who exercised political power. Resident foreigners, who numbered about 35,000, received the protection of the laws but were also subject to some of the responsibilities of citizens, namely, military service and the funding of festivals. The remaining social group, the slaves, numbered around 100,000. Most slaves in Athens worked in the home as cooks and maids or toiled in the fields. Some were owned by the state and worked on public construction projects. Economy and Lifestyle The Athenian economy was largely agricultural but highly diversified. Athenian farmers grew grains, vegetables, and fruit for local consumption; cultivated vines and olive trees for wine and olive oil, which were exportable products; and grazed sheep and goats for wool and milk products. Given the size of its population and the lack of abundant fertile land, Athens had to import between 50 and 80 percent of its grain, a staple in the Athenian diet. Trade was thus highly important to the Athenian economy. The building of the port at Piraeus and the Long Walls (a series of defensive walls nearly 5 miles long connecting Athens and Piraeus) created the physical conditions that made Athens the leading trade center in the Greek world of the fifth century B.C. Artisans were more important to the Athenian economy than their relatively small numbers might suggest. Athens was the chief producer of high-quality painted pottery at the time. Other crafts had moved beyond the small workshop into the factory through the use of slave labor. The shield factory of Lysias, for example, employed 120 slaves. Public works projects also provided jobs for Athenians. The building program of Pericles, financed from the Delian League treasury, made possible the hiring of both skilled and unskilled labor. The Athenian lifestyle was simple. Houses were furnished with necessities bought from artisans, such as beds, couches, tables, chests, pottery, stools, baskets, and cooking utensils. Wives and slaves made clothes and blankets at home. The Athenian diet was rather plain and relied on

Family and Relationships The family was an important institution in ancient Athens. Husband, wife, and children constituted the nuclear family, although other dependent relatives and slaves often shared the household. The family’s primary social function was to produce new citizens. Strict laws stipulated that a citizen must be the offspring of a legally acknowledged marriage between two Athenian citizens whose parents were also citizens. Women were citizens who could participate in most religious cults and festivals but were otherwise excluded from public life. They could not own property beyond personal items and always had a male guardian. The function of the Athenian woman as wife was very clear. Her foremost obligation was to bear children, especially male children who would preserve the family line. The marriage formula that Athenians used put it succinctly: ‘‘I give this woman for the procreation of legitimate children.’’ A wife was also expected to take care of her family and her house, either doing the household work herself or supervising the slaves who did the actual work (see the box on p. 62). Women were kept under strict control. Since they were married at fourteen or fifteen, they were taught

Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY

Daily Life in Classical Athens

such basic foods as barley, wheat, millet, lentils, grapes, figs, olives, almonds, bread made at home, vegetables, eggs, fish, cheese, and chicken. Olive oil was widely used, not only for eating but also for lighting lamps and rubbing on the body after washing and exercise. Although country houses kept animals, they were used for reasons other than their flesh: oxen for plowing, sheep for wool, goats for milk and cheese.

c

Minor, who was known for his vast wealth, sent messengers to the oracle at Delphi, asking whether he should go to war with the Persians. The oracle replied that if Croesus attacked the Persians, a mighty empire would be destroyed. Overjoyed to hear these words, Croesus made war on the Persians but was crushed by the enemy forces. A mighty empire was indeed destroyed---his own.

Women in the Loom Room. In Athens, women were considered citizens and could participate in religious cults and festivals, but they were barred from any political activity. Women were thought to belong in the home, caring for the children and the needs of the household. A principal activity of Greek women was the making of clothes. This scene from the side of a fifth-century B.C. Greek vessel shows one woman spinning and another holding a small hand loom.

T HE C ULTURE

AND

S OCIETY

OF

C LASSICAL G REECE

61

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS WOMEN IN ATHENS AND SPARTA In Classical Athens, a woman’s place was in the home. She had two major responsibilities as a wife—bearing and raising children and managing the household. In the first selection, from a dialogue on estate management, Xenophon relates the instructions of an Athenian to his new wife. Although women in Sparta had the same responsibilities as women in Athens, they assumed somewhat different roles as a result of the Spartan lifestyle. The second, third, and fourth selections demonstrate these differences as seen in the accounts of three ancient Greek writers.

Xenophon, CEconomicus [Ischomachus addresses his new wife:] For it seems to me, dear, that the gods with great discernment have coupled together male and female, as they are called, chiefly in order that they may form a perfect partnership in mutual service. For, in the first place that the various species of living creatures may not fail, they are joined in wedlock for the production of children. Secondly, offspring to support them in old age is provided by this union, to human beings, at any rate. Thirdly, human beings live not in the open air, like beasts, but obviously need shelter. Nevertheless, those who mean to win stores to fill the covered place, have need of someone to work at the open-air occupations; since plowing, sowing, planting and grazing are all such open-air employments; and these supply the needful food. . . . For he made the man’s body and mind more capable of enduring cold and heat, and journeys and campaigns; and therefore imposed on him the outdoor tasks. To the woman, since he had made her body less capable of such endurance, I take it that God has assigned the indoor tasks. And knowing that he had created in the woman and had imposed on her the nourishment of the infants, he meted out to her a larger portion of affection for newborn babes than to the man. . . . Your duty will be to remain indoors and send out those servants whose work is outside, and superintend those who are to work indoors, and to receive the incomings, and distribute so much of them as must be spent, and watch over so much as is to be kept in store, and take care that the sum laid by for a year be not spent in a month. And when wool is brought to you, you must see that cloaks are made for those that want them. You must see too that the dry corn [grain] is in good condition for making food. One of the duties that fall to you, however, will perhaps seem rather thankless: you will have to see that any servant who is ill is cared for.

good possible; wine is certainly not allowed them at all, or only if well diluted. Just as the majority of craftsmen are sedentary, the other Greeks expect their girls to sit quietly and work wool. But how can one expect girls brought up like this to give birth to healthy babies? Lycurgus (see p. 52) considered slave girls quite adequate to produce clothing, and thought that for free women the most important job was to bear children. In the first place, therefore, he prescribed physical training for the female sex no less than for the male; and next, just as for men, he arranged competitions of racing and strength for women also, thinking that if both parents were strong their children would be more robust.

Aristotle, Politics Now, this license of the [Spartan] women, from the earliest times, was to be expected. For the men were absent from home for long periods of time on military expeditions, fighting the war against the Argives and again against the Arkadians and Messenians;. . . . And nearly two-fifths of the whole country is in the hands of women, both because there have been numerous heiresses, and because large dowries are customary. And yet it would have been better to have regulated them, and given none at all or small or even moderate ones. But at present it is possible for a man to give an inheritance to whomever he chooses.

Plutarch, Lycurgus Since Lycurgus regarded education as the most important and finest duty of the legislator, he began at the earliest stage by looking at matters relating to marriages and births. . . . For he exercised the girls’ bodies with races and wrestling and discus and javelin throwing, so that the embryos formed in them would have a strong start in strong bodies and develop better, and they would undergo their pregnancies with vigor and would cope well and easily with childbirth. He got rid of daintiness and sheltered upbringing and effeminacy of all kinds, by accustoming the girls no less than the young men to walking naked in processions and dancing and singing at certain festivals, when young men were present and watching. . . . The nudity of the girls had nothing disgraceful in it for modesty was present and immorality absent, but rather it made them accustomed to simplicity and enthusiastic as to physical fitness, and gave the female sex a taste of noble spirit, inasmuch as they too had a share in valor and ambition.

Xenophon, Constitution of the Spartans

Q In what ways were the lifestyles of Athenian and Spartan

First, to begin at the beginning, I will start with the begetting of children. Elsewhere those girls who are going to have children and are considered to have been well brought up are nourished with the plainest diet which is practicable and the smallest amount of luxury

women the same? In what ways were they different? How did the Athenian and Spartan views of the world shape their conceptions of gender and gender roles, and why were those conceptions different?

62

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

about their responsibilities at an early age. Although many managed to learn to read and play musical instruments, they were often cut off from any formal education. And women were supposed to remain at home, out of sight, except when attending funerals or festivals. If they left the house, they were to be accompanied. Male homosexuality was also a prominent feature of Athenian life. The Greek homosexual ideal was a relationship between a mature man and a young male. It is most likely that this was an aristocratic ideal and not one

practiced by the common people. Although the relationship was frequently physical, the Greeks also viewed it as educational. The older male (the ‘‘lover’’) won the love of his ‘‘beloved’’ by his value as a teacher and by the devotion he demonstrated in training his charge. In a sense, this love relationship was seen as a way of initiating young men into the male world of political and military dominance. The Greeks did not feel that the coexistence of homosexual and heterosexual predilections created any special problems for individuals or their society.

TIMELINE 1600

B.C.

1340

B.C.

1080

B.C.

820

560

B.C.

300

B.C.

B.C.

Mycenaean Greece

Dark Age Age of Greek expansion Classical Age

Reforms in Sparta Cleisthenes’ reforms Battle of Marathon

Homer

Great Peloponnesian War

Parthenon Plato and Aristotle Greek drama (Aeschylus, Sophocles, Euripides)

CONCLUSION The civilization of the ancient Greeks was the fountainhead of Western culture. Socrates, Plato, and Aristotle established the foundations of Western philosophy. Herodotus and Thucydides created the discipline of history. Our literary forms are largely derived from Greek poetry and drama. Greek notions of harmony, proportion, and beauty have remained the touchstones for all subsequent Western art. A rational method of inquiry, so important to modern science, was conceived in ancient Greece. Many political

terms are of Greek origin, and so are our concepts of the rights and duties of citizenship, especially as they were conceived in Athens, which gave the idea of democracy to the Western world. Especially during their Classical period, the Greeks raised and debated fundamental questions about the purpose of human existence, the structure of human society, and the nature of the universe that have concerned Western thinkers ever since. Although the Greeks did not conceive of their civilization as a cultural entity, their artistic,

C ONCLUSION

63

intellectual, and political contributions were crucial to the foundations of Western civilization. All of these achievements came from a group of small city-states in ancient Greece. And yet Greek civilization also contains an element of tragedy. For all of their brilliant accomplishments, the Greeks were

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING General Works A standard one-volume reference work for Greek history is J. B. Bury and R. Meiggs, A History of Greece to the Death of Alexander the Great, 4th ed. (New York, 1975). For a brief illustrated introduction, see J. Camp and E. Fisher, The World of the Ancient Greeks (London, 2002). Other good general introductions to Greek history include T. R. Martin, Ancient Greece (New Haven, Conn., 1996); P. Cartledge, The Cambridge Illustrated History of Ancient Greece (Cambridge, 1998); and W. Donlan et al., Ancient Greece: A Political, Social, and Cultural History (New York, 1998). On the Greek way of war, see V. D. Hanson, The Wars of the Ancient Greeks, rev. ed. (London, 2006). Early Greek History Early Greek history is examined in O. Murray, Early Greece, 2d ed. (Cambridge, Mass., 1993); M. I. Finley, Early Greece: The Bronze and Archaic Ages, 2d ed. (New York, 1982); and J. L. Fitton, The Discovery of the Greek Bronze Age (Cambridge, 1995). On Homer and his world, see the modern classic by M. I. Finley, The World of Odysseus, 2d ed. (New York, 1979). On the Trojan War, see B. Strauss, The Trojan War: A New History (New York, 2006). Archaic Greece A good general work on Archaic Greece is J. Hall, History of the Archaic Greek World, c. 1200--479 B.C. (London, 2006). On colonization, see J. Boardman, The Greeks Overseas, rev. ed. (Baltimore, 1980). On tyranny, see J. F. McGlew, Tyranny and Political Culture in Ancient Greece (Ithaca, N.Y., 1993). The best histories of Sparta are W. Forrest, A History of Sparta, 950--121 B.C., 2d ed. (London, 1980), and P. A. Cartledge, Sparta and Laconia: A Regional History, 1300--362 B.C., 2d ed. (London, 2002). See also P. A. Cartledge, Spartan Reflections (Berkeley, Calif., 2001) and The Spartans (New York, 2003). On early Athens, see the still valuable A. Jones, Athenian Democracy (London, 1957), and R. Osborne, Demos (New York, 1985). The Persian Wars are examined in P. Green, The Greco-Persian Wars (Berkeley, Calif., 1996). Classical Greece A general history of Classical Greece can be found in P. J. Rhodes, A History of the Greek Classical World, 478--323 B.C. (London, 2006), and S. Hornblower, The Greek World, 479--323 B.C., 3d ed. (London, 2002). Valuable works on Athens include D. Kagan, Pericles of Athens and the Birth of Democracy (New York, 1991); K. A. Raaflaub et al., Origins of Democracy in Ancient Greece (Berkeley, Calif., 2007); and D. Stockton, The Classical Athenian Democracy (Oxford, 1990). There is also a good collection of essays in P. J. J. Rhodes, ed., Athenian Democracy (New York, 2004). An interesting work on the 64

C H A P T E R 3 THE CIVILIZATION OF THE GREEKS

unable to rise above the divisions and rivalries that caused them to fight each other and undermine their own civilization. Luckily, their contributions to Western civilization survived their political struggles. But even their wars gave rise to an approach to organized fighting that dominated the Western world for centuries.

intellectual and political history of Athens in the late fifth century is M. Munn, The School of History: Athens in the Age of Socrates (Berkeley, Calif., 2000). On the development of the Athenian Empire, see M. F. McGregor, The Athenians and Their Empire (Vancouver, 1987). The best way to examine the Great Peloponnesian War is to read the work of Thucydides, History of the Peloponnesian War, trans. R. Warner (Harmondsworth, England, 1954). Recent accounts include D. Kagan, The Peloponnesian War (New York, 2003); J. F. F. Lazenby, The Peloponnesian War (New York, 2004); and V. D. Hanson, A War like No Other (New York, 2006). On Athens in the fourth century B.C., see M. H. Hansen, The Athenian Democracy in the Age of Demosthenes (Oxford, 1991). Greek Culture For a history of Greek art, see M. Fullerton, Greek Art (Cambridge, 2000). On sculpture, see A. Stewart, Greek Sculpture: An Exploration (New Haven, Conn., 1990). On Greek drama, see the general work by J. De Romilly, A Short History of Greek Literature (Chicago, 1985). On Greek philosophy, a detailed study is available in W. K. C. Guthrie, A History of Greek Philosophy, 6 vols. (Cambridge, 1962--1981). Greek Religion On Greek religion, see J. N. Bremmer, Greek Religion (Oxford, 1994), and R. Garland, Religion and the Greeks (New York, 1994). On athletic competitions, see S. G. Miller, Ancient Greek Athletics (New Haven, Conn., 2004). Family and Gender Issues On the family and women, see C. B. Patterson, The Family in Greek History (New York, 1998); P. Brule, Women of Ancient Greece, trans. A. Nevill (Edinburgh, 2004); E. Fantham et al., Women in the Classical World (New York, 1994); and S. Blundell, Women in Ancient Greece (London, 1995). On the role of women in religious rituals, see J. B. Connelly, Portrait of a Priestess: Women and Ritual in Ancient Greece (Princeton, N.J., 2007). On slavery, see N. R. E. Fisher, Slavery in Classical Greece (New York, 1995). On homosexuality, see K. J. Dover, Greek Homosexuality (London, 1978), and E. Cantarella, Bisexuality in the Ancient World (New Haven, Conn., 1992). B.C.

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

65

CHAPTER 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

Macedonia and the Conquests of Alexander How was Alexander able to amass his empire, and what might his rule have been like if he had lived longer? Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY

Q

The World of the Hellenistic Kingdoms What were the main features of the political and military organization of the Hellenistic kingdoms, and how did the new political systems differ from those of the Greek city-states? What were the main social developments in the Hellenistic world?

Culture in the Hellenistic World

Q

What achievements in literature, art, science, and philosophy occurred during the Hellenistic period?

Religion in the Hellenistic World

Q

Which religions were prominent during the Hellenistic period, and what does their popularity suggest about Hellenistic society?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

66

How was the Hellenistic period different from the Greek Classical Age?

c

Q

Detail of Alexander from the Battle of Issus mosaic in Pompeii

IN 334 B.C., ALEXANDER THE GREAT led an army of Greeks and Macedonians into western Asia to launch his attack on the Persian Empire. Years of campaigning resulted in the complete defeat of the Persians, and in 327, Alexander and his troops pushed east into India. But two more years of fighting in an exotic and difficult terrain exhausted his troops, who rebelled and refused to go on. Reluctantly, Alexander turned back, leading his men across the arid lands of southern Persia. Conditions in the desert were appalling; the blazing sun and lack of water led to thousands of deaths. At one point, when a group of his soldiers found a little water, they scooped it up in a helmet and gave it to Alexander. Then, according to Arrian, an ancient Greek historian, Alexander, ‘‘with a word of thanks for the gift, took the helmet and, in full view of his troops, poured the water on the ground. So extraordinary was the effect of this action that the water wasted by Alexander was as good as a drink for every man in the army.’’ Ever the great military leader, Alexander had found yet another way to inspire his troops. Alexander the Great was the son of King Philip II of Macedonia, who in 338 B.C. had defeated the Greeks and established his control over the Greek peninsula. When Alexander became king after Philip’s death, he led the Macedonians and Greeks on a spectacular conquest

of the Persian Empire, opening the door to the spread of Greek culture throughout the ancient Near East. Greek settlers poured into the Near Eastern lands to work as bureaucrats, traders, soldiers, and scholars. Alexander’s triumph gave rise to a new series of kingdoms that blended the achievements of the Eastern world with the cultural outlook and attitudes of the Greeks. We use the term Hellenistic to designate this new order. The Hellenistic world was the world of Greeks and non-Greek easterners, and it resulted, in its own way, in a remarkable series of accomplishments that are sometimes underestimated. They form the story of this chapter.

Macedonia and the Conquests of Alexander

Q Focus Question: How was Alexander able to amass his empire, and what might his rule have been like if he had lived longer?

While the Greek city-states were continuing their fratricidal warfare, to their north a new and ultimately powerful kingdom was emerging. The Macedonians were probably not Greek; scholars are still unsure whether the Macedonian language was an archaic dialect of Greek or an altogether separate language. The Greeks viewed the Macedonians as barbarians, although beginning in the fifth century B.C., the Greeks allowed them to participate as ‘‘Greeks’’ in the Olympic Games. Unlike the Greeks, the Macedonians were mostly rural folk and were organized in tribes, not city-states. Not until the end of the fifth century B.C., during the reign of King Archelaus (c. 413--399 B.C.), did Macedonia emerge as an important kingdom. But his reign was followed by decades of foreign invasions and internal strife until King Philip II (359--336 B.C.) took control and turned Macedonia into the chief power of the Greek world. Philip instituted military reforms that transformed Macedonia into a major military power. He created a new phalanx of infantrymen who were more lightly armed than Greek hoplites; each carried a smaller shield and a shorter sword. But his chief weapon was a long thrusting spear---18 feet in length, or double that of the Greek hoplite. The Macedonian phalanx was also supported by strong cavalry contingents that served to break the opposing line of battle and create disorder in the enemy’s ranks. Philip’s new army defeated the Illyrians to the west and the Thracians to the north and east and was then drawn into the Greeks’ interstate conflicts.

Philip and the Conquest of Greece The Greeks had mixed reactions to Philip’s growing strength. Some viewed Philip as a savior who would rescue

the Greeks from themselves by uniting them. Many Athenians, however, especially the orator Demosthenes, portrayed Philip as ruthless, deceitful, treacherous, and barbaric and called on the Athenians to undertake a struggle against him. In a speech to the Athenian assembly, Demosthenes exclaimed: ‘‘[Philip] is not only no Greek, nor related to the Greeks, but not even a barbarian from any place that can be named with honor, but a pestilent knave from Macedonia, from where it was never yet possible to buy a decent slave.’’ Demosthenes’ repeated calls for action, combined with Philip’s rapid expansion, finally spurred Athens into action. Allied with a number of other Greek states, Athens fought the Macedonians at the Battle of Chaeronea, near Thebes, in 338 B.C. The Macedonian army crushed the Greeks, and Philip was now free to consolidate his control over the Greek peninsula. The independent Greek polis, long the basic political unit of the Greek world, came to an end as Philip formed an alliance of the Greek states that we call the Corinthian League because it met at Corinth. All members took an oath of loyalty: ‘‘I swear by Zeus, Earth, Sun, Poseidon, Athena, Ares, and all the gods and goddesses, I will abide by the peace, and I will not break the agreements with Philip the Macedonian, nor will I take up arms with hostile intent against any one of those who abide by the oaths either by land or by sea.’’1 Although Philip allowed the Greek city-states autonomy in domestic affairs, he retained the general direction of their foreign affairs. Philip insisted that the Greek states end their bitter rivalries and cooperate with him in a war against Persia. Before Philip could undertake his invasion of Asia, however, he was assassinated, leaving the task to his son Alexander.

Alexander the Great Alexander was only twenty when he became king of Macedonia. The illustrious conqueror was in many ways prepared for kingship by his father, who had taken Alexander along on military campaigns and had given him control of the cavalry at the important Battle of Chaeronea. After his father’s assassination, Alexander moved quickly to assert his authority, securing the Macedonian frontiers and smothering a rebellion in Greece. He then turned to his father’s dream, the invasion of the Persian Empire. The Conquests of Alexander There is no doubt that Alexander was taking a chance in attacking the Persian Empire. Although weakened in some respects, it was still a strong state. Alexander’s fleet was inferior to the Persian navy, and his finances were shaky at best. In the spring of 334 B.C., Alexander entered Asia Minor with an army of some 37,000 men. About half were Macedonians, the rest M ACEDONIA

AND THE

C ONQUESTS

OF

A LEXANDER

67

Alexander the Great. This marble head of Alexander the Great was made in the second or first century B.C. The long hair and tilt of his head reflect the description of Alexander in the literary sources of the time. This portrait shows a youthful and even godlike appearance. Alexander claimed to be descended from Heracles, a Greek hero worshiped as a god, and as pharaoh of Egypt, he gained recognition as a living deity. It is reported that at the base of one of his statues, now lost, in which Alexander was shown gazing at Zeus, were the words ‘‘I place the earth under my sway; you, O Zeus, keep Olympus.’’

c

Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY

c

British Museum, London, UK//HIP/Art Resource, NY

Greeks and other allies. The cavalry, which would play an important role as a striking force, numbered about 5,000. His first confrontation with the Persians, in a battle at the Granicus River in 334 B.C. (see Map 4.1), nearly cost him his life but resulted in a major victory. By spring 333, the entire western half of Asia Minor was in Alexander’s hands, and the Ionian Greek cities of western Asia Minor had been ‘‘liberated’’ from the Persian oppressor. Meanwhile, the Persian king, Darius III, mobilized his forces to stop Alexander’s army. Although the Persian troops outnumbered Alexander’s, the Battle of Issus was fought on a narrow field that canceled the advantage of superior numbers and resulted in another Macedonian success. The Persian cause was certainly not helped when Darius made a spectacular exit from the battlefield before it was even clear who would win. After his victory at Issus in 333 B.C.,

Alexander and Darius at the Battle of Issus. This late-second- or early-first-century B.C. mosaic from the floor of a Roman villa at Pompeii is thought to be a copy of a panel painting by Philoxenos of Eretria about 310 B.C. The mosaic depicts the battle between Alexander and Darius III, king of Persia, at Issus in 333 B.C. Alexander is seen at the left on horseback, recklessly leading his troops into battle. Darius is shown in his chariot, already turning around to flee from the enemy. 68

C H A P T E R 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

Alexander turned south, and by the winter of 332, Syria, Palestine, and Egypt were under his domination. He took the traditional title of pharaoh of Egypt and founded the first of a series of cities named after him (Alexandria) as the Greek administrative capital of Egypt. It became (and remains today) one of Egypt’s and the Mediterranean world’s most important cities. The next year, Alexander renewed his offensive, moving into the territory of the ancient Mesopotamian kingdoms and fighting a decisive battle with the Persians not far from Babylon. At Gaugamela, Alexander’s men were clearly outnumbered by the Persian forces, which had established the battle site on a broad, open plain where their war chariots could maneuver to best advantage. Alexander was able to break through the center of the Persian line with his heavy cavalry, followed by the infantry. The battle turned into a rout, although Darius managed to escape. After his victory, Alexander entered

CHRONOLOGY Macedonia and the Conquests of Alexander Reign of Philip II

359--336 B.C.

Battle of Chaeronea; Philip II conquers Greece

338 B.C.

Reign of Alexander the Great

336--323 B.C.

Alexander invades Asia; Battle of Granicus River

334 B.C.

Battle of Issus

333 B.C

Battle of Gaugamela

331 B.C.

Fall of Persepolis, the Persian capital

330 B.C.

Alexander enters India

327 B.C.

Battle of Hydaspes River

326 B.C.

Death of Alexander

323 B.C.

MAP 4.1 The Conquests of Alexander the Great. In just twelve years, Alexander the Great conquered vast territories. Dominating lands from west of the Nile to east of the Indus, he brought the Persian Empire, Egypt, and much of the Middle East under his control and laid the foundations for the Hellenistic world. Q Approximately how far did he and his troops travel during those twelve years? M ACEDONIA

AND THE

C ONQUESTS

OF

A LEXANDER

69

ALEXANDER MEETS In his campaigns in India, Alexander fought a number of difficult battles. At the Battle of the Hydaspes River, he faced a strong opponent in the Indian king Porus. After defeating Porus, Alexander treated him with respect, according to Arrian, Alexander’s ancient biographer.

Arrian, The Campaigns of Alexander Throughout the action Porus had proved himself a man indeed, not only as a commander but as a soldier of the truest courage. When he saw his cavalry cut to pieces, most of his infantry dead, and his elephants killed or roaming riderless and bewildered about the field, his behavior was very different from that of the Persian King Darius: unlike Darius, he did not lead the scramble to save his own skin, but so long as a single unit of his men held together, he fought bravely on. It was only when he was himself wounded that he turned the elephant on which he rode and began to withdraw. . . . Alexander, anxious to save the life of this great and gallant soldier, sent . . . [to him] an Indian named Meroes, a man he had been told had long been Porus’ friend. Porus listened to Meroes’ message, stopped his elephant, and dismounted; he was much distressed by thirst, so when he had revived himself by drinking, he told Meroes to conduct him with all speed to Alexander.

Babylon and then proceeded to the Persian capitals at Susa and Persepolis, where he acquired the Persian treasuries and took possession of vast quantities of gold and silver. By 330, Alexander was again on the march. After Darius was killed by one of his own men, Alexander took the title and office of the Great King of the Persians. But he was not content to rest with the spoils of the Persian Empire. During the next three years, he moved east and northeast, as far as modern Pakistan. By summer 327 B.C., he had entered India, which at that time was divided into a number of warring states. In 326 B.C., Alexander and his armies arrived in the plains of northwestern India. At the Battle of the Hydaspes River, Alexander won a brutally fought battle (see the box above). When Alexander made clear his determination to march east to conquer more of India, his soldiers, weary of campaigning year after year, mutinied and refused to go further. Alexander acceded to their demands and agreed to return, leading his troops through southern Persia across the Gedrosian Desert, where they suffered heavy losses from appalling desert conditions. Alexander and the remnant of his army went to Susa and then Babylon, where he planned still more campaigns. But in June 323 B.C., weakened from wounds, fever, and probably excessive alcohol, he died at the age of thirty-two. 70

C H A P T E R 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

AN INDIAN

KING

Alexander, informed of his approach, rode out to meet him. . . . When they met, he reined in his horse and looked at his adversary with admiration: he was a magnificent figure of a man, over seven feet high and of great personal beauty; his bearing had lost none of its pride; his air was of one brave man meeting another, of a king in the presence of a king, with whom he had fought honorably for his kingdom. Alexander was the first to speak. ‘‘What,’’ he said, ‘‘do you wish that I should do with you?’’ ‘‘Treat me as a king ought,’’ Porus is said to have replied. ‘‘For my part,’’ said Alexander, pleased by his answer, ‘‘your request shall be granted. But is there not something you would wish for yourself? Ask it.’’ ‘‘Everything,’’ said Porus, ‘‘is contained in this one request.’’ The dignity of these words gave Alexander even more pleasure, and he restored to Porus his sovereignty over his subjects, adding to his realm other territory of even greater extent. Thus he did indeed use a brave man as a king ought, and from that time forward found him in every way a loyal friend.

Q What do we learn from Arrian’s account about Alexander’s military skills and Indian methods of fighting?

The Legacy of Alexander Alexander is one of the most puzzling great figures in history. Historians relying on the same sources give vastly different pictures of him. Some portray him as an idealistic visionary and others as a ruthless Machiavellian. No doubt he was a great military leader---a master of strategy and tactics, fighting in every kind of terrain and facing every kind of opponent. Alexander was a brave and even reckless fighter who was quite willing to lead his men into battle and risk his own life. His example inspired his troops to follow him into unknown lands and difficult situations. We know that he sought to imitate Achilles, the warriorhero of Homer’s Iliad, an important ideal in Greek culture. Alexander kept a copy of the Iliad---and a dagger---under his pillow. He also claimed to be descended from Heracles, the Greek hero who came to be worshiped as a god. Alexander also aspired to divine honors; as pharaoh of Egypt, he became a living god according to Egyptian tradition and at one point even sent instructions to the Greek cities to ‘‘vote him a god.’’ Regardless of his ideals, motives, or views about himself, one fact stands out: Alexander ushered in a new age, the Hellenistic era. The word Hellenistic is derived from a Greek word meaning ‘‘to imitate Greeks.’’ It is an appropriate way, then, to describe an age that saw the

FILM & HISTORY ALEXANDER (2004)

Alexander’s wish to be a god. Certainly, Alexander aspired to divine honors; at one point he sent instructions to the Greek cities to ‘‘vote him a god.’’ Stone’s portrayal of Alexander is perhaps most realistic in presenting Alexander’s drinking binges and his bisexuality, which was common in the Greco-Roman world. His marriage to Roxane (Rosario Dawson), daughter of a Bactrian noble, is shown, as well as his love for his lifelong companion Hephaestion (Jared Leto) and his sexual relationship with the Persian male slave Bagoas (Francisco Bosch). The film contains a number of inaccurate historical details. Alexander’s first encounters with the Persian royal princesses and Bagoas did not occur when he entered Babylon for the first time. Alexander did not kill Cleitas in India, and he was not wounded in India at the Battle of Hydaspes but at the siege of Malli. Specialists in Persian history have also argued that Persian military forces were much more disciplined than they are shown.

extension of the Greek language and ideas to the nonGreek world of the Near East. Alexander’s destruction of the Persian monarchy had extended Greco-Macedonian rule over an enormous area. It created opportunities for Greek engineers, intellectuals, merchants, soldiers, and administrators. While the Greeks on the mainland might remain committed to the ideals of their citystates, those who followed Alexander and his successors participated in a new political unity based on the principle of monarchy. Alexander had transformed his

army from a Macedonian force into an international one, owing loyalty only to himself. His successors used force to establish military monarchies that dominated the Hellenistic world after his death. Autocratic power, based on military strength and pretensions of divine rule, became a regular feature of those Hellenistic monarchies and was among Alexander’s political contributions to the Hellenistic world. His vision of empire no doubt inspired the Romans, who were the ultimate heirs of Alexander’s legacy.

Warner Bros/The Kobal Collection/Jaap Buitendijk

Alexander is a product of director Oliver Stone’s lifelong fascination with Alexander, the king of Macedonia who conquered the Persian Empire in the fourth century B.C. and initiated the Hellenistic era. Stone’s epic film cost $150 million, which resulted in an elaborate and often visually beautiful film that attempts to tell the story of Alexander’s short life. Narrated by the aging Ptolemy (Anthony Hopkins), one of Alexander’s Macedonian generals who took control of Egypt after his death, the film tells the life of Alexander (Colin Farrell) through an intermix of battle scenes, scenes showing the progress of Alexander and his army through the Middle East and India, and flashbacks from his early years. Stone portrays Alexander’s relationship with his mother, Olympias (Angelina Jolie), as instrumental in his early development while also focusing on his rocky relationship with his father, King Philip II (Val Kilmer). The movie elaborates on the major battle at Gaugamela in 331 B.C., where the Persian leader Darius is forced to flee, and then follows Alexander as he conquers the rest of the Persian Empire and continues east into India. After his troops begin to mutiny, Alexander finally returns to the Persian capital of Babylon, where he dies on June 10, 323 B.C. The enormous amount of money spent on the film enabled Stone to achieve a stunning visual spectacle, but as history, the film leaves much to be desired. The character of Alexander is never developed in depth. He is shown at times as a weak character who is plagued by doubts over his own decisions and often seems obsessed with his desire for glory. Alexander is also portrayed as an idealistic leader who believed that the people he conquered wanted change, that he was ‘‘freeing the people of the world,’’ and that Asia and Europe would grow together into a single community. But was Alexander an idealistic dreamer, as Stone apparently believes, or was he a military leader who, following the dictum that ‘‘fortune favors the bold,’’ ran roughshod over the wishes of his soldiers in order to follow his dream and was responsible for mass slaughter in the process? The latter is a perspective that Stone glosses over, but Ptolemy, at least, probably expresses the more realistic notion that ‘‘none of us believed in his dream.’’ The movie also does not elaborate on

Alexander (Colin Farrell) on his horse Bucephalus, reviewing the troops before the Battle of Gaugamela.

M ACEDONIA

AND THE

C ONQUESTS

OF

A LEXANDER

71

The World of the Hellenistic Kingdoms

But Alexander also left a cultural legacy. As a result of his conquests, Greek language, art, architecture, and literature spread throughout the Near East. The urban centers of the Hellenistic Age, many founded by Alexander and his successors, became springboards for the diffusion of Greek culture. Alexander had established a number of cities and military colonies named Alexandria to guard strategic points and supervise wide areas. Most of the settlers were Greek mercenaries. It has been estimated that in the course of his campaigns, Alexander summoned 60,000 to 65,000 additional mercenaries from Greece, at least 36,000 of whom took up residence in the garrisons and new cities. While the Greeks spread their culture in the East, they were also inevitably influenced by Eastern ways. Thus Alexander’s legacy became one of the hallmarks of the Hellenistic world: the clash and fusion of different cultures.

300

The united empire that Alexander created by his conquests disintegrated after his death. All too soon, Macedonian military leaders were engaged in a struggle for power. By 300 B.C., any hope of unity was dead.

Hellenistic Monarchies Eventually, four Hellenistic kingdoms emerged as the successors to Alexander (see Map 4.2). In Macedonia, the

900 Kilometers

300

lk Ba

Danube R.

ts.

Pella

Aegean A Sea

Cre Cr rete te

R.

Ox us

Sea

Bab abbyyl ylo l n

Susa

.

R

Arabian Desert

Persepolis

Pe

eR Nil

ia

rs

.

Red

.

.

ph Hy

a

INDIA

n

Gu

lf

Sea MAP 4.2 The Hellenistic Kingdoms. Alexander died unexpectedly at the age of thirty-two and did not designate a successor. Upon his death, his generals struggled for power, eventually establishing four monarchies that spread Hellenistic culture and fostered trade and economic development. Q Which kingdom encompassed most of the old Persian Empire? 72

sR

I nd u s

Mem em mphi p s

Seleucia

ts.

Tyre Tyr Ty

sM

Sea

Bactra

ro

R.

n

R.

g Za

s Tigri

Antioch ti Eu p

A xandria Ale

Sahara

Achaean League

C Caspian

. Taurus Mts Cypprus us

nea

ts.

Ephesus

R des Rho d

rra

Aetolian League

Sardis

s

Cyren enne ene

ite

Ca uca sus M

ate hr

ed

Seleucid kingdom

Mauryan Empire

Sea

lys Ha

Pergamum m

Ath Ath t ens en Spa paarta

M

B la c k

THRA ACE

Ptolemaic kingdom

R

M

Pergamene kingdom

Hydaspe

a

n

Antigonid kingdom 600 Miles

s is

600

political and military organization of the Hellenistic kingdoms, and how did the new political systems differ from those of the Greek city-states? What were the main social developments in the Hellenistic world?

R.

Q Focus Questions: What were the main features of the

C H A P T E R 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

Arabian Sea

The Threat from the Celts The Celts, also known as the Gauls, were a people who had occupied large areas of Europe north of the Alps during the early Iron Age (c. 800--500 B.C.), especially the region to the south and west of the Rhine River, west of the Alps, and north of the Pyrenees (a region known as Gaul). At the end of the fifth century B.C., possibly as the result of overpopulation, Celtic peoples began to migrate south and east. One group sacked the city of Rome in 390 B.C. (see Chapter 5). After the death of Alexander the Great, other groups of Celts began to threaten the Hellenistic world. Celts attacked Macedonia early in the third century B.C., as one ancient writer reported: ‘‘When the defeated Macedonians had fixed themselves within the walls of their cities, the victorious Brennus ravaged the fields of the whole of Macedonia with no one to oppose him.’’2 Brennus also led a group of thirty thousand Celts into Greece itself and caused considerable damage until being defeated in 278 B.C.

Araldo de Luca/CORBIS

c

struggles for power led to the extermination of Alexander’s dynasty. Not until 276 B.C. did Antigonus Gonatus, the grandson of one of Alexander’s generals, succeed in establishing the Antigonid dynasty as rulers of Macedonia. The Antigonids viewed control of Greece as essential to their power but did not see outright conquest as necessary. Another Hellenistic monarchy was founded by the general Seleucus, who established the Seleucid dynasty of Syria. This was the largest of the Hellenistic kingdoms and controlled much of the old Persian Empire from Turkey in the west to India in the east, although the Seleucids found it increasingly difficult to maintain control of the eastern territories. In fact, an Indian ruler named Chandragupta Maurya (324--301 B.C.) established a new Indian state, the Mauryan Empire, and drove out the Seleucid forces. However, the Seleucid rulers maintained relations with the Mauryan Empire. Trade was fostered, especially in such luxuries as spices and jewels. A third Hellenistic kingdom came into being by freeing itself from the Seleucids. This was the kingdom of Pergamum in western Asia Minor under the Attalid dynasty. In 133 B.C., the last member of the Attalid dynasty bequeathed his kingdom to Rome in his will. The fourth Hellenistic monarchy was Egypt, which had come under the control of Ptolemy, another Macedonian general. Named governor of Egypt after Alexander’s death, Ptolemy had established himself as king by 305 B.C., founding the Ptolemaic dynasty of pharaohs. Hellenistic Egypt lasted longer than all the other Hellenistic monarchies; it was not until the reign of Cleopatra VII, who allied herself with the wrong side in the Roman civil wars (see Chapter 5), that Egypt fell to the Romans in 30 B.C.

A Celt and His Wife: Better a Martyr than a Slave. This statue of a Celtic chieftain and his wife is a Roman copy of a bronze original that was part of a larger monument erected in the 220s B.C. to commemorate the victory of Attalus I of Pergamum over the Celts, a victory that gave Pergamum control over much of Asia Minor. In this scene, the defeated Celtic leader plunges a sword into his chest just after he has killed his wife to prevent her from being sold into slavery.

Other groups of Celts later attacked Asia Minor, where Attalus I defeated them in 230 B.C. After his victory, Attalus gained control of much of Asia Minor and declared himself king of Pergamum. Their attacks led the Celts to be feared everywhere in the Hellenistic world.

Political Institutions The Hellenistic monarchies provided a sort of stability for several centuries, even though Hellenistic kings refused to accept the new status quo and periodically engaged in wars to alter it. At the same time, an underlying strain always existed between the new Greco-Macedonian ruling class and the native populations. Together these factors generated a certain degree of tension that was never truly T HE WORLD

OF THE

H ELLENISTIC K INGDOMS

73

ended until the vibrant Roman state to the west stepped in and imposed a new order. The Hellenistic kingdoms shared a common political system that represented a break with their Greek past. To the Greeks, monarchy was an institution for barbarians, associated in their minds with people like the Persians. Although they retained democratic forms of government in their cities, the Greeks of the Hellenistic world were forced to accept monarchy as a new fact of political life. Although Alexander the Great had apparently hoped to fuse Greeks and easterners---he used Persians as administrators and encouraged his soldiers to marry easterners, as he himself did---Hellenistic monarchs relied primarily on Greeks and Macedonians to form the new ruling class. It has been estimated that in the Seleucid kingdom, for example, only 2.5 percent of the people in authority were non-Greek, and most of them were commanders of local military units. Those who did advance to important administrative posts had learned Greek (all government business was transacted in Greek) and had become Hellenized in a cultural sense. The policy of excluding non-Greeks from leadership positions, it should be added, was not due to the incompetence of the natives but to the determination of the Greek ruling class to maintain its privileged position. It was the GrecoMacedonian ruling class that provided the only unity in the Hellenistic world.

Hellenistic Cities Cities played an especially important role in the Hellenistic kingdoms. Throughout his conquests, Alexander had founded a series of new cities and military settlements, and Hellenistic kings did likewise. The new population centers varied considerably in size and importance. Military settlements were meant to maintain order and might consist of only a few hundred men who were strongly dependent on the king. But there were also new independent cities with thousands of inhabitants. Alexandria in Egypt was the largest city in the Mediterranean region by the first century B.C. Hellenistic rulers encouraged this massive spread of Greek colonists to the Near East because of their intrinsic value to the new monarchies. Greeks (and Macedonians) provided not only a recruiting ground for the army but also a pool of civilian administrators and workers who would contribute to economic development. Even architects, engineers, dramatists, and actors were in demand in the new Greek cities. Many Greeks and Macedonians were quick to see the advantages of moving to the new urban centers and gladly sought their fortunes in the Near East. Greeks of all backgrounds joined the exodus, at least until around 250 B.C., when the outpouring began to slow. 74

C H A P T E R 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

In the Hellenistic cities, the culture was primarily Greek. The political institutions of the cities were modeled after those of the Greek polis. Greeks of the Classical period would easily have recognized the councils, assemblies, and codes of law. The physical layout of the new cities was also modeled after those of the Greek homeland. Using the traditional rectilinear grid, cities were laid out with temples, altars, and stone theaters. Many of the new urban centers were completely dominated by Greeks while the native populations remained cut off from all civic institutions. The Greeks commissioned purely Greek sculpture, read literature of the Classical period, and had separate law courts for themselves. Complaints from resentful natives have been recorded. An Egyptian camel driver, for example, complained bitterly that he was not paid regularly because he did ‘‘not know how to behave like a Greek.’’ Not only was it difficult for easterners to enter the ranks of the ruling class, but those who did so had to become thoroughly Hellenized. This often required alienation from their own culture. The Greeks’ belief in their own cultural superiority provided an easy rationalization for their political dominance of the eastern cities. But Greek control of the new cities of the Near East was also necessary because the kings frequently used the cities as instruments of government, enabling them to rule considerable territory without an extensive bureaucracy. At the same time, for security reasons, the Greeks needed the support of the kings. After all, the Hellenistic cities were islands of Greek culture in a sea of non-Greeks. The relationship between rulers and cities, therefore, was a symbiotic one that bore serious consequences for the cities. In the political system, religious practices, and architecture of their new cities, the Greeks tried to re-create the poleis of their homeland. But it was no longer possible to do so. The new cities were not autonomous entities and soon found themselves dependent on the power of the Hellenistic monarchies. Although the kings did not rule the cities directly, they restricted freedom in other ways. Cities knew they could not conduct an independent foreign policy and did not try to do so. The kings also demanded tribute, which could be a heavy burden. The Greek cities of the Hellenistic era were the chief agents for the spread of Greek culture in the Near East, as far, in fact, as modern Afghanistan and India. These cities were also remarkably vibrant despite their subordination to the Hellenistic monarchies and persisted in being a focal point for the loyalty of their citizens.

Economic Trends in the Hellenistic World Agriculture was still of primary importance to both the native populations and the new Greek cities of the

New Opportunities for Women One of the significant features of social life in the Hellenistic world was the emergence of new opportunities for women---at least, for upper-class women---especially in the economic area. Documents show increasing numbers of women involved in managing slaves, selling property, and

c The Metropolitan Museum of Art//Art Resource, NY Image

Hellenistic world. The Greek cities continued their old agrarian patterns. A well-defined citizen body owned land and worked it with the assistance of slaves. But these farms were isolated units in a vast area of land ultimately owned by the king or assigned to large estate owners and worked by native peasants dwelling in villages. Overall, then, neither agricultural patterns nor methods of production underwent significant changes. Few new products or manufacturing methods were introduced during the Hellenistic era, but the centers of manufacturing shifted significantly. Industry spread from Greece to the east---especially to Asia Minor, Rhodes, and Egypt. New textile centers were set up at Pergamum, while glass and silver crafts were developed in Syria. And busiest of all the cities in manufacturing was Alexandria in Egypt, center of the production of parchment, textiles, linens, oil, metalwork, and glass. Commerce expanded considerably in the Hellenistic era. Indeed, trading contacts linked much of the Hellenistic world. The decline in the number of political barriers encouraged more commercial traffic. Although Hellenistic monarchs still fought wars, the conquests of Alexander and the policies of his successors made possible greater trade between east and west. Two major trade routes connected the east with the Mediterranean. The central route was the major one and led by sea from India to the Persian Gulf, up the Tigris River to Seleucia, which replaced Babylon as the center for waterborne traffic from the Persian Gulf and overland caravan routes as well. Overland routes from Seleucia then led to Antioch and Ephesus. A southern route wound its way from India by sea but went around Arabia and up the Red Sea to Petra or later Berenice. Caravan routes then led overland to Coptos on the Nile and from there to Alexandria and the Mediterranean. An incredible variety of products was traded: gold and silver from Spain; iron from northern Armenia; salt from Asia Minor; timber from Macedonia; purple dye from Tyre; ebony, gems, ivory, and spices from India; frankincense (used on altars) from Arabia; slaves from Thrace, Syria, and Asia Minor; fine wines from Syria and western Asia Minor; olive oil from Athens; and numerous exquisite foodstuffs, such as the famous prunes of Damascus. The greatest trade, however, was in the basic staple of life---grain. The great exporting areas were Egypt, Sicily, and the Black Sea region.

Portrait of Queen Arsinoe¨ II. Arsinoe¨ II, sister and wife of King Ptolemy II, played an active role in Egyptian political affairs. This statue from the Ptolemaic period depicts the queen in the traditional garb of a pharaoh’s wife.

making loans. Even then, legal contracts in which women were involved had to include their official male guardians, although in numerous instances these men no longer played an important function but were listed only to satisfy legal requirements. In Sparta, women were allowed to own land and manage their own economic affairs. Because many of their husbands were absent or had died in war, many Spartan women became wealthy; females owned 40 percent of the land in Sparta. The women of Sparta, however, were an exception, especially on the Greek mainland. Women in Athens, for example, still remained highly restricted and supervised. T HE WORLD

OF THE

H ELLENISTIC K INGDOMS

75

A NEW AUTONOMY Upper-class women made noticeable gains in Hellenistic society. But even in the lives of ordinary women, a new assertiveness came to the fore despite the continuing domination of society by men. The first selection is taken from the letter of a wife to her husband, complaining about his failure to return home. In the second selection, a father complains that his daughter has abandoned him, contrary to Egyptian law providing that children who have been properly raised should support their parents.

Letter from Isias to Hephaistion, 168 B.C.

FOR

WOMEN?

pressing holds you back. You will do me a favor by taking care of your bodily health. Farewell.

Letter from Ktesikles to King Ptolemy, 220 B.C. I am wronged by Dionysios and by Nike my daughter. For though I raised her, my own daughter, and educated her and brought her to maturity, when I was stricken with bodily ill-health and was losing my eyesight, she was not minded to furnish me with any of the necessities of life. When I sought to obtain justice from her in Alexandria, she begged my pardon, and in the eighteenth year she swore me a written royal oath to give me each month twenty drachmas, which she was to earn by her own bodily labor. . . . But now corrupted by Dionysios, who is a comic actor, she does not do for me anything of what was in the written oath, despising my weakness and ill-health. I beg you, therefore, O King, not to allow me to be wronged by my daughter and by Dionysios the actor who corrupted her, but to order Diophanes the strategus [a provincial administrator] to summon them and hear us out; and if I am speaking the truth, let Diophanes deal with her corrupter as seems good to him and compel my daughter Nike to do justice to me. If this is done I shall no longer be wronged but by fleeing to you, O King, I shall obtain justice.

If you are well and other things are going right, it would accord with the prayer that I make continually to the gods. I myself and the child and all the household are in good health and think of you always. When I received your letter from Horos, in which you announce that you are in detention in the Serapeum at Memphis, for the news that you are well I straightway thanked the gods, but about your not coming home, when all the others who had been secluded there have come, I am ill-pleased, because after having piloted myself and your child through such bad times and been driven to every extremity owing to the price of wheat, I thought that now at least, with you at home, I should enjoy some respite, whereas you have not even thought of coming home nor given any regard to our circumstances, remembering how I was in want of everything while you were still here, not to mention this long lapse of time and these critical days, during which you have sent us nothing. As, moreover, Horos who delivered the letter has brought news of your having been released from detention, I am thoroughly illpleased. Notwithstanding, as your mother also is annoyed, for her sake as well as for mine please return to the city, if nothing more

What specific complaints are contained in each letter? What do these complaints reveal about some women in the Hellenistic world? Judging by the content of these letters, what freedoms did Hellenistic women enjoy? How autonomous were they? Based on your knowledge of gender and gender roles in shaping earlier cultures, how did Hellenistic civilization differ in its conceptions of what was ‘‘proper’’ for men and women?

Although a few philosophers welcomed female participation in men’s affairs, many philosophers rejected equality between men and women and asserted that the traditional roles of wives and mothers were most satisfying for women. In her treatise ‘‘On Chastity,’’ Phintys wrote that ‘‘serving as generals, public officials, and statesmen is appropriate for men,’’ but ‘‘keeping house, remaining within, and taking care of husbands belongs to women.’’3 But the opinions of philosophers did not prevent upper-class women from making gains in areas other than the economic sphere (see the box above). New possibilities for females arose when women in some areas of the Hellenistic world were allowed to pursue education in the traditional fields of literature, music, and even athletics. Education, then, provided new opportunities for women: female poets appeared again in the third

century B.C., and there are instances of women involved in both scholarly and artistic activities. The creation of the Hellenistic monarchies, which represented a considerable departure from the world of the polis, also gave new scope to the role played by the monarchs’ wives, the Hellenistic queens. In Macedonia, a pattern of alliances between mothers and sons provided openings for women to take an active role in politics, especially in political intrigue. In Egypt, opportunities for royal women were even greater because the Ptolemaic rulers reverted to an Egyptian custom of kings marrying their own sisters. Of the first eight Ptolemaic rulers, four wed their sisters. Ptolemy II and his sister-wife Arsinoe¨ II were both worshiped as gods in their lifetimes. Arsinoe¨ played an energetic role in government and was involved in the expansion of the Egyptian navy. She was also the first Egyptian queen

76

C H A P T E R 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

Q

whose portrait appeared on coins with her husband. Hellenistic queens also showed an intense interest in culture. They wrote poems, collected art, and corresponded with intellectuals.

Culture in the Hellenistic World

Q Focus Question: What achievements in literature, art, science, and philosophy occurred during the Hellenistic period?

Although the Hellenistic kingdoms encompassed vast areas and many diverse peoples, the Greeks provided a sense of unity as a result of the diffusion of Greek culture throughout the region. The Hellenistic era was a period of considerable cultural accomplishment in many areas--literature, art, science, and philosophy. Although these achievements occurred everywhere in the Hellenistic world, certain centers, especially the great cities of Alexandria and Pergamum, stood out. In both cities, cultural developments were encouraged by the rulers themselves. Rich Hellenistic kings had considerable resources with which to patronize culture. The Ptolemies in Egypt made Alexandria an especially important cultural center. The library became the largest in ancient times, housing more than half a million scrolls. The museum (literally, ‘‘temple of the Muses’’) created a favorable environment for scholarly research. Alexandria became home to poets, writers, philosophers, and scientists---scholars of all kinds.

daughter of a rich neighbor. The hero marries her, and they live happily ever after. The Hellenistic period saw a great outpouring of historical and biographical literature. The chief historian of the Hellenistic Age was Polybius (c. 203--c. 120 B.C.), a Greek who lived for some years in Rome. He is regarded as second only to Thucydides among Greek historians. His major work consisted of forty books narrating the history of the ‘‘inhabited Mediterranean world’’ from 221 to 146 B.C. Only the first five books are extant, although long extracts from the other books survive. His history focuses on the growth of Rome from a city-state to a vast empire. It is apparent that Polybius understood the significance of the Romans’ achievement. He followed Thucydides in seeking rational motives for historical events. He also approached his sources critically and used firsthand accounts.

Hellenistic Art In addition to being patrons of literary talent, the Hellenistic monarchs were eager to spend their money to

c

The Hellenistic Age produced an enormous quantity of literature, most of which has not survived. Hellenistic monarchs, who held literary talent in high esteem, subsidized writers on a grand scale. The Ptolemaic rulers of Egypt were particularly lavish. The combination of their largess and the famous library drew a host of scholars and authors to Alexandria, including a circle of poets. Theocritus (c. 315--250 B.C.), originally a native of the island of Sicily, wrote ‘‘little poems’’ or idylls dealing with erotic subjects, lovers’ complaints, and pastoral themes expressing his love of nature and its beauty. In the Hellenistic era, Athens remained the theatrical center of the Greek world. As tragedy withered, writers invented New Comedy, which rejected political themes and sought only to entertain and amuse. The Athenian playwright Menander (c. 342--291 B.C.) was perhaps the best representative of New Comedy. Plots were simple: typically, a hero falls in love with a not-really-so-bad prostitute who turns out eventually to be the long-lost

Araldo de Luca/CORBIS

New Directions in Literature

Drunken Old Woman. Hellenistic sculptors no longer tried to capture ideal beauty in their work, a quest that characterized Greek classicism, but moved toward a more emotional and realistic art. This statue of a drunken old woman is typical of this new trend in art. Old and haggard, mired in poverty, she struggles to just go on living.

C ULTURE

IN THE

H ELLENISTIC WORLD

77

A Golden Age of Science

c

Borromeo/Art Resource, NY

The Art Archive/Gianni Dagli Orti

c

beautify and adorn the cities in their states. The founding of new cities and the rebuilding of old ones provided numerous opportunities for Greek architects and sculptors. The structures of the Greek homeland---gymnasia, baths, theaters, and, of course, temples---lined the streets of these cities. Most noticeable in the temples was the use of the more ornate Corinthian order, which became especially popular during the Hellenistic Age (see the illustration in Chapter 3 on p. 58). Sculptors were commissioned by Hellenistic kings and rich citizens. Thousands of statues, many paid for by the people honored, were erected in towns and cities all over the Hellenistic world. While maintaining the technical skill of the Classical period, Hellenistic sculptors moved away from the idealism of fifth-century classicism to a more emotional and realistic art, seen in numerous statues of old women, drunks, and little children at play. Alexander the Great’s incursion into the western part of India resulted in some Greek cultural influences there, especially during the Hellenistic era. In the first century B.C., Indian sculptors began to create statues of the Buddha. The impact of Greek sculpture was especially evident in the Buddhist statues made in Gandhara, which is today part of Pakistan.

Hellenistic Sculpture and a Greek-Style Buddha. Greek architects and sculptors were highly valued throughout the Hellenistic world. Shown on the left is a terra-cotta statuette of a draped young woman, made as a tomb offering near Thebes, probably around 300 B.C. The incursion of Alexander into the western part of India resulted in some Greek cultural influences there. During the first century B.C., Indian sculptors in Gandhara began to make statues of the Buddha in a style that combined Indian and Hellenistic artistic traditions, evident in the stone sculpture of the Buddha on the right. Note the wavy hair topped by a bun tied with a ribbon, also a feature of earlier statues of Greek deities. This Buddha is also seen wearing a Greek-style toga.

The Hellenistic era witnessed a more conscious separation of science from philosophy. In Classical Greece, what we would call the physical and life sciences had been divisions of philosophical inquiry. Nevertheless, the Greeks, by the time of Aristotle, had already established an important principle of scientific investigation, empirical research, or systematic observation as the basis for generalization. In the Hellenistic Age, the sciences tended to be studied in their own right. One of the traditional areas of Greek science was astronomy, and two Alexandrian scholars continued this exploration. Aristarchus of Samos (c. 310--230 B.C.) developed a heliocentric view of the universe, contending that the sun and the fixed stars remained stationary while the earth rotated around the sun in a circular orbit. This view was not widely accepted, and most scholars clung to the earlier geocentric view of the Greeks, which held that the earth was at the center of the universe. Another astronomer, Eratosthenes (c. 275--194 B.C.), determined that the earth was round and calculated the earth’s 78

C H A P T E R 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

circumference at 24,675 miles, within 200 miles of the actual figure. A third Alexandrian scholar was Euclid, who lived around 300 B.C. He established a school in Alexandria but is primarily known for his Elements. This was a systematic organization of the fundamental elements of geometry as they had already been worked out; it became the standard textbook of plane geometry and was used up to modern times. The most famous of the scientists of the Hellenistic period, Archimedes (287--212 B.C.), came from the western Mediterranean region. Archimedes was especially important for his work on the geometry of spheres and cylinders, for establishing the value of the mathematical constant pi, and for creating the science of hydrostatics. Archimedes was also a practical inventor. He may have devised the so-called Archimedean screw, used to pump water out of mines and to lift irrigation water, as well as a

compound pulley for transporting heavy weights. During the Roman siege of his native city of Syracuse, he constructed a number of devices to thwart the attackers. According to Plutarch’s account, the Romans became so frightened ‘‘that if they did but see a little rope or a piece of wood from the wall, instantly crying out, that there it was again, Archimedes was about to let fly some device at them, they turned their backs and fled.’’4 Archimedes’ accomplishments inspired a wealth of semilegendary stories. Supposedly, he discovered specific gravity by observing the water he displaced in his bath and became so excited by his realization that he jumped out of the water and ran home naked, shouting ‘‘Eureka!’’ (‘‘I have found it!’’). He is said to have emphasized the importance of levers by proclaiming to the king of Syracuse, ‘‘Give me a lever and a place to stand on, and I will move the earth.’’ The king was so impressed that he encouraged Archimedes to lower his sights and build defensive weapons instead.

Philosophy: New Schools of Thought While Alexandria and Pergamum became the renowned cultural centers of the Hellenistic world, Athens remained the prime center for philosophy and continued to attract the most illustrious philosophers, who chose to establish their schools there. Two entirely new schools of philosophical thought reinforced Athens’ reputation as a philosophical center. Epicureanism Epicurus (341--270 B.C.), the founder of Epicureanism, established a school in Athens before 300 B.C. Epicurus’ famous belief in a doctrine of pleasure began with his view of the world. Though he did not deny the existence of the gods, he did not believe they played any active role in the world. The universe ran on its own. This left human beings free to follow self-interest as a basic motivating force. Happiness was the goal of life, and the means to achieving it was the pursuit of pleasure, the only true good. But the pursuit of pleasure was not meant in a physical, hedonistic sense: When, therefore, we maintain that pleasure is the end, we do not mean the pleasures of profligates and those that consist in sensuality, as is supposed by some who are either ignorant or disagree with us or do not understand, but freedom from pain in the body and from trouble in the mind. For it is not continuous drinkings and revellings, nor the satisfaction of lusts, nor the enjoyment of fish and other luxuries of the wealthy table, which produce a pleasant life, but sober reasoning, searching out the motives for all choice and avoidance, and banishing mere opinions, to which are due the greatest disturbance of the spirit.5

Pleasure was not satisfying one’s desire in an active, gluttonous fashion but rather freedom from emotional turmoil, freedom from worry, the freedom that came from a mind at rest. To achieve this passive pleasure, one had to free oneself from public activity: ‘‘We must release ourselves from the prison of affairs and politics.’’ They were too strenuous to give peace of mind. But this was not a renunciation of all social life, for to Epicurus, a life could be complete only when it was centered on the basic ideal of friendship: ‘‘Of all the things which wisdom acquires to produce the blessedness of the complete life, far the greatest is the possession of friendship.’’6 Epicurus’ own life in Athens was an embodiment of his teachings. He and his friends created their own private community where they could pursue their ideal of true happiness. Stoicism Epicureanism was eventually overshadowed by another school of thought known as Stoicism, which became the most popular philosophy of the Hellenistic world and later flourished in the Roman Empire as well. It was the product of a teacher named Zeno (335--263 B.C.), who came to Athens and began to teach in a public colonnade known as the Painted Portico (the Stoa Poikile---hence Stoicism). Like Epicureanism, Stoicism was concerned with how individuals find happiness. But Stoics took a radically different approach to the problem. To them, happiness, the supreme good, could be found only in virtue, which meant essentially living in harmony with the divine will. To the Stoics, following the divine will meant abiding by the natural laws that the gods established to run the universe. Virtuous living, then, was living in accordance with the laws of nature (see the box on p. 80). This led to the acceptance of whatever one received in life, since the divine will was by its very nature good. By accepting divine law, people mastered themselves and gained inner peace. Life’s problems could not disturb such individuals, and they could bear whatever life offered (hence our word stoic). Unlike Epicureans, Stoics did not believe in the need to separate oneself from the world and politics. Public service was regarded as noble. The real Stoic was a good citizen and could even be a good government official. Because Stoics believed that a divine principle was present throughout the universe, each human being also contained a divine spark. This led to a belief in the oneness of humanity. The world constituted a single society of equal human beings. Although they were not equal in the outer world, all were free to follow the divine will (what was best for each individual). All persons, C ULTURE

IN THE

H ELLENISTIC WORLD

79

THE STOIC IDEAL

OF

The Stoic Cleanthes (331–232 B.C.) succeeded Zeno as head of this school of philosophy. One historian of Hellenistic civilization has called this work by Cleanthes the greatest religious hymn in Greek literature. Certainly, it demonstrates that Stoicism, unlike Epicureanism, did have an underlying spiritual foundation. This poem has been compared to the great psalms of the Hebrews.

Cleanthes, Hymn to Zeus Nothing occurs on the earth apart from you, O God, nor in the heavenly regions nor on the sea, except what bad men do in their folly; but you know to make the odd even, and to harmonize what is dissonant; to you the alien is akin.

then, even slaves, though unfree in body, were equal at the level of the soul. Epicureanism and especially Stoicism appealed to large numbers of people in the Hellenistic world. Both of these philosophies focused primarily on the problem of human happiness. Their popularity would suggest a fundamental change in the character of the Greek lifestyle. In the Classical Greek world, the happiness of individuals and the meaning of life were closely associated with the life of the polis. One found fulfillment within the community. In the Hellenistic kingdoms, although the polis continued to exist, the sense that one could find satisfaction and fulfillment through life in the polis had weakened. Not only did individuals seek new philosophies that offered personal happiness, but in the cosmopolitan world of the Hellenistic states, with their mixtures of peoples, a new openness to thoughts of universality could also emerge. For some people, Stoicism embodied this larger sense of community. The appeal of new philosophies in the Hellenistic era can also be explained by the apparent decline in certain aspects of traditional religion.

Religion in the Hellenistic World

Q Focus Question: Which religions were prominent

during the Hellenistic period, and what does their popularity suggest about Hellenistic society?

When the Greeks spread throughout the Hellenistic kingdoms, they took their gods with them. Although the 80

C H A P T E R 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

HARMONY

WITH

GOD

And so you have wrought together into one all things that are good and bad, So that there arises one eternal logos [rationale] of all things, Which all bad mortals shun and ignore. Unhappy wretches, ever seeking the possession of good things, They neither see nor hear the universal law of God, By obeying which they might enjoy a happy life.

Q Based on Cleanthes’ poem, what are some of the beliefs of the Stoics? How do they differ from the beliefs of the Epicureans?

construction of temples may have been less important than in Classical times, there were still many demonstrations of a lively religious faith. But over a period of time, there was a noticeable decline in the vitality of the traditional Greek Olympian religion. The civic cults based on the traditional gods no longer seemed sufficient to satisfy people’s emotional needs. This left Greeks receptive to the numerous religious cults of the eastern world. The Greeks were always tolerant of other existing religious institutions. Hence in the Hellenistic cities of the Near East, the traditional civic cults of their own gods and foreign cults existed side by side. Alexandria had cults of the traditional Greek gods, Egyptian deities such as Isis and Horus, the Babylonian Astarte, and the Syrian Atargatis. But for many people, the search for personal meaning remained unfulfilled. Among educated Greeks, the philosophies of Epicureanism and especially Stoicism offered help. Another source of solace came in the form of mystery religions.

Mystery Religions Mystery cults, with their secret initiations and promises of individual salvation, were not new to the Greek world. But the Greeks of the Hellenistic era were strongly influenced by eastern mystery cults, such as those of Egypt, which offered a distinct advantage over the Greek mystery religions. The latter had usually been connected to specific locations (such as Eleusis), which meant that a would-be initiate had to undertake a pilgrimage in order to participate in the rites. In contrast, the eastern mystery

religions were readily available since temples to their gods and goddesses were located throughout the Greek cities of the east. All of the mystery religions were based on the same fundamental premises. Individuals could pursue a path to salvation and achieve eternal life by being initiated into a union with a savior god or goddess who had died and risen again. The ritual of initiation, by which the seeker identified with the god or goddess, was, no doubt, a highly emotional experience. The Egyptian cult of Isis was one of the most popular of the mystery religions. The cult of Isis was very ancient but became truly universal in Hellenistic times. Isis was the goddess of women, marriage, and children, as one of her hymns states: ‘‘I am she whom women call goddess. I ordained that women should be loved by men: I brought wife and husband together, and invented the marriage contract. I ordained that women should bear children.’’7 Isis was also portrayed as the giver of civilization who had brought laws and letters to all humankind. The cult of Isis offered a precious commodity to its initiates---the promise of eternal life. In many ways, the mystery religions of the Hellenistic era helped pave the way for Christianity.

Jews in the Hellenistic World In observing the similarities among their gods and goddesses, Greeks and easterners tended to assume they were the same beings with different names, giving rise to a process of syncretism. But a special position was occupied in the Hellenistic world by the Jews, whose monotheistic

religion was exclusive and did not accommodate this kind of fusion of spiritual beings. The Jewish province of Judaea (which embraced the lands of the old Hebrew kingdom of Judah) was ruled by the Ptolemies until it fell under the control of the Seleucids by 200 B.C. In the reign of the Seleucid king Antiochus IV (175--163 B.C.), conflict erupted in Judaea. Hellenistic monarchs were generally tolerant of all religions, but problems with Rome prompted Antiochus to try to impose more cultural and religious unity throughout his kingdom. When he sent troops to Jerusalem and seized the Temple, he sparked a Jewish uprising led by Judas Maccabaeus (164 B.C.). The rebels succeeded in recapturing the Temple, a joyous event that has been celebrated every year since in the Jewish holiday of Hanukkah (Hebrew for ‘‘rededication’’). Although the conflict in Judaea continued, the Seleucids ultimately made concessions and allowed the Jews considerable freedom. But large numbers of Jews no longer lived in Judaea. There was a large Jewish population in Egypt, particularly in Alexandria, as well as Jewish settlements throughout the cities of Asia Minor and Syria. In each city, Jews generally set up a synagogue and formed a private association for worship as other foreigners did. But some city authorities also allowed the Jews to form a political corporation that gave them greater rights than other resident aliens. Most important, they gained the privilege to live by their own laws and their own judicial system. The Jews were not really interested in citizenship in the cities in which they resided because full citizenship required worship of the city’s gods, anathema to Jews, who believed only in Yahweh.

CONCLUSION Although historians once viewed the Hellenistic era as a period of stagnation after the brilliant Greek civilization of the fifth century B.C., our survey of the Hellenistic world has shown the inaccuracy of that position. The Hellenistic period was vibrant in its own way. New cities arose and flourished. New philosophical ideas captured the minds of many. Significant achievements occurred in art, literature, and science. Greek culture spread throughout the Near East and made an impact wherever it was carried. In some areas of the Hellenistic world, queens played an active role in political life, and many upper-class women found new avenues for expressing themselves.

But serious problems remained. Hellenistic kings continued to engage in inconclusive wars. Much of the formal culture was the special preserve of the Greek conquerors, whose attitude of superiority kept them largely separated from the native masses of the Hellenistic kingdoms. Although the Hellenistic world achieved a degree of political stability, by the late third century B.C. signs of decline were beginning to multiply. Some of the more farsighted perhaps realized the danger presented to the Hellenistic world by the growing power of Rome. The Romans would ultimately inherit Alexander’s empire, and we must now turn to them and try to understand what made them such successful conquerors.

C ONCLUSION

81

TIMELINE 340

The Hellenistic World

278

B.C.

Philip II conquers Greece

B.C.

216

B.C.

154

92

B.C.

B.C.

30

B.C.

Hellenistic kingdoms

Conquests of Alexander the Great Death of Alexander

Seleucids gain control of Judaea

Battle of Issus Philosophy (Epicurus and Zeno)

Writing of history (Polybius)

Poetry (Theocritus) Science (Archimedes)

Rome Roman conquests in the east

Judaea

Uprising of Judas Maccabaeus

India Mauryan Empire in India

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING General Works For a general introduction to the Hellenistic era, see P. Green, The Hellenistic Age: A Short History (New York, 2007). The best general surveys are F. W. Walbank, The Hellenistic World, rev. ed. (Cambridge, Mass., 2006), and G. Shipley, The Greek World After Alexander, 323--30 B.C. (London, 2000). Early History of Macedonia For a good introduction to the early history of Macedonia, see E. N. Borza, In the Shadow of Olympus: The Emergence of Macedon (Princeton, N.J., 1990), 82

C H A P T E R 4 THE HELLENISTIC WORLD

and R. M. Errington, A History of Macedonia (Berkeley, Calif., 1990). Alexander There are considerable differences of opinion on Alexander the Great. Good biographies include R. L. Fox, Alexander the Great (London, 1973); P. Cartledge, Alexander the Great (New York, 2004); N. G. L. Hammond, The Genius of Alexander the Great (Chapel Hill, N.C., 1997); P. Green, Alexander of Macedon (Berkeley, Calif., 1991); and G. M. Rogers, Alexander: The Ambiguity of Greatness (New York, 2004).

Hellenistic Monarchies Studies on the various Hellenistic monarchies include N. G. L. Hammond and F. W. Walbank, A History of Macedonia, vol. 3, 336--167 B.C. (Oxford, 1988); S. Sherwin-White and A. Kuhrt, From Samarkand to Sardis: A New Approach to the Seleucid Empire (Berkeley, Calif., 1993); N. Lewis, Greeks in Ptolemaic Egypt (Oxford, 1986); and R. E. Allen, The Attalid Kingdom (Oxford, 1983). See also the collection of essays in C. Habicht, Hellenistic Monarchies (Ann Arbor, Mich., 2006). The Celts On the Celts, see B. Cunliffe, The Ancient Celts (London, 1997), and the beautifully illustrated brief study by J. Davies, The Celts (London, 2000). Economic and Social Trends A good survey of Hellenistic cities can be found in A. H. M. Jones, The Greek City from Alexander to Justinian (Oxford, 1940). On economic and social trends, see M. I. Finley, The Ancient Economy, 2d ed. (London, 1985), and the classic and still indispensable M. I. Rostovtzeff, Social and Economic History of the Hellenistic World, 3 vols., 2d ed. (Oxford, 1953). Hellenistic Women Hellenistic women are examined in two works by S. B. Pomeroy, Goddesses, Whores, Wives, and Slaves: Women in Classical Antiquity (New York, 1975), pp. 120--148, and Women in Hellenistic Egypt (New York, 1984).

Hellenistic Culture For a general introduction to Hellenistic culture, see J. Onians, Art and Thought in the Hellenistic Age (London, 1979). On art, see J. J. Pollitt, Art in the Hellenistic Age (New York, 1986). The best general survey of Hellenistic philosophy is A. A. Long, Hellenistic Philosophy: Stoics, Epicureans, Skeptics, 2d ed. (London, 1986). A superb work on Hellenistic science is G. E. R. Lloyd, Greek Science After Aristotle (London, 1973). Hellenistic Religion On various facets of Hellenistic religion, see L. Martin, Hellenistic Religions: An Introduction (New York, 1987), and A. Tripolitis, Religions of the Hellenistic-Roman Age (Ann Arbor, Mich., 2001). Rome and the Hellenistic World On the entry of Rome into the Hellenistic world, see the basic work by E. S. Gruen, The Hellenistic World and the Coming of Rome, 2 vols. (Berkeley, Calif., 1984).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

C ONCLUSION

83

DISCOVERY

Geography Compare Map 3.1 Classical Greece (p. 46) and Map 4.1 The Conquests of Alexander the Great (p. 69). What is the most obvious difference between Classical Greece and Alexander’s empire? How large a part of the empire was the territory of Greece? How might the development of a vast empire change the government of, say, Athens or Sparta?

How was the Hellenistic period different from the Greek Classical Age?

In thinking about this question, begin by breaking it down into the components shown below. A discussion of the significance of each component should appear in your answer. Political Culture Based on Arrian’s description of Alexander’s campaign in India (p. 70), what virtues did Alexander most admire and value? How do these virtues compare with the virtues Plato, Pericles, and the Spartans admired?

© Scala/Art Resource, NY

© Araldo de Luca/CORBIS

Sculpture What differences do you see between the Hellenistic statue and the Greek statue? Do you see any connection between the movement away from the polis and toward a large empire and the development of more “realistic” art?

84

Women and Society What do the images of women in the loom room on the urn (photo, p. 61), the document from Xenophon (document, p. 62), and the letters from Isias and Ktesikles (document, p. 76) tell you about the life of women in Greek and Hellenistic society? How did life change for women? How did it remain the same?

CHAPTER 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

Dulwich Picture Gallery, London/The Bridgeman Art Library

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

The Emergence of Rome

Q

What impact did geography have on the history of Rome, and what influence did the Etruscans and Greeks have on early Roman history?

The Roman Republic (c. 509--264 B.C.) What were the major political institutions of the Roman Republic, and what policies and institutions help explain the Romans’ success in conquering Italy?

The Roman Conquest of the Mediterranean (264--133 B.C.)

Q

How did the acquisition of an empire affect Roman social and economic institutions, values and attitudes, and art and literature?

The Decline and Fall of the Roman Republic (133--31 B.C.)

Q

What were the main problems Rome faced during the last century of the Republic, and how were they ultimately resolved?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

Horatius defending the bridge, as envisioned by Charles Le Brun, a seventeenthcentury French painter

How did Rome achieve its empire from 264 to 133 B.C., and what is meant by the phrase ‘‘Roman imperialism’’?

Society and Culture in the Roman World

Q

c

Q

What did the Roman poet Horace mean when he wrote, ‘‘Captive Greece took captive her rude conqueror’’?

EARLY ROMAN HISTORY is filled with legendary tales of the heroes who made Rome great. One of the best known is the story of Horatius at the bridge. Threatened by attack from the neighboring Etruscans, Roman farmers abandoned their fields and moved into the city, where they would be protected by the walls. One weak point in the Roman defenses, however, was a wooden bridge over the Tiber River. Horatius was on guard at the bridge when a sudden assault by the Etruscans caused many Roman troops to throw down their weapons and flee. Horatius urged them to make a stand at the bridge to protect Rome; when they hesitated, as a last resort he told them to destroy the bridge behind him while he held the Etruscans back. Astonished at the sight of a single defender, the confused Etruscans threw their spears at Horatius, who caught them on his shield and barred the way. By the time the Etruscans had regrouped and were about to overwhelm the lone defender, the Roman soldiers brought down the bridge. When Horatius heard the bridge crash into the river behind him, he dived fully armed into the water and swam safely to the other side through a hail of arrows. Rome had been saved by the courageous act of a Roman who knew his duty and was determined to carry it out. Courage, duty, determination---these 85

GAUL

A

s l p Po

100

200

300 Kilometers

100

200 Miles

R. Rubicon R.

ETRURIA

Ap

en

Tiber R. Tarquinia

ne s. M t NES BI SA

Corsica

ni

Veii

Adriatic Sea

IL LY RI A

Rome

LATIUM

SA MN ITE S M PA Tarentum NI A Brindisi MAGNA

Capua Cumae Naples

Sardinia

CA

qualities would also serve the many Romans who believed that it was their mission to rule nations and peoples. In the first millennium B.C., a group of Latin-speaking people established a small community on the plain of Latium on the Italian peninsula. This community, called Rome, was one of the numerous settlements founded by Latin-speaking peoples throughout Latium and the rest of Italy. Roman history is basically the story of the Romans’ conquest of the plain of Latium, then Italy, and finally the entire Mediterranean region. How were they able to do this? The Romans made the right decisions at the right time; in other words, they had political wisdom. They were also practical. Unlike the Greeks, who reserved their citizenship for small, select groups, the Romans often offered citizenship to the peoples they conquered, thus laying the groundwork for a strong, integrated empire. The Romans also did not hesitate to borrow ideas and culture from the Greeks. Roman strength lay in government, law, and engineering. The Romans knew how to govern people, establish legal structures, and construct the roads that took them to the ends of the known world. Throughout their empire, they carried their law, their political institutions, their engineering skills, and their Latin language. And even after the Romans were gone, those same gifts continued to play an important role in the civilizations that came after them.

Tyrrhenian Sea

Thurii GRAECIA (GREATER GREECE)

Mediterranean Sea

Messana

Sicily

Carthage

Ioni a n Se a

Syracuse

The Emergence of Rome

Q Focus Question: What impact did geography have

on the history of Rome, and what influence did the Etruscans and Greeks have on early Roman history?

Italy is a peninsula extending about 750 miles from north to south (see Map 5.1). It is not very wide, however, averaging about 120 miles across. The Apennine Mountains traverse the peninsula from north to south, forming a ridge down the middle that divides west from east. Nevertheless, Italy has some fairly large fertile plains ideal for farming. Most important were the Po River valley in the north, probably the most fertile agricultural area; the plain of Latium, on which Rome was located; and Campania, to the south of Latium. To the east of the Italian peninsula is the Adriatic Sea, and to the west, the Tyrrhenian Sea with the nearby large islands of Corsica and Sardinia. Sicily lies just west of the toe of the boot-shaped Italian peninsula. Geography had an impact on Roman history. Although the Apennines bisect Italy, they are less rugged than the mountain ranges of Greece and so did not divide the peninsula into many small isolated communities. Italy also possessed considerably more productive farmland than Greece, enabling it to support a large population. Rome’s location was favorable from a geographical point of view. Located 18 miles inland on the Tiber River, Rome 86

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

MAP 5.1 Ancient Italy. Ancient Italy was home to several

groups. Both the Etruscans in the north and the Greeks in the south had a major influence on the development of Rome. Q Once Rome conquered the Etruscans, Sabines, Samnites, and other local groups, what aspects of the Italian peninsula View helped make it defensible against outside enemies? an animated version of this map or related maps at www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

had access to the sea and yet was far enough inland to be safe from pirates. Built on seven hills, it was easily defended. Situated where the Tiber could be readily forded, Rome became a natural crossing point for north-south traffic in western Italy. All in all, Rome had a good central location in Italy from which to expand. Moreover, the Italian peninsula juts into the Mediterranean, making it an important crossroads between the western and eastern parts of that sea. Once Rome had unified Italy, involvement in affairs throughout the region was natural. And after the Romans had conquered their Mediterranean empire, Italy’s central location made their task of governing that empire considerably easier.

The Greeks in Italy We know little about the Indo-European peoples who moved into Italy during the second half of the second

The Etruscans

Early Rome

Ti be rR

.

The initial development of Rome was influenced most According to Roman legend, Rome was founded by by the Etruscans, who had settled north of Rome in twin brothers, Romulus and Remus, in 753 B.C., and Etruria. The origins of the Etruscans are not clear, but archaeologists have found that around that time, there after 650 B.C., they expanded in Italy and became the was a settlement consisting of huts on the tops of several of Rome’s hills. The early Romans, basically a dominant cultural and economic force in a number of pastoral people, spoke Latin, which, like Greek, belongs areas. To the north, they moved into north-central Italy, to the Indo-European family of languages (see Table 2.1 including the Po valley. To the south, according to in Chapter 2). The Roman historical Roman tradition and archaeological tradition also maintained that early evidence, they controlled Rome and SERVIAN Rome (753--509 B.C.) had been under possibly all of Latium. From Latium WALL they moved south and came into dithe control of seven kings and that l l l Hi rina ll i rect conflict with Greek colonists in two of the last three had been H Qui inal Vim southern Italy. In the sixth century Etruscans. Some historians believe that the king list may have some B.C., the Etruscans were at the height Capitoline historical accuracy. What is certain is of their power. But by 480 B.C., their Hill Esquiline FORUM VIA Hill that Rome did fall under the influpower had begun to decline, and by SAC Palatine (Sacred RA ence of the Etruscans for about one 400 B.C., they were confined to Etruria Way) Hill Caelian hundred years during the period of itself. Later they were invaded by Celts Hill the kings. from Gaul and then conquered by the Aventine By the beginning of the sixth cenRomans. But by then the Etruscans Hill tury, under Etruscan influence, Rome had made an impact. By transforming began to change from a pastoral comvillages into towns and cities, they munity to an actual city. The Etruscans brought urbanization to northern and were responsible for an outstanding central Italy (as the Greeks had done The City of Rome A

VI

A

PI

AP

T HE E MERGENCE

OF

R OME

87

Scala/Art Resource, NY

c

millennium B.C. By the first millennium B.C., other peoples had also settled in Italy, the two most notable being the Greeks and the Etruscans. The Greeks arrived on the Italian peninsula in large numbers during the age of Greek colonization (750-550 B.C.; see Chapter 3). Initially, the Greeks settled in southern Italy and gradually migrated around the coast and up the peninsula as far as Brindisi. They also occupied the eastern two-thirds of Sicily. Ultimately, the Greeks had considerable influence on Rome. They cultivated olives and grapes, passed on their alphabetic system of writing, and provided artistic and cultural models through their sculpture, architecture, and literature. Indeed, many historians Etruscan Tomb Mural. Like the Egyptians, the Etruscans filled their tombs with furniture, view Roman culture as a continua- bowls, and other objects of daily life, as well as murals showing diversions experienced in life and tion of Greek culture. Whereas Greek awaiting the dead in the afterlife. Shown in this mural found in an Etruscan tomb at Tarquinia are servants and musicians at a banquet. This mural was painted in the first half of the fifth century B.C. influence had initially touched Rome indirectly through the Etruscans, the Roman conquest of southern Italy and Sicily brought in southern Italy). Rome was the Etruscans’ most enthe Romans into direct contact with Greeks. during product.

building program. They constructed the first roadbed of the chief street through Rome---the Sacred Way---before 575 B.C. and oversaw the development of temples, markets, shops, streets, and houses. By 509 B.C., the date when the monarchy was supposedly overthrown and a republican form of government was established, a new Rome had emerged, essentially as a result of the fusion of Etruscan and native Roman elements. After Rome had expanded over its seven hills and the valleys in between, the Servian Wall was built to surround the city in the fourth century B.C.

The Roman Republic (c. 509--264 B.C.)

Q Focus Question: What were the major political

institutions of the Roman Republic, and what policies and institutions help explain the Romans’ success in conquering Italy?

The transition from a monarchy to a republican government was not easy. Rome felt threatened by enemies from every direction and, in the process of meeting these threats, embarked on a course of military expansion that led to the conquest of the entire Italian peninsula. During this period of expansion in Italy, the Roman Republic developed political institutions that were in many ways determined by the social divisions that existed within the community.

The Roman State In politics and law, as in conquest, the Romans took a practical approach and fashioned political institutions in response to problems as they arose. Hence it is important to remember that the political institutions we will discuss evolved over a period of centuries. Political Institutions The chief executive officers of the Roman Republic were the consuls and praetors. Two consuls, chosen annually, administered the government and led the Roman army into battle. They possessed imperium, ‘‘the right to command.’’ In 366 B.C., a new office, that of the praetor, was created. The praetor also possessed imperium and could govern Rome when the consuls were away from the city and could also lead armies. The praetor’s primary function, however, was the execution of justice. He was in charge of the civil law as it applied to Roman citizens. In 242 B.C., reflecting Rome’s growth, another praetor was added to judge cases in which one or both people were noncitizens. As Rome expanded into the Mediterranean, additional praetors were established to govern the newly 88

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

conquered provinces (two in 227, two more in 197). But as the number of provinces continued to grow, the Romans devised a new system in which ex-consuls and expraetors who had served their one-year terms were given the title of proconsul and propraetor and sent out as provincial governors. This demonstrates once again the Romans’ practical solution to an immediate problem. It was reasonable to assume that officials with governmental experience would make good provincial administrators, although this was not always true in practice due to the opportunities for financial corruption in the provinces. The Roman state also had administrative officials with specialized duties. Quaestors were assigned to assist consuls and praetors in the administration of financial affairs. Aediles supervised the public games and watched over the grain supply of the city, a major problem for a rapidly growing urban community that relied on imported grain to feed its population. The Roman senate held an especially important position in the Roman Republic. The senate, or council of elders, was a select group of about three hundred men who served for life. The senate was not a legislative body and could only advise the magistrates. The advice of the senate was not taken lightly, however, and by the third century B.C., it had virtually the force of law. No doubt the prestige of the senate’s members furthered this development. But it also helped that the senate met continuously, whereas the chief magistrates changed annually and the popular assemblies operated slowly and met only periodically. The Roman Republic possessed a number of popular assemblies. The most important was the centuriate assembly, essentially the Roman army functioning in its political role. Organized by classes based on wealth, it was structured in such a way that the wealthiest citizens always had a majority. The centuriate assembly elected the chief magistrates and passed laws. Another assembly, the council of the plebs, came into being in 471 B.C. as a result of the struggle of the orders (see the next section). The government of the Roman Republic, then, consisted of three major elements. Two consuls and later other elected officials served as magistrates and ran the state. An assembly of adult males (the centuriate assembly), controlled by the wealthiest citizens, elected these officials, while the senate, a small group of large landowners, advised them. The Roman state, then, was an aristocratic republic controlled by a relatively small group of privileged people. The Struggle of the Orders: Social Divisions in the Roman Republic The most noticeable element in the social organization of early Rome was the division between two groups---the patricians and the plebeians. The patrician class in Rome consisted of families who were

descended from the original senators appointed during the period of the kings. Their initial prominence was probably due to their wealth as great landowners. Thus patricians constituted an aristocratic governing class. Only they could be consuls, magistrates, and senators. Through their patronage of large numbers of dependent clients, they could control the centuriate assembly and many other facets of Roman life. The plebeians constituted the considerably larger group of ‘‘independent, unprivileged, poorer, and vulnerable men’’ as well as large nonpatrician landowners, less wealthy landholders, craftspeople, merchants, and small farmers. Although they were citizens, they did not possess the same rights as the patricians. Both patricians and plebeians could vote, but only the patricians could be elected to governmental offices. Both had the right to make legal contracts and marriages, but intermarriage between patricians and plebeians was forbidden. At the beginning of the fifth century B.C., the plebeians began a struggle to seek both political and social equality with the patricians. The first success of the plebeians came in 494 B.C., when they withdrew physically from the state. The patricians, realizing that they could not defend Rome by themselves, were forced to compromise. Two new officials known as tribunes of the plebs were instituted (later raised to five and then ten in number). These tribunes were given the power to protect plebeians against arrest by patrician magistrates. Moreover, after a new popular assembly for plebeians only, called the council of the plebs, was created in 471 B.C., the tribunes became responsible for convoking it and placing proposals before it. If adopted, these measures became plebiscita (‘‘it is the opinion of the plebs’’), but they were binding only on the plebeians, not the patricians. Nevertheless, the council of the plebs gave the plebeians considerable political leverage. After 445 B.C., when a law allowed patricians and plebeians to intermarry, the division between the two groups became less important. In the fourth century B.C., the consulship was opened to the plebeians. The climax of the struggle between the orders came in 287 B.C. with passage of a law that stipulated that all plebiscita passed by the council of the plebs had the force of law and were binding on the entire community, including patricians. The struggle between the orders, then, had a significant impact on the development of the Roman constitution. Plebeians could hold the highest offices of state, they could intermarry with the patricians, and they could pass laws binding on the entire Roman community. Although the struggle had been long, the Romans had handled it by compromise, not violent revolution. Theoretically, by 287 B.C., all Roman citizens were equal under the law, and all could strive for political office. But in reality, as a result of the right of intermarriage, a select number of patrician

and plebeian families formed a new senatorial aristocracy that came to dominate the political offices. The Roman Republic had not become a democracy.

The Roman Conquest of Italy At the beginning of the Republic, Rome was surrounded by enemies, including the Etruscans to the north and the Sabines, Volscians, and Aequi to the east and south. The Latin communities on the plain of Latium posed an even more immediate threat. If we are to believe Livy, one of the chief ancient sources for the history of the early Roman Republic, Rome was engaged in almost continuous warfare with its neighbors for the next hundred years. In his account of these years, Livy provided a detailed narrative of Roman efforts. Many of Livy’s stories were legendary in character and indeed were modeled on events in Greek history. But Livy, writing in the first century B.C., used such stories to teach Romans the moral values and virtues that had made Rome great. These included tenacity, duty, courage, and especially discipline (see the box on p. 90). Indeed, Livy recounted stories of military leaders who executed their own sons for leaving their place in battle, a serious offense, since the success of the hoplite infantry depended on maintaining a precise order. These stories had little basis in fact, but like the story of George Washington and the cherry tree in American history, they provided mythic images to reinforce Roman patriotism. By 338 B.C., Rome had crushed the Latin states in Latium. During the next fifty years, the Romans waged a fierce struggle with the Samnites, a hill people from the central Apennines, some of whom had settled in Campania, south of Rome. Rome was again victorious. The conquest of the Samnites gave Rome considerable control over a large part of Italy and also brought it into direct contact with the Greek communities of southern Italy. Soon after their conquest of the Samnites, the Romans were involved in hostilities with some of these Greek cities and by 267 B.C. had completed their conquest of southern Italy. After overrunning the remaining Etruscan states to the north in 264 B.C., Rome had conquered all of modern Italy except the extreme north. To rule Italy, the Romans devised the Roman Confederation. Under this system, Rome allowed some peoples---especially the Latins---to have full Roman citizenship. Most of the remaining communities were made allies. They remained free to run their own local affairs but were required to provide soldiers for Rome. Moreover, the Romans made it clear that loyal allies could improve their status and even aspire to becoming Roman citizens. Thus the Romans had found a way to give conquered peoples a stake in Rome’s success. T HE R OMAN R EPUBLIC ( C . 509--264 B . C .)

89

CINCINNATUS SAVES ROME: A ROMAN MORALITY TALE There is perhaps no better account of how the virtues of duty and simplicity enabled good Roman citizens to prevail during the travails of the fifth century B.C. than Livy’s account of Cincinnatus. He was chosen dictator, supposedly in 457 B.C., to defend Rome against the attacks of the Aequi. The position of dictator was a temporary expedient used only in emergencies; the consuls would resign, and a leader with unlimited power would be appointed for a fixed period (usually six months). In this account, Cincinnatus did his duty, defeated the Aequi, and returned to his simple farm in just fifteen days.

Livy, The Early History of Rome The city was thrown into a state of turmoil, and the general alarm was as great as if Rome herself were surrounded. Nautius was sent for, but it was quickly decided that he was not the man to inspire full confidence; the situation evidently called for a dictator, and, with no dissenting voice, Lucius Quinctius Cincinnatus was named for the post. Now I would solicit the particular attention of those numerous people who imagine that money is everything in this world, and that rank and ability are inseparable from wealth: let them observe that Cincinnatus, the one man in whom Rome reposed all her hope of survival, was at that moment working a little three-acre farm . . . west of the Tiber, just opposite the spot where the shipyards are today. A mission from the city found him at work on his land--digging a ditch, maybe, or plowing. Greetings were exchanged, and he was asked---with a prayer for divine blessing on himself and his

The Romans’ conquest of Italy can hardly be said to be the result of a direct policy of expansion. Much of it was opportunistic. The Romans did not hesitate to act when they felt that their security was threatened. And surrounded by potential enemies, Rome in a sense never felt secure. Yet once embarked on a course of expansion, the Romans pursued consistent policies that help explain their success. The Romans excelled at making wise diplomatic decisions. Though firm and even cruel when necessary---rebellions were put down without mercy--they were also shrewd in extending citizenship and allowing autonomy in domestic affairs. In addition, the Romans were not only good soldiers but persistent ones as well. The loss of an army or a fleet did not cause them to quit but instead spurred them on to build new armies and new fleets. Finally, the Romans had a practical sense of strategy. As they conquered, they settled Romans and Latins in new communities outside Latium. By 264 B.C., the Romans had established fortified towns at all strategic locations. By building roads to these settlements and 90

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

country---to put on his toga and hear the Senate’s instructions. This naturally surprised him, and, asking if all were well, he told his wife Racilia to run to their cottage and fetch his toga. The toga was brought, and wiping the grimy sweat from his hands and face he put it on; at once the envoys from the city saluted him, with congratulations, as Dictator, invited him to enter Rome, and informed him of the terrible danger of Municius’ army. A state vessel was waiting for him on the river, and on the city bank he was welcomed by his three sons who had come to meet him, then by other kinsmen and friends, and finally by nearly the whole body of senators. Closely attended by all these people and preceded by his lictors he was then escorted to his residence through streets lined with great crowds of common folk who, be it said, were by no means so pleased to see the new Dictator, as they thought his power excessive and dreaded the way in which he was likely to use it. [Cincinnatus proceeds to raise an army, march out, and defeat the Aequi.] In Rome the Senate was convened by Quintus Fabius the City Prefect, and a decree was passed inviting Cincinnatus to enter in triumph with his troops. The chariot he rode in was preceded by the enemy commanders and the military standards, and followed by his army loaded with its spoils. . . . Cincinnatus finally resigned after holding office for fifteen days, having originally accepted it for a period of six months.

Q What values did Livy emphasize in his account of Cincinnatus? How important were those values to Rome’s success? Why did Livy say he wrote his history?

connecting them, the Romans assured themselves of an impressive military and communications network that enabled them to rule effectively and efficiently. Insisting on military service from the allies in the Roman Confederation, Rome essentially mobilized the entire military manpower of all Italy for its wars.

The Roman Conquest of the Mediterranean (264--133 B.C.)

Q Focus Question: How did Rome achieve its empire

from 264 to 133 B.C., and what is meant by the phrase ‘‘Roman imperialism’’?

After their conquest of the Italian peninsula, the Romans found themselves face to face with a formidable Mediterranean power---Carthage. Founded around 800 B.C. by Phoenicians from Tyre, Carthage in North Africa was located in a favorable position for commanding

100

0 Po

200

300 Kilometers

100 1

200 Miles

R.

G Genoa

Bo ollogna o og

Tiber R.

Adr ia tic Corsicca Co

Roman Roads in Italy. The Romans built a remarkable system of roads. After laying a foundation with gravel, which allowed for drainage, the Roman builders placed flagstones, closely fitted together. Unlike other peoples who built similar kinds of roads, the Romans did not follow the contours of the land but made their roads as straight as possible to facilitate communications and transportation, especially for military purposes. Seen here is a view of the Via Appia (Appian Way), built in 312 B.C. under the leadership of the censor and consul Appius Claudius (Roman roads were often named after the great Roman families who encouraged their construction). The Via Appia (shown on the map) was meant to make it easy for Roman armies to march from Rome to the newly conquered city of Capua, a distance of 152 miles.

Sea Rom me Capua ua Via Appia

Sardinia Sa ia a Ty r rheni an Sea Pallerm rmo mo

Sicily

I onian Sea

c

Jon Arnold Images (Walter Bibikow)/Alamy

Mediterranean Sea

Messsanna

Mediterranean trade routes and had become an important commercial center (see Map 5.2). It had become politically and militarily strong as well. By the third century B.C., the Carthaginian empire included the coast of northern Africa, southern Spain, Sardinia, Corsica, and western Sicily. With its monopoly of western Mediterranean trade, Carthage was the largest and richest state in the area. The presence of Carthaginians in Sicily made the Romans apprehensive about Carthaginian encroachment on the Italian coast. In 264 B.C., mutual suspicions drove the two powers into a lengthy struggle for control of the western Mediterranean.

The Struggle with Carthage The First Punic War (264--241 B.C.) (the Latin word for Phoenician was Punicus) began when the Romans decided to intervene in a struggle between two Sicilian cities by sending an army to Sicily. The Carthaginians, who considered Sicily within their own sphere of influence, deemed this just cause for war. In going to war, both sides determined on the conquest of Sicily. The Romans

realized that the war would be long and drawn out if they could not supplement land operations with a navy and promptly developed a substantial naval fleet. The Carthaginians, for their part, had difficulty finding enough mercenaries to continue the fight. After a long struggle in which both sides lost battles in northern Africa and Sicily, a Roman fleet defeated the Carthaginian navy off Sicily, and the war quickly came to an end. In 241 B.C., Carthage gave up all rights to Sicily and had to pay an indemnity. Hannibal and the Second Punic War After the war, Carthage made an unexpected recovery and extended its domains in Spain to compensate for the territory lost to Rome. The Carthaginians proceeded to organize a formidable land army in the event of a second war with Rome, because they realized that defeating Rome on land was essential to victory. When the Romans encouraged one of Carthage’s Spanish allies to revolt against Carthage, Hannibal, the greatest of the Carthaginian generals, struck back, beginning the Second Punic War (218--201 B.C.). This time the Carthaginians decided to bring the war home to the Romans by fighting in their own backyard.

T HE R OMAN C ONQUEST

OF THE

M EDITERRANEAN (264--133 B . C .)

91

Da nub e

s Alp

ro Eb

Py r ene

Po R. Lakee Tras assime iim me menee 217 B.C 217 B.C.

Tre T Tr rebbia ia R.

es

R.

Ad

SPAIN

Co orsiica

Saguntum New Carthage

Baleari

s an d c Isl

Sard Sar a dinia a

IL

Zama 202 B.C.

R.

R

IA ia Rom me S e a t i c Can C annna nae ae MA ACE C DONIA IA 216 166 B.C B.C. C. Cap C appua ua Peellllaa Pel Tar Ta T aarent entuum um Pydna y ITAL IT AL A LY 168 B.C. r

Cynnosc Cy scep sc eephalaae 197 7 B.C. .C

Drepanaa 242 B.C .C C. Caarthage ar ar e

LY

Mes essa san ana SSicily M

GREE GR RE EECE EE ECE CE

Atthens A

Black Sea NIA HY T I B

Taur

Cor C orrint ntth

Syyracuse Syr

Med

ASIA MINOR

Pergaam amum Ma nesia Mag Ma 189 89 9 B.C.

. us Mts

Rho R hodes hodes de

iterr

Crreete Cre Cr te

anean

Cyypruss Cyp

SYRIA

Sea

Italy Al xan Ale xanddri drriaa

Roman conquests Roman allies Battle site

300

600

900 Kilometers

N

le

i

Hannibal’s invasion route

EGYPT 0

300

600 Miles

.

R

Red Sea

MAP 5.2 Roman Conquests in the Mediterranean, 264–133 B. C. Beginning with the

Punic Wars in 264 B.C., Rome expanded its holdings, first in the western Mediterranean at the expense of Carthage and later in Greece and western Asia Minor. Q What aspects of Mediterranean geography, combined with the territorial holdings and aspirations of Rome and the Carthaginians, made the Punic Wars more likely?

Hannibal went into Spain, moved east, and crossed the Alps with an army of thirty to forty thousand men and six thousand horses and elephants. The Alps took a toll on the Carthaginian army; most of the elephants did not survive the trip. The remaining army, however, posed a real threat. At Cannae in 216 B.C., the Romans lost an army of almost forty thousand men. Rome seemed on the brink of disaster but refused to give up, raised yet another army, and gradually recovered. Although Hannibal remained free to roam in Italy, he had neither the men nor the equipment to lay siege to the major cities, no less Rome itself. The Romans began to reconquer some of the Italian cities that had rebelled against Roman rule after Hannibal’s successes. More important, the Romans pursued a strategy that aimed at undermining the Carthaginian empire in Spain. By 206 B.C., the Romans had pushed the Carthaginians out of Spain. The Romans then took the war directly to Carthage. Late in 204 B.C., a Roman army under Publius Cornelius Scipio, later known as Scipio Africanus, moved from Sicily into northern Africa and forced the Carthaginians to recall 92

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

Hannibal from Italy. At the Battle of Zama in 202 B.C., the Romans decisively defeated Hannibal’s forces, and the war was essentially over. Eventually, Hannibal left Carthage and went to help Antiochus, the ruler of the Seleucid kingdom, in his struggle with Rome. After Antiochus made peace with the Romans, Hannibal fled to Bithynia, near the Black Sea. Pursued by the Romans, Hannibal declared, ‘‘Let us free Rome of her dread of one old man,’’ and committed suicide. By the peace treaty signed in 201 B.C. by the Carthaginians and the Romans, Carthage lost Spain, agreed to pay an indemnity, and promised not to go to war without Rome’s permission. Spain, like Sicily, Corsica, and Sardinia earlier, was made into a Roman province. Rome had become the dominant power in the western Mediterranean. The Destruction of Carthage But some Romans wanted even more. A number of prominent Romans, especially the conservative politician Cato, advocated the complete destruction of Carthage. Cato ended every speech he made to the senate with the words, ‘‘And I think

the control of the Roman governor of Macedonia. Thirteen years later, in 133 B.C., the king of Pergamum deeded his kingdom to Rome, giving Rome its first province in Asia. Rome was now master of the Mediterranean Sea.

CHRONOLOGY The Roman Conquest of Italy and the Mediterranean Defeat of the Latin states

340--338 B.C.

Samnite Wars

343--290 B.C.

Defeat of Greek states in southern Italy

281--267 B.C.

First Punic War

264--241 B.C.

Second Punic War

218--201 B.C.

Battle of Cannae

216 B.C.

Completion of Roman seizure of Spain

206 B.C.

Battle of Zama

202 B.C

Third Punic War

The Nature of Roman Imperialism

149--146 B.C.

Incorporation of Macedonia as a Roman province

148 B.C.

Destruction of Carthage

146 B.C.

Roman acquisition of Pergamum

133 B.C.

Carthage must be destroyed.’’ When the Carthaginians technically broke their peace treaty with Rome by going to war against one of Rome’s North African allies who had been encroaching on Carthage’s home territory, the Romans declared war. Roman forces undertook their third and last war with Carthage (149--146 B.C.). This time Carthage was no match for the Romans, who in 146 B.C. seized this opportunity to carry out the final destruction of Carthage. The territory was made a Roman province called Africa.

The Eastern Mediterranean During the Punic Wars, Rome had become acutely aware of the Hellenistic states of the eastern Mediterranean when the king of Macedonia made an alliance with Hannibal after the Roman defeat at Cannae. But Rome was preoccupied with the Carthaginians, and it was not until after the defeat of Carthage that Rome became involved in the world of Hellenistic politics as an advocate of the freedom of the Greek states. This support of the Greeks brought the Romans into conflict with both Macedonia and the kingdom of the Seleucids. Roman military victories and diplomatic negotiations rearranged the territorial boundaries of the Hellenistic kingdoms and brought the Greek states their freedom in 196 B.C. For fifty years, the Romans tried to be a power broker in the affairs of the Greeks without direct control of their lands. When the effort failed, the Romans changed their policy. Macedonia was made a Roman province in 148 B.C., and when some of the Greek states rose in revolt against Rome’s restrictive policies, Rome acted decisively. The city of Corinth, leader of the revolt, was destroyed in 146 B.C. to teach the Greeks a lesson, and Greece was placed under

Rome’s empire was built in three stages: the conquest of Italy, the conflict with Carthage and expansion into the western Mediterranean, and the involvement with and domination of the Hellenistic kingdoms in the eastern Mediterranean. The Romans did not have a master plan for the creation of an empire; as it had been in Italy, much of their continued expansion was opportunistic, in response to perceived threats to their security. The more they expanded, the more threats to their security appeared on the horizon, involving them in yet more conflicts. Indeed, the Romans liked to portray themselves as declaring war only for defensive reasons or to protect allies. That is only part of the story, however. It is likely, as some historians have suggested, that at some point a group of Roman aristocratic leaders emerged who favored expansion both for the glory it offered and for the economic benefits it provided. Certainly, by the second century B.C., aristocratic senators perceived new opportunities for lucrative foreign commands, enormous spoils of war, and an abundant supply of slave labor for their growing landed estates. By that same time, the destruction of Corinth and Carthage indicated that Roman imperialism had become more arrogant and brutal as well. Rome’s foreign success also had enormous repercussions for the internal development of the Roman Republic.

Evolution of the Roman Army By the fourth century B.C., the Roman army consisted of four legions, each made up of four thousand to five thousand men; each legion had about three hundred cavalry and the rest infantry. The infantry consisted of three lines of battle. The hastati (spearmen), consisting of the youngest recruits, formed the front line; they were armed with heavy spears and short swords and were protected by a large oval shield, helmet, breastplate, and greaves (shin guards). The principes (chief men), armed and protected like the hastati, formed the second line. The third line of battle was formed by the triarii (third-rank men), who knelt behind the first two lines, ready to move up and fill any gaps. A fourth group of troops, poor citizens who wore cloaks but no armor and were lightly armed, functioned as skirmishers who usually returned to the rear lines after their initial contact with the enemy to form backup reserves. In the early Republic, the army was recruited from citizens between the ages of eighteen and forty-six who had

T HE R OMAN C ONQUEST

OF THE

M EDITERRANEAN (264--133 B . C .)

93

Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY

c

A Roman Legionary. The Roman legionaries, famed for their courage and tenacity, made possible Roman domination of the Mediterranean Sea. At the time of the Punic Wars, the Roman legionaries wore chain-mail armor and plumed helmets and carried oval shields, as seen in this portrait of legionaries on the relief on the sarcophagus of Domitius Ahenobarbus, about A.D. 100. Heavy javelins and swords were their major weapons. This equipment remained standard until the time of Julius Caesar.

the resources to equip themselves for battle. Since most of them were farmers, they enrolled only for a year, campaigned during the summer months, and returned home in time for the fall harvest. Later, during the Punic Wars of the third century B.C., the period of service had to be extended, although this was resisted by farmers whose livelihoods could be severely harmed by a long absence. Nevertheless, after the disastrous battle of Cannae in 216 B.C., the Romans were forced to recruit larger armies, and the number of legions rose to twenty-five. Major changes in recruitment would not come until the first century B.C. with the military reforms of Marius (see ‘‘A New Role for the Roman Army: Marius and Sulla’’ later in this chapter).

Society and Culture in the Roman World

Q Focus Question: How did the acquisition of an empire affect Roman social and economic institutions, values and attitudes, and art and literature?

One of the most noticeable aspects of Roman culture and society is the impact of the Greeks. The Romans had experienced Greek influence early on through the Greek cities in southern Italy. By the end of the third century B.C., however, Greek civilization was playing an ever-increasing role in Roman culture. Greek ambassadors, merchants, and artists traveled to Rome and spread Greek thought and practices. After their conquest of the Hellenistic kingdoms, Roman 94

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

military commanders shipped Greek manuscripts and artworks back to Rome. Multitudes of educated Greek slaves were used in Roman households. Virtually every area of Roman life, from literature and philosophy to religion and education, was affected by Greek models. Rich Romans hired Greek tutors and sent their sons to Athens to study. As the Roman poet Horace said, ‘‘Captive Greece took captive her rude conqueror.’’ Greek thought captivated the less sophisticated Roman mind, and the Romans became willing transmitters of Greek culture---not, however, without some resistance from Romans who had nothing but contempt for Greek politics and who feared the end of old Roman values. Even those who favored Greek culture blamed the Greeks for Rome’s new vices, including a taste for luxury and homosexual practices.

Roman Religion

Every aspect of Roman society was permeated with religion. The official state religion focused on the worship of a pantheon of gods and goddesses, including Jupiter, Juno, Minerva, and Mars. As Rome developed and came into contact with other peoples and gods, the community simply adopted new deities. Hence the Greek Hermes became the Roman Mercury. Eventually, a complete amalgamation of Greek and Roman religion occurred, giving the Romans and the Greeks essentially a single ‘‘Greco-Roman’’ religion. Roman religion focused on the worship of the gods for a very practical reason---human beings were thought to be totally dependent on them. The exact performance of ritual was crucial to establishing a right relationship with the gods. What was true for individuals was also valid for the state: it also had to observe correct ritual to receive its reward. Accurate performance of ritual was performed by a college of priests or pontiffs, who thus bore responsibility for maintaining the right relationship between the state and the gods. If the rituals were performed correctly, the Romans would obtain the ‘‘peace of the gods.’’ No doubt the Roman success in creating an empire was a visible confirmation of divine favor. As Cicero, the first-century B.C. politician and writer, claimed, ‘‘We have overcome all the nations of the world, because we have realized that the world is directed and governed by the gods.’’1 Just as the state had an official cult, so did families. Because the family was regarded as a small state within the state, it had its own household cults, which included Janus, the spirit of the doorway, and Vesta, goddess of the hearth. Here, too, proper ritual was important, and it was

c

Scala/Art Resource, NY

The Growth of Slavery

Temple of Portunus. The Romans considered the proper worship of the gods an important key to success. Typical of Roman religious architecture was the small urban temple located in the midst of a crowded commercial center. Pictured here is a rectangular temple built in Rome in the late second or early first century B.C. and dedicated to Portunus, the god of harbors. The temple was located in the cattle market close to the Tiber River.

the responsibility of the paterfamilias as head of the family to ensure that religious obligations were properly fulfilled. Religious festivals were an important part of Roman religious practice. There were two kinds: public festivals ordained and paid for by the state and private festivals celebrated by individuals and families. By the mid-second century B.C., six public festivals were celebrated annually, each lasting several days. The practice of holding games also grew out of religious festivals. The games were inaugurated in honor of Jupiter Optimus Maximus (‘‘best and greatest’’), the patron deity of Rome, but had become annual events by 366 B.C. In the late Republic, both the number of games and the number of days they lasted were increased. Originally, the games consisted of chariot racing in the Circus Maximus; later, animal hunts and theatrical performances were added. In the empire, gladiatorial contests would become the primary focus (see Chapter 6).

Slavery was a common institution throughout the ancient world, but no people possessed more slaves or relied so much on slave labor as the Romans eventually did. Before the third century B.C., a small Roman farmer might possess one or two slaves who would help farm his few acres and perform domestic chores. These slaves would most likely be from Italy and be regarded as part of the family household. Only the very rich would have large numbers of slaves. The Roman conquest of the Mediterranean brought a drastic change in the use of slaves. Large numbers of foreign slaves were brought back to Italy. During the Republic, then, the chief source of slaves was from capture in war, followed by piracy. Of course, the children of slaves also became slaves. While some Roman generals brought back slaves to be sold to benefit the public treasury, ambitious generals of the first century B.C., such as Pompey and Caesar, made personal fortunes by treating slaves captured by their armies as private property. Slaves were used in many ways in Roman society. The rich, of course, owned the most and the best. In the late Republic, it became a badge of prestige to be attended by many slaves. Greeks were in much demand as tutors, musicians, doctors, and artists. Roman businessmen would employ them as shop assistants or artisans. Slaves were also used as farm laborers; in fact, huge gangs of slaves living in pitiful conditions worked the large landed estates known as latifundia. Cato the Elder argued that it was cheaper to work slaves to death and then replace them than to treat them well. Many slaves of all nationalities were used as menial household workers, such as cooks, valets, waiters, cleaners, and gardeners. Roads, aqueducts, and other public facilities were constructed by contractors using slave labor. The total number of slaves is difficult to judge---estimates vary from 20 to 30 percent of the population. It is also difficult to generalize about the treatment of Roman slaves. There are numerous instances of humane treatment by masters and situations where slaves even protected their owners from danger out of gratitude and esteem. But slaves were also subject to severe punishments, torture, abuse, and hard labor that drove some to run away or even revolt against their owners. The Republic had stringent laws against aiding a runaway slave. The murder of a master by a slave might mean the execution of all the other household slaves. Near the end of the second century B.C., large-scale slave revolts occurred in Sicily, where enormous gangs of slaves were subjected to horrible working conditions on large landed estates. Slaves were branded, beaten, inadequately fed, worked in chains, and housed at night in underground prisons. S OCIETY

AND

C ULTURE

IN THE

R OMAN WORLD

95

FILM & HISTORY SPARTACUS (1960)

Spartacus that was ended by Roman troops commanded by Crassus), it also contains a number of historical inaccuracies. Although many slave leaders were crucified, Spartacus was not one of them. He was killed in the final battle, and his body was never found. Crassus, the general who crushed the slave rebellion, was not seeking dictatorial power as the film insists. The character of Gracchus is depicted as a mob-loving popular senatorial leader, although the Gracchus brothers (known as the Gracchi) had died some fifty years before the revolt. Julius Caesar had nothing to do with Spartacus, nor was he made prefect of the city, a position that did not yet exist.

It took three years (135--132 B.C.) to crush a revolt of seventy thousand slaves, and the great revolt on Sicily (104--101 B.C.) involved most of the island and took a Roman army of seventeen thousand men to suppress. The most famous revolt on the Italian peninsula occurred in 73 B.C. Led by Spartacus, a slave who had been a Thracian

gladiator, the revolt broke out in southern Italy and involved seventy thousand slaves. Spartacus managed to defeat several Roman armies before he was finally trapped and killed in southern Italy in 71 B.C. Six thousand of his followers were crucified, the traditional form of execution for slaves.

96

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

Bryna/Universal/The Kobal Collection

Spartacus, directed by Stanley Kubrick, is based on Spartacus, a novel written by Howard Fast, and focuses for the most part on the major events in the life of the gladiator who led a major rebellion against the Romans. Kirk Douglas stars as a Thracian slave who was bought and trained as a gladiator by Batiatus, a role played by Peter Ustinov, who won an Oscar for Best Supporting Actor for his performance. Spartacus leads a revolt in the gladiatorial camp in Capua run by Batiatus, flees with the other gladiators, and then brings together a large number of escaped slaves as they move through southern Italy. The gladiators among them are able to create the semblance of a trained army, and they are initially successful in defeating a force sent from the city of Rome. Eventually, however, they are defeated by the army of Crassus (Laurence Olivier), who is aided by the unexpected arrival of the forces of two other Roman generals. Many of the leaders of the revolt, including Spartacus, are crucified as punishment for their rebellion. Nevertheless, the movie has a typical happy Hollywood ending, which is entirely fictional. Varinia, a slave woman (Jean Simmons) who has married Spartacus and given birth to his son, bids a final farewell to the crucified Spartacus, who sees his son and is assured by Varinia that he will live as a free man. Freedom is the key word for this entire movie. Spartacus is portrayed as a man who dreamed of the death of slavery, thousands of years before its death (although he would be disappointed to know that it still survives in some corners of the world today). The film rings with the words of freedom: ‘‘We only want our freedom,’’ ‘‘We must stay true to ourselves; we are brothers and we are free,’’ and ‘‘I pray for a son who must be born free.’’ Indeed, freedom was also on the minds of the film’s creators. The film appeared in 1960, only a few years after Senator Joseph McCarthy’s anti-Communist crusade in the 1950s had led to an exaggerated fear of Communists. Both Howard Fast, the author of the novel Spartacus, and Dalton Trumbo, the screenwriter for the film, had been blacklisted from working in Hollywood as a result of McCarthy’s charges that they were Communists or Communist sympathizers. The film was a statement of Hollywood’s determination to allow both men to work freely and openly. The speeches about freedom also evoke the rhetoric of free world versus communism that was heard frequently during the height of the Cold War in the 1950s. Although the general outlines of the film are historically accurate (there was a slave rebellion in southern Italy from 73 to 71 B.C. led by

Spartacus (Kirk Douglas) collects booty and followers as he leads his army south.

CATO

THE

ELDER

During the Second Punic War, the Romans enacted the Oppian Law, which limited the amount of gold women could possess and restricted their dress and use of carriages. In 195 B.C., an attempt was made to repeal the law, and women demonstrated in the streets on behalf of the effort. According to the Roman historian Livy, the conservative Roman official Cato the Elder spoke against repeal and against the women favoring it. Although the words are probably not Cato’s own, they do reflect a traditional male Roman attitude toward women.

Livy, The History of Rome ‘‘If each of us, citizens, had determined to assert his rights and dignity as a husband with respect to his own spouse, we should have less trouble with the sex as a whole; as it is, our liberty, destroyed at home by female violence, even here in the Forum is crushed and trodden underfoot, and because we have not kept them individually under control, we dread them collectively. . . . But from no class is there not the greatest danger if you permit them meetings and gatherings and secret consultations. . . . ‘‘Our ancestors permitted no woman to conduct even personal business without a guardian to intervene in her behalf; they wished them to be under the control of fathers, brothers, husbands; we (Heaven help us!) allow them now even to interfere in public affairs, yes, and to visit the Forum and our informal and formal sessions. What else are they doing now on the streets and at the corners except urging the bill of the tribunes and voting for the repeal of the

The Roman Family At the heart of the Roman social structure stood the family, headed by the paterfamilias---the dominant male. The household also included the wife, sons with their wives and children, unmarried daughters, and slaves. A family was virtually a small state within the state, and the power of the paterfamilias was parallel to that of the state magistrates over the citizens. Like the Greeks, Roman males believed that the weakness of the female sex necessitated male guardians (see the box above). The paterfamilias exercised that authority; on his death, sons or close male relatives assumed the role of guardians. By the late Republic, however, although the rights of male guardians remained legally in effect, upper-class women found numerous ways to circumvent the power of their guardians. Fathers arranged the marriages of daughters, although there are instances of mothers and daughters having influence on the choice. In the Republic, women married cum manu, ‘‘with legal control’’ passing from father to husband. By the mid-first century B.C., the dominant

ON

WOMEN

law? Give loose rein to their uncontrollable nature and to this untamed creature and expect that they will themselves set bounds to their license; unless you act, this is the least of the things enjoined upon women by custom or law and to which they submit with a feeling of injustice. It is complete liberty or rather, if we wish to speak the truth, complete license that they desire. ‘‘If they win in this, what will they not attempt? Review all the laws with which your forefathers restrained their license and made them subject to their husbands; even with all these bonds you can scarcely control them. What of this? If you suffer them to seize these bonds one by one and wrench themselves free and finally to be placed on a parity with their husbands, do you think you will be able to endure them? The moment they begin to be your equals, they will be your superiors. . . . ‘‘Now they publicly address other women’s husbands, and, what is more serious, they beg for law and votes, and from various men they get what they ask. In matters affecting yourself, your property, your children, you, Sir, can be importuned; once the law has ceased to set a limit to your wife’s expenditures you will never set it yourself. Do not think, citizens, that the situation which existed before the law was passed will ever return. . . .’’

Q

What particular actions on the part of the women protesting this law have angered Cato? What more general concerns does he have about Roman women? What does he believe is women’s ultimate goal in regard to men?

practice had changed to sine manu, ‘‘without legal control,’’ which meant that married daughters officially remained within the father’s legal power. Since the fathers of most married women were dead, not being in the ‘‘legal control’’ of a husband made possible independent property rights that forceful women could translate into considerable power within the household and outside it. Traditionally, Roman marriages were intended to be for life, but divorce was introduced in the third century B.C. and became relatively easy to obtain: either party could initiate it, and no one needed to prove the breakdown of the marriage. Divorce became especially prevalent in the first century B.C.---a period of political turmoil---when marriages were used to cement political alliances. Some parents in upper-class families provided education for their daughters. Some girls had private tutors, and others may have gone to primary schools. But at the age when boys were entering secondary schools, girls were pushed into marriage. The legal minimum age was twelve, although fourteen was a more common age in practice. Although some Roman doctors warned that early pregnancies could be dangerous for young girls, S OCIETY

AND

C ULTURE

IN THE

R OMAN WORLD

97

The Art Archive/Alfredo Dagli Orti

listing his guidelines for dealing with different kinds of legal cases. The praetors were knowledgeable in law, but they also relied on Roman jurists---amateur law experts--for advice in preparing their edicts. The interpretations of the jurists, often embodied in the edicts of the praetors, created a body of legal principles. In 242 B.C., the Romans appointed a second praetor who was responsible for examining suits between a Roman and a non-Roman as well as between two nonRomans. The Romans found that although some of their rules of law could be used in these cases, special rules were often needed. These rules gave rise to a body of law known as the law of nations, defined by the Romans as ‘‘that part of the law which we apply both to ourselves and to foreigners.’’ But the influence of Greek philosophy, primarily Stoicism, led Romans in the late Republic to develop the idea of the law of nature---or universal divine law derived from right reason. The Romans came to view their law of nations as derived from or identical to this law of nature, thus giving Roman jurists a philosophical justification for systematizing Roman law according to basic principles.

c

The Development of Literature A Roman Woman. Roman women, especially those of the upper class, had comparatively more freedom than women in Classical Athens despite the persistent male belief that women required guardianship. This portrait of a Roman woman is from a Roman mosaic dating from the first century B.C.

early marriages persisted due to the desire to benefit from dowries as soon as possible and the reality of early mortality. A good example is Tullia, Cicero’s beloved daughter. She was married at sixteen, widowed at twentytwo, remarried one year later, divorced at twenty-eight, remarried at twenty-nine, and divorced at thirty-three. She died at thirty-four, not a particularly young age for females in Roman society.

The Evolution of Roman Law One of Rome’s chief gifts to the Mediterranean world of its day and to succeeding generations was its development of law. The Twelve Tables of 450 B.C. were the first codification of Roman law (see the box on p. 99), and although inappropriate for later times, they were never officially abrogated and were still memorized by schoolboys in the first century B.C. Civil law derived from the Twelve Tables proved inadequate for later Roman needs, however, and gave way to corrections and additions by the praetors. On taking office, a praetor issued an edict 98

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

The Romans produced little literature before the third century B.C., and the Latin literature that emerged in that century was strongly influenced by Greek models. The demand for plays at public festivals eventually led to a growing number of native playwrights. One of the best known was Plautus (c. 254--184 B.C.), who used plots from Greek New Comedy (see Chapter 4) for his own plays. The actors wore Greek costumes and Greek masks and portrayed the same basic stock characters: lecherous old men, skillful slaves, prostitutes, young men in love. Plautus wrote for the masses and became a very popular playwright in Rome. In the last century of the Republic, the Romans began to produce a new poetry, less dependent on epic themes and more inclined to personal expression. Latin poets were now able to use various Greek forms to express their own feelings about people, social and political life, and love. The finest example of this can be seen in the work of Catullus (c. 87--54 B.C.), Rome’s ‘‘best lyric poet’’ and one of the greatest in world literature. Catullus became a master at adapting and refining Greek forms of poetry to express his emotions. He wrote a variety of poems on, among other things, political figures, social customs, the use of language, the death of his brother, and the travails of love. Catullus became infatuated with Clodia, the promiscuous sister of a tribune and wife of a provincial governor, and addressed a number of poems to her (he called her Lesbia), describing

THE TWELVE TABLES In 451 B.C., plebeian pressure led to the creation of a special commission of ten men who were responsible for codifying Rome’s laws and making them public. In so doing, the plebeians hoped that they could restrict the arbitrary power of the patrician magistrates, who alone had access to the laws. The Twelve Tables represent the first formal codification of Roman laws and customs. The laws dealt with litigation procedures, debt, family relations, property, and other matters of public and sacred law. The code was inscribed on bronze plaques, which were eventually destroyed. These selections are taken from reconstructions of the code preserved in later writings.

Selections from the Twelve Tables Table III: Execution; Law of Debt When a debt has been acknowledged, or judgment about the matter has been pronounced in court, thirty days must be the legitimate time of grace. After that, the debtor may be arrested by laying on of hands. Bring him into court. If he does not satisfy the judgment, or no one in court offers himself as surety in his behalf, the creditor may take the defaulter with him. He may bind him either in stocks or in fetters. . . . Unless they make a settlement, debtors shall be held in bond for sixty days. During that time they shall be brought before the praetor’s court in the meeting place on three successive market days, and the amount for which they are judged liable shall be announced; on the third market day they shall suffer capital punishment or be delivered up for sale abroad, across the Tiber.

Table IV: Rights of Head of Family Quickly kill . . . a dreadfully deformed child. If a father three times surrenders a son for sale, the son shall be free from the father. A child born ten months after the father’s death will not be admitted into legal inheritance.

Table V: Guardianship; Succession Females shall remain in guardianship even when they have attained their majority.

his passionate love and hatred for her (Clodia had many other lovers besides Catullus): You used to say that you wished to know only Catullus, Lesbia, and wouldn’t take even Jove before me! I didn’t regard you just as my mistress then: I cherished you as a father does his sons or his daughters’ husbands. Now that I know you, I burn for you even more fiercely, though I regard you as almost utterly worthless.

A spendthrift is forbidden to exercise administration over his own goods. . . . A person who, being insane or a spendthrift, is prohibited from administering his own goods shall be under trusteeship of agnates [nearest male relatives].

Table VII: Rights Concerning Land Branches of a tree may be lopped off all round to a height of no more than 15 feet. . . . Should a tree on a neighbor’s farm be bent crooked by a wind and lean over your farm, action may be taken for removal of that tree. It is permitted to gather up fruit falling down on another man’s farm.

Table VIII: Torts or Delicts If any person has sung or composed against another person a song such as was causing slander or insult to another, he shall be clubbed to death. If a person has maimed another’s limb, let there be retaliation in kind unless he makes agreement for settlement with him. Any person who destroys by burning any building or heap of corn [grain] deposited alongside a house shall be bound, scourged, and put to death by burning at the stake, provided that he has committed the said misdeed with malice aforethought, but if he shall have committed it by accident, that is, by negligence, it is ordained that he repair the damage.

Table IX: Public Law The penalty shall be capital punishment for a judge or arbiter legally appointed who has been found guilty of receiving a bribe for giving a decision.

Table XI: Supplementary Laws Intermarriage shall not take place between plebeians and patricians.

Q What do the selections from the Twelve Tables reveal about Roman society? In what ways do these points of law differ from those found in the Code of Hammurabi? In what ways are they similar?

How can that be, you ask? It’s because such cruelty forces lust to assume the shrunken place of affection2

Catullus’ ability to express in simple fashion his intense feelings and curiosity about himself and his world had a noticeable impact on later Latin poets. The development of Roman prose was greatly aided by the practice of oratory. Romans had great respect for oratory since the ability to persuade people in public S OCIETY

AND

C ULTURE

IN THE

R OMAN WORLD

99

debate meant success in politics. Oratory was brought to perfection in a literary fashion by Cicero (106--43 B.C.), the best exemplar of the literary and intellectual interests of the senatorial elite of the late Republic and, indeed, the greatest prose writer of that period. For Cicero, oratory was not simply skillful speaking. An orator was a statesman, a man who achieved his highest goal by pursuing an active life in public affairs. Later, when the turmoil of the late Republic forced him into semiretirement politically, Cicero became more interested in the writing of philosophical treatises. He served a most valuable purpose for Roman society by popularizing and making understandable the works of Greek philosophers. In his philosophical works, Cicero, more than anyone else, transmitted the classical intellectual heritage to the Western world. Cicero’s original contributions came in the field of politics. His works On the Laws and On the Republic provided fresh insights into political thought, including the need for a mixed constitution: ‘‘a moderate and well-balanced form of government which is a combination of the three simple good forms (monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy) is preferable even to monarchy.’’3 His emphasis on the need to pursue an active life to benefit and improve humankind would greatly influence the later Italian Renaissance.

Roman Art The Romans were also dependent on the Greeks for artistic inspiration. During the third and second centuries B.C., they adopted many features of the Hellenistic style of art. The Romans developed a taste for Greek statues, which they placed not only in public buildings but also in their homes. Once demand outstripped the supply of original works, reproductions of Greek statues became fashionable. The Romans’ own portrait sculpture was characterized by an intense realism that included even unpleasant physical details. Wall paintings and frescoes in the houses of the rich realistically depicted landscapes, portraits, and scenes from mythological stories. The Romans excelled in architecture, a highly practical art. Although they continued to employ Greek styles and made use of colonnades, rectangular structures, and post-and-lintel construction, the Romans were also innovative. They made considerable use of curvilinear forms: the arch, vault, and dome. The Romans were also the first people in antiquity to use concrete on an enormous scale. By combining concrete and curvilinear forms, they were able to construct massive buildings---public baths and amphitheaters, the most famous of which was the Coliseum in Rome, capable of seating fifty thousand spectators. These large buildings 100

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

were made possible by Roman engineering skills. These same skills were put to use in constructing roads (the Romans built a network of 50,000 miles of roads throughout their empire), aqueducts (in Rome, almost a dozen aqueducts kept a population of one million supplied with water), and bridges.

Values and Attitudes The Romans were by nature a conservative people. They were very concerned about maintaining the mos maiorum, the customs or traditions of their ancestors. They emphasized parental authority and, above all, their obligations to the state. The highest virtue was pietas---the dutiful execution of one’s obligations to one’s fellow citizens, to the gods, and to the state. By the second century B.C., however, the assembling of an empire had begun to weaken the old values. The Romans began to focus more on affluence, status, and material possessions. Emphasis shifted toward individualism and away from collective well-being, the old public spirit that had served Rome so well. Observers worried about the decline of the old values blamed it on different causes. Some felt that after the destruction of Carthage, the Romans no longer had any strong enemies to challenge them. Others believed that the Romans had simply been overwhelmed by the affluence afforded by the new empire. And some blamed everything on the Greeks for importing ideas and practices baneful to the Romans. Of course, there were also many Romans who, though desirous of maintaining traditional values, were also well aware that the acquisition of an empire had created a new world with new demands and values.

The Decline and Fall of the Roman Republic (133--31 B.C.)

Q Focus Question: What were the main problems Rome

faced during the last century of the Republic, and how were they ultimately resolved?

By the mid-second century B.C., Roman domination of the Mediterranean Sea was well established. Yet the process of building an empire had weakened and threatened the internal stability of Rome. This internal instability characterizes the period of Roman history from 133 until 31 B.C., when the armies of Octavian defeated Mark Antony and stood supreme over the Roman world. By that time, the constitution of the Roman Republic was in shambles.

Social, Economic, and Political Problems By the second century B.C., the senate had become the effective governing body of the Roman state. It consisted of three hundred men, drawn primarily from the landed aristocracy; they remained senators for life and held the chief magistracies of the Republic. During the wars of the third and second centuries, the senate came to exercise enormous power. It directed the wars and took control of both foreign and domestic policy, including financial affairs. Moreover, the magistracies and senate were increasingly controlled by a relatively select circle of wealthy and powerful families, both patrician and plebeian, called the nobiles (‘‘nobles’’). In the hundred years from 233 to 133 B.C., 80 percent of the consuls came from twenty-six families; moreover, 50 percent came from only ten families. Hence the nobiles constituted a governing oligarchy that managed, through its landed wealth, system of patronage, and intimidation, to maintain its hold over the magistracies and senate and thus guide the destiny of Rome while running the state in its own interests. By the end of the second century B.C., two types of aristocratic leaders, called the optimates (‘‘the best men’’) and the populares (‘‘favoring the people’’), became prominent. Optimates and populares were terms of political rhetoric that were used by individuals within the aristocracy against fellow aristocratic rivals to distinguish one set of tactics from another. The optimates controlled the senate and wished to maintain their oligarchical privileges, while the populares were usually other ambitious aristocrats who used the people’s assemblies as instruments to break the domination of the optimates. The conflicts between these two types of aristocratic leaders and their supporters engulfed the first century B.C. in political turmoil. Of course, the aristocrats formed only a tiny minority of the Roman people. The backbone of the Roman state and army had traditionally been the small farmers. But economic changes that began in the period of the Punic Wars increasingly undermined the position of that group. Their lands had been severely damaged during the Second Punic War when Hannibal invaded Italy. Moreover, in order to win the wars, Rome had to increase the term of military service from two to six years. When they returned home, many farmers found their farms so deteriorated that they chose to sell out instead of remaining on the land. By this time, capitalistic agriculture was also increasing rapidly. Landed aristocrats had been able to develop large estates (the latifundia) by taking over state-owned land and by buying out small peasant owners. These large estates relied on slave and tenant labor and frequently concentrated on cash crops, such as grapes for wine, olives, and sheep for wool, which small farmers could not afford to do. Thus the rise of the latifundia contributed to the

decline in the number of small citizen farmers. Because the latter group traditionally provided the foundation of the Roman army, the number of men available for military service declined. Moreover, many of these small farmers drifted to the cities, especially Rome, forming a large class of day laborers who possessed no property. This new urban proletariat was a highly unstable mass with the potential for making trouble in depressed times.

The Reforms of the Gracchi In 133 B.C., Tiberius Gracchus, himself a member of the aristocracy and a new tribune, came to believe that the underlying cause of Rome’s problems was the decline of the small farmer. Consequently, Tiberius bypassed the senate, where he knew his rivals would oppose his proposal, and had the council of the plebs pass a land reform bill that authorized the government to reclaim public land held by large landowners and to distribute it to landless Romans. Many senators, themselves large landowners whose estates included large tracts of public land, were furious, and a group of them took the law into their own hands and assassinated Tiberius. The efforts of Tiberius Gracchus were continued by his brother Gaius, elected tribune for 123 and 122 B.C. Gaius, too, pushed for the distribution of land to displaced farmers. But he broadened his reform program with measures that would benefit the equestrian order, a rising group of wealthy people who wanted a share in the political power held by the ruling aristocracy. Many senators, hostile to Gaius’ reforms and fearful of his growing popularity, instigated mob action that resulted in the death of the reformer and many of his friends in 121 B.C. The attempts of the Gracchus brothers to bring reforms had opened the door to more instability and further violence.

A New Role for the Roman Army: Marius and Sulla In the closing years of the second century B.C., a series of military disasters gave rise to a fresh outburst of popular anger against the old leaders of the senate. Military defeats in northern Africa under a senate-appointed general encouraged Marius---a ‘‘new man’’ from the equestrian order--to run for the consulship on a ‘‘win the war’’ campaign slogan. Marius won and became a consul for 107 B.C. Marius took command of the army in Africa and brought the war to a successful conclusion. He was then called on to defeat the Celts, who threatened an invasion of Italy. Marius was made consul for five years, from 104 to 100 B.C.; raised a new army; and decisively defeated the Celts, leaving him in a position of personal ascendancy in Rome.

T HE D ECLINE

AND

FALL

OF THE

R OMAN R EPUBLIC (133--31 B . C .)

101

In raising a new army, Marius initiated military reforms that proved to have drastic consequences. The Roman army had traditionally been a conscript army of small landholders. Marius recruited volunteers from both the urban and rural proletariat who possessed no property. These volunteers swore an oath of loyalty to the general, not the senate, and thus inaugurated a professional-type army that might no longer be subject to the state. Moreover, to recruit these men, a general would promise them land, so the generals had to play politics to get legislation passed that would provide land for their veterans. Marius left a powerful legacy. He had created a new system of military recruitment that placed much power in the hands of the individual generals. Lucius Cornelius Sulla was the next general to take advantage of the new military system. The senate had placed him in charge of a war in Asia Minor, but when the council of the plebs tried to transfer command of this war to Marius, a civil war ensued. Sulla won and seized Rome itself in 82 B.C. He forced the senate to grant him the title of dictator to ‘‘reconstitute the Republic.’’ After conducting a reign of terror to wipe out all opposition, Sulla revised the constitution to restore power to the senate and eliminated most of the powers of the popular assemblies and the tribunes of the plebs. In 79 B.C., believing that he had created a firm foundation for the traditional Republic governed by a powerful senate, he retired. But his real legacy was quite different from what he had intended. His example of using an army to seize power would prove most attractive to ambitious men.

CHRONOLOGY The Decline and Fall of the Roman Republic Reforms of Tiberius Gracchus

133 B.C.

Reforms of Gaius Gracchus

123--122 B.C.

Marius: First consulship

107 B.C.

Marius: Consecutive consulships

104--100 B.C.

Sulla as dictator

82--79 B.C.

Pompey’s command in Spain

77--71 B.C.

Campaign of Crassus against Spartacus

73--71 B.C.

First Triumvirate (Caesar, Pompey, Crassus)

60 B.C.

Caesar in Gaul

59--49 B.C.

Murder of Crassus by Parthians

53 B.C.

Caesar’s crossing of the Rubicon

49 B.C.

Caesar named dictator

47 B.C.

End of civil war

45 B.C.

Assassination of Caesar

44 B.C.

Octavian’s defeat of Antony at Actium

31 B.C.

102

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

c

For the next fifty years, Roman history would be characterized by two important features: the jostling for power by a number of strong individuals and the civil wars generated by their conflicts. Three men came to hold enormous military and political power---Crassus, Pompey, and Julius Caesar. Crassus, who was known as the richest man in Rome, had successfully put down the major slave rebellion led by Spartacus. Pompey had returned from a successful military command in Spain in 71 B.C. and had been hailed as a military hero. Julius Caesar had been a spokesman for the populares from the beginning of his political career and had a military command in Spain. In 60 B.C., Caesar joined with Crassus and Pompey to form a coalition that historians call the First Triumvirate. Though others had made political deals before, the combined wealth and power of these three men was enormous, enabling them to dominate the political scene and achieve their basic aims: Pompey received lands for his veterans and a command in Spain, Crassus was given

Scala/Art Resource, NY

The Collapse of the Republic

Caesar. Conqueror of Gaul and member of the First Triumvirate, Julius Caesar is perhaps the best-known figure of the late Republic. Caesar became dictator of Rome in 47 B.C. and after his victories in the civil war was made dictator for life. Some members of the senate who resented his power assassinated him in 44 B.C. Pictured is a marble copy of a bust of Caesar.

THE ASSASSINATION When it became apparent that Julius Caesar had no intention of restoring the Republic as they conceived it, about sixty senators, many of them his friends or pardoned enemies, formed a conspiracy to assassinate the dictator. It was led by Gaius Cassius and Marcus Brutus, who naively imagined that this act would restore the traditional Republic. The conspirators set the Ides of March (March 15), 44 B.C., as the date for the assassination. Although warned about a plot against his life, Caesar chose to disregard it. This account of his death is taken from his biography by the Greek writer Plutarch.

Plutarch, Life of Caesar Fate, however, is to all appearance more unavoidable than unexpected. For many strange prodigies and apparitions are said to have been observed shortly before this event. . . . One finds it also related by many that a soothsayer bade him [Caesar] prepare for some great danger on the Ides of March. When this day was come, Caesar, as he went to the senate, met this soothsayer, and said to him mockingly, ‘‘The Ides of March are come,’’ who answered him calmly, ‘‘Yes, they are come, but they are not past. . . .’’ All these things might happen by chance. But the place which was destined for the scene of this murder, in which the senate met that day, was the same in which Pompey’s statue stood, and was one of the edifices which Pompey had raised and dedicated with his theater to the use of the public, plainly showing that there was something of a supernatural influence which guided the action and ordered it to that particular place. Cassius, just before the act, is said to have looked toward Pompey’s statue, and silently implored his assistance. . . . When Caesar entered, the senate stood up to show their respect to him, and of Brutus’ confederates, some came about his chair and stood behind it, others met him, pretending to add their petitions to those of Tillius Cimber, in behalf of his brother, who was in exile; and they followed him with their joint applications till he came to his seat. When he sat down, he refused to comply with their requests, and upon their urging him further began to reproach them severely for their demand, when Tillius, laying hold

a command in Syria, and Caesar was granted a special military command in Gaul (modern France). When Crassus was killed in battle in 53 B.C., his death left two powerful men with armies in direct competition. Caesar had used his time in Gaul wisely. He had conquered all of Gaul and gained fame, wealth, and military experience as well as an army of seasoned veterans who were loyal to him. When leading senators fastened on Pompey as the less harmful to their cause and voted for Caesar to lay down his command and return as a private citizen to Rome, Caesar refused. He chose to keep his army and moved into Italy by illegally crossing the Rubicon, the

OF JULIUS

CAESAR

of his robe with both his hands, pulled it down from his neck, which was the signal for the assault. Casca gave him the first cut in the neck, which was not mortal nor dangerous, as coming from one who at the beginning of such a bold action was probably very much disturbed; Caesar immediately turned about, and laid his hand upon the dagger and kept hold of it. And both of them at the same time cried out, he that received the blow, in Latin, ‘‘Vile Casca, what does this mean?’’ and he that gave it, in Greek to his brother, ‘‘Brother, help!’’ Upon this first onset, those who were not privy to the design were astonished, and their horror and amazement at what they saw were so great that they dared not fly nor assist Caesar, nor so much as speak a word. But those who came prepared for the business enclosed him on every side, with their naked daggers in their hands. Which way soever he turned he met with blows, and saw their swords leveled at his face and eyes, and was encompassed like a wild beast in the toils on every side. For it had been agreed they should each of them make a thrust at him, and flesh themselves with his blood: for which reason Brutus also gave him one stab in the groin. Some say that he fought and resisted all the rest, shifting his body to avoid the blows, and calling out for help, but that when he saw Brutus’ sword drawn, he covered his face with his robe and submitted, letting himself fall, whether it were by chance or that he was pushed in that direction by his murderers, at the foot of the pedestal on which Pompey’s statue stood, and which was thus wetted with his blood. So that Pompey himself seemed to have presided, as it were, over the revenge done upon his adversary, who lay here at his feet, and breathed out his soul through his multitude of wounds, for they say he received three-and-twenty. And the conspirators themselves were many of them wounded by each other while they all leveled their blows at the same person.

Q What does the account of Caesar’s assassination reveal about the character of Julius Caesar? Based on this selection, what lessons did Classical historians intend their readers to take away from their accounts of great and dramatic political events?

river that formed the southern boundary of his province. (‘‘Crossing the Rubicon’’ is a phrase used to this day to mean taking a decisive action and being unable to turn back.) According to his ancient biographer Suetonius, Caesar said to his troops, ‘‘Even now we could turn back; but once we cross that tiny bridge, then everything will depend on armed force.’’4 Caesar marched on Rome, starting a civil war between his forces and those of Pompey and his allies. The defeat of Pompey’s forces left Caesar in complete control of the Roman government. Caesar had officially been made dictator in 47 B.C., and three years later, he was made dictator for life. He

T HE D ECLINE

AND

FALL

OF THE

R OMAN R EPUBLIC (133--31 B . C .)

103

continued to hold elections for offices but saw to it that his supporters chose the people he recommended. Upon becoming Rome’s ruler, he quickly instituted a number of ambitious reforms. He increased the senate to nine hundred members by filling it with many of his supporters and granted citizenship to a number of people in the provinces who had helped him. By establishing colonies of Roman citizens in North Africa, Gaul, and Spain, he initiated a process of Romanization in those areas. He also reorganized the administrative structures of cities in Italy in an attempt to create a sense of order in their government. Caesar was a generous victor and pardoned many of the republican leaders who had opposed him, allowing

Nort h Se a

them to return to Rome. He also reformed the calendar by introducing the Egyptian solar year of 365 days (with changes implemented in A.D. 1582, it became the basis of our current calendar). He planned much more in the way of building projects and military adventures in the east, but in 44 B.C., a group of leading senators who resented his domination assassinated him in the belief that they had struck a blow for republican liberty (see the box on p. 103). In truth, they had set the stage for another civil war that delivered the death blow to the Republic. Within a few years after Caesar’s death, two men had divided the Roman world between them---Octavian, Caesar’s heir and grandnephew, taking the west, and

Baltic Sea

Roman dominions in the late Republic Battle sites

Atlantic Ocean

Danu be R.

GAUL

Al

ps

P R. Po R

Py

Ruub Ru Rub bico iconn R.

ren

SPAIN

ees Co orsic ic a ic

ILLYRI RIIA Rome

Balear

ic

n Isla

ds

B l ack

IITALY Y MA M ACEDO DO ONI NA

BITHYN NIA AND PO ONTUS

Philippi 42 B.C 42 B.C. B .C. C.

Sa ardi ddin i ia

Pharsa Pharsa rs luss 4 B 48 B.C. C

Actiu ium um m 31 B.C .C C. S ily Sic

PARTHIA PA RTHIA ASIA CILI CI LIC CIIA Taurus Mts.

ACHA AC A CHA AEA EA

NUMIDIA

S ea

Cyp Cy C yprus

Crete Cre C te

SY S YRIA

Mediterranean Sea

Deead D Se Sea

CYRENE

JUDAEA

Alexan Ale A xa dri xan dria ria

EGYPT 400 200

600 Kilometers 400 Miles

MAP 5.3 Roman Dominions in the Late Republic, 31 B. C. Rome expanded its empire not

only in response to military threats on its borders but also for increased access to economic resources and markets, in addition to the vanity of conquest itself. Q For comparison, look back at Map 5.2. In what areas did the Romans gain the greatest amount of territory, and how? View an animated version of this map or related maps at www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e 104

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

le .

R

200

Ni

Red Sea

Antony, Caesar’s ally and assistant, the east. But the empire of the Romans, large as it was, was still too small for two masters, and Octavian and Antony eventually came into conflict. Antony allied himself with the Egyptian queen Cleopatra VII, with whom, like Caesar before him, he fell in love. Octavian began a propaganda campaign, accusing Antony of catering to Cleopatra and giving away Roman territory to this ‘‘whore of the east.’’ Finally, at the Battle of Actium in Greece in 31 B.C., Octavian’s forces smashed the army and navy of Antony and Cleopatra. Both fled to Egypt, where, according to the account of the Roman historian Florus, they committed suicide a year later: Antony was the first to commit suicide, by the sword. Cleopatra threw herself at Octavian’s feet, and tried her

best to attract his gaze: in vain, for his self-control was impervious to her beauty. It was not her life she was after, for that had already been granted, but a portion of her kingdom. When she realized this was hopeless and that she had been earmarked to feature in Octavian’s triumph in Rome, she took advantage of her guard’s carelessness to get herself into the mausoleum, as the royal tomb is called. Once there, she put on the royal robes which she was accustomed to wear, and lay down in a richly perfumed coffin beside her Antony. Then she applied poisonous snakes to her veins and slipped into death as though into a sleep.5

Octavian, at the age of thirty-two, stood supreme over the Roman world (see Map 5.3). The civil wars had ended. And so had the Republic.

TIMELINE 500

406

B.C.

B.C.

312

218

B.C.

B.C.

124

30

B.C.

B.C.

Republic begins

Conquest of Italy

Conquest of the Mediterranean

Struggle of the orders

Plays of Plautus

Reforms of the Gracchi

Twelve Tables Decline and collapse of the Republic Works of Cicero Poems of Catullus

Caesar as dictator

CONCLUSION In the eighth and seventh centuries B.C., the pastoral community of Rome emerged as a city. Between 509 and 264 B.C., the expansion of this city led to the union of almost all of Italy under Rome’s control. Even more dramatically, between 264 and 133 B.C., Rome expanded to the west and east and became master of the Mediterranean Sea. After 133 B.C., however, Rome’s republican institutions proved inadequate for the task of ruling an empire. In the breakdown that

ensued, ambitious individuals saw opportunities for power unparalleled in Roman history and succumbed to the temptations. After a series of bloody civil wars, peace was finally achieved when Octavian defeated Antony and Cleopatra. Octavian’s real task was at hand: to create a new system of government that seemed to preserve the Republic while establishing the basis for a new order that would rule the empire in an orderly fashion. Octavian proved equal to the task of establishing a Roman imperial state.

C ONCLUSION

105

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING General Surveys Good surveys of Roman history include C. S. Mackay, Ancient Rome: A Military and Political History (Cambridge, 2004); M. H. Crawford, The Roman Republic, 2d ed. (Cambridge, Mass., 1993); H. H. Scullard, History of the Roman World, 753--146 B.C., 4th ed. (London, 1978), and From the Gracchi to Nero, 5th ed. (London, 1982); M. Le Glay, J.-L. Voisin, and Y. Le Bohec, A History of Rome, trans. A. Nevill, 3d ed. (Oxford, 2004); M. T. Boatwright, D. J. Gargola, and R. J. A. Talbert, The Romans: From Village to Empire (New York, 2004); and A. Kamm, The Romans (London, 1995). For beautifully illustrated surveys, see J. F. Drinkwater and A. Drummond, The World of the Romans (New York, 1993), and G. Woolf, ed., Cambridge Illustrated History of the Roman World (Cambridge, 2003). Early Rome The history of early Rome is well covered in T. J. Cornell, The Beginnings of Rome: Italy and Rome from the Bronze Age to the Punic Wars (c. 1000--264 B.C.) (London, 1995). A good work on the Etruscans is S. Haynes, Etruscan Civilization: A Cultural History (Los Angeles, 2005). Political, Economic, and Social Structure Aspects of the Roman political structure can be studied in R. E. Mitchell, Patricians and Plebeians: The Origin of the Roman State (Ithaca, N.Y., 1990). Changes in Rome’s economic life can be examined in A. H. M. Jones, The Roman Economy (Oxford, 1974). On the Roman social structure, see G. Alfo¨ldy, The Social History of Rome (London, 1985). The Expansion of Rome On the conquest of Italy, see J.-M. David, The Roman Conquest of Italy, trans. A. Nevill (Oxford, 1996). On Rome’s struggle with Carthage, see N. Bagnall, The Punic Wars (Oxford, 2002), and A. Goldsworthy, The Punic Wars (New York, 2001). Especially important works on Roman expansion and imperialism include W. V. Harris, War and Imperialism in Republican Rome (Oxford, 1979), and E. Badian, Roman Imperialism in the Late Republic (Oxford, 1968). On Roman military forces, see A. Goldsworthy, The Complete Roman Army (London, 2003). Roman Society and Culture Roman religion can be examined in E. M. Orlin, Temples, Religion, and Politics in the Roman

106

C H A P T E R 5 THE ROMAN REPUBLIC

Republic (New York, 2002), and H. H. Scullard, Festivals and Ceremonies of the Roman Republic (Ithaca, N.Y., 1981). A general study of daily life in Rome is available in F. Dupont, Daily Life in Ancient Rome (Oxford, 1994). On the Roman family, see S. Dixon, The Roman Family (Baltimore, 1992). The roles of Roman women are examined in J. Balsdon, Roman Women, rev. ed. (London, 1974); R. Baumann, Women and Politics in Ancient Rome (New York, 1995); and S. Dixon, The Roman Mother (Norman, Okla., 1988). On slavery and its consequences, see K. R. Bradley, Slavery and Rebellion in the Roman World, 140--70 B.C. (Bloomington, Ind., 1989). For a brief, readable survey of Latin literature, see R. M. Ogilvie, Roman Literature and Society (Harmondsworth, England, 1980). On Roman art and architecture, see F. S. Kleiner, A History of Roman Art (Belmont, Calif., 2006). The Late Republic An excellent account of basic problems in the late Republic can be found in M. Beard and M. H. Crawford, Rome in the Late Republic (London, 1985). Also valuable are D. Shotter, The Fall of the Roman Republic (London, 1994), and E. Hildinger, Swords Against the Senate: The Rise of the Roman Army and the Fall of the Republic (Cambridge, Mass., 2002). Numerous biographies provide many details on the politics of the period. Especially worthwhile are A. H. Bernstein, Tiberius Sempronius Gracchus: Tradition and Apostasy (Ithaca, N.Y., 1978); D. Stockton, The Gracchi (Oxford, 1979); A. Goldsworthy, Caesar: Life of a Colossus (New Haven, Conn., 2006); R. Seager, Pompey: A Political Biography (Berkeley, Calif., 1980); and A. Everitt, Cicero (New York, 2001).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

DISCOVERY

Rome and Athens Review the accounts of Horatius (p. 85) and Cincinnatus from Livy’s History (p. 90). What would Pericles have thought of these two men? Would they have been worthy members of a Greek polis? So far as you can tell from the text, what might have worried Pericles about the role played by Cincinnatus? Along the same line, what would Pericles have thought about the assassination of Julius Caesar?

What did the Roman poet Horace mean when he wrote, “Captive Greece took captive her rude conqueror”?

In thinking about this question, begin by breaking it down into the components shown below. A discussion of the significance of each component should appear in your answer. Before beginning, you will want to make sure you understand what the question says. In essence, Horace said that the culture of Greece came to dominate the culture of its captors, the Romans. Attitudes toward Women Compare the documents on pages 62, 76, and 97. These excerpts tell about male attitudes toward women in Classical Greece, the Hellenistic world, and the Roman Republic. Do Roman attitudes as shown reveal a greater Greek or Hellenistic influence? In what ways did life change for women? How did it remain the same?

© Adam Crowley/Photodisc/Getty Images

Art Compare the Parthenon and the diagram (below) with the temple of Portunus (right). What similarities do you see?

© Art Resource, NY

© Scala/Art Resource, NY

Likewise, compare the marble figures of Doryphoros (image, p. 59) and Alexander the Great (image, p. 68) with the bust of Julius Caesar (p. 102). What similarities do you see?

107

CHAPTER 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

The Age of Augustus (31 B.C.--A.D. 14) In his efforts to solve the problems Rome had faced during the late Republic, what changes did Augustus make in Rome’s political, military, and social institutions? Nimatallah/Art Resource, NY

Q

The Early Empire (14--180)

Q

What were the chief features of the Roman Empire at its height during the second century?

Q

What were the chief intellectual, artistic, and social developments in the Early Empire? How did these differ from the intellectual, artistic, and social developments of the Republic?

Transformation of the Roman World: Crises in the Third Century

Q

What political, military, economic, and social problems did the Roman Empire face during the third century?

Transformation of the Roman World: The Rise of Christianity

Q

What characteristics of Christianity enabled it to grow and ultimately to triumph?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

108

How did Christianity transform the Roman Empire?

c

Roman Culture and Society in the Early Empire Hadrian (with outstretched arms) entering Rome

WITH THE VICTORIES OF OCTAVIAN, peace finally settled on the Roman world. Although civil conflict still erupted occasionally, the new imperial state constructed by Octavian experienced a period of remarkable stability for the next two hundred years. To the Romans, their divine mission was clearly to rule nations and peoples. Hadrian, an emperor during the second century A.D., was one of many Roman leaders who believed in Rome’s mission. He was a strong and intelligent ruler who took his responsibilities seriously. Between 121 and 132, he visited all of the provinces in the empire. According to his Roman biographer, Aelius Spartianus, ‘‘Hardly any emperor ever traveled with such speed over so much territory.’’ When he arrived in a province, Hadrian dealt firsthand with any problems and bestowed many favors on the local population. He also worked to establish the boundaries of the provinces and provide for their defense. New fortifications, such as the 80-mile-long Hadrian’s Wall across northern Britain, were built to defend the borders. Hadrian insisted on rigid discipline for frontier armies and demanded that the soldiers be kept in training, ‘‘just as if war were imminent.’’ He also tried to lead by personal example; according to his biographer, he spent time with the troops and ‘‘cheerfully ate out of doors such

camp food as bacon, cheese, and vinegar.’’ Moreover, he ‘‘would walk as much as twenty miles fully armed.’’ The Romans imposed their peace on the largest empire established in antiquity. Indeed, Rome’s writers proclaimed that ‘‘by heaven’s will my Rome shall be capital of the world.’’1 Rome’s writers were not quite accurate, but few Romans were aware of the Han Chinese Empire, which flourished at the same time (202 B.C.--A.D. 221) and extended from Central Asia to the Pacific. Although there was little contact between them, the Han and Roman Empires had remarkable similarities: they lasted for centuries, they had great success in establishing centralized control, and they maintained their law and political institutions, their technical skills, and their languages throughout the empire. By the third century A.D., however, Rome’s ability to rule began to weaken as the empire experienced renewed civil war, economic chaos, and invasions. At the same time, Christianity emerged in one of the most astonishing success stories of Western civilization.

The Age of Augustus (31 B.C.--A.D. 14)

Q Focus Question: In his efforts to solve the problems

The New Order In the new constitutional order that Augustus created, the basic governmental structure consisted of the princeps (Augustus) and an aristocratic senate. Augustus retained the senate as the chief deliberative body of the Roman state. Its decrees, screened in advance by the princeps, now had the effect of law. The title of princeps carried no power in itself, but Augustus held the office of consul each year until 23 B.C., when he assumed the power of a

c

In 27 B.C., Octavian proclaimed the ‘‘restoration of the Republic.’’ He understood that only traditional republican forms would satisfy the senatorial aristocracy. At the same time, Octavian was aware that the Republic could not be fully restored and managed to arrive at a compromise that worked at least during his lifetime. In 27 B.C., the senate awarded him the title of Augustus, ‘‘revered one.’’ He preferred the title princeps, meaning ‘‘chief citizen’’ or ‘‘first among equals.’’ The system of rule that Augustus established is sometimes called the principate, conveying the idea of a constitutional monarch as coruler with the senate. But while Augustus worked to maintain this appearance, in reality power was heavily weighted in favor of the princeps.

Scala/Art Resource, NY

Rome had faced during the late Republic, what changes did Augustus make in Rome’s political, military, and social institutions?

Augustus. Octavian, Caesar’s adopted son, emerged victorious from the civil conflict that rocked the Republic after Caesar’s assassination. The senate awarded him the title Augustus. This marble statue from Prima Porta, an idealized portrait, is based on Greek rather than Roman models. The statue was meant to be a propaganda piece, depicting a youthful general addressing his troops. At the bottom stands Cupid, the son of Venus, goddess of love, meant to be a reminder that the Julians, Caesar’s family, claimed descent from Venus, thus emphasizing the ruler’s divine background.

tribune, which enabled him to propose laws and veto any item of public business. By observing proper legal forms for his power, Augustus proved highly popular. As the Roman historian Tacitus commented, ‘‘Indeed, he attracted everybody’s goodwill by the enjoyable gift of peace. . . . Opposition did not exist.’’2 No doubt the ending of the civil wars had greatly bolstered Augustus’ popularity (see the box on p. 110). At the same time, his continuing control of the army, while making possible the Roman peace, was a crucial source of his power. T HE A GE

OF

AUGUSTUS (31 B . C .-- A . D. 14)

109

THE ACHIEVEMENTS This excerpt is taken from a text written by Augustus and inscribed on a bronze tablet at Rome. Copies of the text were displayed in stone in many provincial capitals. Called ‘‘the most famous ancient inscription,’’ the Res Gestae of Augustus summarizes his accomplishments in three major areas: his offices, his private expenditures on behalf of the state, and his exploits in war and peace. Though factual in approach, it is a highly subjective account.

Augustus, Res Gestae Below is a copy of the accomplishments of the deified Augustus by which he brought the whole world under the empire of the Roman people, and of the moneys expended by him on the state and the Roman people, as inscribed on two bronze pillars set up in Rome. 1. At the age of nineteen, on my own initiative and at my own expense, I raised an army by means of which I liberated the Republic, which was oppressed by the tyranny of a faction [Mark Antony and his supporters]. . . . 2. Those who assassinated my father [Julius Caesar, his adoptive father] I drove into exile, avenging their crime by due process of law; and afterwards when they waged war against the state, I conquered them twice on the battlefield. 3. I waged many wars throughout the whole world by land and by sea, both civil and foreign, and when victorious I spared all citizens who sought pardon. . . . 5. The dictatorship offered to me . . . by the people and the senate, both in my absence and in my presence, I refused to accept. . . . 17. Four times I came to the assistance of the treasury with my own money, transferring to those in charge of the treasury 150,000,000 sesterces. And in the consulship of Marcus Lepidus

The Military Augustus was especially eager to stabilize the military and administrative structures of the Roman Empire. The peace of the empire depended on the army, and so did the security of the princeps. While primarily responsible for guarding the frontiers of the empire, the army was also used to maintain domestic order within the provinces. Augustus maintained a standing army of twenty-eight legions, or about 150,000 men. Roman legionaries were recruited only from the citizenry and, under Augustus, largely from Italy. Augustus also maintained a large contingent of auxiliary forces---around 130,000---enlisted from the subject peoples. Augustus was also responsible for establishing the praetorian guard. Although nominally a military reserve, these ‘‘nine cohorts of elite troops,’’ roughly nine thousand men, had the important task of guarding the person of the princeps. Eventually, the praetorian guard would play a weighty role in making and deposing emperors. 110

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

22.

25.

26.

27. 28.

35.

OF

AUGUSTUS

and Lucius Arruntius I transferred out of my own patrimony 170,000,000 sesterces to the soldiers’ bonus fund, which was established on my advice for the purpose of providing bonuses for soldiers who had completed twenty or more years of service. . . . I gave a gladiatorial show three times in my own name, and five times in the names of my sons or grandsons; at these shows about 10,000 fought. . . . I brought peace to the sea by suppressing the pirates. In that war I turned over to their masters for punishment nearly 30,000 slaves who had run away from their owners and taken up arms against the state. . . . I extended the frontiers of all the provinces of the Roman people on whose boundaries were peoples not subject to our empire. . . . I added Egypt to the empire of the Roman people. . . . I established colonies of soldiers in Africa, Sicily, Macedonia, in both Spanish provinces, in Achaea, Asia, Syria, Narbonese Gaul, and Pisidia. Italy, moreover, has twenty-eight colonies established by me, which in my lifetime have grown to be famous and populous. . . . When I held my thirteenth consulship, the senate, the equestrian order, and the entire Roman people gave me the title of ‘‘father of the country.’’ . . . At the time I wrote this document I was in my seventy-sixth year.

Q What were the achievements of Augustus? To what extent did these accomplishments create the ‘‘job’’ of being emperor? In what sense could this document be called a piece of propaganda?

The role of the princeps as military commander gave rise to a title by which this ruler eventually came to be known. When victorious, a military commander was acclaimed by his troops as imperator. Augustus was so acclaimed on a number of occasions. Imperator is our word emperor. Although this title was applied to Augustus and his successors, Augustus continued to refer to himself as the princeps. Roman Provinces and Frontiers Augustus inaugurated a new system for governing the provinces. Under the Republic, the senate had appointed the provincial governors. Now certain provinces were allotted to the princeps, who assigned deputies known as legates to govern them. These legates were from the senatorial class and held office as long as the emperor chose. The senate continued to designate the governors of the remaining provinces, but the authority of Augustus enabled him to

overrule the senatorial governors and establish a uniform imperial policy. Augustus also stabilized the frontiers of the Roman Empire. He conquered the central and maritime Alps and then expanded Roman control of the Balkan peninsula up to the Danube River. His attempt to conquer Germany failed when three Roman legions under Varus were massacred in A.D. 9 in the Teutoburg Forest by a coalition of German tribes. The defeat severely dampened Augustus’ enthusiasm for continued expansion in central Europe. Thereafter, the Romans were content to use the Rhine as the frontier between the Roman province of Gaul and the German tribes to the east. In fact, Augustus’ difficulties had convinced him that ‘‘the empire should not be extended beyond its present frontiers.’’3 His defeats in Germany taught Augustus that Rome’s power was not unlimited. They also left him devastated; for months he beat his head against a door, shouting ‘‘Varus, give me back my legions!’’

Augustan Society Society in the Early Roman Empire was characterized by a system of social stratification, inherited from the Republic, in which Roman citizens were divided into three basic classes: the senatorial, equestrian, and lower classes. Augustus had accepted the senatorial order as a ruling class for the empire. Senators filled the chief magistracies of the Roman government, held the most important military posts, and governed the provinces. One needed to possess property worth 1 million sesterces (an unskilled laborer in Rome received 3 sesterces a day; a Roman legionary, 900 sesterces a year in pay) to belong to the senatorial order. The equestrian order was open to all Roman citizens of good standing who possessed property valued at 400,000 sesterces. They, too, could now hold military and governmental offices, but the positions open to them were less important than those of the senators. Citizens not of the senatorial or equestrian order belonged to the lower classes, who made up the overwhelming majority of the free citizens. The diminution of the power of the Roman assemblies ended whatever political power they may have possessed earlier in the Republic. Many of these people were provided with free grain and public spectacles to keep them from creating disturbances. Nevertheless, by gaining wealth and serving as lower officers in the Roman legions, it was sometimes possible for them to advance to the equestrian order. Augustus’ belief that Roman morals had been corrupted during the late Republic led him to initiate social legislation to arrest the decline. He thought that increased luxury had undermined traditional Roman frugality and simplicity and led to a loosening of morals, evidenced by easy divorce, a falling birthrate among the upper classes,

and lax behavior manifested in hedonistic parties and the love affairs of prominent Romans with fashionable women and elegant boys. Through his new social legislation, Augustus hoped to restore respectability to the upper classes and reverse the declining birthrate as well. Expenditures for feasts were limited, and other laws made adultery a criminal offense. In fact, Augustus’ own daughter Julia was exiled for adultery. Augustus also revised the tax laws to penalize bachelors, widowers, and married persons who had fewer than three children.

The Augustan Age The Augustan Age was a lengthy one. Augustus died in A.D. 14 after dominating the Roman world for forty-five years. He had created a new order while placating the old by restoring and maintaining traditional values, a fitting combination for a leader whose favorite maxim was ‘‘make haste slowly.’’ By the time of his death, his new order was so well established that few agitated for an alternative. Indeed, as the Roman historian Tacitus pointed out, ‘‘Actium had been won before the younger men were born. Even most of the older generation had come into a world of civil wars. Practically no one had ever seen truly Republican government. . . . Political equality was a thing of the past; all eyes watched for imperial commands.’’4 The Republic was now only a memory and, given its last century of warfare, an unpleasant one at that. The new order was here to stay.

The Early Empire (14--180)

Q Focus Question: What were the chief features of

the Roman Empire at its height during the second century?

There was no serious opposition to Augustus’ choice of his stepson Tiberius as his successor. By designating a family member as princeps, Augustus established the JulioClaudian dynasty; the next four successors of Augustus were related either to his own family or to that of his wife, Livia.

The Julio-Claudians Several major tendencies emerged during the reigns of the Julio-Claudians (14--68). In general, more and more of the responsibilities that Augustus had given to the senate were taken over by the emperors, who also instituted an imperial bureaucracy, staffed by talented freedmen, to run the government on a daily basis. As T HE E ARLY E MPIRE (14--180)

111

the Julio-Claudian successors of Augustus acted more openly as real rulers rather than ‘‘first citizens of the state,’’ the opportunity for arbitrary and corrupt acts also increased. Nero (54--68) freely eliminated people he wanted out of the way, including his own mother, whose murder he arranged. Without troops, the senators proved unable to oppose these excesses. However, Nero’s extravagances did provoke a revolt of the Roman legions. Abandoned by the guards, Nero chose to commit suicide by stabbing himself in the throat after uttering his final words: ‘‘What an artist the world is losing in me.’’ A new civil war erupted in 69, known as the year of the four emperors. Finally, Vespasian, commander of the legions in the east, established himself as sole ruler and his family as a new dynasty known as the Flavians, which ruled from 69 to 96. The significance of the year 69 was summed up precisely by Tacitus when he stated that ‘‘a well-hidden secret of the principate had been revealed: it was possible, it seemed, for an emperor to be chosen outside Rome.’’5

The Five ‘‘Good Emperors’’ (96--180) At the beginning of the second century, a series of five socalled good emperors presided over a period of peace and prosperity that lasted almost a hundred years. These men---Nerva, Trajan, Hadrian, Antoninus Pius, and Marcus Aurelius---treated the ruling classes with respect, cooperated with the senate, ended arbitrary executions, maintained peace throughout the empire, and supported domestic policies generally beneficial to the empire. Though absolute monarchs, they were known for their tolerance and diplomacy. By adopting capable men as their successors, the first four good emperors reduced the chances of succession problems. Under the five good emperors, the powers of the emperor continued to be extended at the expense of the senate. Increasingly, imperial officials appointed and directed by the emperor took over the running of the government. The good emperors also extended the scope of imperial administration to areas previously untouched by the imperial government. Trajan (98--117) established a program that provided state funds to assist poor parents in raising and educating their children. The good emperors were widely praised by their subjects for their extensive building programs. Trajan and Hadrian (117--138) were especially active in constructing public works---aqueducts, bridges, roads, and harbor facilities---throughout the provinces and in Rome. Trajan built a new forum in Rome to provide a setting for his celebrated victory column. Hadrian’s Pantheon, a temple of ‘‘all the gods,’’ is one of the grandest ancient buildings surviving in Rome. 112

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

The Roman Empire at Its Height: Frontiers and Provinces Although Trajan broke with Augustus’ policy of defensive imperialism by extending Roman rule into Dacia (modern Romania), Mesopotamia, and the Sinai peninsula, his conquests represent the high-water mark of Roman expansion (see Map 6.1). His successors recognized that the empire was overextended and pursued a policy of retrenchment. Hadrian withdrew Roman forces from much of Mesopotamia. Although he retained Dacia and Arabia, he went on the defensive in his frontier policy by reinforcing the fortifications along a line connecting the Rhine and Danube Rivers and by building a defensive wall 80 miles long to keep the Scots out of Roman Britain. By the end of the second century, the vulnerability of the empire had become apparent. Frontiers were stabilized, and the Roman forces were established in permanent bases behind the frontiers. But when one frontier was attacked, troops had to be drawn from other frontiers, leaving those borders vulnerable to attack. The empire lacked a real strategic reserve, and in the next century its weakness would be ever more apparent. At its height in the second century, the Roman Empire was one of the greatest states the world had seen. It covered about 3.5 million square miles and had a population, like that of Han China, estimated at more than 50 million. While the emperors and the imperial administration provided a degree of unity, considerable leeway was given to local customs, and the privileges of Roman citizenship were extended to many people throughout the empire. In 212, the emperor Caracalla completed the process by giving Roman citizenship to every free inhabitant of the empire. Latin was the language of the western part of the empire, while Greek was used in the east. Although Roman culture spread to all parts of the empire, there were limits to Romanization because local languages persisted and many of the empire’s residents spoke neither Latin nor Greek. Cities and Romanization The administration and cultural life of the Roman Empire depended greatly on cities and towns. A provincial governor’s staff was not large, so local city officials were expected to act as Roman agents in carrying out many government functions, especially those related to taxes. Most towns and cities were not large by modern standards. The biggest was Rome, but there were also some large cities in the east: Alexandria in Egypt numbered over 300,000 inhabitants, Ephesus in Asia Minor had 200,000, and Antioch in Syria housed around 150,000. In the west, cities were usually small, with only a few thousand inhabitants. Cities were important in the spread of Roman culture, law, and the Latin language. They were

MAP 6.1 The Roman Empire from Augustus to Trajan (14–117). Augustus and later emperors continued the expansion of the Roman Empire, adding more resources but also increasing the burdens of administration and keeping the peace. Compare this map with Map 5.3. Q Which territories were conquered by Augustus, and which were added by the end View an animated version of this map or related maps at of Trajan’s reign? www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

also uniform in physical appearance, with similar temples, markets, amphitheaters, and other public buildings. Magistrates and town councillors chosen from the ranks of the wealthy upper classes directed municipal administration. These municipal offices were unsalaried but were nevertheless sought by wealthy citizens because they conferred prestige and power at the local level as well as Roman citizenship. Roman municipal policy effectively tied the upper classes to Roman rule and ensured that these classes would retain control over the rest of the population. The process of Romanization in the provinces was reflected in significant changes in the governing classes of

the empire. In the course of the first century, there was a noticeable decline in the number of senators from Italian families. Increasingly, the Roman senate was being recruited from wealthy provincial equestrian families. The provinces also provided many of the legionaries for the Roman army and, beginning with Trajan, supplied many of the emperors. The extent of Romanization varied widely in different parts of the empire. In the west, including Spain, Africa, and parts of Gaul, where Greeks and Phoenicians had established cities centuries before, Romanization occurred quickly. Temples, aqueducts, amphitheaters, and the Latin language rapidly became fixtures in these areas. Moreover, men from these western territories, especially T HE E ARLY E MPIRE (14--180)

113

c

Atlantide Phototravel (Massimo Borchi)/CORBIS

Rome in Germany. The Roman army helped bring Roman culture and institutions to the provinces. Local production and trade grew up around the military camps to meet the soldiers’ needs, and cities often developed from the bases themselves or from colonies located nearby. Pictured are the remains of the Porta Nigra, the gateway to the Roman city of Augusta Treverorum (modern Trier). In the Early Empire, Trier became the headquarters of the imperial procurator of Belgica and the two Germanies. Its close location to Roman military camps along the Rhine enabled it to flourish as one of the major cities in the western Roman Empire.

Spain and parts of Gaul, began serving as officials in Rome as early as the first century A.D. The process of Romanization was less extensive in other parts of the empire, especially in Asia, where towns and cities had their own traditions long before the arrival of the Romans. Their common language was Greek, not Latin, and many people outside urban areas spoke neither Latin nor Greek. However, although geography was important in determining the degree of Romanization, class status was even more important. By A.D. 200, the upper classes everywhere in the empire had become Romanized, sharing a common culture as well as similar economic and social interests.

before a judge. A judge was expected to weigh evidence carefully before arriving at a decision. These principles lived on in Western civilization long after the fall of the Roman Empire. For Roman citizens, Roman law provided a uniform system of principles by which they conducted their affairs and led their lives. When the emperor Caracalla gave Roman citizenship to every free person in the empire, Roman law became an even more significant factor in binding the entire empire together.

Roman Law and Romanization As Roman citizenship spread in the cities, new citizens themselves became subject to Roman law, which in itself became an important instrument in the process of Romanization. The Early Empire had experienced great progress in the study and codification of law. The second and early third centuries A.D. witnessed the ‘‘classical age of Roman law,’’ a period in which a number of great jurists compiled and classified basic legal principles that have remained extremely valuable in the Western world. Most jurists emphasized the emperor as the source of law: ‘‘What has pleased the emperor has the force of law.’’ The identification of the law of nations with natural law led to a concept of natural rights. According to the jurist Ulpian (d. 228), natural rights implied that all men are born equal and should therefore be equal before the law. In practice, however, that principle was not applied. The Romans did, however, establish standards of justice applicable to all people, many of which we would immediately recognize today. A person was regarded as innocent until proved otherwise. People accused of wrongdoing were allowed to defend themselves

The Early Empire was a period of considerable prosperity. Internal peace resulted in unprecedented levels of trade (see Map 6.2). Merchants from all over the empire came to the chief Italian ports of Puteoli on the Bay of Naples and Ostia at the mouth of the Tiber. The importation of large quantities of grain to feed the people of Rome and an incredible quantity of luxury items for the wealthy upper classes in the west led to a steady drain of gold and silver coins from Italy and the west to the eastern part of the empire. Long-distance trade beyond the Roman frontiers also developed during the Early Empire. Developments in both the Roman and Chinese Empires helped foster the growth of this trade. Although both empires built roads chiefly for military purposes, these arteries also came to be used to facilitate trade. Moreover, by creating large empires, the Romans and Chinese not only established internal stability but also pacified bordering territories, thus reducing the threat that bandits posed to traders. As a result, merchants developed a network of trade routes that brought these two great empires into commercial

114

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

Prosperity in the Early Empire

N orth Se a Lonnd dinium

Ba ltic B Sea

Rh

. ine R

Colonia Agrippinensis pin

At l ant i c

Au A Aug ug ugusta Treverorum um

Oc e an

Loire R.

Da nu be

Gold

Pottery

Lead

Timber

Grain

Textiles

Olive oil

Bronze work

Wine

Trade route Roman Empire, 200

Slaves

A.D.

R.

R. s

Al p

ZA

IA

BY

3 5 DA YS -CARTH A GE

v

Rhon e

Carnuntum Lugdunum num Aquileia A Aq Apulum Sa Po R. a R. Arelatee A Py ren Narbo ees Ancco ona on n Salonae Maasssssil M siil ilia iaa Arr Ar Arre rrrreti tiium Black Sea Tagus R. S ope Sin pee Coor C orsi rsiic ica ica Rom me Cap Tarra raco ra Ostia Ca uaa Trrraape Tra T pesus Byzantium Byzant antium um m Puteo eo i eol eo Sardi din d di i ia Bruun B ndi nd d sium Corduba Ni Nicomedia Balea Bal earrics cs Tig Car C arrth thago tha go Nova Nova Gad Ga des ris Pergamum R. STIA 9 DAYS Ath A th h ens e s O Sicil Si Sic ily y S E GAD Ephesus Tarsus Rh Rhe R heegium gi Cor Co C orrin o iint nh Antio iochia io Cartha th h ge T N Syyrrac Syr acuse acus Eup TI OS M e C hr -E Eu puss UM-G AL AE ate Dura-Europu di A Crete Cre te Palmyra Cypr Cyp C yp r rus u us s s R. S EX AR ter AN E A -R ra Tyr T Ty yr y us Seleucia n e a DRIA-PUTOME 20 DAYS EOLI 15 n 20 D Cae Ca e sar sa s a ea AY S Sea JJer eerrusalem Cyrene ne Gaz Ga G aazza All x Ale Alex A xandria dria ZA

10

–1

2

D

AY

S

400 200

600 Kilometers 400 Miles

Nile R.

200

Coptoss

Red Sea

MAP 6.2 Trade Routes and Products in the Roman Empire, c. 200. Although still

primarily an agrarian economy, the Roman Empire provided the single currency and stable conditions necessary for an expansion of trade in various commodities and products. An extensive system of roads and shipping routes also facilitated trade. Q What truth is there to the statement that ‘‘all roads lead to Rome’’?

contact. Most important was the overland Silk Road, a regular caravan route between West and East (see p. 117). The Silk Road was the route used for Chinese exports to the West of silk cloth. Silk became a craze among Roman elites, leading to a vast outpouring of silver from Rome to China and provoking the Roman emperor Tiberius to grumble that ‘‘the ladies and their baubles are transferring our money to foreigners.’’ The silk trade also stimulated a degree of mutual curiosity between the two great civilizations but not much mutual knowledge or understanding. So far as is known, no personal or diplomatic contacts between the two civilizations ever took place during this era. Increased trade helped stimulate manufacturing. The cities of the east still produced the items made in Hellenistic times. The first two centuries of the empire also witnessed

the high point of industrial development in Italy. Some industries became concentrated in certain areas, such as bronze work in Capua and pottery in Arretium in Etruria. Other industries, such as brickmaking, were pursued in rural areas on large landed estates. Much production remained small-scale and was done by individual craftsmen, usually freedmen or slaves. In the course of the first century, Italian centers of industry began to experience increasing competition from the provinces. Despite the extensive trade and commerce, agriculture remained the chief occupation of most people and the underlying basis of Roman prosperity. While the large landed estates called latifundia still dominated agriculture, especially in southern and central Italy, small peasant farms persisted, particularly in Etruria and the Po T HE E ARLY E MPIRE (14--180)

115

c

The Art Archive/Gianni Dagli Orti

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

c

Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY

c

Scala/Art Resource, NY

Trade and the Products of Trade. Trade was an important ingredient in the prosperity of the Early Roman Empire. Although Roman roads were excellent, most goods traveled by boat throughout the Mediterranean and beyond. This third-century A.D. Roman mosaic from Sousse, Tunisia, shows workers unloading a cargo of iron ore from a ship. Vast numbers of amphorae, large two-handled pottery jars, were used to transport olive oil and wine, as well as such luxury items as pepper, cloves, and incense. As can be seen in the illustration at the right from excavations done near Pisa, amphorae could be stacked to transport large quantities of goods. Roman merchant ships could stack between five thousand and ten thousand of them in their holds. Rome itself became, as one Greek observed, ‘‘the warehouse of the world’’ where ‘‘whatever is raised or manufactured by every people is always here in superabundance.’’ In addition to the imported grain that fed the populace, numerous luxury goods were available in the shops. Because many Romans held merchants in low regard, most shops were run by slaves or freedmen. The stone relief from Ostia in the second century A.D. shows a shopkeeper selling groceries and livestock. In addition to the local produce, two monkeys from overseas are available as pets.

valley. Although large estates concentrating on sheep and cattle raising used slaves, the lands of some latifundia were worked by free tenant farmers who paid rent in labor, produce, or sometimes cash. In considering the prosperity of the Roman world, it is important to remember the enormous gulf between rich and poor (see the box on p. 117). The development of towns and cities, so important to the creation of any civilization, is 116

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

based in large degree on the agricultural surpluses of the countryside. In ancient times, the margin of surplus produced by each farmer was relatively small. Therefore, the upper classes and urban populations had to be supported by the labor of a large number of farmers who never found it easy to produce much more than for themselves. In lean years, when there were no surpluses, the townspeople often took what they wanted, leaving little for the peasants.

THE DAILY LIFE

OF AN

are in fact refreshed by the change. After a short sleep and another walk I read a Greek or Latin speech aloud and with emphasis, not so much for the sake of my voice as my digestion, though of course both are strengthened by this. Then I have another walk, am oiled, take exercise, and have a bath. If I am dining alone with my wife or with a few friends, a book is read aloud during the meal and afterward we listen to a comedy or some music; then I walk again with the members of my household, some of whom are educated. Thus the evening is prolonged with varied conversations, and even when the days are at their longest, comes to a satisfying end. Sometimes I vary this routine, for, if I have spent a long time on my couch or taking a walk, after my siesta and reading I go out on horseback instead of a carriage so as to be quicker and take less time. Part of the day is given up to friends who visit me from neighboring towns and sometimes come to my aid with a welcome interruption when I am tired. Occasionally I go hunting, but not without my notebooks so that I shall have something to bring home even if I catch nothing. I also give some time to my tenants (they think it should be more) and the boorishness of their complaints gives fresh zest to our literary interests and the more civilized pursuits of town.

There was an enormous gulf between rich and poor in Roman society. The upper classes lived lives of great leisure and luxury in their villas and on their vast estates. Pliny the Younger (c. 62–c. 113) was an upper-class Roman who rose to the position of governor of Bithynia in Asia Minor. In this excerpt from one of his letters, Pliny describes a typical day vacationing at one of his Italian villas. Although Pliny owned four villas in Italy, he did not belong to the ranks of the really rich in Roman society.

Pliny, Letter to Fuscus Salinator You want to know how I plan the summer days I spend in Tuscany. I wake when I like, usually about sunrise, often earlier but rarely later. My shutters stay closed, for in the stillness and darkness I feel myself surprisingly detached from any distractions and left to myself in freedom. . . . If I have anything on hand I work it out in my head, choosing and correcting the wording, and the amount I achieve depends on the ease or difficulty with which my thoughts can be marshaled and kept in my head. Then I call my secretary, the shutters are opened, and I dictate what I have put into shape; he goes out, is recalled, and again dismissed. Three or four hours after I first wake (but I don’t keep to fixed times) I betake myself according to the weather either to the terrace or the covered arcade, work out the rest of my subject, and dictate it. I go for a drive, and spend the time in the same way as when walking or lying down; my powers of concentration do not flag and

Q What does Pliny’s letter tell you about the lifestyle of upper-class Romans? Could this lifestyle be related to the decline of the Roman Empire?

RUSSIA

Aral Sea

Ca

Black Sea

UPPER-CLASS ROMAN

sp

Turfan

ia nS

Ti

Dunhuang g

.

e

In

R.

ARABIA Arabian Sea

Sea

d

Ga

ng

es

Ya

as

Han Ha H ngzh gzhou ou u

CHINA

Pataliputra R.

Caanton C Can on n (Guang ((Gu Guang angzh zhou) u))

Barygaza

INDIA

Masulipatam

INDOCHINA C Bay of Bengal

South China Sea

.

Indian Ocean

lay

ng R

n

ma

e ko

Ade

TIBET

Yello w Luoyang Chang'an e tz R.

M

Sea Routes

f of

Hi

Taxila

AFGHANISTAN N

Gul

Hindu H Kush

us

at

R.

R.

hr

es

Red

Nil

1,000 Miles

l of Chiina

Silk Road

PERSIA

EGYPT YP

NORTH TH AFRICA C

500

R.

BACTRIA

p

1,500 Kilometerrs

Gobi Desert

t Wal

ng

is R

Eu

Allex Alexandria A

Grea

1,000

gr

Antioch Dam massccuss

Kashgar g

ea

Byzantium

500

Silk Road

T HE E ARLY E MPIRE (14--180)

117

Roman Culture and Society in the Early Empire

Q Focus Questions: What were the chief intellectual,

artistic, and social developments in the Early Empire? How did these differ from the intellectual, artistic, and social developments of the Republic?

The shift from republic to empire not only transformed the Roman political world but also affected its cultural and social life. Intellectuals found ways to accommodate the autocratic rule of emperors, while Roman architects created massive buildings befitting an empire. Gladiatorial games increased dramatically in the Early Empire, and upper-class women acquired greater independence.

The Golden Age of Latin Literature The most distinguished poet of the Augustan Age was Virgil (70--19 B.C.). The son of a small landholder in northern Italy, he welcomed the rule of Augustus and wrote his greatest work in the emperor’s honor. Virgil’s masterpiece was the Aeneid, an epic poem clearly meant to rival the work of Homer. The connection between Troy and Rome is made explicitly. Aeneas, the son of Anchises of Troy, survives the destruction of Troy and eventually settles in Latium; hence Roman civilization is linked to Greek history. The character of Aeneas is portrayed as the ideal Roman---his virtues are duty, piety, and faithfulness. Virgil’s overall purpose was to show that Aeneas had fulfilled his mission to establish the Romans in Italy and thereby start Rome on its divine mission to rule the world. Let others fashion from bronze more lifelike, breathing images--For so they shall---and evoke living faces from marble; Others excel as orators, others track with their instruments The planets circling in heaven and predict when stars will appear. But, Romans, never forget that government is your medium! Be this your art:---to practise men in the habit of peace, Generosity to the conquered, and firmness against aggressors6

As Virgil expressed it, ruling was Rome’s gift. Another prominent Augustan poet was Horace (65--8 B.C.), a friend of Virgil’s. Horace was a sophisticated writer whose overriding concern was to point out to his contemporaries the ‘‘follies and vices of his age.’’ In the Satires, a medley of poems on a variety of subjects, Horace 118

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

is revealed as a detached observer of human weaknesses. He directed his attacks against movements, not living people, and took on such subjects as sexual immorality, greed, and job dissatisfaction (‘‘How does it happen, Maecenas, that no man alone is content with his lot?’’). Horace mostly laughs at the weaknesses of humankind and calls for forbearance: ‘‘Supposing my friend has got liquored and wetted my couch, . . . is he for such a lapse to be deemed less dear as a friend, or because when hungry he snatched up before me a chicken from my side of the dish?’’7 Ovid (43 B.C.--A.D. 18) was the last of the great poets of the golden age. He belonged to a youthful, privileged social group in Rome that liked to ridicule old Roman values. In keeping with the spirit of this group, Ovid wrote a frivolous series of love poems known as the Amores. Intended to entertain and shock, they achieved their goal. Another of Ovid’s works was The Art of Love. This was essentially a takeoff on didactic poems. Whereas authors of earlier didactic poems had written guides to farming, hunting, or some such subject, Ovid’s work was a handbook on the seduction of women (see the box on p. 119). The most famous Latin prose work of the golden age was written by the historian Livy (59 B.C.--A.D. 17). Livy’s masterpiece was his History of Rome, covering the years from the foundation of the city (in the seventh century B.C.) to 9 B.C. Only 35 of the original 142 books have survived, although we do possess brief summaries of the whole work from other authors. Livy perceived history in terms of moral lessons. He stated in the preface that the study of history is the best medicine for a sick mind; for in history you have a record of the infinite variety of human experience plainly set out for all to see; and in that record you can find for yourself and your country both examples and warnings: fine things to take as models, base things, rotten through and through, to avoid.8

For Livy, human character was the determining factor in history. Livy’s history celebrated Rome’s greatness. He built scene upon scene that not only revealed the character of the chief figures but also demonstrated the virtues that had made Rome great. Of course, he had serious weaknesses as a historian. He was not always concerned about the factual accuracy of his stories. But he was an excellent storyteller, and his work remained the standard history of Rome for centuries.

The Silver Age of Latin Literature In the history of Latin literature, the century and a half after Augustus is often labeled the ‘‘silver age’’ to indicate that the literary efforts of the period, though good, were

OVID

AND THE

Ovid has been called the last great poet of the Augustan golden age of literature. One of his most famous works was The Art of Love, a guidebook for the seduction of women. Unfortunately for Ovid, the work appeared at a time when Augustus was eager to improve the morals of the Roman upper class. Augustus considered the work offensive, and Ovid soon found himself in exile.

Ovid, The Art of Love Now I’ll teach you how to captivate and hold the woman of your choice. This is the most important part of all my lessons. Lovers of every land, lend an attentive ear to my discourse; let goodwill warm your hearts, for I am going to fulfill the promises I made you. First of all, be quite sure that there isn’t a woman who cannot be won, and make up your mind that you will win her. Only you must prepare the ground. Sooner would the birds cease their song in the springtime, or the grasshopper be silent in the summer, . . . than a woman resist the tender wooing of a youthful lover. . . . Now the first thing you have to do is to get on good terms with the fair one’s maid. She can make things easy for you. Find out whether she is fully in her mistress’s confidence, and if she knows all about her secret dissipations. Leave no stone unturned to win her over. Once you have her on your side, the rest is easy. . . . In the first place, it’s best to send her a letter, just to pave the way. In it you should tell her how you dote on her; pay her beauty compliments and say all the nice things lovers always say. . . . Even the gods are moved by the voice of entreaty. And promise, promise,

not equal to the high standards of the Augustan golden age. The popularity of rhetorical training encouraged the use of clever literary expressions at the expense of original content. A good example of this trend can be found in the works of Seneca. Educated in Rome, Seneca (c. 4 B.C.--A.D. 65) became strongly attached to the philosophy of Stoicism. In letters written to a young friend, he expressed the basic tenets of Stoicism: living according to nature, accepting events dispassionately as part of the divine plan, and universal love for all humanity. Thus ‘‘the first thing philosophy promises us is the feeling of fellowship, of belonging to mankind and being members of a community. . . . Philosophy calls for simple living, not for doing penance, and the simple way of life need not be a crude one.’’9 Viewed in retrospect, Seneca displays some glaring inconsistencies. While preaching the virtues of simplicity, he amassed a fortune and was ruthless at times in protecting

ART

OF

LOVE

promise. Promises will cost you nothing. Everyone’s a millionaire where promises are concerned. . . . If she refuses your letter and sends it back unread, don’t give up; hope for the best and try again. . . . Don’t let your hair stick up in tufts on your head; see that your hair and your beard are decently trimmed. See also that your nails are clean and nicely filed; don’t have any hair growing out of your nostrils; take care that your breath is sweet, and don’t go about reeking like a billy-goat. All other toilet refinements leave to the women or to perverts. . . . When you find yourself at a feast where the wine is flowing freely, and where a woman shares the same couch with you, pray to that god whose mysteries are celebrated during the night, that the wine may not overcloud your brain. ‘Tis then you may easily hold converse with your mistress in hidden words whereof she will easily divine the meaning. . . . By subtle flatteries you may be able to steal into her heart, even as the river insensibly overflows the banks which fringe it. Never cease to sing the praises of her face, her hair, her taper fingers and her dainty foot. . . . Tears, too, are a mighty useful resource in the matter of love. They would melt a diamond. Make a point, therefore, of letting your mistress see your face all wet with tears. Howbeit, if you can’t manage to squeeze out any tears---and they won’t always flow just when you want them to---put your finger in your eyes.

Q What were Ovid’s principles of love? Why do you think Augustus found The Art of Love so offensive?

it. His letters show humanity, benevolence, and fortitude, but his sentiments are often undermined by an attempt to be clever with words. The greatest historian of the silver age was Tacitus (c. 56--120). His main works included the Annals and Histories, which presented a narrative account of Roman history from the reign of Tiberius through the assassination of Domitian (14--96). Tacitus believed that history had a moral purpose: ‘‘It seems to me a historian’s foremost duty to ensure that merit is recorded, and to confront evil deeds and words with the fear of posterity’s denunciations.’’10 As a member of the senatorial class, Tacitus was disgusted with the abuses of power perpetrated by the emperors and was determined that the ‘‘evil deeds’’ of wicked men would not be forgotten. Many historians believe he went too far in projecting the evils of his own day into his account of the past. His work Germania is especially important as a source of information about the early R OMAN C ULTURE

AND

S OCIETY

IN THE

E ARLY E MPIRE

119

Germans. But it too is colored by Tacitus’ attempt to show the Germans as noble savages in comparison with the decadent Romans.

Flaminian mi Gate at

Pin

cian

Hi

ll

The Upper-Class Roman Family

lW pha um Tri

Baths of Portico Nero Pantheon eo

Praetorian Gate

Praetorian P Camp

ve r

Mausoleum Aelian of Hadrian Bridge Ri r Tibe

Salarian Gate

ll Hi

Decuman Gate

Vim i

C

a

ay

120

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

na l

Stadium diu of By the second century A.D., significant Domitian mit changes were occurring in the Roman Baths ath of ll Triburtine Agrippa ripp e Hi Gate family. The foundations of the authority lin to i Via Bathss of Es p of the paterfamilias over his family, which qu Praenestine Tec Septimian p Trajan ja ilin ta Forum Gate Gate e Hi had already begun to weaken in the late ll Palace P Pa a c of t c Aurelian Colosseum os Tib T Tiberi iberius ib ber be e ius du Republic, were further undermined. The Gate Paala alatine l in que nA Palace of a i Hill d u a l C paterfamilias no longer had absolute auAugustus tu Hippodrome H odrome rome Circus C i Militaryy thority over his children; he could no ill Amphitheatre Maximus M xi A Caelian H p longer sell his children into slavery or have pi an Walls of fourth W them put to death. Moreover, the husay century B.C. l l i band’s absolute authority over his wife Aventine H Walls of the Latin also disappeared, a process that had begun Gate Baths of Emperors Ostian C Caracalla in the late Republic. In the Early Empire, Gate Appian pp the idea of male guardianship continued Gate to weaken significantly and by the late MAP 6.3 Imperial Rome. A large, overcrowded, and dirty city, Rome was the second century had become a formality. political, economic, social, and cultural hub of the Roman Empire. Squalid and Upper-class Roman women in the desperate living conditions for the poor contrasted dramatically with the city’s Early Empire had considerable freedom aristocratic villas and magnificent architectural works. and independence. They had acquired the Q How did roads from outside enter Rome, and what might explain this? right to own, inherit, and dispose of property. Upper-class women could atand wagon traffic was banned from the streets during the tend races, the theater, and events in the amphitheater, day. The noise from the resulting vehicular movement at although in the latter two places they were forced to sit in night often made sleep difficult. Evening pedestrian travel sections apart from the men. Moreover, ladies of rank was dangerous. Although Augustus had organized a powere still accompanied by maids and companions when lice force, lone travelers could be assaulted, robbed, or they went out. Some women operated businesses, such as soaked by filth thrown out of the upper-story windows of shipping firms. Women could still not participate in Rome’s massive apartment buildings. politics, but the Early Empire saw a number of important An enormous gulf existed between rich and poor in women who influenced politics through their husbands, the city of Rome. While the rich had comfortable villas, including Livia, the wife of Augustus; Agrippina, the the poor lived in apartment blocks called insulae, which mother of Nero; and Plotina, the wife of Trajan. might be six stories high. Constructed of concrete, they were often poorly built and prone to collapse. The use of Imperial Rome wooden beams in the floors and movable stoves, torches, At the center of the colossal Roman Empire was the ancandles, and lamps in the rooms for heat and light made cient city of Rome (see Map 6.3). Truly a capital city, the danger of fire constant. Once started, fires were extremely difficult to put out. The famous conflagration of Rome had the largest population of any city in the em64, which Nero was unjustly accused of starting, devaspire. It is estimated that it was home to close to one tated a good part of the city. Besides the hazards of colmillion people by the time of Augustus. For anyone with political ambitions, Rome was the place to be. Extremely lapse and fire, living conditions were also poor. High cosmopolitan, it was a magnet to people far and near. rents forced entire families into one room. The absence of Nationalities from all over the empire resided there, with plumbing and central heating made life so uncomfortable entire neighborhoods inhabited by specific groups, such that poorer Romans spent most of their time outdoors in as Greeks and Syrians. the streets. Fortunately for these people, Rome boasted public But for all its sophistication, Rome was an overbuildings unequaled elsewhere in the empire. Its temples, crowded and noisy city. Because of the congestion, cart

R OMAN C ULTURE

AND

S OCIETY

IN THE

E ARLY E MPIRE

121

Scala/Art Resource, NY

c

forums, markets, baths, theaters, triumphal arches, governmental buildings, and amphitheaters gave parts of the city an appearance of grandeur and magnificence. Though the center of a great empire, Rome was also a great parasite. Beginning with Augustus, the emperors accepted responsibility for providing food for the urban populace, with about 200,000 people receiving free grain. Even with the free grain, conditions were grim for the poor. Early in the second century, a Roman doctor noted that rickets was common among children in the city. In addition to food, entertainment was provided on a grand scale for the inhabitants of Rome. The poet Juvenal said of the Roman masses, The Gladiatorial Games. Although some gladiators were free men enticed by the possibility of ‘‘But nowadays, with no vote to sell, rewards, most were condemned criminals, slaves, or prisoners of war who were trained in special A great gladiator could win his freedom through the games. This mosaic from the fourth their motto is ‘Couldn’t care less.’ schools. century A.D. depicts different aspects of gladiatorial fighting and clearly shows the bloody nature of Time was when their plebiscite elected the games. generals, heads of state, commanders of legions: but now they’ve pulled in their horns, there’s only two things that concern them: Gladiatorial games were held from dawn to dusk. Bread and Circuses.’’11 Public spectacles were provided by Contests to the death between trained fighters formed the central focus of these games. Most gladiators were slaves the emperor and other state officials as part of the great or condemned criminals and were trained for combat in festivals---most of them religious in origin---celebrated by special gladiatorial schools. the state. More than one hundred days a year were given Gladiatorial games included other forms of enterover to these public holidays. The festivals included three tainment as well. Criminals of all ages and both sexes major types of entertainment. At the Circus Maximus, were sent into the arena without weapons to face certain horse and chariot races attracted hundreds of thousands death from wild animals who would tear them to pieces. of spectators, while dramatic and other performances Numerous kinds of animal contests were also staged: wild were held in theaters. But the most famous of all the beasts against each other, such as bears against buffaloes; public spectacles were the gladiatorial shows. staged hunts with men shooting safely from behind iron bars; and gladiators in the arena with bulls, tigers, and The Gladiatorial Shows lions. Reportedly, five thousand beasts were killed in one day of games when the emperor Titus inaugurated the The gladiatorial shows were an integral part of Roman Colosseum in A.D. 80. Enormous resources were invested society. They took place in amphitheaters, the first permanent one of which had been constructed at Rome in in the capture and shipment of wild animals for slaughter, 29 B.C. Perhaps the most famous was the Flavian amand whole species were hunted to extinction in parts of phitheater, called the Colosseum, which could seat fifty the empire. These bloodthirsty spectacles were wildly popular thousand spectators. Similar amphitheaters were built with the Roman people. The Roman historian Tacitus throughout the empire, with capacities ranging from a said, ‘‘Few indeed are to be found who talk of any other few thousand to tens of thousands. In most cities and subjects in their homes, and whenever we enter a classtowns, the amphitheaters were the biggest buildings, rivaled only by the circuses for races and the public baths. room, what else is the conversation of the youths.’’12 But Where a society invests its money gives an idea of its the gladiatorial games served a purpose beyond mere priorities. Since the amphitheater was the primary locaentertainment. Like the other forms of public entertaintion for the gladiatorial games, it is fair to say that public ment, they fulfilled both a political and a social need by slaughter was an important part of Roman culture. diverting thoughts of the idle masses from political

unrest. It was said of the emperor Trajan that he understood that although the distribution of grain and money satisfied the individual, spectacles were necessary for the ‘‘contentment of the masses.’’

Transformation of the Roman World: Crises in the Third Century

Q Focus Question: What political, military, economic, and social problems did the Roman Empire face during the third century?

At the end of the second century, a number of natural catastrophes struck Rome. Floods of the Tiber, famine, and plague brought back from the east by the army led to considerable loss of population and a shortage of military manpower. To many Romans, these natural disasters seemed to portend an ominous future for Rome, and indeed, in the course of the third century, the Roman Empire came near to collapse.

Valerian (253--260), by the Persians and his death in captivity, an event unprecedented in Roman history. Valerian’s body was displayed in the chief towns of Persia. Germanic tribes also poured into the empire. The Goths overran the Balkans and moved into Greece and Asia Minor. The Franks advanced into Gaul and Spain. Not until the reign of Aurelian (270--275) were most of the boundaries restored. Although he abandoned the Danubian province of Dacia, Aurelian reconquered Gaul and reestablished order in the east and along the Danube. Grateful citizens hailed him as ‘‘restorer of the world.’’ As civil wars and invasion wore down the central government, provinces began to break away from the empire. A military commander named Postumus seized control of Gaul and then gained the support of Britain and Spain. He defended his ‘‘Gallic empire’’ until he was killed by his own soldiers in 269. In the east, Zenobia, the wife of the ruler of Syria, seized power after his death and then in 270 extended her control over Egypt and much of Asia Minor. In 272, Emperor Aurelian ended this threat to imperial power by defeating Zenobia and her forces in Syria.

122

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

c

After a series of civil wars, Septimius Severus (193--211), who was born in North Africa and spoke Latin with an accent, used his legions to seize power. On his deathbed, Septimius Severus advised his sons, ‘‘Live in harmony, make the soldiers rich, and don’t give a damn for anything else.’’ His advice set the tone for the new dynasty he established. The Severan rulers (193--235) began to create a military monarchy. The army was expanded, soldiers’ pay was increased, and military officers were appointed to important government positions. A new stability seemed at hand, but the increased power of the military led new military leaders to aspire to become emperor, and the military monarchy of the Severan rulers degenerated into military anarchy. For the next fifty years (235--284), the empire was mired in the chaos of continual civil war. Contenders for the imperial throne found that bribing soldiers was an effective way to become emperor. In these five decades, there were twenty-two emperors, only two of whom did not meet a violent end. At the same time, the empire was beset by a series of invasions, no doubt encouraged by the internal turmoil. In the east, the Sassanid Persians made inroads into Roman territory. A fitting symbol of Rome’s crisis was the capture of the Roman emperor,

Bildarchiv Preussischer Kulturbesitz/Art Resource, NY

Political and Military Woes

Septimius Severus and His Family. This portrait painted on wood about A.D 200, found in Egypt, is the only existing painted likeness of a Roman emperor. The emperor is portrayed with gray hair and beard in memory of Marcus Aurelius. To legitimize his authority, Septimius Severus had himself adopted into the Antonine dynasty, calling himself the son of Marcus Aurelius. The emperor stands next to his wife with their two sons in front of them. The face of his son Geta has been blotted out, no doubt by order of the other son standing next to him, Caracalla, who had his brother killed when he succeeded to the throne.

Economic and Social Crises Invasions, civil wars, and plague came close to causing an economic collapse of the Roman Empire in the third century. The population declined drastically, possibly by as much as one-third. There was a noticeable decline in trade and small industry. The labor shortage created by plague affected both military recruiting and the economy. Farm production deteriorated significantly. Fields were ravaged by Germanic tribes and even more often by the defending Roman armies. Many farmers complained that Roman commanders and their soldiers were confiscating produce and livestock. Provincial governors seemed powerless to stop these depredations, and some even joined in the extortion. The monetary system began to show signs of collapse as a result of debased coinage and the beginnings of serious inflation. Armies were needed more than ever, but financial strains made it difficult to enlist and pay the necessary soldiers. Short of cash, the imperial government paid its soldiers with produce, causing bitter resentment. Whereas in the second century the Roman army had been recruited among the inhabitants of frontier provinces, by the mid-third century the state had to rely on hiring barbarians to fight under Roman commanders. These soldiers had no understanding of Roman traditions and no real attachment to either the empire or the emperors. By the end of the third century, a new political structure would emerge (see Chapter 7).

Transformation of the Roman World: The Rise of Christianity

Q Focus Question: What characteristics of Christianity

proper relationship between Romans and the gods and guaranteed security, peace, and prosperity. The polytheistic Romans were extremely tolerant of other religions. The Romans allowed the worship of native gods and goddesses throughout their provinces and even adopted some of the local gods. In addition, the imperial cult of Rome and Augustus was developed to bolster support for the emperors. After Augustus, deceased emperors deified by the Roman senate were included in the official imperial cult. The desire for a more emotional spiritual experience led many people to the mystery religions of the Hellenistic east, which flooded into the western Roman world during the Early Empire. The mystery religions offered secret teachings that promised their followers advantages unavailable through Roman religion: entry into a higher world of reality and the promise of a future life superior to the present one. They also featured elaborate rituals with deep emotional appeal. By participating in their ceremonies and performing their rites, an adherent could achieve communion with spiritual beings and undergo purification that opened the door to life after death. Although many mystery cults competed for the attention of the Roman world, perhaps the most important was Mithraism. Mithras was the chief agent of Ahuramazda, the supreme god of light in Persian Zoroastrianism (see Chapter 2). In the Roman world, Mithras came to be identified with the sun god and was known by his Roman title, the Unconquered Sun. Mithraism had spread rapidly in Rome and the western provinces by the second century A.D. and was especially favored by soldiers, who viewed Mithras as their patron deity. Mithraists paid homage to the sun on the first day of the week (Sunday), commemorated the sun’s birthday around December 25, and celebrated ceremonial meals. All of these practices had parallels in Christianity.

enabled it to grow and ultimately to triumph?

The advent of Christianity marks a fundamental break with the dominant values of the Greco-Roman world. Christian views of God, human beings, and the world were quite different from those of the Greeks and Romans. Nevertheless, to understand the rise of Christianity, we must first examine both the religious environment of the Roman world and the Jewish background from which Christianity emerged.

The Religious World of the Roman Empire Augustus had taken a number of steps to revive the Roman state religion, which had declined during the turmoil of the late Republic. The official state religion focused on the worship of a pantheon of gods and goddesses. Observance of proper ritual by state priests theoretically established the

The Jewish Background In Hellenistic times, the Jewish people had been granted considerable independence by their Seleucid rulers (see Chapter 4). Roman involvement with the Jews began in 63 B.C., and by A.D. 6, Judaea had been made a province and placed under the direction of a Roman procurator. But unrest continued, augmented by divisions among the Jews themselves. The Sadducees favored a rigid adherence to Hebrew law, rejected the possibility of personal immortality, and favored cooperation with the Romans. The Pharisees followed a strict adherence to Jewish ritual, and although they wanted Judaea to be free from Roman control, they did not advocate violent means to achieve this goal. The Essenes were a Jewish sect that lived in a religious community near the Dead Sea. As revealed in the Dead Sea Scrolls, a collection of documents first discovered

T RANSFORMATION

OF THE

R OMAN WORLD : T HE R ISE

OF

C HRISTIANITY

123

In the midst of the confusion and conflict in Judaea, Jesus of Nazareth (c. 6 B.C.--A.D. 30) began his public Jesus and His Apostles. Pictured is a fourth-century fresco from a Roman catacomb depicting and his apostles. Catacombs were underground cemeteries where early Christians buried their preaching. Jesus grew up in Galilee, Jesus dead. Christian tradition holds that in times of imperial repression, Christians withdrew to the an important center of the militant catacombs to pray and even hide. Zealots. Jesus’ message was straightforward. He reassured his fellow Jews sides and was given over to the Roman authorities. The that he did not plan to undermine their traditional religion: ‘‘Do not think that I have come to abolish the Law procurator Pontius Pilate ordered his crucifixion. But that or the Prophets; I have not come to abolish them but to did not solve the problem. A few loyal disciples spread the fulfill them.’’13 According to Jesus, what was important story that Jesus had overcome death, had been resurrected, and had then ascended into heaven. The belief in was not strict adherence to the letter of the law and atJesus’ resurrection became an important tenet of Christention to rules and prohibitions but the transformation tian doctrine. Jesus was now hailed by his followers as the of the inner person: ‘‘So in everything, do to others what ‘‘anointed one’’ (Christos in Greek), the Messiah who you would have them do to you, for this sums up the Law would return and usher in the kingdom of God on earth. and the Prophets.’’14 God’s command was simple---to love God and one another: ‘‘Love the Lord your God with all your heart and with all your soul and with all your mind The Importance of Paul Christianity began, then, as a and with all your strength. The second is this: Love your religious movement within Judaism and was viewed that neighbor as yourself.’’15 In his Sermon on the Mount, way by Roman authorities for many decades. Although tradition holds that one of Jesus’ disciples, Peter, founded Jesus presented the ethical concepts---humility, charity, the Christian church at Rome, the most important figure in and brotherly love---that would form the basis for the early Christianity after Jesus was Paul of Tarsus (c. 5--c. 67). value system of medieval Western civilization. As we have Paul reached out to non-Jews and transformed Christianity seen, these were not the values of classical Greco-Roman from a Jewish sect into a broader religious movement. civilization. Called the ‘‘second founder of Christianity,’’ Paul was a Although some Jews welcomed Jesus as the Messiah Jewish Roman citizen who had been strongly influenced by who would save Israel from oppression and establish Hellenistic Greek culture. He believed that the message of God’s kingdom on earth, Jesus spoke of a heavenly Jesus should be preached not only to Jews but to Gentiles kingdom, not an earthly one: ‘‘My kingdom is not of this (non-Jews) as well. Paul was responsible for founding world.’’16 In this he disappointed the radicals. At the same Christian communities throughout Asia Minor and along time, conservative religious leaders believed that Jesus was the shores of the Aegean. another false Messiah who was undermining respect for It was Paul who provided a universal foundation for traditional Jewish religion. To the Roman authorities of the spread of Jesus’ ideas. He taught that Jesus was, in Palestine and their local allies, the Nazarene was a poeffect, a savior-God, the son of God, who had come to tential revolutionary who might transform Jewish exearth to save all humans, who were basically sinners as a pectations of a messianic kingdom into a revolt against result of Adam’s original sin of disobedience against God Rome. Jesus thus found himself denounced on many 124

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

Scala/Art Resource, NY

The Origins of Christianity

c

in 1947, the Essenes, like many other Jews, awaited a Messiah who would save Israel from oppression, usher in the kingdom of God, and establish a true paradise on earth. A fourth group, the Zealots, were militant extremists who advocated the violent overthrow of Roman rule. A Jewish revolt in A.D. 66 was crushed by the Romans four years later. The Jewish Temple in Jerusalem was destroyed, and Roman power once more stood supreme in Judaea.

as recorded in the Old Testament. By his death, Jesus had atoned for the sins of all humans and made it possible for all men and women to experience a new beginning with the potential for individual salvation. By accepting Jesus Christ as their Savior, they too could be saved. The Spread of Christianity Christianity spread slowly at first. Although the teachings of early Christianity were disseminated primarily by the preaching of convinced Christians, written materials also appeared. Paul had written a series of epistles (letters) outlining Christian beliefs for different Christian communities. Some of Jesus’ disciples may also have preserved some of the sayings of the master in writing and would have passed on personal memories that became the basis of the written gospels---the ‘‘good news’’ concerning Jesus as recorded by Matthew, Mark, Luke, and John---which eventually became the authoritative record of Jesus’ life and teachings and formed the core of the New Testament. Recently, some scholars have argued that other gospels, such as that of Thomas, were rejected because they deviated from the beliefs about Jesus held by the emerging church leaders. Although Jerusalem was the first center of Christianity, its destruction by the Romans in A.D. 70 left individual Christian churches with considerable independence. By 100, Christian churches had been established in most of the major cities of the east and in some places in the western part of the empire. Many early Christians came from the ranks of Hellenized Jews and the Greek-speaking populations of the east. But in the second and third centuries, an increasing number of followers came from Latinspeaking cultures. A Latin translation of the Greek New Testament that appeared soon after 200 aided this process. Although some of the fundamental values of Christianity differed markedly from those of the Greco-Roman world, the Romans initially did not pay much attention to the Christians, whom they regarded at first as simply another sect of Judaism. The structure of the Roman Empire itself aided the growth of Christianity. Christian missionaries, including some of Jesus’ original twelve disciples, known as apostles, used Roman roads to travel throughout the empire spreading their ‘‘good news.’’ As the popular appeal of Christianity grew, the Roman attitude toward it began to change. The Romans were tolerant of other religions except when they threatened public order or public morals. Many Romans came to view Christians as harmful to the order of the Roman state. Because Christians held their meetings in secret and seemed to be connected to Christian groups in distant areas, the government could view them as potentially dangerous to the state. Some Romans felt that Christians were overly exclusive and hence harmful to the community and public order.

The Christians did not recognize other gods and therefore abstained from public festivals honoring these divinities. Finally, Christians refused to participate in the worship of the state gods and the imperial cult. Since the Romans regarded these as important to the state, the Christians’ refusal undermined the security of the state and hence constituted an act of treason, punishable by death. But to the Christians, who believed there was only one real God, the worship of state gods and the emperors was idolatry and would endanger their own salvation. Roman persecution of Christians in the first and second centuries was never systematic but sporadic and local. It began during the reign of Nero. After the fire that destroyed much of Rome, the emperor used the Christians as scapegoats, accusing them of arson and hatred of the human race and subjecting them to cruel deaths in Rome. In the second century, Christians were largely ignored as harmless (see the box on p. 126). By the end of the reigns of the five good emperors, Christians still represented a small minority, but one of considerable strength.

The Growth of Christianity The sporadic persecution of Christians by the Romans in the first and second centuries had done nothing to stop the growth of Christianity. It had, in fact, served to strengthen Christianity as an institution in the second and third centuries by causing it to shed the loose structure of the first century and move toward a more centralized organization of its various church communities. Crucial to this change was the emerging role of the bishops, who began to assume more control over church communities. The Christian church was creating a welldefined hierarchical structure in which the bishops and clergy were salaried officers separate from the laity or regular church members. The Appeal of Christianity Christianity grew slowly in the first century, took root in the second, and had spread widely by the third. Why was Christianity able to attract so many followers? First of all, the Christian message had much to offer the Roman world. The promise of salvation, made possible by Jesus’ death and resurrection, had immense appeal in a world full of suffering and injustice. Christianity seemed to imbue life with a meaning and purpose beyond the simple material things of everyday reality. Second, Christianity was not entirely unfamiliar. It could be viewed as simply another eastern mystery religion, offering immortality as the result of the sacrificial death of a savior-God. At the same time, it offered advantages that the other mystery religions lacked. Jesus had been a human figure, not a mythological one, such as Mithras. Moreover, Christianity had

T RANSFORMATION

OF THE

R OMAN WORLD : T HE R ISE

OF

C HRISTIANITY

125

ROMAN

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS AUTHORITIES AND A CHRISTIAN ON CHRISTIANITY

At first, Roman authorities were uncertain how to deal with the Christians. In the second century, as seen in the following exchange between Pliny the Younger and the emperor Trajan, Christians were often viewed as harmless and yet were subject to persecution if they persisted in being Christians. Pliny was governor of the province of Bithynia in northwestern Asia Minor (present-day Turkey). He wrote to the emperor for advice about how to handle people accused of being Christians. Trajan’s response reflects the general approach toward Christians by the emperors of the second century. The final selection is taken from Against Celsus, written about 246 by Origen of Alexandria. In it, Origen defended the value of Christianity against Celsus, a philosopher who had written an attack on Christians and their teachings.

a great many people could be reformed if they were given an opportunity to repent.

Trajan to Pliny You have followed the right course of procedure, my dear Pliny, in your examination of the cases of persons charged with being Christians, for it is impossible to lay down a general rule to a fixed formula. These people must not be hunted out; if they are brought before you and the charge against them is proved, they must be punished, but in the case of anyone who denies that he is a Christian, and makes it clear that he is not by offering prayers to our gods, he is to be pardoned as a result of his repentance however suspect his past conduct may be. But pamphlets circulated anonymously must play no part in any accusation. They create the worst sort of precedent and are quite out of keeping with the spirit of our age.

An Exchange Between Pliny and Trajan Pliny to Trajan It is my custom to refer all my difficulties to you, Sir, for no one is better able to resolve my doubts and to inform my ignorance. I have never been present at an examination of Christians. Consequently, I do not know the nature of the extent of the punishments usually meted out to them, nor the grounds for starting an investigation and how far it should be pressed. . . . For the moment this is the line I have taken with all persons brought before me on the charge of being Christians. I have asked them in person if they are Christians, and if they admit it, I repeat the question a second and third time, with a warning of the punishment awaiting them. If they persist, I order them to be led away for execution; for, whatever the nature of their admission, I am convinced that their stubbornness and unshakable obstinacy ought not to go unpunished. . . . Now that I have begun to deal with this problem, as so often happens, the charges are becoming more widespread and increasing in variety. An anonymous pamphlet has been circulated which contains the names of a number of accused persons. . . . I have therefore postponed any further examination and hastened to consult you. The question seems to me to be worthy of your consideration, especially in view of the number of persons endangered; for a great many individuals of every age and class, both men and women, are being brought to trial, and this is likely to continue. It is not only the towns, but villages and rural districts too which are infected through contact with this wretched cult. I think though that it is still possible for it to be checked and directed to better ends, for there is no doubt that people have begun to throng the temples which had been almost entirely deserted for a long time. . . . It is easy to infer from this that

126

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

Q What were Pliny’s personal opinions of Christians? Why was he willing to execute them? What was Trajan’s response, and what were its consequences for the Christians? What major points did Origen make about the benefits of the Christian religion?

universal appeal. Unlike Mithraism, it was not restricted to men. Furthermore, it did not require a painful or expensive initiation rite as other mystery religions did. Initiation was accomplished simply by baptism---a purification by water---by which one entered into direct communion with Jesus. In addition, Christianity gave new meaning to life and offered what the Roman state religions could not---a personal relationship with God and a link to higher worlds. Finally, Christianity fulfilled the human need to belong. Christians formed communities bound to one another in which people could express their love by helping each other and offering assistance to the poor, the sick, widows, and orphans. Christianity satisfied the need to belong in a way that the huge, impersonal, and remote Roman Empire could never do. Christianity proved attractive to all classes. The promise of eternal life was for all---rich, poor, aristocrats, slaves, men, and women. As Paul stated in his Epistle to the Colossians: ‘‘And [you] have put on the new self, which is being renewed in knowledge in the image of its Creator. Here there is no Greek nor Jew, circumcised or uncircumcised, barbarian, Scythian, slave or free, but Christ is all, and is in all.’’17 Although it did not call for revolution or social upheaval, Christianity emphasized a sense of spiritual equality for all people.

Women and Early Christianity As we have seen, firstcentury Christian communities had allowed both men and women to play significant roles. By the second century, however, men had gained control of church organization and relegated women to secondary roles. Women, as Paul had argued, should be subject to men. Nevertheless, many women found that Christianity offered them new roles and new forms of companionship with other women. Christian women fostered the new religion in their own homes and preached their convictions to other people in their towns and villages. Many also died for their faith. Perpetua was an aristocratic woman who converted to Christianity. Her pagan family begged her to renounce her new faith, but she refused. Arrested by the Roman authorities, she chose instead to die for her faith and was one of a group of Christians who were slaughtered by wild beasts in the arena at Carthage on March 7, 203. The Failure of Persecution As the Christian church became more organized, some emperors in the third century responded with more systematic persecutions, but their schemes failed to work. The last great persecution was by Diocletian at the beginning of the fourth century. But even he had to admit what had become apparent in the course of the third century: Christianity had become too strong to be eradicated by force.

TIMELINE 100

B.C.

A.D.

1

A.D.

100

A.D.

200

A.D.

300

Rome Age of Augustus

Five good emperors Roman citizenship to all free inhabitants of the empire

Julio-Claudian rulers

Jesus of Nazareth

The Pantheon Severan rulers

Augustan poets (Virgil, Horace)

Aurelian pacifies empire

Silver age of Latin literature

China Han Chinese Empire

T RANSFORMATION

OF THE

R OMAN WORLD : T HE R ISE

OF

C HRISTIANITY

127

CONCLUSION The Roman Republic had created one of the largest empires in antiquity, but its republican institutions had proved inadequate for the task of ruling an empire. After a series of bloody civil wars, Augustus created a new order that began the Roman Empire, which experienced a lengthy period of peace and prosperity between 14 and 180. During this Pax Romana, trade flourished and the provinces were governed efficiently. In addition, within their empire, the Romans developed a remarkable series of achievements that were bequeathed to the future. These achievements were fundamental to the development of Western civilization, which consisted largely of lands in Europe conquered by the Romans in which Roman cultural and political ideals were gradually spread. The Romance languages of today (French, Italian, Spanish, Portuguese, and Romanian) are based on

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING General Histories of the Roman Empire For a general account of the Roman Empire, see J. Boardman, J. Griffin, and O. Murray, eds., The Oxford History of the Roman World (Oxford, 1991), and G. Wolf, ed., Cambridge Illustrated History of the Roman World (Cambridge, 2003). Good surveys of the Early Empire include C. Wells, The Roman Empire, 2d ed. (London, 1992); M. Goodman, The Roman World, 44 B.C.--A.D. 180 (London, 1997); and R. Mellor, Augustus and the Creation of the Roman Empire (Boston, 2005), for a brief history with documents. Roman Emperors Studies of Roman emperors of the first and second centuries include W. Eck, The Age of Augustus, trans. D. L. Schneider (Oxford, 2003); A. Everitt, Augustus: Life of Rome’s First Emperor (New York, 2006); E. Champlin, Nero (Cambridge, Mass., 2003); E. Speller, Following Hadrian (Oxford, 2003); and M. Hammond, The Antonine Monarchy (Rome, 1959). See P. Matyszak, The Sons of Caesar: Imperial Rome’s First Dynasty (London, 2006), on the Julio-Claudian rulers. On the wife of Augustus, see A. A. Barrett, Livia: First Lady of Imperial Rome (New Haven, Conn., 2002). Roman Army and Provinces The Roman army is examined in J. B. Campbell, The Emperor and the Roman Army (Oxford, 1984). On warfare, see A. Goldsworthy, Roman Warfare (New York, 2005). On the provinces and Roman foreign policy, see E. N. Luttwak, The Grand Strategy of the Roman Empire from the First Century A.D. to the Third (Baltimore, 1976); B. Isaac, The Limits of Empire: The Roman Empire in the East (Oxford, 1990); and S. L. Dyson, The Creation of the Roman Frontier (Princeton, N.J., 1985). On the battle in the Teutoburg Forest, see P. S. Wells, The Battle That Stopped Rome: Emperor Augustus, Arminius and the Slaughter of the Legions in the Teutoburg Forest (New York, 2003). Roman Culture A good survey of Roman literature can be found in R. M. Ogilvie, Roman Literature and Society (Harmondsworth, England, 1980). More specialized studies include R. O. Lyne, The Latin 128

C H A P T E R 6 THE ROMAN EMPIRE

Latin. Western practices of impartial justice and trial by jury owe much to Roman law. As great builders, the Romans left monuments to their skills throughout Europe, some of which, including aqueducts and roads, are still in use today. Other monuments provided models for public buildings in the West for hundreds of years. Aspects of Roman administrative practices survived in the Western world for centuries. The Romans also preserved the intellectual heritage of the Greco-Roman world of antiquity. By the third century A.D., the Roman world was being buffeted by civil wars, invasions, and economic problems. At the same time, a new religion---Christianity---was spreading throughout the empire. As we shall see in the next chapter, the response to these developments slowly transformed the Roman Empire.

Love Poets from Catullus to Horace (Oxford, 1980), and K. Galinsky, Augustan Culture (Princeton, N.J., 1996). Roman Society Various aspects of Roman society are covered in L. Adkins and R. A. Adkins, Handbook to Life in Ancient Rome (New York, 1994). Also useful on urban life is J. E. Stambaugh, The Ancient Roman City (Baltimore, 1988). On the gladiators, see F. Meijer, The Gladiators: History’s Most Deadly Sport (Boston, 2005). Studies on Roman women include S. Dixon, Reading Roman Women (London, 2001), and A. Fraschetti, Roman Women, trans. L. Lappan (Chicago, 1999). Early Christianity For a general introduction to early Christianity, see J. Court and K. Court, The New Testament World (Cambridge, 1990). Useful works on early Christianity include W. H. C. Frend, The Rise of Christianity (Philadelphia, 1984), and R. MacMullen, Christianizing the Roman Empire (New Haven, Conn., 1984). For a detailed analysis of Christianity in the 30s and 40s of the first century A.D., see J. D. Crossan, The Birth of Christianity (New York, 1998). On Christian women, see D. M. Scholer, ed., Women in Early Christianity (New York, 1993), and R. Kraemer, Her Share of the Blessings: Women’s Religion Among the Pagans, Jews and Christians in the Graeco-Roman World (Oxford, 1995). On the controversies surrounding the Christian gospels in the early history of Christianity, see E. Pagels, Beyond Belief: The Secret Gospel of Thomas (New York, 2003); and E. Pagels and K. L. King, Reading Judas: The Gospel of Judas and the Shaping of Christianity (New York, 2007).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

129

CHAPTER 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

The Late Roman Empire What reforms did Diocletian and Constantine institute, and to what extent were the reforms successful?

Giraudon/The Bridgeman Art Library

Q

The Germanic Kingdoms What changes did the Germanic peoples make to the political, economic, and social conditions of the western Roman Empire? What were the main features of Germanic law and society, and how did they differ from those of the Romans?

c

Q

Development of the Christian Church

Q

How and why did the organization of the Christian church and its relations with the state change during the fourth and fifth centuries? What were the chief characteristics of Benedictine monasticism, and what role did monks play in both the conversion of Europe to Christianity and the intellectual life of the Germanic kingdoms?

The Byzantine Empire

Q

How did the Byzantine Empire that had emerged by the eighth century differ from the empire of Justinian and from the Germanic kingdoms in the west?

The Rise of Islam

Q

What was the basic message of Islam, and why was it able to expand so successfully?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

130

In what ways were the Byzantine and Islamic civilizations different from the civilization developing in western Europe? In what ways were they similar?

A thirteenth-century Italian manuscript illustration of the baptism of Clovis

BY THE THIRD CENTURY, the Roman Empire was experiencing a number of problems as well as witnessing the growth of a new religion: Christianity. To restore the empire, the emperors Diocletian and Constantine initiated a number of reforms, and Constantine converted to Christianity, starting a process that gave the Late Empire a new state religion. After Constantine, the empire continued to survive, but it had to deal repeatedly with incursions of Germanic tribes in the west. By the second half of the fifth century, new political arrangements were undermining the old imperial structure in the west, leading to the emergence of a series of German kingdoms that would form the basis of a new civilization. The Christian church also played a role as it converted these Germanic tribes to its faith. The conversion to Christianity of the pagan leaders of German tribes was sometimes dramatic, at least as reported by the sixthcentury historian Gregory of Tours. Clovis, leader of the Franks, married Clotilde, daughter of the king of the Burgundians. She was a Christian, but Clovis refused her pleas to become a Christian, telling her, ‘‘Your god can do nothing.’’ But during a battle with the Alemanni, when Clovis’s army was close to utter destruction,

‘‘he saw the danger; his heart was stirred; and he raised his eyes to heaven, saying, ‘Jesus Christ, I beseech the glory of your aid. If you shall grant me victory over these enemies, I will believe in you and be baptized in your name.’’’ When he had uttered these words, the Alemanni began to flee. Clovis soon became a Christian. While the Germanic kingdoms were establishing roots in the west, the eastern part of the old Roman Empire, increasingly Greek in culture, continued as the Byzantine Empire. Serving as a buffer between Europe and the peoples to the east, the Byzantine or Eastern Roman Empire also preserved the intellectual and legal accomplishments of Greek and Roman antiquity. At the same time, a new culture centered on Islam emerged in the east; it spread through large parts of the old Roman Empire, preserved much of Greek culture, and created its own flourishing civilization. This chapter concerns the dramatic transformations occurring in the Roman world in late antiquity, the heirs of the Roman Empire, and the medieval world they began to create.

The Late Roman Empire

Q Focus Question: What reforms did Diocletian and Constantine institute, and to what extent were the reforms successful?

At the end of the third and beginning of the fourth centuries, the Roman Empire gained a new lease on life through the efforts of two strong emperors, Diocletian and Constantine, who restored order and stability. The Roman Empire was virtually transformed into a new state: the Late Roman Empire, which included a new governmental structure, a rigid economic and social system, and a new state religion---Christianity.

The Reforms of Diocletian and Constantine Diocletian had risen through the ranks to become a prominent military leader. After the murder of the emperor Numerian by his praetorian prefect, Diocletian executed the prefect and was then hailed as emperor by his soldiers. Diocletian’s own rise to power led him to see the need for a new system for ruling the Roman Empire. Political Reforms Believing that the empire had grown too large for a single ruler, Diocletian (284--305) divided it into four administrative units (see Map 7.1), each with its own prefect. Despite the appearance of four-man rule, however, Diocletian’s military seniority enabled him to claim a higher status and hold the ultimate authority. Constantine (306--337) continued and even expanded the autocratic policies of Diocletian. Both rulers greatly strengthened and enlarged the administrative bureaucracies of the Roman Empire. Henceforth, civil and military bureaucracies were sharply separated. Each contained a

hierarchy of officials who exercised control at the various levels. The emperor presided over both hierarchies of officials and served as the only link between them. New titles of nobility---such as illustres (‘‘illustrious ones’’) and illustrissimi (‘‘most illustrious ones’’)---were instituted to dignify the holders of positions in the civil and military bureaucracies. Military Reforms Additional military reforms were also instituted. The army was enlarged to almost 400,000 men, including units filled with Germans. By the end of Constantine’s reign, a new organization of the army had also been put in place. Military forces were of two kinds: garrison troops, which were located on the frontiers and intended as a first line of defense against invaders, and mobile units, which were located behind the frontier but could be quickly moved to support frontier troops when the borders were threatened. This gave the empire greater flexibility in responding to invasion. Economic and Social Trends The political and military reforms of Diocletian and Constantine greatly enlarged two institutions---the army and the civil service---that drained most of the public funds. Though more revenues were needed to pay for the army and bureaucracy, the population was not growing, so the tax base could not be expanded. Diocletian and Constantine devised new economic and social policies to deal with these financial burdens, but like their political policies, they were all based on coercion and loss of individual freedom. To fight inflation, Diocletian resorted to issuing a price edict in 301 that established maximum wages and prices for the entire empire, but despite severe penalties, it was unenforceable and failed to work. Coercion also came to form the underlying basis for numerous occupations in the Late Roman Empire. To ensure the tax base and keep the empire going despite the shortage of labor, the emperors issued edicts that forced people to remain in their designated vocations. Basic jobs, such as bakers and shippers, became hereditary. Free tenant farmers continued to decline and soon found themselves bound to the land by large landowners who took advantage of depressed agricultural conditions to enlarge their landed estates. In general, the economic and social policies of Diocletian and Constantine were based on an unprecedented degree of control and coercion. Though temporarily successful, such authoritarian policies in the long run stifled the vitality the Late Empire needed to revive its sagging fortunes. Constantine’s Building Program Constantine was especially interested in building programs despite the strain T HE L ATE R OMAN E MPIRE

131

Baltic Sea

N ort h Se a

BRITAIN B N

e

600 Kilometers

200

400 Miles

GERMANY NY

SP AI N

O RB A N

A

hone

R.

CISA SA S AL LP PIN P I E G UL GA Co orsic or ica iic c Sa ardi din d i ia

Balea Bal earics ear ics

R.

DACIA

Rav R aven eenn nn n na

Black Sea MO M OESIA A T TH H RACE Byzant nttiu ium um Adriatic TI A Rome A (Co Const nstan anttino in ple) BITHY A ianople ((Const Adr YNI NIA A Sea MACEDO DO ONI NIA N Nicom Nic com omedia PHRYGIA M

Pergamum

NORTH AFRICA Sahara

Sicily C thage Car

Corint Cor Co C orri h o

CILICIA

Syr Sy yracuse

NUMIDIA

Medi

Rhodes es

Prefecture of Italy

Prefecture of the East

SYRIA Damascus

terrane

an

Sea

Jerusaalem leem m

Alexan Ale x dri xan driia

JUDAEA

EGYPT T Line of division between the Eastern and Western Empires

Ni

Prefecture of Illyricum

Antio occh o

Cypprus Cy C

Cre C rete

LIBYA Prefecture of Gaul

CAPPADOC CIA

ASIA

Atthens At n

RITANIA MAU

. on R

NOR ICU PAN M NO NI A

l ps

Tiber R.

. oR br

ER NEAR

ees

NE NS IS R

E

Py ren

er R.

L DA

N AI SP

Dn iep

D

Da nu be

.

GAUL

HE R

400

R.

in Se

eR

O c e an

FA RT

200

.

Rhin

Atl anti c

Elb eR

le

R

.

Red R Sea

MAP 7.1 Divisions of the Late Roman Empire, c. 300. Diocletian imposed order and a

new economic and administrative structure on the Late Empire. He divided the Roman Empire into four regions, each ruled by either an ‘‘Augustus’’ or a ‘‘Caesar,’’ although Diocletian retained supreme power. Q Compare this map with Map 6.1. How much territory was lost by the time of Diocletian?

they placed on the budget. Between 324 and 330, he engaged in his biggest project, the construction of a new capital city in the east, on the site of the Greek city of Byzantium, on the shores of the Bosporus. Named the ‘‘city of Constantine,’’ or Constantinople (modern Istanbul), it was developed for defensive reasons; it had an excellent strategic location. Calling it his ‘‘New Rome,’’ Constantine endowed the city with a forum, large palaces, and a vast amphitheater. It was officially dedicated on May 11, 330, ‘‘by the commandment of God,’’ and in the following years, many Christian churches were built there.

The Empire’s New Religion Christianity flourished after Constantine became the first Christian emperor. According to the traditional story, 132

before a crucial battle, he saw a vision of a Christian cross inscribed ‘‘In this sign you will conquer.’’ Having won the battle, the story goes, Constantine was convinced of the power of the Christian God. Although he was not baptized until the end of his life, in 313 he issued the famous Edict of Milan, officially tolerating the existence of Christianity. Under Theodosius ‘‘the Great’’ (378--395), it was made the official religion of the Roman Empire. Christianity had triumphed. Organization and Religious Disputes By the fourth century, the Christian church had developed a system of government. The Christian community in each city was headed by a bishop, whose area of jurisdiction was known as a bishopric or diocese. The bishoprics of each Roman province were clustered together under the direction of

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

Council of Nicaea, held in 325, condemned Arianism and stated that Jesus was of ‘‘the same substance’’ as God: We believe in one God the Father All-sovereign, maker of all things visible and invisible; And in one Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of God, begotten of the Father, only-begotten, that is, of the substance of the Father, God of God, Light of Light, true God of true God, begotten not made, of one substance with the Father.1

Scala/Art Resource, NY

The Council of Nicaea did not end the controversy, however; not only did Arianism persist in some parts of the Roman Empire for many years, but many of the Germanic Goths who established states in the west converted to Arian Christianity (see ‘‘The Germanic Kingdoms’’ later in this chapter). As a result of these fourth-century theological controversies, the Roman emperor came to play an increasingly important role in church affairs.

c

The End of the Western Empire The Emperor Constantine. Constantine played an important role in restoring order and stability to the Roman Empire at the beginning of the fourth century. This marble head of Constantine, which is 8 feet 6 inches high, was part of an enormous 30-foot-tall seated statue of the emperor in the New Basilica in Rome. Constantine used these awe-inspiring statues throughout the empire to build support for imperial policies by reminding his subjects of his position as an absolute ruler with immense power. With his eyes turned toward heaven, Constantine’s special relationship with God is made clear.

an archbishop. The bishops of four great cities, Rome, Jerusalem, Alexandria, and Antioch, held positions of special power in church affairs because the churches in these cities all asserted that they had been founded by the original apostles sent out by Jesus. One reason the church needed a more formal organization was the problem of heresy. As Christianity developed and spread, contradictory interpretations of important doctrines emerged. Heresy came to be viewed as a teaching different from the official ‘‘catholic’’ (universal) beliefs of the church. In a world where people were concerned about salvation, the question of whether Jesus’ nature was divine or human took on great significance. These doctrinal differences also became political issues, creating factions that actually warred with one another. It is unlikely that ordinary people understood what these debates meant. One of the major heresies of the fourth century was Arianism, which arose among the followers of Arius, a priest from Alexandria in Egypt. Arius believed that Jesus Christ had been human and thus not truly God. Arius was opposed by Athanasius, a bishop of Alexandria, who argued that Jesus was human but also truly God. Emperor Constantine, disturbed by the controversy, called the first ecumenical council of the church, a meeting composed of representatives from the entire Christian community. The

Constantine had reunited the Roman Empire and restored a semblance of order. After his death, however, the empire resumed its dissolution into western and eastern parts, and by 395, they two had become virtually independent states. In the fifth century, the empire in the east remained intact under the Roman emperor in Constantinople (see ‘‘The Byzantine Empire’’ later in this chapter), but the empire in the west collapsed and was replaced by a series of Germanic kingdoms. During the first and second centuries A.D., the Romans had established the Rhine and Danube Rivers as the empire’s northern boundary. The Romans called all the peoples to the north of the rivers ‘‘Germans’’ and regarded them as uncivilized barbarians. In fact, the Germans consisted of different groups with their own customs and identities, but these constantly changed as tribes broke up and came together in new configurations. At times, they formed larger confederations under strong warrior leaders. The Germans lived by herding and farming and also traded with people living along the northern frontiers of the empire. Their closeness to the Romans also led to some Romanization of the tribes. They were familiar with the Roman use of coins rather than barter and also gained some knowledge of both the Latin language and Roman military matters. Contacts between Romans and Germans were common across the boundaries established along the Rhine and the Danube. In fact, the Romans hired Germanic tribes to fight other Germanic tribes that threatened Rome and enlisted groups of Germans to fight for Rome. Until the fourth century, the empire had proved capable of absorbing and accommodating these people without harm to its political structure. As that century wore on, T HE L ATE R OMAN E MPIRE

133

CHRONOLOGY The Late Roman Empire Diocletian

284--305

Constantine

306--337

Edict of Milan

313

Construction of Constantinople

324--330

Battle of Adrianople

378

Theodosius the Great

378--395

Division of the empire

395

Alaric and Visigoths sack Rome

410

Roman legions abandon Britain

410

Vandals sack Rome

455

Odoacer deposes Romulus Augustulus

476

however, the situation began to change as the Germanic tribes came under new pressures from invaders. In the late fourth century, the Huns, a fierce tribe of nomads from Asia, began moving into the Black Sea region and forced the Germanic inhabitants westward. One of the largest groups, which came to be known as the Visigoths, crossed the Danube into German territory and settled down as Roman allies. Ill-treated by Roman officials, the Visigoths soon revolted, and the attempt to stop them at Adrianople in 378 led to a crushing defeat for the Romans. Soon the Visigoths were again on the move. Under their king Alaric, they moved into Italy and sacked Rome in 410. Then, at the urging of the emperor, they moved into Spain and southern Gaul as Roman allies. The Roman experience with the Visigoths established a precedent. The emperors in the first half of the fifth century made alliances with whole groups of Germanic peoples, who settled peacefully in the western part of the empire. The Burgundians settled themselves in much of eastern Gaul, just south of another German tribe called the Alemanni. Only the Vandals consistently remained hostile to the Romans. They ravaged parts of Gaul and crossed the Pyrenees into Spain. Defeated by incoming Visigoths, the Vandals crossed the Strait of Gibraltar and conquered the province of Africa. In 455, the Vandals even attacked Rome, sacking it more ferociously than the Visigoths had in 410. Increasingly, German military leaders dominated the imperial courts of the western empire, treating the Roman emperors as puppet rulers under their control. One such German leader finally ended the charade of Roman imperial rule. Odoacer deposed the Roman emperor, Romulus Augustulus, in 476 and began to rule on his own. Meanwhile, the Ostrogoths, another branch of the Goths, under their king Theodoric (493--526), marched into Italy, killed Odoacer, and established control of Italy in 493. 134

By the end of the fifth century, Roman imperial authority in the west had ceased. Nevertheless, the intellectual, governmental, and cultural traditions of the Late Roman Empire continued to live in the new Germanic kingdoms.

The Germanic Kingdoms

Q Focus Questions: What changes did the Germanic

peoples make to the political, economic, and social conditions of the western Roman Empire? What were the main features of Germanic law and society, and how did they differ from those of the Romans?

By 500, the western Roman Empire was being replaced politically by a series of kingdoms ruled by German kings (see Map 7.2). Although the Germans now ruled, they were greatly outnumbered by the Romans, who still controlled most of the economic resources. Both were Christian, but many of the Germans were Arian Christians, considered heretics by Roman Christians, who belonged to the Christian church in Rome, which had become known as the Roman Catholic Church. Gradually, the two groups merged into a common culture, although the pattern of settlement and the fusion of the Romans and Germans took different forms in the various Germanic kingdoms.

The Ostrogothic Kingdom of Italy More than any other Germanic state, the Ostrogothic kingdom of Italy managed to maintain the Roman tradition of government. The Ostrogothic king, Theodoric, had received a Roman education while a hostage in Constantinople. After taking control of Italy, he was eager to create a synthesis of Ostrogothic and Roman practices. In addition to maintaining the entire structure of imperial Roman government, he established separate systems of rule for the Ostrogoths and the Romans. The Italian population lived under Roman law administered by Roman officials. The Ostrogoths were governed by their own customs and their own officials. After Theodoric’s death in 526, it quickly became apparent that much of his success had been due to the force of his personality. His successors soon found themselves facing opposition from the imperial forces of the Byzantine or eastern Roman Empire. Under Emperor Justinian (527-565) (see ‘‘The Byzantine Empire’’ later in this chapter), Byzantine armies reconquered Italy between 535 and 552, devastating much of the peninsula and in the process destroying Rome as one of the great urban centers of the Mediterranean world. The Byzantine reconquest proved ephemeral, however. Another German tribe, the Lombards, invaded in 568 and conquered much of northern and central

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

PICTS HUMBRIA RT NO

Political Divisions of Britain Angles Saxons

Lindisfarne Whitby

North Sea

JUTES DANES

EX

ea

Vi stu la

O

R

.

KINGDOM OF THE

Atlantic Ocean

cS

r

. eR

R. ine

SS SU

Britons

de

MERCIA EAST ANGLIA FRISIANS ESSEX SAXONS London Rh SS KENT El b E E W X AUSTRASIA

CELTS

Jutes

Balti

e

Se Paris in FRANKS NEUSTRIA R.

Alp s

Danube R.

ALEMANNI LOMBARDS BURGUNDIANS BAVARIANS BURGUNDY KINGDOM OF THE Po R. OSTROGOTHS

SUEVES BASQUES Py

Toulouse

Ravenna

ren ee s

Toledo

KINGDOM OF THE VISIGOTHS

Barcelona

Corsica Rome

Sardinia

Mediterranean Sea Sicily

VANDALS

Carthage

BYZANTINES

0 0

200

400 200

larger native population, and both continued to maintain much of the Roman structure of government while largely excluding Romans from power. There were also noticeable differences, however. Laws preventing intermarriage were dropped, and the Visigothic and Hispano-Roman peoples began to blend. A new body of law common to both peoples also developed. The Visigothic kingdom possessed one fatal weakness. With no established procedure for choosing new rulers, powerful Visigoths fought constantly to lay claim to the kingship. Church officials tried to help develop a sense of order, as this decree illustrates: ‘‘No one of us shall dare to seize the kingdom; no one shall arouse sedition among the citizenry; no one shall think of killing the king . . . .’’ Church edicts failed to stop the feuds, however, and assassinations remained a way of life in Visigothic Spain. In 711, Muslim invaders destroyed the Visigothic kingdom itself (see ‘‘The Rise of Islam’’ later in this chapter).

600 Kilometers 400 Miles

The Frankish Kingdom

Only one of the German states on the European continent proved filled the power vacuum caused by the demise of the Roman Empire, building states that long-lasting---the kingdom of the blended elements of Germanic customs and laws with those of Roman culture, including Franks. The establishment of a large-scale conversions to Christianity. The Franks established the most durable of these Frankish kingdom was the work Germanic states. Clovis (c. 482--511), a member Q How did the movements of the Franks during this period correspond to the borders of of the Merovingian dynasty who of present-day France? became a Catholic Christian around 500. He was not the first Italy. Unlike the Ostrogoths, the Lombards were harsh rulers German king to convert to Christianity, but the others had who cared little for Roman structures and traditions. joined the Arian sect of Christianity. The Roman Catholic Church regarded the Arians as heretics whose beliefs diverged from official church doctrine. Clovis’s conversion to The Visigothic Kingdom of Spain Catholic Christianity gained him the support of the Roman Catholic Church, which was eager to obtain the friendship The Visigothic kingdom in Spain demonstrated a number of a major Germanic ruler who was a Catholic Christian. of parallels to the Ostrogothic kingdom of Italy. Both By 510, Clovis had established a powerful new favored coexistence between the Roman and German Frankish kingdom stretching from the Pyrenees in the populations, both featured a warrior caste dominating a MAP 7.2 The Germanic Kingdoms of the Old Western Empire. The Germanic tribes

T HE G ERMANIC K INGDOMS

135

CHRONOLOGY The Germanic Kingdoms Theodoric establishes Ostrogothic kingdom in Italy

493

Frankish king Clovis converts to Christianity

c. 500

Reconquest of Italy by Byzantines

535--552

Lombards begin conquest of Italy

568

Muslims shatter Visigoths in Spain

711

west to German lands in the east (modern-day France and western Germany). After the death of Clovis, however, his sons divided the newly created kingdom among themselves, as was the Frankish custom. Thus during the sixth and seventh centuries, the once-united Frankish kingdom came to be partitioned into three major areas: Neustria in northern Gaul; Austrasia, consisting of the ancient Frankish lands on both sides of the Rhine; and the former kingdom of Burgundy. During this time, the Frankish kingdom witnessed a process of fusion between Gallo-Roman and Frankish cultures and peoples, a process accompanied by a significant decline in Roman standards of civilization and commercial activity. The Franks were warriors and did little to encourage either urban life or trade. By 750, Frankish Gaul was basically an agricultural society in which the old Roman estates of the Late Empire had continued unimpeded. Institutionally, however, Germanic concepts of kingship and customary law replaced the Roman governmental structure.

Anglo-Saxon England The barbarian pressures on the western Roman Empire had forced the emperors to withdraw the Roman armies and abandon Britain by the beginning of the fifth century. This opened the door to the Angles and Saxons, Germanic tribes from Denmark and northern Germany. Although these same peoples had been conducting plundering raids for a century, the withdrawal of the Roman armies enabled them to make settlements instead. They met with resistance from the Celtic Britons, however, who still controlled the western regions of Cornwall, Wales, and Cumberland at the beginning of the seventh century. The German invaders eventually succeeded in carving out small kingdoms throughout the island, Kent in southeast England being one of them.

The Society of the Germanic Kingdoms As Germans and Romans intermarried and began to create a new society, some of the social customs of the 136

Germanic people began to play an important role. The crucial social bond among the Germanic peoples was the family, especially the extended or patriarchal family of husbands, wives, children, brothers, sisters, cousins, and grandparents. In addition to working the land together and passing it down to succeeding generations along male lines, the extended family provided protection, which was sorely needed in the violent atmosphere of Merovingian times. The German conception of family affected the way Germanic law treated crime and punishment. In the Roman system, as in our own, a crime such as murder was considered an offense against society or the state and was handled by a court that heard evidence and arrived at a decision. Germanic law tended to be personal. An injury by one person against another could mean a blood feud in which the family of the injured party took revenge on the kin of the wrongdoer. Feuds could lead to savage acts of revenge, such as hacking off hands or feet, gouging out eyes, or slicing off ears and noses. Because this system could easily get out of control, an alternative system arose that made use of a fine called wergeld, which was paid by a wrongdoer to the family of the person he had injured or killed. Wergeld (literally, ‘‘man money’’) was the value of a person in monetary terms. That value varied according to social status. An offense against a nobleman, for example, cost considerably more than one against a freeman or a slave. Under German customary law, compurgation and the ordeal were the two most commonly used procedures for determining whether an accused person was guilty and should have to pay wergeld. Compurgation was the swearing of an oath by the accused person, backed up by a group of ‘‘oath helpers,’’ numbering twelve or twentyfive, who would also swear that the accused person should be believed. The ordeal functioned in a variety of ways, all of which were based on the principle of divine intervention---the assumption was that divine forces (pagan or Christian) would not allow an innocent person to be harmed (see the box on p. 137). The Frankish Family and Marriage For the Franks, like other Germanic peoples, the extended family was at the center of social organization. The Frankish family structure was simple. Males were dominant and made all the important decisions. A woman obeyed her father until she married and then fell under the legal domination of her husband. A widow, however, could hold property without a male guardian. In Frankish law, the wergeld of a wife of childbearing age---of value because she could bring forth children---was considerably higher than that of a man. The law stated, ‘‘If any one killed a free woman after she had begun bearing children, he shall be sentenced to 24,000 denars . . . . After she can

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

GERMANIC CUSTOMARY LAW: THE ORDEAL In Germanic customary law, the ordeal came to be a means by which accused persons might clear themselves. Although the ordeal took different forms, all involved a physical trial of some sort, such as holding a red-hot iron. It was believed that God would protect the innocent and allow them to come through the ordeal unharmed. This sixth-century account by Gregory of Tours describes an ordeal by hot water.

Gregory of Tours, ‘‘An Ordeal of Hot Water’’ (c. 580) An Arian presbyter disputing with a deacon of our religion made venomous assertions against the Son of God and the Holy Ghost, as is the habit of that sect [the Arians]. But when the deacon had discoursed a long time concerning the reasonableness of our faith and the heretic, blinded by the fog of unbelief, continued to reject the truth, . . . the former said: ‘‘Why weary ourselves with long discussions? Let acts approve the truth; let a kettle be heated over the fire and someone’s ring be thrown into the boiling water. Let him who shall take it from the heated liquid be approved as a follower of the truth, and afterward let the other party be converted to the knowledge of the truth. And do you also understand, O heretic, that this our party will fulfill the conditions with the aid of the Holy Ghost; you shall confess that there is no discordance, no dissimilarity in the Holy Trinity.’’ The heretic consented to the proposition and they separated after appointing the next morning for the trial. But the fervor of faith in which the deacon had first made this suggestion began to cool through the instigation of the enemy. Rising with the dawn he bathed his arm in oil and smeared it with ointment. But nevertheless he made the round of the sacred places and called in prayer on the Lord . . . . About the third hour they met in the market place. The people came together to see the

have no more children, he who kills her shall be sentenced to 8,000 denars.’’2 Because marriage affected the extended family group, fathers or uncles could arrange marriages for the good of the family without considering their children’s wishes. Most important was the engagement ceremony in which a prospective son-in-law made a payment symbolizing the purchase of paternal authority over the bride. The essential feature of the marriage itself involved placing the married couple in bed to achieve their physical union. In first marriages, it was considered important that the wife be a virgin, which ensured that any children would be the husband’s. A virgin symbolized the ability of the bloodline to continue. Accordingly, adultery was viewed as pollution of the woman and her offspring, poisoning their future. Adulterous wives were severely punished (an

show. A fire was lighted, the kettle was placed upon it, and when it grew very hot the ring was thrown into the boiling water. The deacon invited the heretic to take it out of the water first. But he promptly refused, saying, ‘‘You who did propose this trial are the one to take it out.’’ The deacon all of a tremble bared his arm. And when the heretic presbyter saw it besmeared with ointment he cried out: ‘‘With magic arts you have thought to protect yourself, that you have made use of these salves, but what you have done will not avail.’’ While they were thus quarreling there came up a deacon from Ravenna named Iacinthus and inquired what the trouble was about. When he learned the truth he drew his arm out from under his robe at once and plunged his right hand into the kettle. Now the ring that had been thrown in was a little thing and very light so that it was thrown about by the water as chaff would be blown about by the wind; and searching for it a long time he found it after about an hour. Meanwhile the flame beneath the kettle blazed up mightily so that the greater heat might make it difficult for the ring to be followed by the hand; but the deacon extracted it at length and suffered no harm, protesting rather that at the bottom the kettle was cold while at the top it was just pleasantly warm. When the heretic beheld this he was greatly confused and audaciously thrust his hand into the kettle saying, ‘‘My faith will aid me.’’ As soon as his hand had been thrust in all the flesh was boiled off the bones clear up to the elbow. And so the dispute ended.

Q What was the purpose of the ordeal of hot water? What does it reveal about the nature of the society that used it? What conception of justice do you think was held by this society?

adulterous woman could be strangled or even burned alive); adulterous husbands were not. Divorce was relatively simple and was initiated primarily by the husband. Divorced wives simply returned to their families of origin. For most women in the new Germanic kingdoms, their legal status reflected the material conditions of their lives. Archaeological evidence suggests that most women had life expectancies of only thirty to forty years, and 10 to 15 percent of women died in their childbearing years, no doubt due to complications associated with childbirth. For most women, life consisted of domestic labor: providing food and clothing for the household, caring for the children, and assisting with numerous farming chores. Of all women’s labors, the most important was childbearing, because it was indispensable to perpetuating the family and its possessions. T HE G ERMANIC K INGDOMS

137

Development of the Christian Church

Q Focus Questions: How and why did the organization of the Christian church and its relations with the state change during the fourth and fifth centuries? What were the chief characteristics of Benedictine monasticism, and what role did monks play in both the conversion of Europe to Christianity and the intellectual life of the Germanic kingdoms?

By the end of the fourth century, Christianity had become the predominant religion of the Roman Empire. As the official Roman state disintegrated, the Christian church played an increasingly important role in the emergence and growth of the new European civilization.

138

c

One of the far-reaching developments in the history of the Christian church was the emergence of one bishop--that of Rome---as the recognized leader of the western Christian church. According to church tradition, Jesus had given the keys to the kingdom of heaven to Peter, who was considered the chief apostle and the first bishop of Rome. Subsequent bishops of Rome were considered Peter’s successors and came to be known as popes (from the Latin word papa, meaning ‘‘father’’) of the Catholic church. Although western Christians came to accept the bishop of Rome as head of the church in the fourth and fifth centuries, there was no unanimity on the extent of the powers the pope possessed as a result of this position. Nevertheless, the emergence in the sixth century of a strong pope, Gregory I, known as Gregory the Great, set the papacy and the Roman Catholic Church on an energetic path that enabled the church in the seventh and eighth centuries to play an increasingly prominent role in civilizing the Germans and aiding the emergence of a distinctly new European civilization. As pope, Gregory I (590--604) took charge of Rome and its surrounding area and made it into an administrative unit that eventually came to be known as the Papal States. Gregory also pursued a policy of extending papal authority over the Christian church in the west. He intervened in ecclesiastical conflicts throughout Italy and corresponded with the Frankish rulers, urging them to reform the church in Gaul. He successfully initiated the efforts of missionaries to convert England to Christianity and was especially active in converting the pagan peoples of Germanic Europe. His primary instrument was the monastic movement.

Bettmann/CORBIS

The Power of the Pope

Pope Gregory I. Pope Gregory the Great became one of the most important popes of the Early Middle Ages. As a result of his numerous writings, he is considered the last of the Latin fathers of the church. This twelfth-century manuscript illustration shows Gregory dictating a work to a monk. On Gregory’s shoulder is a dove, symbol of the Holy Spirit, which is providing divine inspiration for what he is dictating.

The Monks and Their Missions A monk (Latin monachus, meaning ‘‘one who lives alone’’) was a person who sought to live a life divorced from the world, cut off from ordinary human society, in order to pursue an ideal of godliness or total dedication to the will of God. Christian monasticism was initially based on the model of the solitary hermit who forsakes all civilized society to pursue spirituality. Saint Anthony (c. 250--350) was a prosperous peasant in Egypt who decided to follow Jesus’ injunction in the Gospel of Saint Mark: ‘‘Go your way, sell whatsoever you have, and give to the poor, and you shall have treasure in heaven: and come, take up the cross, and follow me.’’ Anthony gave away his 300 acres of land to the poor and went into the desert to pursue his ideal of holiness (see the box on p. 139). Others did likewise, often to extremes.

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

Saint Simeon the Stylite lived for three decades in a basket atop a pillar over 60 feet high. These spiritual gymnastics established a new ideal for Christianity. Whereas the early Christian model had been the martyr who died for the faith and achieved eternal life in the process, the new ideal was the monk who died to the world and achieved spiritual life through denial, asceticism, and mystical experience of God. These early monks, however, soon found themselves unable to live in solitude. Their feats of holiness attracted followers on a wide scale, and as the monastic ideal spread throughout the east, a new form of monasticism based on the practice of communal life soon became the dominant form. Monastic communities came to be seen as the ideal Christian society that could provide a moral example to the wider society around them.

monastic groups and was crucial to the growth of monasticism in the western Christian world. Benedict’s rule favored an ideal of moderation. In chapter 40 of the rule, on the amount a monk should drink, this sense of moderation becomes apparent:

Benedictine Monasticism Saint Benedict of Nursia (c. 480--c. 543), who founded a monastic house for which he wrote a set of rules in the 520s, established the fundamental form of monastic life in the western Christian church. The Benedictine rule came to be used by other

At the same time, moderation did not preclude a disciplined existence based on the ideals of poverty, chastity, and obedience. Benedict’s rule divided each day into a series of activities, with primary emphasis on prayer and manual

‘‘Every man has his proper gift from God, one after this manner, another after that.’’ And therefore it is with some misgiving that we determine the amount of food for someone else. Still, having regard for the weakness of some brothers, we believe that a hemina of wine [a quarter liter] per day will suffice for all. Let those, however, to whom God gives the gift of abstinence, know that they shall have their proper reward. But if either the circumstances of the place, the work, or the heat of summer necessitates more, let it lie in the discretion of the abbot to grant it. But let him take care in all things lest satiety or drunkenness supervene.3

D EVELOPMENT

OF THE

C HRISTIAN C HURCH

139

140

Art Resource, NY

Monks as Missionaries The British Isles, in particular, became an important center of Christian culture and missionary fervor. After their conversion, the Celts of Ireland and Anglo-Saxons of England created new centers of Christian learning and in turn themselves became enthusiastic missionaries. By the sixth century, Irish monasticism was a flourishing institution with its own unique characteristics. Unlike Benedictine monasticism, it was strongly ascetic. Monks performed strenuous fasts, prayed and meditated frequently under extreme privations, and confessed their sins on a regular basis to their superiors. In fact, Irish monasticism gave rise to the use of penitentials or manuals that provided a guide for examining one’s life to see what sins, or offenses against the will of God, one had committed (see the box on p. 141). A great love of learning also characterized Irish monasticism. The Irish eagerly

absorbed both Latin and Greek culture and fostered education as a major part of their monastic life. Their emphasis on asceticism led many Irish monks to go into voluntary exile. This ‘‘exile for the love of God’’ was not into isolation, however, but into missionary activity. Irish monks became fervid missionaries. Saint Columba (521--597) left Ireland in 565 as a ‘‘pilgrim for Christ’’ and founded an influential monastic community off the coast of Scotland on the island of Iona. From there Irish missionaries went to northern England to begin the process of converting the Angles and Saxons. Other Irish monks traveled to the European continent. New monasteries founded by the Irish became centers of learning wherever they were located.

c

labor. Physical work of some kind was required of all monks for several hours a day because idleness was ‘‘the enemy of the soul.’’ At the very heart of community practice was prayer, the proper ‘‘work of God.’’ While this included private meditation and reading, all monks gathered together seven times during the day for common prayer and chanting of psalms. A Benedictine life was a communal one; monks ate, worked, slept, and worshiped together. Each Benedictine monastery was strictly ruled by an abbot, or ‘‘father’’ of the monastery, who held complete authority over them; unquestioning obedience to the will of the abbot was expected of each monk. Each Benedictine monastery owned lands that enabled it to be a selfsustaining community, isolated from and independent of the world surrounding it. Within the monastery, however, monks were to fulfill their vow of poverty: ‘‘Let all things be common to all, as it is written, lest anyone should say that anything is his own or arrogate it to himself.’’4 By the eighth century, Benedictine monasticism had spread throughout the west. Although the original monks were men, women soon followed suit in withdrawing from the world to dedicate themselves to God. The first monastic rule for western women was produced by Caesarius of Arles for his sister in the fifth century. It strongly emphasized a rigid cloistering of these nuns to preserve them from dangers. Monasticism played an indispensable role in early medieval civilization. Monks became the new heroes of Christian civilization. Their dedication to God became the highest ideal of Christian life. Monks copied Latin works and passed on the legacy of the ancient world to Western civilization in its European stage. Moreover, the monks played an increasingly significant role in spreading Christianity to all of Europe.

The Book of Kells. Art historians use the term Hiberno-Saxon (Hibernia was the ancient name for Ireland) or Insular to refer to works produced primarily in the monasteries of the British Isles, especially Ireland. The best example of Hiberno-Saxon art is The Book of Kells, a richly decorated illuminated manuscript of the Christian gospels. Though owned by the monastery of Kells, the work was produced by the monks of Iona, who combined Celtic and Anglo-Saxon abstract designs with elaborate portrayals of human figures and animals. A twelfth-century priest who viewed it observed: ‘‘Look . . . keenly at it and you . . . will make out intricacies, so delicate and subtle, so exact and compact, so full of knots and links, with colors so fresh and vivid, that you might say that all this was the work of an angel, and not of a man.’’ Shown here is a page centered on the figure of Jesus.

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

IRISH MONASTICISM Irish monasticism became well known for its ascetic practices. Much emphasis was placed on careful examination of conscience to determine if one had committed a sin against God. To facilitate this examination, penitentials were developed that listed possible sins with appropriate penances. Penance usually meant fasting a number of days each week, consuming nothing but bread and water. Although these penitentials were eventually used throughout Christendom, they were especially important in Irish Christianity. This excerpt from the Penitential of Cummean, an Irish abbot, was written about 650 and demonstrates a distinctive feature of the penitentials, an acute preoccupation with sexual sins.

The Penitential of Cummean A bishop who commits fornication shall be degraded and shall do penance for twelve years. A presbyter or a deacon who commits natural fornication, having previously taken the vow of a monk, shall do penance for seven years. He shall ask pardon every hour; he shall perform a special fast during every week except in the days between Easter and Pentecost. He who defiles his mother shall do penance for three years, with perpetual pilgrimage. So shall those who commit sodomy do penance every seven years. He who merely desires in his mind to commit fornication, but is not able, shall do penance for one year, especially in the three forty-day periods.

At the same time the Irish monks were busy bringing their version of Christianity to the Anglo-Saxons of Britain, Pope Gregory the Great had set into motion an effort to convert England to Roman Christianity. His most important agent was Augustine, a monk from Rome, who arrived in England in 597. England at that time had a number of Germanic kingdoms. Augustine went first to Kent, where he converted King Ethelbert; most of the king’s subjects then followed suit. Pope Gregory’s conversion techniques emphasized persuasion rather than force, and as seen in this excerpt from one of his letters, he was willing to assimilate old pagan practices in order to coax the pagans into the new faith: We wish you [Abbot Mellitus] to inform him [Augustine] that we have been giving careful thought to the affairs of the English, and have come to the conclusion that the temples of the idols among that people should on no account be destroyed. The idols are to be destroyed, but the temples themselves are to be aspersed with holy water, altars set up in them, and relics deposited there. For if these temples are well-built, they must be purified from the worship of demons and dedicated to the service of the true God.5

AND THE

PENITENTIAL

He who is willingly polluted during sleep shall arise and sing nine psalms in order, kneeling. On the following day, he shall live on bread and water. A cleric who commits fornication once shall do penance for one year on bread and water; if he begets a son he shall do penance for seven years as an exile; so also a virgin. He who loves any woman, but is unaware of any evil beyond a few conversations, shall do penance for forty days. He who is in a state of matrimony ought to be continent during the three forty-day periods and on Saturday and on Sunday, night and day, and in the two appointed week days [Wednesday and Friday], and after conception, and during the entire menstrual period. After a birth he shall abstain, if it is a son, for thirty-three [days]; if a daughter, for sixty-six [days]. Boys talking alone and transgressing the regulations of the elders [in the monastery], shall be corrected by three special fasts. Children who imitate acts of fornication, twenty days; if frequently, forty. But boys of twenty years who practice masturbation together and confess [shall do penance] twenty or forty days before they take communion.

Q What does the Penitential of Cummean reveal about the nature of Irish monasticism? What do you think was the theory of human sexuality held by early Irish Christianity?

Freed of their pagan past, temples had become churches, as one Christian commentator noted with joy: ‘‘The dwelling place of demons has become a house of God. The saving light has come to shine, where shadows covered all. Where sacrifices once took place and idols stood, angelic choirs now dance. Where God was angered once, now God is made content.’’6 Likewise, old pagan feasts were given new names and incorporated into the Christian calendar. The Christian feast of Christmas, for example, was held on December 25, the day of the pagan celebration of the winter solstice. As Roman Christianity spread northward in Britain, it encountered Irish Christianity moving southward. Roman Christianity prevailed, although the English church, despite its newfound unity and loyalty to Rome, retained some Irish features. Most important was the concentration on monastic culture with special emphasis on learning and missionary work. By 700, the English church had become the best trained and most learned in western Europe. Following the Irish example, English monks spread to the European continent to carry on the work of conversion (see Map 7.3). Most important was Boniface D EVELOPMENT

OF THE

C HRISTIAN C HURCH

141

IRISH

Christian areas, c. 300

North Whitby

IRELAND

Areas Christianized, 300–600

Sea

BRITAIN

ANGLOSAXONS (597– 670) Canterbury

Areas Christianized, 600–800 Centers of Christian diffusion

FRISIANS R (690– 739) SAXONS Cologne (797– 805) Aachen hin

e R.

Atlantic Ocean

Dates indicate period of conversion to Christianity

Paris

GAUL

Dan ube

Alps

R.

sp ia nS

R

Black Rome

Monte Cassino

iter

Nicaea ASIA MINOR Ephesus Taurus Mts. Antioch E Athens up h ra t e s R. Rhodes Cyprus

is

Syracuse

Med

rane

an

Crete

Cyrene Co 0

600 300

900 Kilometers 600 Miles

R.

Damascus

Sea

Jerusalem

Alexandria

nve r

ted

to I

Memphis

slam, 7t

h century

EGYPT il

R.

e

NORTH AFRICA

N

300

us Mts. ARMENIA

r Tig

Sicily

Caucas

Constantinople

Naples Corinth

Carthage

Sea

THRACE

ea

o br

Sardinia

Caesarea

R.

. Rhône R Milan Po R .

Marseilles E Pyre ne SPAIN es . Toledo Corsica Córdoba

ga

Ca

Lyons

Vo l

GERMANY

Tours

Red Sea

MAP 7.3 The Spread of Christianity, 400–800. The Christian church had penetrated much of the Roman Empire by the end of the fifth century. It emerged as a major base of power after the fall of the empire, and it pushed its influence into new areas through the activities of missionaries. Q What aspects of geography help explain the relatively late conversions of the AngloView an Saxons in Britain and the Frisians and Saxons east of the Rhine River? animated version of this map or related maps at www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/ westcivbrief 7e

(c. 680--755), who undertook the conversion of pagan Germans in Frisia, Bavaria, and Saxony. By 740, Saint Boniface, the ‘‘Apostle of the Germans,’’ had become the most famous churchman in Europe. Fourteen years later, he was killed while trying to convert the pagan Frisians. Boniface was a brilliant example of the numerous Irish and English monks whose tireless efforts made Europe the bastion of the Roman Catholic faith. Women and Monasticism Women played an important role in the monastic missionary movement and the conversion of the Germanic kingdoms. Double monasteries, where both monks and nuns lived in separate houses but attended church services together, were found in both the English and Frankish kingdoms. The monks and nuns followed a common rule under a common head. Frequently, this leader was an abbess rather than an abbot. Many of these abbesses belonged to royal houses, especially in Anglo-Saxon England. In the kingdom of Northumbria, for example, Saint Hilda founded the monastery of Whitby 142

in 657. As abbess, she was responsible for giving learning an important role in the life of the monastery; five future bishops were educated under her tutelage. For female intellectuals, monasteries offered opportunities for learning not found elsewhere in the society of their day. Nuns of the seventh and eighth centuries also played an important role in the spread of Christianity. The great English missionary Boniface relied on nuns in England for books and money. He also asked the abbess of Wimborne to send groups of nuns to establish convents in newly converted German lands. A nun named Leoba established the first convent in Germany at Bischofsheim.

The Path of Celibacy The monastic movement enabled some women to pursue a new path to holiness. Cloisters for both men and women offered the ideal place to practice the new Christian ideal of celibacy. This newfound emphasis on abstaining from sexual relations, especially evident in the emphasis on virginity, created a new image of the human body in late antiquity. To many Greeks and Roman, the human body had been a source of beauty, joy, and pleasure, noticeable in numerous works of art. To many Christians, the body was regarded as a hindrance to a spiritual connection with God. The refusal to have sex was a victory over the desires of the flesh and thus an avenue to holiness. In the fourth and fifth centuries, a cult of virginity also moved beyond the walls of monasteries and convents. Throughout the Mediterranean world, groups of women got together to study the importance and benefits of celibacy. In Rome, a woman named Marcella supported a group of aristocratic women in their studies of celibacy.

Christianity and Intellectual Life Many early Christians expressed considerable hostility toward the pagan culture of the Classical world. Tertullian (c. 160--c. 225), a Christian writer from Carthage, had

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

proclaimed, ‘‘What has Jerusalem to do with Athens, the Church with the Academy, the Christian with the heretic? . . . After Jesus Christ we have no need of speculation, after the Gospel no need of research.’’7 To many early Christians, the Bible (see Chapter 6) contained all the knowledge anyone needed. Others, however, thought it was not possible to separate Christian thought from Classical traditions and education and encouraged Christianity to absorb the Classical heritage. As it spread in the eastern Roman world, Christianity adopted Greek as its language; the New Testament was written in Greek. Christians also turned to Greek thought for help in expressing complicated theological concepts. In many ways, then, Christianity served to preserve Greco-Roman culture. The Work of Augustine The work of Augustine (354-430) provides one of the best examples of how Christianity used pagan culture in the service of Christianity. Augustine came to be revered as one of the Latin fathers of the Catholic church, intellectuals who wrote in Latin and profoundly influenced the development of Christian thought in the west. Born in North Africa, Augustine was reared by his mother, an ardent Christian. He eventually became a professor of rhetoric at Milan in 384. After experiencing a profound and moving religious experience, he gave up his teaching position and went back to North Africa, where he became bishop of Hippo from 396 until his death in 430. Augustine’s most famous work, The City of God, was a profound expression of a Christian philosophy of government and history. In it, he theorized on the ideal relations between two kinds of societies existing throughout time---the City of God and the City of the World. Those who loved God would be loyal to the City of God, whose ultimate location was the kingdom of heaven. Earthly society would always be uncertain because of human beings’ inclination to sin. And yet the City of the World was still necessary, for it was the duty of rulers to curb the depraved instincts of sinful humans and maintain the peace necessary for Christians to live in the world. Hence Augustine posited that secular government and authority were necessary for the pursuit of the true Christian life on earth; in doing so, he provided a justification for secular political authority that would play an important role in medieval thought. Jerome and the Bible Another important intellectual of the early church was Jerome (345--420), who pursued literary studies in Rome and became a master of Latin prose. Jerome had mixed feelings about his love for Classical studies, however, and like Augustine, he experienced a spiritual conversion after which he tried to dedicate himself more fully to Jesus. Ultimately, Jerome found a compromise by purifying the literature of the

pagan world and then using it to further the Christian faith. Jerome was a great scholar, and his extensive knowledge of both Hebrew and Greek enabled him to translate the Old and New Testaments into Latin. In the process, he created the so-called Latin Vulgate, or common text, of the Scriptures that became the standard edition for the Catholic church in the Middle Ages. Cassiodorus Although the Christian church came to accept Classical culture, it was not easy to do so in the world of the new German kingdoms. Nevertheless, some Christian scholars managed to keep learning alive. Most prominent was Cassiodorus (c. 490--c. 585), who came from an aristocratic Roman family and served as an official of the Ostrogothic king Theodoric. The conflicts that erupted after the death of Theodoric led Cassiodorus to withdraw from public life and retire to his landed estates in southern Italy, where he wrote his final work, Divine and Human Readings. This was a compendium of the literature of both Christian and pagan antiquity. Cassiodorus accepted the advice of earlier Christian intellectuals to make use of Classical works while treasuring the Scriptures above all else. Cassiodorus continued the tradition of late antiquity of classifying knowledge according to certain subjects. In assembling his compendium of authors, he followed the works of late ancient authors in placing all secular knowledge into the categories of the seven liberal arts, which were divided into two major groups: the trivium, consisting of grammar, rhetoric, and dialectic or logic, and the quadrivium, consisting of the mathematical subjects of arithmetic, geometry, astronomy, and music. The seven liberal arts would become the cornerstone of Western education until the seventeenth century.

The Byzantine Empire

Q Focus Question: How did the Byzantine Empire that

had emerged by the eighth century differ from the empire of Justinian and from the Germanic kingdoms in the west?

As noted earlier, in the fourth century, the western and eastern parts of the Roman Empire began to go their separate ways. As the Germans moved into the western part of the empire and established various kingdoms over the course of the next hundred years, the Roman Empire in the east, centered on Constantinople, solidified and prospered.

The Reign of Justinian (527--565) When he became emperor of the eastern Roman Empire, Justinian was determined to reestablish the empire in the entire Mediterranean world. His army, commanded by T HE B YZANTINE E MPIRE

143

Scala/Art Resource, NY

c

With a population estimated in the hundreds of thousands, Constantinople was the largest city in Europe during the Middle Ages. It viewed itself as the center of an empire and a special Christian city. Until the twelfth century, Constantinople was Europe’s greatest commercial center, the chief marketplace where western and eastern products were exchanged. Highly desired in Europe were the products of the East: silk from China, spices from Southeast Asia and India, jewelry and ivory from India (the latter used by artisans for church Justinian and His Court. Ravenna remained the center of the Byzantine presence in Italy for two hundred items), wheat and furs from years. The Church of San Vitale at Ravenna contains some of the finest examples of sixth-century Byzantine mosaics (artworks created by cementing small colored pieces of glass or rock to a wall or floor). This mosaic southern Russia, and flax and depicts the Byzantine emperor Justinian and his court dressed in their elaborate robes. Justinian is seen with honey from the Balkans. soldiers, his staff, and members of the clergy. Many of these eastern goods were then shipped to the Mediterranean area and northern Europe. Moreover, Belisarius, probably the best general of the late Roman peimported raw materials were used in Constantinople for riod, sailed to North Africa and quickly destroyed the local industries. During Justinian’s reign, two Christian Vandals in two major battles. From North Africa, Belisarius monks smuggled silkworms from China to begin a Byzled his forces onto the Italian peninsula and defeated the antine silk industry. The state controlled the production Ostrogoths. By 552, Justinian appeared to have achieved his of silk cloth, and the workshops themselves were housed goal. His reconstituted empire included Italy, part of Spain, in Constantinople’s royal palace complex. European deNorth Africa, Asia Minor, Palestine, and Syria (see Map 7.4). mand for silk cloth made it the city’s most lucrative But his success proved fleeting. Only three years after Jusproduct. tinian’s death, the Lombards conquered much of Italy. AlMuch of Constantinople’s appearance in the Middle though the eastern empire maintained the fiction of Italy as Ages was due to Justinian’s program of rebuilding in the a province, its forces were limited to southern and central sixth century. The city was dominated by an immense Italy, Sicily, and some coastal areas. palace complex, hundreds of churches, and a huge arena Justinian’s most important contribution was his known as the Hippodrome. No residential district was codification of Roman law. The eastern empire had inparticularly fashionable; palaces, tenements, and slums herited a vast quantity of legal materials connected to the ranged alongside one another. Justinian added many new development of Roman law, which Justinian wished to buildings. His public works projects included roads, simplify. The result was the Corpus Iuris Civilis (Body of bridges, walls, public baths, law courts, and colossal unCivil Law), a codification of Roman law that remained in derground reservoirs to hold the city’s water supply. He force in the eastern Roman Empire until its end in 1453. also built hospitals, schools, monasteries, and churches. And because it was written in Latin (it was in fact the last Churches were his special passion, and in Constantinople product of eastern Roman culture to be written in Latin, alone he built or rebuilt thirty-four of them. His greatest which was soon replaced by Greek), it was also eventually achievement was the famous Hagia Sophia, the Church of used in the west and ultimately became the basis of the the Holy Wisdom, completed in 537. The center of Hagia legal system of all of continental Europe. Sophia consisted of four large piers crowned by an enormous dome, which seemed to be floating in space. In Life in Constantinople: The Emperor’s Building Propart this impression was created by ringing the base of the gram After riots destroyed much of Constantinople in dome with forty-two windows, which allowed an in532, Emperor Justinian rebuilt the city and gave it the credible play of light within the cathedral. Light served to appearance it would keep for almost a thousand years. 144

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

R hi n e R.

A t lant ic O c e an

SUEVES

FRANKS LOMBARDS BARD ALEM EM MAN NNI N lps BURGUNDIAN B NS A OS STROGOTHS TR TR ROGOTHS Milan Pyr ene es

VISIGOTHS

Raav Ra ven ennaa

AVARS SLAVS Da nube

BYZA

Co orsiiccca or Rome Sardi din d i iaa

Cauc as

BULGARS S R.

NTI

Black NE

AR RMENIA

Constantinop plee

Naples N

EM

PI

Man Ma M Manz a zikert

RE

PERSIAN EMPIRE M

Ath A henss Antioch

SYRIA

Cypru Cyp rus

VANDAL ALS AL

Med

iterr

anean

E up

hr at e s

R. is Tigr

Taurus Mts.

S ily Sic Carthage

us Mts.

Sea

R.

Damasccus

Cretee Crete

Sea J usa Jer usallem lem

ARABIA

Alexan Ale xand andri dria ria

Empire before Justinian

200

400 200

600 Kilometers 400 Miles

il

R.

e

FRANKS Groups of people

N

Territory gained by Justinian

Red Sea

MAP 7.4 The Byzantine Empire in the Time of Justinian. The Byzantine emperor Justinian briefly restored much of the Mediterranean portion of the old Roman Empire. His general Belisarius quickly conquered the Vandals in North Africa but wrested Italy from the Ostrogoths only after a long and devastating struggle. Q Look back at Map 6.1. What former Roman territories lay outside Justinian’s control? View an animated version of this map or related maps at www.cengage.com/history/ spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

remind the worshipers of God. As invisible light illuminates darkness, so too was it believed that invisible spirit illuminates the world. The Hippodrome was a huge amphitheater, constructed of brick covered by marble, holding between forty and sixty thousand spectators. Although gladiator fights were held there, the main events were the chariot races; twenty-four would usually be presented in one day. The citizens of Constantinople were passionate fans of chariot racing. Successful charioteers were acclaimed as heroes and honored with public statues.

From Eastern Roman to Byzantine Empire Justinian’s accomplishments had been spectacular, but when he died, he left the eastern Roman Empire with

serious problems: too much territory to protect far from Constantinople, an empty treasury, a decline in population after a plague, and renewed threats to its frontiers. In the first half of the seventh century, the empire faced attacks from the Persians to the east and the Slavs to the north. The most serious challenge to the eastern Roman Empire came from the rise of Islam, which unified the Arab tribes and created a powerful new force that swept through the east (see the next section, ‘‘The Rise of Islam’’). The defeat of an eastern Roman army at Yarmuk in 636 meant the loss of the provinces of Syria and Palestine. The Arabs also moved into the old Persian Empire and conquered it. Arabs and eastern Roman forces now faced each other along a frontier in southern Asia Minor. T HE B YZANTINE E MPIRE

145

CHRONOLOGY The Byzantine Empire

c

Robert Harding/Getty Images

Reign of Justinian

527--565

Justinian codifies Roman law

529--533

Reconquest of Italy by the Byzantines

535--552

Completion of Hagia Sophia

537

Arab defeat of Byzantines at Yarmuk

636

Defeat by the Bulgars; losses in the Balkans

679

R.

with its own unique character that would last until 1453 (Constantinople was built on the site of an older city named Byzantium---hence the term Byzantine). The Byzantine Empire was both a Greek and a Christian state. Increasingly, Latin fell into disuse as Greek became both the common and the official language of the empire. The Byzantine Empire was also built on a faith in Jesus that was shared by almost all of its citizens. An enormous amount of artistic talent was poured into the construction of churches, church ceremonies, and church decoration. Spiritual principles deeply permeated Byzantine art. The emperor occupied a crucial position in the Byzantine state. Portrayed as chosen by God, the emperor was crowned in sacred ceremonies, and his subjects were expected to prostrate themselves in his presence. His power was considered absolute and was limited in pracInterior of Hagia Sophia. This view of the interior of the Church of the Holy Wisdom, constructed under Justinian by Anthemius of Tralles and tice only by deposition or assassination. Because the Isidore of Milan, gives an idea of how the windows around the base of the emperor appointed the head of the church (known as the dome produced a special play of light within the cathedral. The pulpits and patriarch), he also exercised control over both church and plaques bearing inscriptions from the Qur’an were introduced when the state. The Byzantines believed that God had commanded Turks converted this church to a mosque in the fifteenth century. their state to preserve the true Christian faith. Emperor, clergy, and state officials were all bound together in serProblems arose along the northern frontier as well, vice to this ideal. It can be said that spiritual values truly especially in the Balkans, where an Asiatic people known held the Byzantine state together. as the Bulgars had arrived earlier in the sixth century. In By 750, it was apparent that two of Rome’s heirs, the 679, the Bulgars defeated the eastern Roman forces and Germanic kingdoms and the Byzantine Empire, were took possession of the lower moving in different directions. Danube valley, establishing a Nevertheless, Byzantine influ0 300 600 Kilometers V ice Ven Danu be strong Bulgarian kingdom. ence on the Western world was 0 300 Miles Ad R Bal ri a kan Mt.s. C By the beginning of the eighth significant. The images of a a Bl a ck S ea ucas tic us BYZA Se NTIN C M a century, the eastern Roman EmRoman imperial state that t s Consta sta tant tanti ta nttinop nt nti oppple le le . BU ULGARIA UL IA A Rom R Ro o e E Con MACED M EDO DONIA DO D ON NIA N NI IIA A pire was greatly diminished in size. continued to haunt the west EM PERSIA RSI PI R Consisting only of the eastern lived on in Byzantium. The T Atth Ath A the thens heens n igr Ephesus E is Sic i ily ic Eu Balkans and Asia Minor, it was no legal system of the west owed ph rat Creete es longer a major eastern Mediterramuch to Justinian’s codificaSYRIA M e d i t e r r a n e a n S ea Cyp Cy yprus yp rus nean state. The external challenges tion of Roman law. In addihad important internal re- The Byzantine Empire, c. 750 tion, the Byzantine Empire percussions as well. By the eighth served as a buffer state, procentury, the eastern Roman Empire had been transformed tecting the west for a long time from incursions from the into what historians call the Byzantine Empire, a civilization east. Although the Byzantine Empire would continue to R.

146

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

influence the west until its demise in 1453, it went its own way. One of its bitterest enemies was the new power of Islam.

The Rise of Islam

Q Focus Question: What was the basic message of Islam, and why was it able to expand so successfully?

Like the Hebrews and the Assyrians, the Arabs were a Semitic-speaking people of the Near East with a long history. In Roman times, the Arabian peninsula was dominated by Bedouin nomads who moved constantly to find water and food for themselves and their animals. Although some Arabs prospered from trading activities, especially in the north, most Arabs were poor Bedouins, whose tribes were known for their independence, their warlike qualities, and their dislike of urban-dwelling Arabs. Although these early Arabs were polytheistic, there was a supreme God named Allah (Arabic for ‘‘God’’) who ruled over the other gods. Allah was symbolized by a sacred stone, and each tribe had its own stone. All tribes, however, worshiped a massive black meteorite, the Black Stone, which had been placed in a central shrine called the Ka’ba in the city of Mecca. In the fifth and sixth centuries A.D., the Arabian peninsula took on new importance. As a result of political disorder in Mesopotamia and Egypt, the usual trade routes in the region began to change. A new trade route--from the Mediterranean through Mecca to Yemen and then by ship across the Arabian Sea and the Indian Ocean---became more popular, and communities in that part of the Arabian peninsula, including Mecca, began to prosper from this caravan trade. As a result, tensions arose between the Bedouins in the desert and the increasingly wealthy merchant classes in the towns. Into this intense world came Muhammad.

Muhammad Born in Mecca to a merchant family, Muhammad (c. 570--632) was orphaned at the age of five. He grew up to become a caravan manager and eventually married a rich widow who was also his employer. In his middle years, he began to experience visions that he believed were inspired by Allah. Muhammad believed that although Allah had already revealed himself in part through Moses and Jesus---and thus through the Hebrew and Christian traditions---the final revelations were now being given to him. Out of these revelations, which were eventually written down, came the Qur’an (or Koran), which

contained the guidelines by which followers of Allah were to live. Muhammad’s teachings formed the basis for the religion known as Islam, which means ‘‘submission to the will of Allah.’’ Allah was the all-powerful being who had created the universe and everything in it. Humans must subject themselves to Allah if they wished to achieve everlasting life. Those who became his followers were called Muslims, meaning ‘‘practitioners of Islam.’’ After receiving the revelations, Muhammad set out to convince the people of Mecca of the truth of his revelations. At first, many thought he was insane, and others feared that his attacks on the corrupt society around him would upset the established social and political order. Discouraged by the failure of the Meccans to accept his message, in 622 Muhammad and some of his closest supporters left the city and moved north to the rival city of Yathrib, later renamed Medina (‘‘city of the Prophet’’). The year of the journey to Medina, known in history as the Hegira (‘‘departure’’), became year 1 in the official calendar of Islam. Muhammad, who had been invited to the town by a number of prominent residents, soon began to win support from people in Medina as well as from members of the Bedouin tribes in the surrounding countryside. From these groups, he formed the first Muslim community (the umma). Muslims saw no separation between political and religious authority; submission to the will of Allah meant submission to his Prophet, Muhammad. Muhammad soon became both a religious and political leader. His political and military skills enabled him to put together a reliable military force, with which he returned to Mecca in 630, conquering the city and converting the townspeople to the new faith. From Mecca, Muhammad’s ideas spread quickly across the Arabian peninsula and within a relatively short time had resulted in both the religious and political unification of Arab society.

The Teachings of Islam At the heart of Islam was the Qur’an, with the basic message that there is no God but Allah and Muhammad is his Prophet. Essentially, the Qur’an contains Muhammad’s revelations of a heavenly book written down by secretaries. Consisting of 114 suras (chapters), the Qur’an is the sacred book of Islam, which recorded the beliefs of the Muslims and served as their code of ethics and law. Islam was a direct and simple faith, emphasizing the need to obey the will of Allah. This meant following a basic ethical code consisting of the Five Pillars of Islam: belief in Allah and Muhammad as his Prophet; standard prayer five times a day and public prayer on Friday at midday to worship Allah; observance of the holy month of Ramadan T HE R ISE

OF

I SLAM

147

THE QUR’AN: THE PILGRIMAGE The Qur’an is the sacred book of the Muslims, comparable to the Bible in Christianity. This selection from Sura 22, titled ‘‘Pilgrimage,’’ discusses the importance of making a pilgrimage to Mecca, one of the Five Pillars of Islam. The pilgrim’s final destination was the Ka’ba at Mecca, housing the Black Stone.

Qur’an, Sura 22: ‘‘Pilgrimage’’

Q What is the key purpose of undertaking a pilgrimage to Mecca? What is the historical importance of the sacred stone?

c

Bibliothe`que Nationale, Paris//The Bridgeman Art Library

Exhort all men to make the pilgrimage. They will come to you on foot and on the backs of swift camels from every distant quarter; they will come to avail themselves of many a benefit, and to pronounce on the appointed days the name of God over the cattle which He has given them for food. Eat of their flesh, and feed the poor and the unfortunate. Then let the pilgrims tidy themselves, make their vows, and circle the Ancient House. Such is God’s commandment. He that reveres the sacred rites of God shall fare better in the sight of his Lord. The flesh of cattle is lawful for you, except for that which has been specified before. Guard yourselves against the filth of idols; and avoid the utterance of falsehoods. Dedicate yourselves to God, and serve none besides Him. The man who serves other deities besides God is like him who falls from heaven and is snatched by the birds or carried away by the wind to some far-off region. Even such is he.

He that reveres the offerings made to God shows the piety of his heart. Your cattle are useful to you in many ways until the time of their slaughter. Then they are offered for sacrifice at the Ancient House. For every community We have ordained a ritual, that they may pronounce the name of God over the cattle which He has given them for food. Your God is one God; to Him surrender yourselves. Give good news to the humble, whose hearts are filled with awe at the mention of God; who endure adversity with fortitude, attend to their prayers, and give in alms from what We gave them. We have made the camels a part of God’s rites. They are of much use to you. Pronounce over them the name of God as you draw them up in line and slaughter them; and when they have fallen to the ground eat of their flesh and feed the uncomplaining beggar and the demanding supplicant. Thus have We subjected them to your service, so that you may give thanks. Their flesh and blood does not reach God; it is your piety that reaches Him. Thus has He subjected them to your service, so that you may give glory to God for guiding you. Give good news to the righteous. God will ward off evil from true believers. God does not love the treacherous and the thankless.

Muslims Celebrating the End of Ramadan. Ramadan is the holy month of Islam during which all Muslims must fast from dawn to sunset. Observance of Ramadan is one of the Five Pillars of Islam. Muhammad instituted the fast during his stay at Medina. It was designed to replace the single Jewish Day of Atonement. This Persian miniature depicts Muslims on horseback celebrating the end of Ramadan. 148

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

(the ninth month on the Muslim calendar) with fasting from dawn to sunset; making a pilgrimage (known as the hajj), if possible, to Mecca at least once in one’s lifetime (see the box above); and giving alms to the poor and unfortunate. The faithful who observed the law were guaranteed a place in an eternal paradise. Islam was not just a set of religious beliefs but a way of life as well. After the death of Muhammad, Muslim scholars drew up a law code, called the Shari’a, to provide believers with a set of prescriptions to regulate their daily lives. Much of the Shari’a was drawn from existing legal regulations or from the Hadith, a collection of the sayings of Muhammad that was used to supplement the revelations contained in the Qur’an. Believers were subject to strict guidelines for their behavior. In addition to the Five Pillars, Muslims were forbidden

to gamble, to eat pork, to drink alcoholic beverages, and to engage in dishonest behavior. Sexual practices were also strictly regulated. Marriages were to be arranged by parents, and contact between unmarried men and women was discouraged. In accordance with Bedouin custom, males were permitted to have more than one wife, but Muhammad attempted to limit the practice by restricting the number of wives to four.

The Spread of Islam The death of Muhammad in 632 presented his followers with a dilemma. Muhammad had never named a successor, and although he had several daughters, he left no sons. In a male-oriented society, who would lead the community of the faithful? Shortly after Muhammad’s death, some of his closest followers selected Abu Bakr, a

wealthy merchant who was Muhammad’s father-in-law, as caliph, or temporal leader, of the Islamic community. Muhammad and the early caliphs who succeeded him took up the Arabic tribal custom of the razzia or raid in the struggle against their enemies. Some people refer to this activity as jihad, which they misleadingly interpret as ‘‘holy war.’’ Jihad actually means ‘‘striving in the way of the Lord’’ to achieve personal betterment, which can include a fair, defensive fight to preserve one’s life and one’s faith. Arab conquests were not carried out to convert others, since conversion to Islam was purely voluntary. Conquered people who did not convert were required only to submit to Muslim rule and pay taxes. The Byzantines and the Persians were the first to feel the strength of the newly united Arabs. At Yarmuk in 636, the Muslims defeated the Byzantine army, and by 640, they had taken possession of the province of Syria (see Map 7.5).

MAP 7.5 The Spread of Islam. Muhammad, the prophet of Islam, engaged in warfare against neighboring tribes. Militaristic expansion continued with great zeal under the Prophet’s successors. Islamic rule spread rapidly in the decades after Muhammad’s death, stopped finally by the Byzantine Empire and the Franks. Q Why was the continuance of the Byzantine Empire a key factor in stopping the spread of View an animated version of this map or related maps at Islam into Europe? www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

T HE R ISE

OF

I SLAM

149

To the east, the Arabs went on to conquer the Persian Empire by 650. In the meantime, by 642, Egypt and other areas of northern Africa had been added to the new Muslim empire. Led by a series of brilliant generals, the Arabs had put together a large and highly motivated army whose valor was enhanced by the belief that Muslim warriors were guaranteed a place in paradise if they died in battle. Early caliphs, ruling from Medina, organized their newly conquered territories into taxpaying provinces. By the mid-seventh century, problems arose again over the succession to the Prophet until Ali, Muhammad’s son-in-law, was assassinated and the general Muawiya, the governor of Syria and one of Ali’s chief rivals, became caliph in 661. He was known for one outstanding virtue: he used force only when necessary. As he said, ‘‘I never use my sword when my whip will do, nor my whip when my tongue will do.’’8 Muawiya moved quickly to make the caliphate hereditary in his own family, thus establishing the Umayyad dynasty. As one of its first actions, the Umayyad dynasty moved the capital of the Muslim empire from Medina to Damascus in Syria. This internal dissension over the caliphate created a split in Islam between the Shi’ites, who accepted only the descendants of Ali, Muhammad’s sonin-law, as the true rulers, and the Sunnites, who claimed that the descendants of the Umayyads were the true caliphs. This seventh-century split in Islam has lasted to the present day. Internal dissension, however, did not stop the expansion of Islam. After sweeping across North Africa, the Muslims crossed the Strait of Gibraltar and moved into Spain around 710. The Visigothic kingdom collapsed, and by 725, most of Spain had become a Muslim state with its center at Co´rdoba. In 732, a Muslim army, making a foray into southern France, was defeated at the Battle of Tours near Poitiers. Muslim expansion in Europe came to a halt.

CHRONOLOGY The Rise of Islam Birth of Muhammad

c. 570

Muhammad’s flight from Mecca (Hegira)

622

Death of Muhammad

632

Defeat of Byzantines at Yarmuk

636

Seizure of Byzantine provinces of Syria and Egypt

640--642

Defeat of Persians

650

Invasion of Spain

c. 710

Meanwhile, in 717, another Muslim force had launched a naval attack on Constantinople with the hope of destroying the Byzantine Empire. In the spring of 718, the Byzantines destroyed the Muslim fleet and saved the Byzantine Empire and indirectly Christian Europe, because the fall of Constantinople would no doubt have opened the door to Muslim invasion of eastern Europe. The Byzantine Empire and Islam now established an uneasy frontier in southern Asia Minor. The Arab advance had finally come to an end, but not before the southern and eastern Mediterranean parts of the old Roman Empire had been conquered. Islam had become heir to much of the old Roman Empire. The Umayyad dynasty at Damascus now ruled an enormous empire. While expansion had conveyed untold wealth and new ethnic groups into the fold of Islam, it also brought contact with Byzantine and Persian civilization. As a result, the new Arab empire would be influenced by Greek culture as well as the older civilizations of the ancient Near East.

CONCLUSION The period from the mid-third century to the mid-eighth century was both chaotic and creative. During late antiquity, the Roman world of the Mediterranean was gradually transformed. Three new entities fell heir to Roman civilization: the Germanic kingdoms of western Europe, the Byzantine Empire, and Islam. In the west, Roman elements combined with German and Celtic influences; in the east, Greek and eastern elements of late antiquity were of more consequence. Although the Germanic kingdoms of the west and the Byzantine civilization of the east came to share a common bond in Christianity, the faith proved incapable of keeping them in harmony

150

politically, and the two civilizations continued to move apart. But Christianity remained a dominant influence in both civilizations and in the west was especially important as a civilizing agent that brought pagan peoples into the new European civilization that was slowly being born. The rise of Islam, Rome’s third heir, resulted in the loss of the southern and eastern Mediterranean portions of the old Roman Empire to a religious power that was neither Roman nor Christian. The new Islamic empire forced Europe back on itself, and slowly there emerged a new culture that became the heart of what we know as Western civilization.

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

TIMELINE 250

350

Roman Empire Diocletian and Constantine

450

Division of the empire

550

650

750

Odoacer deposes Romulus Augustulus

Europe Germanic kingdoms Benedictine order established Lombards begin conquest of Italy

Byzantine Empire Reign of Justinian

Arab defeat of Byzantines at Yarmuk

Completion of Hagia Sophia

Byzantine losses in the Balkans

Arab Empire Life of Muhammad Muhammad's flight to Medina

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING General Works on Late Antiquity For good introductions to late antiquity, see P. Brown, The World of Late Antiquity, A.D. 150--750 (New York, 1989); J. Moorhead, The Roman Empire Divided, 400--700 (London, 2001); A. Cameron, The Mediterranean World in Late Antiquity, A.D. 395--600 (London, 1993); and R. Collins, Early Medieval Europe, 300--1000 (New York, 1991). Late Roman Empire On the Late Roman Empire, see S. Mitchell, History of the Later Roman Empire, A.D. 284--641 (Oxford, 2006); R. M. Errington, Roman Imperial Policy from Julian to Theodosius (Chapel Hill, N.C., 2006); and A. Cameron, The Later Roman Empire (Cambridge, Mass., 1993). On the fourth century, see M. Grant, Constantine the Great: The Man and His Times (New York, 1993), and T. D. Barnes, The New Empire of Diocletian and Constantine (Cambridge, Mass., 1982). Studies analyzing the aristocratic circles, the barbarian invasions, and the military problem include E. A. Thompson, Romans and Barbarians (Madison, Wis., 1982); A. Ferrill, The Fall of the Roman Empire:

Muslim entry into Spain Defeat of Muslims near Poitiers

The Military Explanation (London, 1986); and P. MacGeorge, Late Roman Warlords (Oxford, 2003). For new perspectives on the role of the Germans in the fall of the western Roman Empire, see P. Heather, The Fall of the Roman Empire: A New History of Rome and the Barbarians (Oxford, 2006), and B. Ward-Perkins, The Fall of Rome and the End of Civilization (Oxford, 2005). The Germanic Peoples For surveys of the German tribes and their migrations, see P. Heather, Goths and Romans (Oxford, 1991); E. James, The Franks (Oxford, 1988); and I. N. Wood, Merovingian Kingdoms (London, 1994). On the relationship between the Romans and the Germans, see T. S. Burns, Rome and the Barbarians, 100 B.C.--A.D. 400 (Baltimore, 2003), and M. Kulikowski, Rome’s Gothic Wars (New York, 2007). Early Christianity For a superb introduction to early Christianity, see P. Brown, The Rise of Western Christendom: Triumph and Adversity, A.D. 200--1000, 2d ed. (Oxford, 2002). On Saints Augustine and Jerome, see H. Chadwick, Augustine (Oxford, 1986), and J. N. D. Kelly, Saint Jerome (London, 1975). For a good

C ONCLUSION

151

account of early monasticism, see C. H. Lawrence, Medieval Monasticism, 3d ed. (London, 2000). On Saint Benedict, see O. Chadwick, The Making of the Benedictine Ideal (London, 1981). For information on women in monastic life, see M. T. Malone, Women and Christianity, vol. 1 (New York, 2001). On women in general, see G. Clark, Women in Late Antiquity: Pagan and Christian Life-Styles (Oxford, 1993). The Early Church A brief survey of the development of the papacy can be found in G. Barraclough, The Medieval Papacy, rev. ed. (New York, 1979). J. Richards, The Popes and the Papacy in the Early Middle Ages, 476--752 (Boston, 1979), is a more detailed study of the early papacy. On Pope Gregory the Great, see J. Moorhead, Gregory the Great (London, 2005). On Irish monasticism, see L. M. Bitel, Isle of the Saints: Monastic Settlement and Christian Community in Early Ireland (Ithaca, N.Y., 1990). The Byzantine Empire Brief but good introductions to Byzantine history can be found in J. Haldon, Byzantium: A History (Charleston, S.C., 2000); A. Cameron, The Byzantines (Oxford, 2006); and W. Treadgold, A Concise History of Byzantium (London, 2001). For a comprehensive survey of the Byzantine Empire, see W. Treadgold, A History of the Byzantine State and

152

Society (Stanford, Calif., 1997). See also C. Mango, ed., The Oxford History of Byzantium (Oxford, 2002). On Justinian, see J. Moorhead, Justinian (London, 1995), and J. A. S. Evans, The Age of Justinian (New York, 1996). On Constantinople, see J. Harris, Constantinople: Capital of Byzantium (London, 2007). Islamic Middle East Good brief surveys of the Islamic Middle East include A. Goldschmidt Jr., A Concise History of the Middle East, 8th ed. (Boulder, Colo., 2005), and S. N. Fisher and W. Ochsenwald, The Middle East: A History (New York, 2003). On the rise of Islam, see F. E. Peters, Muhammad and the Origins of Islam (Albany, N.Y., 1994); M. Lings, Muhammad: His Life Based on the Earliest Sources (New York, 1983); K. Armstrong, Muhammad: A Prophet for Our Time (New York, 2006); and F. Donner, The Early Islamic Conquests (Princeton, N.J., 1980).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

C H A P T E R 7 LATE ANTIQUITY AND THE EMERGENCE OF THE MEDIEVAL WORLD

153

CHAPTER 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750--1000

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

The World of the Carolingians What was the significance of Charlemagne’s coronation as emperor? In what ways did the political, intellectual, and daily life in the Carolingian Empire represent a fusion of Gallo-Roman, Germanic, and Christian practices?

Scala/Art Resource, NY

Q

Disintegration of the Carolingian Empire What impact did the Vikings have on the history and culture of medieval Europe?

The Emerging World of Lords and Vassals

Q

What was fief-holding, and how was it related to manorialism?

The Zenith of Byzantine Civilization

Q

What were the chief developments in the Byzantine Empire between 750 and 1000?

The Slavic Peoples of Central and Eastern Europe

Q

What patterns of development occurred in central and eastern Europe as a result of the Slavic peoples?

The World of Islam

Q

What were the chief developments in the Islamic world between 750 and 1000?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

154

In what ways can it be said that Islamic civilization was superior to the civilization of western Europe in the ninth and tenth centuries?

c

Q

A medieval French manuscript illustration of the coronation of Charlemagne by Pope Leo III

IN 800, CHARLEMAGNE, the king of the Franks, journeyed to Rome to help Pope Leo III, who was barely clinging to power in the face of rebellious Romans. On Christmas Day, Charlemagne and his family, attended by Romans, Franks, and even visitors from the Byzantine Empire, crowded into Saint Peter’s Basilica to hear Mass. Quite unexpectedly, at least according to a Frankish writer, ‘‘as the king rose from praying before the tomb of the blessed apostle Peter, Pope Leo placed a golden crown on his head.’’ In keeping with ancient tradition, the people in the church shouted, ‘‘Long life and victory to Charles Augustus, crowned by God the great and pacific Emperor of the Romans.’’ Seemingly, the Roman Empire in the West had been reborn, and Charles had become the first western emperor since 476. But this ‘‘Roman emperor’’ was actually a German king, and he had been crowned by the head of the western Christian church. In truth, the coronation of Charlemagne was a sign not of the rebirth of the Roman Empire but of the emergence of a new European civilization. By the year of Charlemagne’s coronation, the contours of this new European civilization were beginning to emerge in western Europe. Increasingly, Europe would become the focus and center

of Western civilization. Building on a fusion of Germanic, GrecoRoman, and Christian elements, the medieval European world first became visible in the Carolingian Empire of Charlemagne. The agrarian foundations of the eighth and ninth centuries proved inadequate to maintain a large monarchical system, however, and a new political and military order based on the decentralization of political power subsequently evolved to become an integral part of the political world of the Middle Ages. European civilization began on a shaky and uncertain foundation, however. In the ninth century, Vikings, Magyars, and Muslims posed threats that could easily have stifled the new society. But European civilization absorbed the challenges. The Vikings and Magyars were assimilated, and recovery slowly began. By 1000, European civilization was ready to embark on a period of dazzling vitality and expansion.

The World of the Carolingians

Q Focus Questions: What was the significance of

Charlemagne’s coronation as emperor? In what ways did the political, intellectual, and daily life in the Carolingian Empire represent a fusion of GalloRoman, Germanic, and Christian practices?

By the eighth century, the Merovingian dynasty was losing its control of the Frankish lands. Charles Martel, the Carolingian mayor of the palace of Austrasia, became the virtual ruler of these territories. When Charles died in 741, Pepin, his son, deposed the Merovingians and assumed the kingship of the Frankish state, an action approved by the pope. In imitation of an Old Testament practice, Pepin (751--768) was crowned and formally anointed with holy oil by a representative of the pope. The anointing not only symbolized that the king had been entrusted with a sacred office but also provided yet another example of the fusion between Germanic institutions and Christian practices in the Early Middle Ages.

Expansion of the Carolingian Empire In the tradition of the Germanic kings, Charlemagne was a determined warrior who undertook fifty-four military campaigns. Even though the Frankish army was relatively small---only eight thousand men gathered each spring for campaigning--supplying it and transporting it to distant areas could still present serious problems. The Frankish army consisted mostly of infantry, with some cavalry armed with swords and spears. Charlemagne’s campaigns took him to many parts of Europe. In 773, Charlemagne led his army into Italy, crushed the Lombards, and took control of the Lombard state. Although his son was crowned king of Italy, Charlemagne was its real ruler. Four years after his invasion of Italy, Charlemagne moved his forces into northern Spain. This campaign proved disappointing: not only did the Basques harass his army as it crossed the Pyrenees on the way home, but they also ambushed and annihilated his rear guard. Charlemagne was considerably more successful with his eastern campaigns into Germany, especially against the Saxons living between the Elbe River and the North Sea. As Einhard, Charlemagne’s biographer, recounted it: No war ever undertaken by the Frank nation was carried on with such persistence and bitterness, or cost so much labor, because the Saxons, like almost all the tribes of Germany, were a fierce people, given to the worship of devils, and hostile to our religion, and did not consider it dishonorable to transgress and violate all law, human and divine.1

Charlemagne and the Carolingian Empire (768--814)

Charlemagne’s insistence that the Saxons convert to Christianity simply fueled their resistance. Not until 804, after eighteen campaigns, was Saxony finally pacified and added to the Carolingian domain. In southeastern Germany, Charlemagne invaded the land of the Bavarians in 787 and brought them into his empire by the following year, an expansion that then brought him into contact with the southern Slavs and the Avars. The latter disappeared from history after their utter devastation at the hands of Charlemagne’s army. Now at its height, Charlemagne’s empire covered much of western and central Europe (see Map 8.1); not until the time of Napoleon in the nineteenth century would an empire of this size be seen again in Europe.

Pepin was succeeded on the throne of the Frankish kingdom by his son, a dynamic and powerful ruler known to history as Charles the Great, or Charlemagne (Carolus magnus in Latin---hence our word Carolingian). Charlemagne was a determined and decisive man, intelligent and inquisitive. A fierce warrior, he was also a wise patron of learning and a resolute statesman (see the box on p. 156). He greatly expanded the territory of the Carolingian Empire during his lengthy rule.

Governing the Empire Charlemagne continued the efforts of his father in organizing the Carolingian kingdom. Because there was no system of public taxation, Charlemagne was dependent on the royal estates for the resources he needed to govern his empire. Food and goods derived from these lands provided support for the king, his household staff, and officials. To keep the nobles in his service, Charlemagne granted part of T HE WORLD

OF THE

C AROLINGIANS

155

THE ACHIEVEMENTS Einhard, the biographer of Charlemagne, was born in the valley of the Main River in Germany about 775. Raised and educated in the monastery of Fulda, an important center of learning, he arrived at the court of Charlemagne in 791 or 792. Although he did not achieve high office under Charlemagne, he served as private secretary to Louis the Pious, Charlemagne’s son and successor. Einhard’s Life of Charlemagne was modeled on Suetonius’ Lives of the Caesars, especially his biography of Augustus. Einhard’s work, written between 817 and 830, was the ‘‘first medieval biography of a lay figure.’’ In this selection, he discusses some of Charlemagne’s accomplishments.

Einhard, Life of Charlemagne Such are the wars, most skillfully planned and successfully fought, which this most powerful king waged during the forty-seven years of his reign. He so largely increased the Frank kingdom, which was already great and strong when he received it at his father’s hands, that more than double its former territory was added to it. . . . He subdued all the wild and barbarous tribes dwelling in Germany between the Rhine and the Vistula, the Ocean and the Danube, all of which speak very much the same language, but differ widely from one another in customs and dress. . . . He added to the glory of his reign by gaining the good will of several kings and nations. . . . The Emperors of Constantinople [the Byzantine emperors] sought friendship and alliance with Charles by several embassies; and even when the Greeks [the Byzantines] suspected him of designing to take the empire from them, because of his assumption of the title Emperor, they made a close alliance with him, that he might have no cause of offense. In fact, the power of the Franks was always viewed with a jealous eye, whence the Greek proverb, ‘‘Have the Frank for your friend, but not for your neighbor.’’ This King, who showed himself so great in extending his empire and subduing foreign nations, and was constantly occupied with plans to that end, undertook also very many works calculated

the royal lands as lifetime holdings to nobles who assisted him. Besides the household staff, the administration of the empire was accomplished by counts, who were the king’s chief representatives in local areas. Counts were members of the nobility who had already existed under the Merovingians. They had come to control public services in their own lands and thus acted as judges, military leaders, and agents of the king. Gradually, as the rule of the Merovingian kings weakened, many counts had simply attached the royal lands and services performed on behalf of the king to their own family possessions. 156

OF

CHARLEMAGNE

to adorn and benefit his kingdom, and brought several of them to completion. Among these, the most deserving of mention are the basilica of the Holy Mother of God at Aix-la-Chapelle, built in the most admirable manner, and a bridge over the Rhine River at Mainz, half a mile long, the breadth of the river at this point. . . . Above all, sacred buildings were the object of his care throughout his whole kingdom; and whenever he found them falling to ruin from age, he commanded the priests and fathers who had charge of them to repair them, and made sure by commissioners that his instructions were obeyed. . . . Thus did Charles defend and increase as well as beautify his kingdom. . . . He cherished with the greatest fervor and devotion the principles of the Christian religion, which had been instilled into him from infancy. Hence it was that he built the beautiful church at Aixla-Chapelle, which he adorned with gold and silver and lamps, and with rails and doors of solid brass. He had the columns and marbles for this structure brought from Rome and Ravenna, for he could not find such as were suitable elsewhere. He was a constant worshiper at this church as long as his health permitted, going morning and evening, even after nightfall, besides attending mass. . . . He was very forward in caring for the poor, so much so that he not only made a point of giving in his own country and his own kingdom, but when he discovered that there were Christians living in poverty in Syria, Egypt, and Africa, at Jerusalem, Alexandria, and Carthage, he had compassion on their wants, and used to send money over the seas to them. . . . He sent great and countless gifts to the popes, and throughout his whole reign the wish that he had nearest at heart was to reestablish the ancient authority of the city of Rome under his care and by his influence, and to defend and protect the Church of St. Peter, and to beautify and enrich it out of his own store above all other churches.

Q Based on Einhard’s account, discuss the strengths and weaknesses of Charlemagne. Which characteristics help explain Charlemagne’s success as a ruler? Does Einhard exaggerate Charlemagne’s strengths? Why?

In an effort to gain greater control over his kingdom, Charlemagne attempted to limit the power of the counts. They were required to serve outside their own family lands and were moved about periodically rather than being permitted to remain in a county for life. By making the offices appointive, Charlemagne tried to prevent the counts’ children from automatically inheriting their offices. Moreover, as another check on the counts, Charlemagne instituted the missi dominici (‘‘messengers of the lord king’’), a lay lord and a church official who were sent out to local districts to ensure that the counts were executing the king’s wishes.

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

NORTHUMBRIA

Se

a

400 Miles

DANISH MARCH

Bal

AUSTRASIA

e

ALEMANNI

NEUSTRIA

BURGUNDY Bordeaux

Milan

nee s

R.

Alps

PEOPLES

VENETIA

Ad

Sardinia

Se a DUCHY OF BENEVENTO

ri

at

Rome

Mediterranean Sea Frankish kingdom, 768

SLAVIC

Corsica

Barcelona

Córdoba

Da nu be

BAVARIA

PAPAL STATES

SPANISH MARCH Toledo

R.

Lyons

AQUITAINE

Pyr e

r

de

R.

O

TRIBUTARY

R.

Loire

SAXONY Mainz

Paris Se in

BRITTANY

tic

E lb e

R.

Verdun

Territories gained by Charlemagne

200

R.

EAST ANGLIA FRISIA ESSEX WESSEX WEST KENT Rhine WALES SUSSEX Aachen

UMAYYAD KINGDOM OF SPAIN

600 Kilometers

MERCIA

WALES

Atlantic Ocean

400

North Sea

York

IRELAND

200

ic

BYZANTINE EMPIRE Sicily

MAP 8.1 The Carolingian Empire. Charlemagne inherited the Carolingian

Empire from his father, Pepin. He expanded his territories in several directions, creating an empire that would not be rivaled in size until the conquests of Napoleon in the early nineteenth century. Q How might Charlemagne’s holdings in northern Italy have influenced his relationship with the pope?

The Carolingian system was glaringly inefficient. Great distances had to be covered on horseback, making it impossible for Charlemagne and his household staff to exercise much supervision over local affairs. What held the system together was personal loyalty to the king, who was strong enough to ensure loyalty by force when necessary. Charlemagne also realized that the Catholic church could provide valuable assistance in governing his kingdom. By the end of the seventh century, the system of ecclesiastical government within the Christian church that had been created in the Late Roman Empire had largely disintegrated. Many church offices were not filled or were held by grossly unqualified relatives of the royal family. Both Pepin and his son Charlemagne took up the cause of church reform by creating new bishoprics and archbishoprics, restoring old ones, and seeing to it that the clergy accepted the orders of their superiors and executed their duties.

Charlemagne as Emperor As Charlemagne’s power grew, so did his prestige as the most powerful Christian ruler; one monk even wrote of his empire as the ‘‘kingdom of Europe.’’ In 800, Charlemagne acquired a new title---emperor of the Romans---largely as a result of the ever-closer relationship between the papacy and the Frankish monarchs. Already during the reign of Pepin, an alliance emerged between the kingdom of the Franks and the papacy. The popes welcomed this support, and in the course of the second half of the eighth century, they increasingly severed their ties with the Byzantine Empire and drew closer to the Frankish kingdom. Charlemagne encouraged this development. In 799, after a rebellion against his authority, Pope Leo III (795--816) managed to escape from Rome and flee to safety at Charlemagne’s court. Charlemagne offered assistance, and when he went to Rome in November 800 to settle affairs, he was received by the pope like an emperor. On Christmas Day in 800, Pope Leo placed a crown on Charlemagne’s head and declared him emperor of the Romans.

The Significance of Charlemagne The significance of this imperial coronation has been much debated by historians. We are not even sure whether the idea was discussed when Charlemagne and the pope met in the summer of 799 in Paderborn in German lands or whether Charlemagne was pleased or displeased. Charlemagne’s biographer Einhard claimed that Charlemagne ‘‘at first had such an aversion that he declared that he would not have set foot in the Church the day that it was conferred, although it was a great feast-day, if he could have foreseen the design of the Pope.’’2 But Charlemagne also perceived the usefulness of the imperial title; after all, he was now on a level of equality with the Byzantine emperor. Moreover, the papacy now had a defender of great stature, although later popes in the Middle Ages would become involved in fierce struggles with emperors over who possessed the higher power. In any case, Charlemagne’s coronation as Roman emperor demonstrated the strength, even after three hundred years, of the concept of an enduring Roman Empire. More important, it symbolized the fusion of Roman, Christian, and Germanic elements. Did this fusion constitute the foundation of European civilization? T HE WORLD

OF THE

C AROLINGIANS

157

Giraudon/The Bridgeman Art Library

c

monasteries, many of which had been established by the Irish and English missionaries of the seventh and eighth centuries. By the ninth century, the work required of Benedictine monks was the copying of manuscripts. Monasteries established scriptoria, or writing rooms, where monks copied not only the works of early Christianity, such as the Bible, but also the works of Classical Latin authors. The production of manuscripts in Carolingian monastic scriptoria was a crucial factor in the preservation of the ancient legacy. About eight thousand manuscripts survive from Carolingian times. Virtually 90 percent of the ancient Roman works that we have today exist because they were copied by Carolingian monks. Charlemagne personally promoted learning by establishing a palace school and encouraging scholars from all over Europe to come to the Carolingian court. The best known of these scholars was Alcuin, from the famous school at York, founded as part of a great revival of learning in the Anglo-Saxon kingdom of Northumbria. From 782 to 796, while serving at Charlemagne’s court as an adviser on ecclesiastical affairs, Alcuin also The Coronation of Charlemagne. After a rebellion in 799 forced Pope Leo III to provided the leadership for the palace school. seek refuge at Charlemagne’s court, Charlemagne went to Rome to settle the affair. There, He concentrated on teaching Classical Latin on Christmas Day 800, he was crowned emperor of the Romans by the pope. This manuscript illustration shows Leo III placing a crown on Charlemagne’s head. and adopted Cassiodorus’ sevenfold division of knowledge known as the liberal arts (see Chapter 7), which became the basis for all later medieval education. All in all, the Carolingian ReA Germanic king had been crowned emperor of the Ronaissance played a crucial role in keeping the Classical mans by the spiritual leader of western Christendom. heritage alive as well as maintaining the intellectual life of Charlemagne ruled an empire that stretched from the the Catholic church. North Sea in the north to Italy in the south and from France in western Europe to Vienna in central Europe. This domain differed significantly from the Roman Empire, which encompassed much of the Mediterranean Life in the Carolingian World world. Had not a new civilization emerged? And should In daily life as well as intellectual life, the Europe of the Charlemagne not be regarded, as one of his recent biogCarolingian era witnessed an amalgamation of Roman, 3 raphers has argued, as the ‘‘father of Europe’’? Germanic, and Christian practices. These last in particular seem to have exercised an ever-increasing influence.

The Carolingian Intellectual Renewal

Charlemagne had a strong desire to revive learning in his kingdom, an attitude that stemmed from his own intellectual curiosity as well as the need to provide educated clergy for the church and literate officials for the government. His efforts led to a revival of learning and culture that some historians have labeled the Carolingian Renaissance, or ‘‘rebirth’’ of learning. For the most part, the revival of Classical studies and the efforts to preserve Latin culture took place in the 158

Family and Marriage By Carolingian times, the Catholic church had begun to influence Frankish family life and marital and sexual attitudes. Marriages in Frankish society were arranged by fathers or uncles to meet the needs of the extended family. Although wives were expected to be faithful to their husbands, Frankish aristocrats often kept concubines, either slave girls or free women from their estates. Even the ‘‘most Christian king’’ Charlemagne kept a number of concubines.

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

ADVICE

FROM A

CAROLINGIAN MOTHER

The wife of a Carolingian aristocrat bore numerous responsibilities. She was entrusted with the management of the household and even the administration of extensive landed estates while her husband was absent in the royal service or on a military campaign. A wife was also expected to bear large numbers of children and to supervise their upbringing. This selection by Dhouda, wife of Bernard, marquis of Septimania (in southern France), is taken from a manual she wrote to instruct her son on his duties to his new lord, King Charles the Bald (840–877).

Dhouda of Septimania, Handbook for William Direction on your comportment toward your lord. You have Charles as your lord; you have him as lord because, as I believe, God and your father, Bernard, have chosen him for you to serve at the beginning of your career, in the flower of your youth. Remember that he comes from a great and noble lineage on both sides of his family. Serve him not only so that you please him in obvious ways, but also as one clearheaded in matters of both body and soul. Be steadfastly and completely loyal to him in all things. . . . This is why, my son, I urge you to keep this loyalty as long as you live, in your body and in your mind. For the advancement that it brings you will be of great value both to you and to those who in turn serve you. May the madness of treachery never, not once, make you offer an angry insult. May it never give rise in your heart to the idea of being disloyal to your lord. There is harsh and shameful talk

To limit such sexual license, the church increasingly emphasized its role in marriage and attempted to Christianize it. Although marriage was a civil arrangement, priests tried to add their blessings and strengthen the concept of a special marriage ceremony. To stabilize marriages, the church also began to emphasize monogamy and permanence. A Frankish church council in 789 stipulated that marriage was ‘‘indissoluble’’ and condemned the practice of concubinage and easy divorce, and during the reign of Emperor Louis the Pious (814--840), the church formally prohibited divorce. Now a man who married was expected to remain with his wife ‘‘even though she were sterile, deformed, old, dirty, drunken, a frequenter of bad company, lascivious, vain, greedy, unfaithful, quarrelsome, abusive . . . , for when that man was free, he freely engaged himself.’’4 The acceptance and spread of the Catholic church’s views on the indissolubility of marriage encouraged the development of the nuclear family at the expense of the extended family. Although kinship was still an influential social and political force, the conjugal unit came to be seen as the basic unit of society. The new practice of young couples establishing their own households brought

about men who act in this fashion. I do not think that such will befall you or those who fight alongside you because such an attitude has never shown itself among your ancestors. It has not been seen among them, it is not seen now, and it will not be seen in the future. Be truthful to your lord, my son William, child of their lineage. Be vigilant, energetic, and offer him ready assistance as I have said here. In every matter of importance to royal power take care to show yourself a man of good judgment---in your own thoughts and in public---to the extent that God gives you strength. Read the sayings and the lives of the holy Fathers who have gone before us. You will there discover how you may serve your lord and be faithful to him in all things. When you understand this, devote yourself to the faithful execution of your lord’s commands. Look around as well and observe those who fight for him loyally and constantly. Learn from them how you may serve him. Then, informed by their example, with the help and support of God, you will easily reach the celestial goal I have mentioned above. And may your heavenly Lord God be generous and benevolent toward you. May he keep you safe, be your kind leader and your protector. May he deign to assist you in all your actions and be your constant defender.

Q What advice does Dhouda give her son? What does this selection tell us about aristocratic women in the Early Middle Ages and their relationship with power?

a dynamic element to European society. It also had a significant impact on women (see the box above). In the extended family, the eldest woman controlled all the other female members; in the nuclear family, the wife was still dominated by her husband, but at least she now had control of her own household and children. Christianity and Sexuality The early church fathers had stressed that celibacy and complete abstinence from sexual activity constituted an ideal state superior to marriage. Subsequently, the early church gradually developed a case for clerical celibacy, although it proved impossible to enforce in the Early Middle Ages. The early fathers had also emphasized, however, that not all people had the self-discipline to remain celibate. It was thus permissible to marry, as Paul had indicated in his first epistle to the Corinthians: It is good for a man not to touch a woman. Nevertheless, to avoid fornication, let every man have his own wife, and let every woman have her own husband. . . . I say therefore to the unmarried and widows, it is good for them if they abide even as I. But if they cannot contain, let them marry: for it is better to marry than to burn.5 T HE WORLD

OF THE

C AROLINGIANS

159

160

British Library, London//HIP/Art Resource, NY

Diet For both rich and poor, the fundamental staple of the Carolingian diet was bread. The aristocratic classes, as well as the monks, consumed it in large quantities. Ovens at the monastery of Saint Gall were able to bake a thousand loaves of bread. Sometimes a gruel made of barley and oats was substituted for bread in the peasant diet. The upper classes in Carolingian society enjoyed a much more varied diet than the peasants. Pork was the primary meat. Domestic pigs, allowed to run wild in the forests to find their own food, were collected and slaughtered in the fall, then smoked and salted to be eaten during the winter months. Because Carolingian aristocrats were especially fond of roasted meat, hunting wild game became one of their favorite activities. They ate little beef and mutton, however, because cattle were kept as dairy cows and oxen to draw plows, and sheep were raised for wool. Dairy products became prevalent in the Carolingian diet. Milk, which spoiled rapidly, was made into cheese and butter. Chickens were raised for their eggs. Vegetables also formed a crucial part of the diet of both the rich

and the poor. These included legumes, such as beans, peas, and lentils, and roots, such as garlic, onions, and carrots. Both gluttony and drunkenness were vices shared by many people in Carolingian society. Monastic rations were greatly enlarged in the eighth century to include a daily allotment of 3.7 pounds of bread (nuns were permitted only 3 pounds), 1.5 quarts of wine or ale, 2 to 3 ounces of cheese, and 8 ounces of vegetables (4 for nuns). These rations totaled 6,000 calories a day, and since only heavy and fatty foods---bread, milk, and cheese---were considered nourishing, we begin to understand why some Carolingians were known for their potbellies. Everyone in Carolingian society, including abbots and monks, drank heavily and often to excess. Taverns

c

The church thus viewed marriage as the lesser of two evils; it was a concession to human weakness and fulfilled the need for companionship, sex, and children. In the church of the Early Middle Ages, it was generally agreed that marriage gave the right to indulge in sexual intercourse. Sex, then, was permissible within marriage, but only so long as it was used for the sole purpose of procreation and not for pleasure. The church condemned all forms of contraception and also strongly condemned abortion, although this prohibition failed to stop either practice. Various herbal potions were available to prevent conception or cause abortion. The Catholic church accepted only one way to limit children: periodic or total abstinence from intercourse. The Catholic church’s condemnation of sexual activity outside marriage also included homosexuality. Neither Roman religion nor Roman law had recognized any real difference between homosexual and heterosexual eroticism, and the Roman Empire had taken no legal measures against homosexual relations between adults. Later, in the Byzantine Empire, the emperor Justinian in 538 condemned homosexuality, emphasizing that such practices brought down the wrath of God (‘‘we have provoked Him to anger’’) and endangered the welfare of the state. Justinian recommended that the guilty parties be punished by castration. Although the church in the Early Middle Ages similarly condemned homosexuality, it also pursued a flexible policy in its treatment of homosexuals. In the Early Middle Ages, homosexuals were treated less harshly than married couples who practiced contraception.

Bloodletting in Early Medieval Medicine. Bleeding was a regular part of medieval medical practice. It involved the withdrawing of blood from a person in the belief that doing so would bring balance to the body and thus heal a diseased condition. This fourteenth-century manuscript illustration shows a physician bleeding his patient with a cut in the arm. As the physician squeezes the arm, the blood spurts into a bowl; the patient seems to be quite anxious about the procedure.

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

Health Medical practice in Carolingian times stressed the use of medicinal herbs and bleeding. Although the latter was practiced regularly, moderation was frequently recommended. Some advised carefulness as well: ‘‘Who dares to undertake a bleeding should see to it that his hand does not tremble.’’ Physicians were also available when people faced serious illnesses. Many were clerics, and monasteries trained their own. Monasteries kept medical manuscripts copied from ancient works and grew herbs to provide stocks of medicinal plants. Carolingian medical manuscripts contained descriptions of illnesses, recipes for medical potions, and even gynecological advice, although monks in particular expended little effort on female medical needs. Physicians of the Early Middle Ages supplemented their medicines and natural practices with appeals for otherworldly help. Magical rites and influences were carried over from pagan times; Germanic tribes had used magical medicine for centuries. But as pagans were converted to Christianity, miraculous healing through the intervention of God, Jesus, or the saints soon replaced pagan practices. Medieval chronicles abound with accounts of people healed by touching a saint’s body.

Disintegration of the Carolingian Empire

Q Focus Question: What impact did the Vikings have on the history and culture of medieval Europe?

The Carolingian Empire began to disintegrate soon after Charlemagne’s death. Charlemagne was succeeded by his son Louis the Pious (814--840), who was unable to control either the Frankish aristocracy or his own four sons, who fought continually. In 843, after their father’s death, the three surviving brothers signed the Treaty of Verdun. This agreement divided the Carolingian Empire among them into three major sections: Charles the Bald (843--877)

obtained the west Frankish lands, which N or th lti formed the core of the Sea Ba eventual kingdom of France; Louis the GerKINGDOM man (843--876) took OF KINGDOM LOUIS OF the eastern lands, which THE CHARLES GERMAN THE BALD became Germany; and KINGDOM Lothair (840--855) reOF LOTHAR ceived the title of emperor and a ‘‘Middle Kingdom’’ extending from the North Sea to Mediterranean Sea Italy, including the Netherlands, the Rhine- Division of the Carolingian land, and northern Italy. Empire by the Treaty of The territories of the Verdun, 843 Middle Kingdom became a source of incessant struggle between the other two Frankish rulers and their heirs. Indeed, France and Germany would fight over the territories of the Middle Kingdom for centuries. Although this division of the Carolingian Empire was made for political reasons (dividing landholdings among the male heirs was a traditional Frankish custom), two different cultures began to emerge. By the ninth century, inhabitants of the west Frankish area were speaking a Romance language derived from Latin that became French. Eastern Franks spoke a Germanic dialect. The later kingdoms of France and Germany did not yet exist, however. In the ninth century, the frequent struggles among the numerous heirs of the sons of Louis the Pious led to further disintegration of the Carolingian Empire. In the meantime, while powerful aristocrats acquired even more power in their own local territories at the expense of the squabbling Carolingian rulers, the process of disintegration was abetted by external attacks on various parts of the old Carolingian world. Se c a

became a regular feature of life and were found everywhere: in marketplaces, in pilgrimage centers, and on royal, episcopal, and monastic estates. Drinking contests were not unusual; one penitential stated, ‘‘Does drunken bravado encourage you to attempt to outdrink your friends? If so, thirty days’ fast.’’ The aristocrats and monks favored wine above all other beverages, and much care was lavished on its production, especially by monasteries. Ale was especially popular in the northern and eastern parts of the Carolingian world. Water was also drunk as a beverage, but much care had to be taken to obtain pure sources from wells or clear streams.

Invasions of the Ninth and Tenth Centuries In the ninth and tenth centuries, western Europe was beset by a wave of invasions of several non-Christian peoples---one old enemy, the Muslims, and two new ones, the Magyars and Vikings (see Map 8.2). The Muslims began a new series of attacks in the Mediterranean in the ninth century. They raided the southern coasts of Europe, especially Italy; occupied Sicily; destroyed the Carolingian defenses in northern Spain; and conducted forays into southern France. The Magyars were a people from western Asia who moved into eastern and central Europe at the end of the ninth century. They established themselves on the plains of Hungary and from there made raids into D ISINTEGRATION

OF THE

C AROLINGIAN E MPIRE

161

To Greenland 985

N or t h

Sea

ICELAND

874

800

VIKINGS Sea

800 80 8 00

Novgorod

ltic

Shetla tla laand nd nds ds

Ba

820

866 878

917

86 5

896– 911 Bordeaux

843 882

Marsei sei eeiille llllees Santiago

Ba Bal allea e ics ear Lisbon 844

R.

895

941 94 41 41 907 Black Sea 866

Thessalonika

Saar ardin diiniia di dini a 846 842

827 27 7

Sea of Azov

Con C Co o sta t ntinople

904 04 04

Sici Sic ciily lyy

861 859

Attack routes

883

MAGYARS

Rom me

Corssic Cor sic ica ca

Ba Barcelona

Danube

900 Lechfeld L 899 92 4

ni epe 882 rR .

895

R.

–8 96

8

84

Ocean

Kiev

NO NORMANDY 7

ula

D

1–

84

A Aachen

R.

84

At l a n t i c

Vist

WESSEX X

84 0

IR RELAND 839 9

Volga

Faeroess

MUSLIMS

Crrete Cre te

Mediterranean

Sea

Vikings Magyars

Muslims

400

800 400

1,200 Kilometer ter ers er ers 800 Miles Nile

R

.

MAP 8.2 Invasions of the Ninth and Tenth Centuries. Attacks by invading Vikings,

Magyars, and Muslims terrorized much of Europe in the ninth and tenth centuries, disrupting the economy and spurring the development of fief-holding. The Vikings were the biggest problem, but they eventually formed settlements, converted to Christianity, and were assimilated. Q Why was it important for the marauding Vikings to build sound boats and develop good seafaring skills?

western Europe. The Magyars were finally crushed at the Battle of Lechfeld in Germany in 955. At the end of the tenth century, they were converted to Christianity and settled down to establish the kingdom of Hungary. The Vikings By far the most devastating and farreaching attacks of the time came from the Northmen or Norsemen of Scandinavia, also known as the Vikings. The Vikings were a Germanic people who had settled in Scandinavia. Why they invaded other areas of Europe is uncertain. Perhaps overpopulation and the emergence of more effective monarchs in Denmark, Norway, and 162

Sweden caused some of the freedom-loving Scandinavians to seek escape from the growing order. The Vikings’ great love of adventure and their search for booty and new avenues of trade may also have been important factors. Two features of Viking society help explain what the Vikings accomplished. First, they were warriors. And second, they were superb shipbuilders and sailors. Their ships were the best of the period. Long and narrow with beautifully carved arched prows, the Viking ‘‘dragon ships’’ carried about fifty men. Their shallow draft enabled them to sail up European rivers and attack places at some distance inland. Vikings sacked villages and towns,

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

destroyed churches, and easily defeated small local armies. Viking attacks frightened people and led many a clergyman to plead with them to change their behavior and appease God’s anger, as is revealed in this sermon in 1014 by an English archbishop: Things have not gone well now for a long time at home or abroad, but there has been devastation and persecution in every district again and again, and the English have been for a long time now completely defeated and too greatly disheartened through God’s anger; and the pirates [Vikings] so strong with God’s consent that often in battle one puts to flight ten, and sometimes less, sometimes more, all because of our sins. . . . We pay them continually and they humiliate us daily; they ravage and they burn, plunder, and rob and carry on board; and lo, what else is there in all these events except God’s anger clear and visible over this people?6

The Pierpont Morgan Library/Art Resource, NY

Because there were different groups of Scandinavians, Viking expansion varied a great deal. Norwegian Vikings

moved into Ireland and western England, while the Danes attacked eastern England, Frisia, and the Rhineland and navigated rivers to enter western Frankish lands. Swedish Vikings dominated the Baltic Sea and progressed into the Slavic areas to the east. Moving into northwestern Russia, they went down the rivers to Novgorod and Kiev and established fortified ports throughout these territories. Early Viking raids had been carried out largely in the summer; by the mid-ninth century, however, the Northmen had begun to establish winter settlements in Europe from which they could make expeditions to conquer and settle new lands. By 850, groups of Norsemen had settled in Ireland, and the Danes occupied an area known as the Danelaw in northeast England by 878. Beginning in 911, the ruler of the western Frankish lands gave one band of Vikings land at the mouth of the Seine River, forming a section of France that ultimately became known as Normandy. This policy of settling the Vikings and converting them to Christianity was a deliberate one, since the new inhabitants served as protectors against additional Norseman attacks. The Vikings were also daring explorers. After 860, they sailed westward in their long ships across the north Atlantic, reaching Iceland in 874. Erik the Red, a Viking exiled from Iceland, traveled even farther west and discovered Greenland in 985. A Viking site in North America was founded in Newfoundland. By the tenth century, Viking expansion was drawing to a close, but not before Viking settlements had been made in many parts of Europe. Like the Magyars, the Vikings were assimilated into European civilization. Once again, Christianity proved a decisive civilizing force. Europe and Christianity were becoming virtually synonymous. The Viking raids and settlements also had important political repercussions. The inability of royal authorities to protect their peoples against these incursions caused local populations to turn instead to the local aristocrats who provided security for them. In the process, the landed aristocrats not only increased their strength and prestige but also assumed even more of the functions of local governments that had previously belonged to kings; over time these developments led to a new political and military order.

The Emerging World of Lords and Vassals

Q Focus Question: What was fief-holding, and how was

c

it related to manorialism?

Vikings Attacking England. This illustration from an eleventhcentury English manuscript depicts a group of armed Vikings invading England. Two ships have already reached the shore, and a few Vikings are shown walking down a long gangplank onto English soil.

The renewed invasions and the disintegration of the Carolingian Empire led to the emergence of a new type of relationship between free individuals. When governments T HE E MERGING WORLD

OF

L ORDS

AND

VASSALS

163

ceased to be able to defend their subjects, it became important to find some powerful lord who could offer protection in exchange for service. The contract sworn between a lord and his subordinate (known as a vassal) is the basis of a form of social organization that later generations of historians called feudalism. But feudalism was never a system, and many historians today prefer to avoid using the term.

Vassalage The practice of vassalage was derived from Germanic society, in which warriors swore an oath of loyalty to their leader. They fought for their chief, and he in turn took care of their needs. By the eighth century, an individual who served a lord in a military capacity was known as a vassal. With the breakdown of governments, powerful nobles took control of large areas of land. They needed men to fight for them, so the practice arose of giving grants of

land to vassals who in return would fight for their lord. The Frankish army had originally consisted of foot soldiers, dressed in coats of mail and armed with swords. But in the eighth century, when larger horses and the stirrup were introduced, a military change began to occur. Earlier, horsemen had been throwers of spears. Now they wore armored coats of mail (the larger horse could carry the weight) and wielded long lances that enabled them to act as battering rams (the stirrups kept them on their horses). For almost five hundred years, warfare in Europe was dominated by heavily armored cavalry, or knights, as they came to be called. The knights came to have the greatest social prestige and formed the backbone of the European aristocracy. Of course, a horse, armor, and weapons were expensive to purchase and maintain, and learning to wield these instruments skillfully on horseback took much time and practice. Consequently, lords who wanted men to fight for them had to grant each vassal a piece of land that provided for the support of the vassal and his family. In return, the vassal provided fighting skills. In the Early Middle Ages, when trade was minimal and wealth was based primarily on landholdings, land became the most important gift a lord could give to a vassal in return for military service. The relationship between lord and vassal was made official by a public ceremony. To become a vassal, a man performed an act of homage to his lord, as described in this passage from a medieval digest of law: The man should put his hands together as a sign of humility, and place them between the two hands of his lord as a token that he vows everything to him and promises faith to him; and the lord should receive him and promise to keep faith with him. Then the man should say: ‘‘Sir, I enter your homage and faith and become your man by mouth and hands [that is, by taking the oath and placing his hands between those of the lord], and I swear and promise to keep faith and loyalty to you against all others, and to guard your rights with all my strength.’’7

Giraudon/The Bridgeman Art Library

As in the earlier Germanic band, loyalty to one’s lord was the chief virtue.

c

Fief-Holding

A Knight’s Equipment Showing Saddle and Stirrups. In return for his fighting skills, a knight received a piece of land from his lord that provided for his economic support. Pictured here is a charging knight with his equipment. The introduction of the high saddle, stirrup, and larger horses allowed horsemen to wear heavier armor and to wield long lances, vastly improving the fighting ability of the cavalry. 164

The land or some other type of income granted to a vassal in return for military service came to be known as a fief. In time, many vassals who held such grants of land came to exercise rights of jurisdiction or political and legal authority within their fiefs. As the Carolingian world disintegrated politically under the impact of internal dissension and invasions, an increasing number of powerful lords arose. Instead of a single government, many people were now responsible for keeping order.

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

N IO

ROT

T TA RO

AT IO N

Ro ad

Fief-holding also became increasMarsh ingly complicated with the development of subinfeudation. The vassals of Lord’s demesne a king, who were themselves great lords, Common Plot of peasant A SPRING might also have vassals who would owe Forest Pasture FIELD them military service in return for a Plot of peasant B grant of land from their estates. Those Pond vassals, in turn, might likewise have vassals, who at this low level would m Mill Common S t r ea be simple knights with barely enough Meadow Lord’s Oven Garden land to provide their equipment. The Press lord-vassal relationship, then, bound Village together both greater and lesser landFALLOW Manor Lord’s Ro FIELD owners. At all levels, the lord-vassal reClose ad House AUTUMN lationship was always an honorable FIELD relationship between free men and did RO Lord’s Orchard d TATION not imply any sense of servitude. Since Wasteland kings could no longer provide security in the midst of the breakdown created MAP 8.3 A Typical Manor. The manorial system created small, tightly knit by the invasions of the ninth century, communities in which peasants were economically and physically bound to their lord. the practice of subinfeudation became Crops were rotated, with roughly one-third of the fields lying fallow at any one time, ever more widespread. With their rights which helped replenish soil nutrients (see Chapter 9). of jurisdiction, fiefs gave lords virtual Q How does the area of the lord’s manor, other buildings, garden, and orchard possession of the rights of government. compare to that of the peasant holdings in the village? The new practice of lordship was basically a product of the Carolingian world, but it also spread to England, Germany, central class, provided the economic sustenance that made this Europe, and in some form to Italy. Fief-holding came to way of life possible. A manor (see Map 8.3) was simply an be characterized by a set of practices that determined the agricultural estate operated by a lord and worked by relationship between a lord and his vassal. The major peasants. obligation of a vassal to his lord was to perform military Manorialism grew out of the unsettled circumstances service, usually about forty days a year. A vassal was also of the Early Middle Ages, when small farmers often required to appear at his lord’s court when summoned to needed protection or food in a time of bad harvests. Free give advice to the lord. He might also be asked to sit in peasants gave up their freedom to the lords of large landed judgment in a legal case because the important vassals of estates in return for protection and use of the lord’s land. a lord were peers and only they could judge each other. Although a large class of free peasants continued to exist, Finally, vassals were also responsible for aids, or financial increasing numbers of free peasants became serfs---peasants payments to the lord on a number of occasions, including bound to the land and required to provide labor services, the knighting of the lord’s eldest son, the marriage of his pay rents, and be subject to the lord’s jurisdiction. By the eldest daughter, and the ransom of the lord’s person in ninth century, probably 60 percent of the population of the event he was captured. western Europe had become serfs. In turn, a lord had responsibilities toward his vassals. Labor services consisted of working the lord’s demesne, His major obligation was to protect his vassal, either by the land retained by the lord, which might consist of onedefending him militarily or by taking his side in a court of third to one-half of the cultivated lands scattered throughlaw if necessary. The lord was also responsible for the out the manor. The rest would be used by the peasants for maintenance of the vassal, usually by granting him a fief. themselves. Building barns and digging ditches were also part of the labor services. Serfs usually worked about three days a week for their lord. The Manorial System The serfs paid rents by giving the lord a share of every product they raised. Moreover, serfs paid the lord for the The landholding class of nobles and knights comprised a use of the manor’s common pasturelands, streams, ponds, military elite whose ability to function as warriors deand surrounding woodlands. For example, if a serf fished pended on having the leisure time to pursue the arts in the pond or stream on a manor, he turned over part of war. Landed estates, worked by a dependent peasant T HE E MERGING WORLD

OF

L ORDS

AND

VASSALS

165

c

The Art Archive/British Library, London

Peasants in the Manorial System. In the manorial system, peasants were required to provide labor services for their lord. This thirteenth-century illustration shows a group of English peasants harvesting grain. Overseeing them is a bailiff, or manager, who supervised the work of the peasants.

of the catch to his lord. Peasants were also obliged to pay a tithe (a tenth of their produce) to their local village church. Lords possessed a variety of legal rights over their serfs as a result of their unfree status. Serfs were legally bound to the lord’s lands and could not leave without his permission. Although free to marry, serfs could not marry anyone outside their manor without the lord’s approval. Moreover, lords sometimes exercised public rights or political authority on their lands, which gave them the right to try peasants in their own court. In fact, the lord’s manorial court provided the only law that most peasants knew. Peasants also had to pay the lord for certain services; for example, they might be required to bring their grain to the lord’s mill and pay a fee to have it ground into flour. Thus the rights a lord possessed on his manor gave him virtual control over both the lives and the property of his serfs. In the Early Middle Ages, whether free or unfree, a vast majority of men and women, possibly 90 percent, worked the land. Although trade declined precipitously in this period, it never entirely disappeared. Overall, however, compared to the Byzantine Empire or Muslim caliphates, western Europe in the Early Middle Ages was an underdeveloped, predominantly agricultural society.

The Zenith of Byzantine Civilization

Q Focus Question: What were the chief developments in the Byzantine Empire between 750 and 1000?

In the seventh and eighth centuries, the Byzantine Empire had lost much of its territory to Slavs, Bulgars, and Muslims. By 750, the empire consisted only of Asia Minor, some lands in the Balkans, and the southern coast of Italy. 166

Although Byzantium was beset with internal dissension and invasions in the ninth century, it was able to deal with them and not only endured but even expanded, reaching its high point in the tenth century, which some historians have called the ‘‘golden age of Byzantine civilization.’’ During the reign of Michael III (842--867), the Byzantine Empire continued to be plagued by problems. The Bulgars mounted new attacks, and the Arabs continued to harass the empire. Moreover, a new church problem with political repercussions erupted over differences between the pope as leader of the western Christian church and the patriarch of Constantinople as leader of the eastern (or Orthodox) Christian church. Patriarch Photius condemned the pope as a heretic for accepting a revised form of the Nicene Creed stating that the Holy Spirit proceeded from the Father and the Son instead of ‘‘the Holy Spirit, who proceeds from the Father.’’ A council of eastern bishops followed Photius’s wishes and excommunicated the pope, creating the so-called Photian schism. Although the differences were later papered over, this controversy served to further the rift between the eastern and western Christian churches.

The Macedonian Dynasty The problems that arose during Michael’s reign were effectively dealt with by the efforts of a new dynasty of Byzantine emperors, known as the Macedonians (867--1081). This dynastic line managed to repel the external enemies, go over to the offensive, and reestablish domestic order. Supported by the church, the emperors continued to think of the Byzantine Empire as a continuation of the Christian Roman Empire of late antiquity. Although for diplomatic reasons they occasionally recognized the imperial title of western emperors, such as Charlemagne, they still regarded them as little more than barbarian parvenus.

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

was spread to eastern European peoples, including the Bulgars and the Serbs. Perhaps the greatest missionary success occurred when the prince of Kiev in Russia converted to Christianity in 987. Under the Macedonian rulers, Byzantium enjoyed a strong civil service, talented emperors, and military advances. In the tenth century, these competent emperors 0

V ice Ven icce ce

3000

600 Kilometers

Danu be CROA C CR R TIA 0 3300 30 000 Miles Ad R. Bal SE SERB S IA r kan Mts. Cauca PAPA AL iat Black Sea i sus c STA STAT S ST T ES S BYZAN Se Mts. a T I Consta Con sta tannti ta ntti t nnop plee NE C BU ULGARIA Rom R Ro o me

EM

MACE ED DONI DON DO ONIA

Sicily Sic Si

Athens A Ath thheens thens enn

PI

Ephesus

RE

Crette Cre

Mediterranean

PERSI PER PE RSIA Tig ris Eu ph ra te SYRIA s R .

R.

The Macedonian emperors could boast of a remarkable number of achievements in the late ninth and tenth centuries. They worked to strengthen the position of free farmers, who felt threatened by the attempts of landed aristocrats to expand their estates at the expense of the farmers. The emperors were well aware that the free farmers made up the rank and file of the Byzantine cavalry and provided the military strength of the empire. The Macedonian emperors also fostered a burst of economic prosperity by expanding trade relations with western Europe, especially by selling silks and metalworks. Thanks to this prosperity, the city of Constantinople flourished. Foreign visitors continued to be astounded by its size, wealth, and physical surroundings. To western Europeans, it was the stuff of legends and fables (see the box above). In the midst of this prosperity, Byzantine cultural influence expanded due to the active missionary efforts of eastern Byzantine Christians. Eastern Orthodox Christianity

Cyp ypprus

S ea

The Byzantine Empire in 1025

T HE Z ENITH

OF

B YZANTINE C IVILIZATION

167

combined with a number of talented generals to mobilize the empire’s military resources and take the offensive. The Bulgars were defeated, and both the eastern and western parts of Bulgaria were annexed to the empire. The Byzantines went on to add the islands of Crete and Cyprus to the empire and defeat the Muslim forces in Syria, expanding the empire to the upper Euphrates. By the end of the reign of Basil II (976--1025), the Byzantine Empire was the largest it had been since the beginning of the seventh century.

The Slavic Peoples of Central and Eastern Europe

Q Focus Question: What patterns of development

nomads, including the Huns, Bulgars, Avars, and Magyars, had pushed their way westward, terrorizing and plundering the settled peasant communities. Eastern Europe was ravaged by these successive waves of invaders, who found it relatively easy to create large empires that were in turn overthrown by the next invaders. Over a period of time, the invaders themselves were largely assimilated with the native Slavic peoples of the area. The Slavs were originally a single people in central Europe who, through mass migrations and nomadic invasions, gradually divided into three major groups: the western, southern, and eastern Slavs (see Map 8.4).

Western Slavs

In the region east of the eastern Frankish or Germanic kingdom emerged the Polish and Bohemian kingdoms of the western Slavs. The Germans assumed responsibility for the conversion of these Slavic peoples since some North of Byzantium and east of the Carolingian Empire German emperors considered it their duty to spread lay a spacious plain through which a number of Asiatic Christianity to the barbarians. Of course, it also gave them the opportunity to extend their political authority. German missionaries had converted the Czechs in Bohemia by the end of the ninth century, and a bishopric eventually occupied by a Czech bishop was established at Prague in the tenth. The Slavs in Poland were not converted until the reign of Prince Mieszko (c. 960--992). In 1000, an independent Polish archbishopric was set up at Gniezno by the pope. The non-Slavic kingdom of Hungary, which emerged when the Magyars settled down after their defeat at Lechfeld in 955, was also converted to Christianity by German missionaries. Saint Stephen, king of Hungary from 997 to 1038, facilitated the acceptance of Christianity by his people. The Poles, Czechs, and Hungarians all accepted Catholic or western Christianity and became closely tied to the Roman Catholic Church and its Latin culture. MAP 8.4 The Migrations of the Slavs. Originally from east-central Europe, the Slavic people broke into three groups. The western Slavs converted to Catholic Christianity, while Southern Slavs the eastern Slavs and southern Slavs, under the influence of the Byzantine Empire, The southern and eastern Slavic embraced the Eastern Orthodox faith. populations largely took a differQ What connections do these Slavic migrations have with what we today characterize ent path because of their proximity as eastern Europe? occurred in central and eastern Europe as a result of the Slavic peoples?

168

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

A MUSLIM’S DESCRIPTION Despite the difficulties that travel presented, some contact among the various cultures did occur through trade, diplomacy, and the conquest and migration of peoples. This document is a description of the Swedish Rus who eventually merged with the native Slavic peoples to form the principality of Kiev, commonly regarded as the first Russian state. This account was written by Ibn Fadlan, a Muslim diplomat sent from Baghdad in 921 to a settlement on the Volga River. His comments on the filthiness of the Rus reflect the Muslim preoccupation with cleanliness.

Ibn Fadlan, Description of the Rus I saw the Rus folk when they arrived on their trading-mission and settled at the river Atul (Volga). Never had I seen people of more perfect physique. They are tall as date-palms, and reddish in color. They wear neither coat nor kaftan, but each man carried a cape which covers one half of his body, leaving one hand free. No one is ever parted from his axe, sword, and knife. Their swords are Frankish in design, broad, flat, and fluted. Each man has a number of trees, figures, and the like from the fingernails to the neck. Each woman carried on her bosom a container made of iron, silver, copper or gold---its size and substance depending on her man’s wealth. . . . They [the Rus] are the filthiest of God’s creatures. They do not wash after discharging their natural functions, neither do they wash their hands after meals. They are as lousy as donkeys. They arrive

to the Byzantine Empire. The Slavic peoples of Moravia were converted to the Eastern Orthodox Christianity of the Byzantine Empire by two Byzantine missionary brothers, Cyril and Methodius, who began their activities in 863. They created a Slavonic (Cyrillic) alphabet, translated the Bible into Slavonic, and created Slavonic church services. While the southern Slavic peoples accepted Christianity, a split eventually developed between the Croats, who accepted the Roman church, and the Serbs, who remained loyal to eastern Christianity. Although the Bulgars were originally an Asiatic people who conquered much of the Balkan peninsula, they were eventually absorbed by the larger native south Slavic population. Together, by the ninth century, they formed a largely Slavic Bulgarian kingdom. Although the conversion to Christianity of this state was complicated by the rivalry between the Roman Catholic and Eastern Orthodox Churches, the Bulgarians eventually accepted the latter. By the end of the ninth century, they embraced the Slavonic church services earlier developed by Cyril and Methodius. The acceptance of Eastern Orthodoxy by the southern Slavic peoples, the Serbs and Bulgarians, meant that their cultural life was also linked to the Byzantine state.

OF THE

RUS

from their distant river, and there they build big houses on its shores. Ten or twenty of them may live together in one house, and each of them has a couch of his own where he sits and diverts himself with the pretty slave girls whom he had brought along for sale. He will make love with one of them while a comrade looks on; sometimes they indulge in a communal orgy, and, if a customer should turn up to buy a girl, the Rus man will not let her go till he has finished with her. They wash their hands and faces every day in incredibly filthy water. Every morning the girl brings her master a large bowl of water in which he washes his hands and face and hair, then blows his nose into it and spits into it. When he has finished the girl takes the bowl to his neighbor---who repeats the performance. Thus the bowl goes the rounds of the entire household. . . . If one of the Rus folk falls sick they put him in a tent by himself and leave bread and water for him. They do not visit him, however, or speak to him, especially if he is a serf. Should he recover he rejoins the others; if he dies they burn him. But if he happens to be a serf they leave him for the dogs and vultures to devour. If they catch a robber they hang him to a tree until he is torn to threads by wind and weather. . . .

Q What was Ibn Fadlan’s impression of the Rus? Why do you think he was so critical of their behavior?

Eastern Slavs The eastern Slavic peoples, from whom the modern Russians, White Russians (Belarusians), and Ukrainians are descended, had settled in the territory of present-day Ukraine and European Russia. There, beginning in the late eighth century, they began to contend with Viking invaders. Swedish Vikings, known to the eastern Slavs as Varangians, moved down the extensive network of rivers into the lands of the eastern Slavs in search of booty and new trade routes. After establishing commercial links with the Byzantine state, the Varangians built trading settlements, became involved in the civil wars among the Slavic peoples, and eventually came to dominate the native peoples, just as their fellow Vikings were doing in parts of western Europe. According to the traditional version of the story, the semilegendary Rurik secured his ruling dynasty in the Slavic settlement of Novgorod in 862. Rurik and his fellow Vikings were called the Rus, from which Russia, the name eventually attached to the state they founded, is derived (see the box above). Although much about Rurik is unclear, it is certain that his follower Oleg (c. 873--913) took up residence in Kiev and T HE S LAVIC P EOPLES

OF

C ENTRAL

AND

E ASTERN E UROPE

169

HE

ea d S Re

established the Rus state, a union of Atlantic Ocean Cauc east Slavic territories known as the as u s BY Mts . Cons onsta tant an antinop ant ntinop n nt t inop in ino n no o op l le Z principality of Kiev. Oleg’s succesAN Samarkand rkand EM TIN SPAIN E P sors extended their control over the IRE ANATOLIA A IA A Mediterranean Anti A t occchh SYRIA RIA eastern Slavs and expanded the Sea TUN NIS ISI SIIA S Kabull Beirut ut Baghdad territory of Kiev until it encomIsfahan PA PAL EST T INE NE E Trip Tr Tri T r ri rip p o ol oli IRA IRAQ ALGERIA PERSIA Lahore ho passed the lands between the Baltic LIB LI LIB IBY YA Jerusalem rusalem TRA RA ANS SOXIANA N Cair io Basraa Shiraz and Black Seas and the Danube and AFGHA AFGH A FGH HA H A AN NISTAN TA A AN FATIMID D Volga Rivers. By marrying Slavic Sahara M Medina EGY E EG G GYPT T IN INDIA wives, the Viking ruling class was 0 750 Kilometers Me Mecca gradually assimilated into the Slavic ARABIA 0 500 Miles population, a process confirmed by A rabi an their assumption of Slavic names. Se a Abbasid caliphate at greatest extent Aden Ade Ad A den dde een n The growth of the principality of Kiev attracted religious mission- The Abbasid Caliphate at the Height of Its Power aries, especially from the Byzantine The new capital was well placed. It took advantage of river Empire. One Rus ruler, Vladimir (c. 980--1015), married traffic to the Persian Gulf and was located on the caravan the Byzantine emperor’s sister and officially accepted route from the Mediterranean to Central Asia. The move Christianity for himself and his people in 987. His primary eastward allowed Persian influence to come to the fore, motive was probably not a spiritual one. By all accounts, encouraging a new cultural orientation. Under the Abbasids, Vladimir was a cruel and vicious man who believed an judges, merchants, and government officials, rather than established church would be helpful in the development of warriors, were regarded as the ideal citizens. an organized state. From the end of the tenth century on, The new Abbasid dynasty experienced a period of Byzantine Christianity became the model for Russian splendid rule well into the ninth century. Best known of religious life, just as Byzantine imperial ideals came to the caliphs of the time was Harun al-Rashid (786--809), influence the outward forms of Russian political life. whose reign is often described as the golden age of the Abbasid caliphate. His son al-Ma’mun (813--833) was a great patron of learning. He founded an astronomical The World of Islam observatory and created a foundation for translating Classical Greek works. This was also a period of growing Focus Question: What were the chief developments in economic prosperity. The Arabs had conquered many of the Islamic world between 750 and 1000? the richest provinces of the old Roman Empire, and they now controlled the trade routes to the east. Baghdad The Umayyad dynasty of caliphs had established Dabecame the center of an enormous trade empire that mascus as the center of an Islamic empire created by Arab extended into Europe, Asia, and Africa, greatly adding to expansion in the seventh and eighth centuries. But the wealth of the Islamic world. Umayyad rule created resentment, and the Umayyads also Despite the prosperity, all was not quite well in the helped bring about their own end by their corrupt beempire of the Abbasids. There was much fighting over the havior. One caliph, for example, supposedly swam in a succession to the caliphate. When Harun al-Rashid died, pool of wine and drank enough of it to lower the wine his two sons fought to succeed him in a struggle that level considerably. Finally, in 750, Abu al-Abbas, a dealmost destroyed the city of Baghdad. As the tenth-century scendant of the uncle of Muhammad, brought an end to Muslim historian al-Mas’udi wrote, ‘‘Mansions were dethe Umayyad dynasty and established the Abbasid dystroyed, most remarkable monuments obliterated; prices nasty, which lasted until 1258. soared. . . . Brother turned his sword against brother, son The Abbasid rulers brought much change to the world against father, as some fought for Amin, others for Ma’of Islam. They tried to break down the distinctions between mun. Houses and palaces fuelled the flames; property was Arab and non-Arab Muslims. All Muslims, regardless of put to the sack.’’8 ethnic background, could now hold both civil and military Vast wealth also gave rise to financial corruption. By offices. This helped open Islamic life to the influences of the awarding important positions to court favorites, the Abcivilizations they had conquered. Many Arabs now began to basid caliphs began to undermine the foundations of their intermarry with the peoples they had conquered. own power and become figureheads. Rulers of the provIn 762, the Abbasids built a new capital city, Baghinces of the empire broke away from the control of the dad, on the Tigris River far to the east of Damascus. Z JA

Q

170

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

Michael III

842--867

Macedonian dynasty

867--1081

Basil II

976--1025

The Slavs Establishment of Novgorod

c. 862

Conversion of Moravian Slavs by Cyril and Methodius

863

Founding of principality of Kiev

c. 873--913

Reign of Prince Mieszko; conversion of Slavs in Poland to Christianity

c. 960--992

Vladimir’s conversion to Christianity

987

Saint Stephen, king of Hungary

997--1038

Islam Overthrow of Umayyad dynasty by Abbasids

750

Creation of emirate of al-Andalus

756

Harun al-Rashid

786--809

Establishment of Fatimid caliphate in Egypt

973

caliphs and established their own independent dynasties. In the eighth century, Spain had already established its own caliphate when Abd al-Rahman of the Umayyad dynasty had fled there. In 756, he seized control of southern Spain and then expanded his power into the center of the peninsula. He took the title of emir, or commander, and set up the emirate of alAndalus (the Arabic name for Spain), with its center at Co´rdoba. Under Abd al-Rahman’s successors, a unique society developed in which all religions were tolerated. The court also supported writers and artists, creating a brilliant and flourishing culture. The fragmentation of the Islamic empire accelerated in the tenth century. A caliphate of the Fatimid family was established in Egypt in 973, and an independent dynasty also operated in North Africa. Despite the political disunity of the Islamic world, however, the underlying Islamic civilization was unified by two common bonds: the Qur’an and the Arabic language.

Islamic Civilization From the beginning of their empire, Muslim Arabs had demonstrated a willingness to

Glen Allison/Photodisc/Getty Images

The Byzantine Empire

absorb the culture of their conquered territories. The Arabs were truly heirs to the remaining Greco-Roman culture of the Roman Empire. Just as readily, they assimilated Byzantine and Persian culture. In the eighth and ninth centuries, numerous Greek, Syrian, and Persian scientific and philosophical works were translated into Arabic. As the chief language in the southern Mediterranean and the Near East and the required language of Muslims, Arabic became a truly international tongue. The Muslims created a brilliant urban culture at a time when western Europe was predominantly a world of small rural villages. This can be seen in such new cities as Baghdad and Cairo, but also in Co´rdoba, the capital of the Umayyad caliphate in Spain. With a population of possibly 100,000, Co´rdoba was Europe’s largest city after Constantinople. It had seventy public libraries, and the number of manuscripts in the caliph’s private library reached 400,000. One caliph collected books from different parts of the world and then had them translated into Arabic and Latin. These included works on geography that later proved valuable to Western sailors and merchants. Schools were also established, and the Great Mosque of Co´rdoba became a center for scholars from all over the Islamic world. Large numbers of women served as teachers and librarians in Co´rdoba. During the first few centuries of the Arab empire, it was the Islamic world that saved and spread the scientific

c

CHRONOLOGY Byzantium, the Slavs, and the Islamic World

Mosque at Co´rdoba. The first Great Mosque of Co´rdoba was built by Abd al-Rahman, founder of the Umayyad dynasty of Spain, in the eighth century. The mosque was later enlarged in the tenth century. Shown here is the interior of the sanctuary, with its two levels of arches. Although the Umayyad caliphs of Damascus were overthrown and replaced by the Abbasid dynasty in the eighth century, the independent Umayyad dynasty in Spain lasted until the eleventh century.

T HE WORLD

OF

I SLAM

171

and philosophical works of ancient civilizations. At a time when the ancient Greek philosophers were largely unknown in Europe, key works by Plato and Aristotle were translated into Arabic. They were put in a library called the House of Wisdom in Baghdad, where they were read and studied by Muslim scholars. Texts on mathematics were brought from India. This process was aided by the use of paper. The making of paper was introduced from China in the eighth century, and by the end of the century, paper factories had been established in Baghdad. Booksellers and libraries soon followed. European universities later benefited from this scholarship when these works were translated from Arabic into Latin. Although Islamic scholars are rightly praised for preserving much of Classical knowledge for the West, they also made considerable advances of their own. Nowhere is this more evident than in their contributions to mathematics and the natural sciences. The list of achievements in mathematics and astronomy alone is impressive. The Muslims adopted and passed on the numerical system of India, including the use of the zero. In Europe, it became known as the Arabic system. Al-Khwarizmi,

a ninth-century Iranian mathematician, developed the mathematical discipline of algebra. In astronomy, the Muslims were aware that the earth was round, and they set up an observatory at Baghdad to study the stars, many of which they named. They also perfected the astrolabe, an instrument used by sailors to determine their location by observing the positions of heavenly bodies. It was the astrolabe that made it possible for Europeans to sail to the Americas. Muslim scholars also made discoveries in chemistry and developed medicine as a field of scientific study. Especially renowned was Ibn Sina (980--1037), known as Avicenna in the West, who wrote a medical encyclopedia that, among other things, stressed the contagious nature of certain diseases and showed how they could be spread by contaminated water supplies. After its translation into Latin, Avicenna’s work became a basic medical textbook for medieval European university students. Avicenna was but one of many Arabic scholars whose work was translated into Latin and helped the development of intellectual life in Europe in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries.

TIMELINE 750

800

850

900

950

1000

Western Europe

Reign of Charlemagne Viking raids and settlements

Eastern Europe

Beginnings of the principality of Kiev

Vladimir, prince of Kiev, accepts Christianity

Work of Cyril and Methodius

Byzantine Empire

World of Islam

Macedonian dynasty in the Byzantine Empire

Overthrow of Umayyad dynasty by Abbasids

Fatimid caliphate begins in Egypt Work of Avicenna

172

C H A P T E R 8 EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION IN THE EARLY MIDDLE AGES, 750–1000

CONCLUSION After the turmoil of the disintegration of the Roman Empire and the establishment of the Germanic states, a new European civilization began to emerge in the Early Middle Ages. The coronation of Charlemagne, descendant of a Germanic tribe converted to Christianity, as Roman emperor in 800 symbolized the fusion of the three chief components of the new European civilization: the German tribes, the Classical tradition, and Christianity. In the long run, the creation of a western empire fostered the idea of a distinct European identity and marked the shift of power from the south to the north. Italy and the Mediterranean had been the center of the Roman Empire. The lands north of the Alps now became the political center of Europe.

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING General Histories of the Middle Ages Good general histories of the entire medieval period can be found in S. Painter and B. Tierney, Western Europe in the Middle Ages, 300--1475 (New York, 1983); E. Peters, Europe and the Middle Ages, 2d ed. (Englewood Cliffs, N.J., 1989); D. Nicholas, The Evolution of the Medieval World: Society, Government, and Thought in Europe, 312--1500 (London, 1993); and G. Holmes, ed., The Oxford Illustrated History of Medieval Europe (Oxford, 1988). For a good general survey of the social history of the Middle Ages, see C. B. Bouchard, Life and Society in the West: Antiquity and the Middle Ages (San Diego, Calif., 1988). For a brief history of the period covered in this chapter, see R. Collins, Early Medieval Europe, 300--1000 (New York, 1991). See also the brief works by B. Rosenwein, A Short History of the Middle Ages (Orchard Park, N.Y., 2002), and C. W. Hollister and J. Bennett, Medieval Europe: A Short History, 9th ed. (New York, 2001). For a good collection of essays, see R. McKitterick, ed., Early Middle Ages: Europe, 400--1000 (Oxford, 2001). Carolingian Europe Surveys of Carolingian Europe include P. Riche´, The Carolingians: A Family Who Forged Europe (Philadelphia, 1993), and R. McKitterick, The Frankish Kingdoms Under the Carolingians, 751--987 (London, 1983). On Charlemagne, see A. Barbero, Charlemagne: Father of a Continent, trans. A. Cameron (Berkeley, Calif., 2004). On Carolingian culture, see History and Memory in the Carolingian World (Cambridge, 2004), Carolingian Culture: Emulation and Innovation (New York, 1994), and the collection of essays titled The Frankish Kings and Culture in the Early Middle Ages (Brookfield, Vt., 1995), all by R. McKitterick. Carolingian Social Life Various aspects of social life in the Carolingian world are examined in P. Riche´, Daily Life in the World of Charlemagne, trans. J. A. McNamara (Philadelphia, 1978); C. B. Bouchard, Life and Society in the West: Antiquity and the Middle Ages (San Diego, Calif., 1988), ch. 5; and L. Bitel, Women in Early Medieval Europe, 400--1100 (Cambridge, 2002). On attitudes toward sexuality in the early Christian church, see the important works by P. Brown, The Body and Society (New York, 1988), and E. Pagels, Adam, Eve, and the Serpent (New York, 1988).

With the disintegration of the Carolingian Empire, new political institutions began to develop in Europe, characterized by a decentralization of political control in which lords exercised legal, administrative, and military power. The practice of fief-holding transferred public authority into private hands and provided the security sorely lacking in a time of weak central government and repeated invasions by Muslims, Magyars, and Vikings. While Europe struggled, the Byzantine and Islamic worlds continued to prosper and flourish, the brilliance of their urban cultures standing in marked contrast to the underdeveloped rural world of Europe. By 1000, however, the region had not only recovered but was beginning to expand in ways undreamed of by previous generations. Europe stood poised for a giant leap.

The Vikings The Vikings are examined in M. Arnold, The Vikings: Culture and Conquest (London, 2006); R. Hall, The World of the Vikings (New York, 2007); F. D. Logan, The Vikings in History, 2d ed. (London, 1991); G. Jones, A History of the Vikings, rev. ed. (Oxford, 2001); and P. Sawyer, ed., The Oxford Illustrated History of the Vikings (New York, 1997). Fief-Holding Two introductory works on fief-holding are J. R. Strayer, Feudalism (Princeton, N.J., 1985), and the classic work by M. Bloch, Feudal Society, trans. L. A. Manyon (London, 1961). For an important revisionist view, see S. Reynolds, Fiefs and Vassals (Oxford, 1994). Economic History For the economic history of the Early Middle Ages, see A. E. Verhulst, The Carolingian Economy (Cambridge, 2002). On the manorial court, see Z. Razi and R. Smith, eds., Medieval Society and the Manor Court (New York, 1996). Byzantine Empire and Slavic Peoples Byzantine civilization in this period is examined in R. Jenkins, Byzantium: The Imperial Centuries, 610--1071 (New York, 1969), and W. Treadgold, The Byzantine Revival, 780--842 (Stanford, Calif., 1988). On the Slavic peoples of central and eastern Europe, see A. P. Vlasto, The Entry of the Slavs into Christendom (Cambridge, 1970); Z. Vana, The World of the Ancient Slavs (London, 1983); and S. Franklin and J. Shepard, The Emergence of Rus, 750--1200 (New York, 1996). World of Islam The world of Islam in this period is discussed in H. Kennedy, The Prophet and the Age of the Caliphates: The Islamic Near East from the Sixth to the Eleventh Century (London, 1986), and J. Lassner, The Shaping of Abbasid Rule (Princeton, N.J., 1980). For a broad view on the relations between Islam and the West, see B. Lewis, Islam and the West (Oxford, 1994).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

C ONCLUSION

173

174

CHAPTER 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

Q

Mary Evans Picture Library/The Image Works

Land and People in the High Middle Ages What new agricultural practices arose in the High Middle Ages? What roles did peasants and aristocrats play in the civilization of the period?

The New World of Trade and Cities What developments contributed to the revival of trade during the High Middle Ages, and what areas were its primary beneficiaries? What were the major features of medieval cities?

The Intellectual and Artistic World of the High Middle Ages

Q

What were the major intellectual and cultural achievements of European civilization in the High Middle Ages?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

What is the relationship between economic and social changes and intellectual and artistic developments in the High Middle Ages?

c

Q

Street scene in a thirteenth-century English town

THE NEW EUROPEAN CIVILIZATION that had emerged in the ninth and tenth centuries began to come into its own in the eleventh and twelfth centuries as Europeans established new patterns that reached their zenith in the thirteenth century. The High Middle Ages (1000--1300) was a period of recovery and growth for Western civilization, characterized by a greater sense of security and a burst of energy and enthusiasm. New agricultural practices that increased the food supply helped spur a commercial and urban revival that, accompanied by a rising population, gave a new dynamism to a formerly static society. Townspeople themselves were often great enthusiasts for their new way of life. In the twelfth century, William Fitz-Stephen spoke of London as one of the noble cities of the world: ‘‘It is happy in the healthiness of its air, in the Christian religion, in the strength of its defences, the nature of its site, the honor of its citizens, the modesty of its women; pleasant in sports; fruitful of noble men.’’ To Fitz-Stephen, London offered myriad opportunities and pleasures. Fairs and markets were held regularly, and ‘‘practically anything that man may need is brought daily not only into special places but even into the open squares.’’ Any man, according to Fitz-Stephen, ‘‘if he is healthy and not a good-for-nothing, may earn his living expenses 175

and esteem according to his station.’’ Then, too, there are the happy inhabitants of the city: Where else has one ‘‘ever met such a wonderful show of people this side or the other side of the sea’’? Sporting events and leisure activities are available in every season of the year: ‘‘In Easter holidays they fight battles on water.’’ In summer, ‘‘the youths are exercised in leaping, dancing, shooting, wrestling, casting the stone; the maidens dance as long as they can well see.’’ In winter, ‘‘when the great fen, or moor, which waters the walls of the city on the north side, is frozen, many young men play upon the ice; some, striding as wide as they may, do slide swiftly.’’1 To Fitz-Stephen, ‘‘every convenience for human pleasure is known to be at hand’’ in London. One would hardly know from his cheerful description that medieval cities faced overcrowded conditions, terrible smells from rotting garbage and raw sewage, and the constant challenge of epidemics and fires. By the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, both the urban centers and the urban population of Europe were experiencing a dramatic expansion. New forms of cultural and intellectual expression also arose in this new urban world. Although European society in the High Middle Ages remained overwhelmingly agricultural, the growth of trade and cities along with the development of a money economy and new commercial practices and institutions constituted a veritable commercial revolution that affected most of Europe.

Land and People in the High Middle Ages

Q Focus Questions: What new agricultural practices arose in the High Middle Ages? What roles did peasants and aristocrats play in the civilization of the period?

In the Early Middle Ages, Europe was a sparsely populated expanse dotted with villages of farmers and warriors and covered with forests, which provided building and heating materials and food in the form of game. The climate had begun to improve around 700 after centuries of wetter and colder conditions, but natural disasters remained a threat. Drought or too much rain could mean bad harvests, famine, and dietary deficiencies that made people susceptible to a wide range of diseases. Life expectancy remained low. The High Middle Ages, from 1000 to 1300, witnessed continued improvement in climate as a small rise in temperature made for longer and better growing seasons. At the same time, Europe experienced a dramatic increase in population, from 38.5 to 73.5 million people (see Table 9.1). This was physically evident in the growth of agricultural villages, towns, and cities and an increase in land under cultivation. What accounted for this dramatic rise in population? For one thing, conditions in Europe were more settled and peaceful after the invasions of the Early Middle Ages 176

TABLE 9.1 Population Estimates (in millions),

1000 and 1340 AREA Mediterranean Greece and Balkans Italy Iberia Total Western and Central Europe France and Low Countries British Isles Germany and Scandinavia Total Eastern Europe Russia Poland Hungary Total Total

1000

1340

5 5 7 17

6 10 9 25

6 2 4 12

19 5 11.5 35.5

6 2 1.5 9.5 38.5

8 3 2 13 73.5

SOURCE: J. C. Russell, The Control of Late Ancient and Medieval Population (Philadelphia: American Philosophical Society, 1985), p. 36. These are estimates; some figures, especially those for eastern Europe, could be radically revised by new research.

had ended. Agricultural production also rose dramatically after 1000. Were it not for this increase in food supplies, the greater population could never have been sustained.

The New Agriculture During the High Middle Ages, significant changes occurred in the way Europeans farmed. In addition to the improved growing conditions, another factor in increasing the output of food was the increase in arable land, achieved chiefly by clearing forested areas for cultivation (see the box on p. 177). Land-hungry peasants cut down trees and drained swamps. By the thirteenth century, the total acreage used for farming in Europe was greater than at any time before or since. Technological Changes Technological changes also furthered the development of agriculture. Many of these depended on the use of iron, which was mined in various areas of Europe. Iron was in demand to make swords and armor as well as scythes, axheads, and hoes for use on farms and saws, hammers, and nails for building purposes. Iron was crucial in making the carruca, a heavy, wheeled plow strong enough to turn over the dense clay soil north of the Alps and allow for drainage. Because of the carruca’s weight, six or eight oxen were needed to pull it, but oxen were slow. Two new inventions for the horse made it possible to plow faster. A new horse collar, which appeared in the tenth century, distributed the weight around the shoulders and chest, rather than along the throat, and could be used to hitch up a series

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

of horses, enabling them to pull the heavy new plow faster and cultivate more land. And horseshoes, iron pads nailed to the horses’ hooves, gave them better traction in the rocky, clayey soil. The use of the heavy, wheeled plow also led to cooperative agricultural villages. Because iron was expensive, the plow had to be purchased by the entire community. Similarly, an individual family could not afford a team of animals, so villagers shared their beasts. Moreover, the plow’s size and weight made it hard to maneuver, so land was cultivated in long strips to minimize the amount of turning that would have to be done. People in the High Middle Ages learned to harness the power of water and wind to do jobs formerly done by human or animal muscle. Mills, located along streams and powered by the rushing water, were used to grind grain and produce flour. Dams were built to increase the force of the water. The development of the cam enabled millwrights to mechanize entire industries; waterpower was used in certain phases of cloth production and to run trip-hammers for the working of metals. The Chinese had made use of the cam in operating trip-hammers for hulling rice by the third century A.D. but had apparently not extended its use to other industries. Europeans also developed windmills to capture the power of the wind. Historians are unsure if windmills were imported into Europe (they were invented in Persia) or designed independently by Europeans. In either case, by

the end of the twelfth century, these were beginning to dot the European landscape. The watermill and windmill were the most important inventions for the harnessing of power until the steam engine in the eighteenth century, and their spread had revolutionary consequences for producing more food. The Three-Field System The shift from a two-field to a three-field system also contributed to the increase in agricultural production. In the Early Middle Ages, it was common to plant one field while allowing another of equal size to lie fallow to regain its fertility. Now estates were divided into three parts. One field was planted in the fall with winter grains, such as rye and wheat, while spring grains, such as oats and barley, and vegetables, such as peas, beans, or lentils, were planted in the second field. The third was allowed to lie fallow. By rotating the fields, only one-third, rather than one-half, of the land lay fallow at any time. The rotation of crops also prevented the soil from being exhausted so quickly, and more crops could now be grown. By the thirteenth century, increasing demand for agricultural produce in the towns and cities led to higher food prices. This encouraged lords to try to grow more food for profit. One way to do this was to lease their demesne land to their serfs. Labor services were then transformed into money payments or fixed rents, thereby converting many unfree serfs into free peasants. Although L AND

AND

P EOPLE

IN THE

H IGH M IDDLE A GES

177

the village church, a crucial part of manorial life. In the village church, the peasant was baptized as an infant, confirmed in his or her faith, sometimes married, and given the sacrament of Holy Communion as well as the last rites of the church before death. The village priest taught the peasants the basic elements of Christianity so that they would gain the Christian’s ultimate goal, salvation. The lifestyle of the peasants was very simple. Their Life of the Peasantry cottages consisted of wood frames with walls made of laths or sticks; the spaces between the laths were stuffed Peasant activities were largely determined by the seasons with straw and rubble and then plastered over with clay. of the year. Each season brought a new round of tasks Roofs were thatched. The houses of poorer peasants appropriate for the time, although some periods were consisted of a single room, but others had at least two considerably more hectic than others, especially harvest rooms---a main room for cooking, eating, and other actime in August and September. A new cycle began in tivities and another room for sleeping. There was little October, when the peasants prepared the ground for privacy in a medieval peasant household. planting winter crops. In February and March, the land Peasant women occupied both an important and a was plowed for spring crops---oats, barley, peas, beans, difficult position in manorial society. They were exand lentils. Early summer was a comparatively relaxed pected to carry and bear their children and at the time, although there was still weeding and sheepshearing same time fulfill their obligation to labor in the fields. to be done. In every season, serfs worked not only their Their ability to manage the household might determine own land but also the lord’s demesne. They also tended whether a peasant family would starve or survive in the small gardens attached to their dwellings where they difficult times. grew the vegetables that made up much of their diet. Though simple, a peasant’s daily diet was nutritious Religious feast days, Sunday Mass, baptisms, marwhen food was available. The basic staple of the peasant riages, and funerals all brought peasants into contact with diet, and the medieval diet in general, was bread. After the women made dough for the bread, the loaves were baked in community ovens, which were owned by the lord of the manor. Peasant bread generally contained not only wheat and rye but also barley, millet, and oats, giving it a dark appearance and a heavy, hard texture. Bread was supplemented by vegetables from the household gardens, cheese from cow’s or goat’s milk, nuts and berries from woodlands, and fruits such as apples, pears, and cherries. Chickens provided eggs and sometimes meat. Grains were important not only for bread but also for making ale. In northern Europe, ale was the most common drink of the poor. If records are accurate, enormous quantities of it were consumed. A monastery in the twelfth century records a daily allotment to the monks of three gallons a day, far above the weekend consumption of many present-day college Peasant Activities. The kind of work that European peasants did was dictated by the month and the students. Peasants in the field undoubtseason. This French calendar of 1460 shows a number of medieval farming activities, including sowing seeds, edly consumed even more. This high harvesting crops, pruning plants, shearing sheep, threshing, pressing grapes, and taking care of animals.

c

Re´union des Muse´es Nationaux/Art Resource, NY

many peasants still remained economically dependent on their lords, they were no longer legally tied to the land. Lords, in turn, became collectors of rents rather than operators of manors with both political and legal privileges. The political and legal powers once exercised by lords were increasingly reclaimed by the monarchical states.

178

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

consumption of alcohol might explain the large number of accidental deaths recorded in medieval court records.

The Way of the Warrior At the age of seven or eight, the sons of the nobility were sent either to a clerical school to pursue a religious career or to another nobleman’s castle, where they prepared for the life of a noble. Their chief lessons were military; they learned how to joust, hunt, ride, and handle weapons properly. After his apprenticeship in knighthood, at about the age of twenty-one, a young man formally entered the adult world in a ceremony of ‘‘knighting.’’ A sponsor girded a sword on the young candidate and struck him on the cheek or neck with an open hand (or later touched him three times on the shoulder with the blade of a sword), possibly signifying the passing of the sponsor’s military valor to the new knight. In the eleventh and twelfth centuries, under the influence of the church, an ideal of civilized behavior called

c

In the High Middle Ages, European society was dominated by a group of men whose chief preoccupation was warfare---the lords and vassals of medieval society. The lords were the kings, dukes, counts, barons, and viscounts (and even bishops and archbishops) who held extensive lands and considerable political power. They formed an aristocracy or nobility that held real political, economic, and social power. Nobles relied for military help on knights, mounted warriors who fought for them in return for weapons and daily sustenance. As warriors united by the institution of knighthood, lords and knights came to form a common group, albeit a group with social divisions based on extremes of wealth and landholdings. Medieval theory maintained that the warlike qualities of the nobility were justified by their role as defenders of society, and the growth of the European nobility in the High Middle Ages was made visible by an increasing number of castles scattered across the landscape. Although castle architecture varied considerably, castles did possess two common features: they were permanent residences for the noble family, its retainers, and servants, and they were defensible fortifications. For defensive purposes, castles were surrounded by open areas and large stone walls. At the heart of the castle was the keep, a large, multistoried building that housed kitchens, stables, and storerooms; a great hall for visitors, dining, and administrative business; and numerous rooms for sleeping and living. The growing wealth of the High Middle Ages made it possible for the European nobility to build more complex castles with thicker walls and more elaborately decorated interiors. As castles became more sturdily built, they proved to be more easily defended and harder to seize by force.

Re´union des Muse´es Nationaux/Art Resource, NY

The Aristocracy of the High Middle Ages

Castle and Aristocrats. This illustration is from the Tre`s Riches Heures (Very Sumptuous Hours) of Jean, duke of Berry. The three Limbourg brothers created this ‘‘book of hours,’’ which was a book containing prayers to be recited at different times each day. This scene depicts the chaˆteau at Dourdan, France, and its surrounding lands. In the foreground, elaborately dressed aristocratic men and women are seen amusing themselves.

chivalry gradually evolved among the nobility. Chivalry represented a code of ethics that knights were supposed to uphold. In addition to defending the church and the defenseless, knights were expected to treat captives as honored guests instead of putting them in dungeons. Chivalry also implied that knights should fight only for glory, but this account of a group of English knights by a medieval writer reveals another motive for battle: ‘‘The whole city was plundered to the last farthing, and then they proceeded to rob all the churches throughout the city, . . . and seizing gold and silver, cloth of all colors, gold rings, goblets, and precious stones . . . they all returned to their own lords rich men.’’2 Apparently, not all chivalric ideals were taken seriously. L AND

AND

P EOPLE

IN THE

H IGH M IDDLE A GES

179

Text not available due to copyright restrictions

After his formal initiation into the world of warriors, a young man returned home to find himself once again subject to his parents’ authority. Young men were discouraged from marrying until their fathers died, at which time they could marry and become lords of the castle. Trained to be warriors but with no adult responsibilities, young knights had little to do but fight. As the church stepped up efforts to curb socially destructive fighting in the twelfth century, tournaments began to be organized. Initially, tournaments consisted of the melee, in which warriors on horseback fought with blunted weapons in free-for-all combat. By late in the century, the melee was preceded by the joust, individual combat between two knights. Gradually, the joust became the main part of the tournament. Knights saw tournaments as an excellent way to train for war. As one knight explained, ‘‘A knight cannot distinguish himself in [war] if he has not trained for it in tourneys. He must have seen his blood flow, heard his teeth crack under fist blows, felt his opponent’s weight bear down upon him as he lay on the ground and, 180

after being twenty times unhorsed, have risen twenty times to fight.’’3 Aristocratic Women Although women could legally hold property, most women remained under the control of men---their fathers until they married (usually at the age of fifteen or sixteen) and their husbands after they married. Nevertheless, aristocratic women had numerous opportunities for playing important roles. Because the lord was often away at war, on a Crusade (see Chapter 10), or at court, the lady of the castle had to manage the estate, a considerable responsibility in view of the fact that households, even of lesser aristocrats, could include large numbers of officials and servants. The lady of the castle was also responsible on a regular basis for overseeing the food supply and maintaining all other supplies for the smooth operation of the household. Although women were expected to be subservient to their husbands (see the box above), there were many strong women who advised and sometimes even dominated

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

conditions of the Early Middle Ages, large-scale trade had declined in western Europe except for Byzantine contacts with Italy and the Jewish traders who moved back and forth between the Muslim and Christian worlds. By the end of the tenth century, however, people with both the skills and the products for commercial activity were emerging in Europe. Cities in Italy assumed a leading role in the revival of trade (see Map 9.1). By the end of the eighth century, Venice, on the northeastern coast, had emerged as a town with close trading ties to the Byzantine Empire. It developed a mercantile fleet and by the end of the tenth century had become the chief western trading center for Byzantine and Islamic commerce. Other coastal communities in western Italy, such as Genoa and Pisa, also opened new trade routes. In the High Middle Ages, Italian merchants became even more daring in their trade activities. They established trading posts in Cairo, Damascus, and a number of Black Sea ports, where they acquired goods brought by Muslim merchants from India, China, and Southeast Asia. A few Italian merchants even journeyed to India and China in search of trade (see the box on p. 183). The New World of Trade While the northern Italian cities were busy trading in and Cities the Mediterranean, the towns of Flanders were doing likewise in northern Europe. Flanders, the area along the Focus Questions: What developments contributed to coast of present-day Belgium and northern France, was the revival of trade during the High Middle Ages, and known for the production of a much desired, highwhat areas were its primary beneficiaries? What were quality woolen cloth. The location of Flanders made it a the major features of medieval cities? logical entrepoˆt for the traders of northern Europe. Merchants from England, Scandinavia, France, and Medieval Europe was an overwhelmingly agrarian sociGermany converged there to trade their wares for woolen ety, with most people living in small villages. In the cloth. Flanders prospered in the eleventh and twelfth eleventh and twelfth centuries, however, new elements centuries, and such Flemish towns as Bruges and Ghent were introduced that began to transform the economic became centers for the trade and foundation of Western civilization: a manufacture of woolen cloth. revival of trade, considerable expan0 300 600Kil Killome meter me met ters errs By the twelfth century, it was sion in the circulation of money, a 0 150 300 000 M Miile Mil illlees almost inevitable that a regular restoration of specialized craftspeople exchange of goods would develop and artisans, and the growth and Berggeenn SWEDEN NORWAY between Flanders and Italy. To development of towns. These changes encourage this trade, the counts of were made possible by the new agriChampagne in northern France cultural practices and subsequent inEdi Ed dinb nb nburgh devised a series of six fairs held crease in food production, which No r t h annually in the chief towns of freed some European families from S ea Lüübeck Lübeck Lüb L ck ck their territory. Northern merthe need to produce their own food. ENG GLAN GL LAN AND Ham Ham mbbur urg chants brought the furs, woolen Merchants and artisans could now Londo don d do oon n Bru B ru uges ges cloth, tin, hemp, and honey of buy their necessities. northern Europe to the fairs of Ghent nt Champagne and exchanged them The Revival of Trade Paris for the cloth and swords of Trade routes northern Italy and the silks, sugar, The revival of commercial activity was and spices of the East. a gradual process. During the chaotic Flanders as a Trade Center their husbands. Perhaps the most famous was Eleanor of Aquitaine (c. 1122--1204), heiress to the duchy of Aquitaine in southwestern France. Married to King Louis VII of France (1137--1180), Eleanor accompanied her husband on a Crusade, but her alleged affair with her uncle during the Crusade led Louis to have their marriage annulled. Eleanor then married Henry, duke of Normandy and count of Anjou, who became King Henry II of England (1154-1189). She took an active role in politics, even assisting her sons in rebelling against Henry in 1173 and 1174. Blanche of Castile (1188--1252) was another powerful medieval queen. She became regent while her son Louis IX was a boy and ruled France with a powerful hand during much of the 1220s and 1230s. She repelled the attempt of some rebellious French nobles to seize her son, the young king, and defeated Henry III of England when he tried to incite an uprising in France in an attempt to reconquer Normandy. Blanche’s political sense was so astute that even when Louis IX came of age, he continued to rely on her as his chief adviser. One medieval chronicler gave her the highest compliment he could think of: ‘‘She ruled as a man.’’

Q

T HE N EW WORLD

OF

T RADE

AND

C ITIES

181

a

Area of cloth production

Bal ti c

Se Beergen n

Area of linen production

Stoc St Sto toc tto o kh khol h m

Area of silk production Novgorod

Edi din d inburgh

Dublin D

No r t h Sea

Lüb L Lü üüb übe bbeeck k

S

Augsburg Miiilan Mila M

Alum Wine

.

S

Astrakhan

nube

S

A

A

Belgrade B Be elg R.

Black

Sea

pi

Constantinople inople plee

Napl Nap ples les es

an

A Ro Rom R ome om me m A

Silver

as Trebizond

Sea

Cóórdoba Có ob

Co ica Cors caa Bar arcelona arc ar lon Ba Balearic Isla Isl lands Sarrdini niia Vaal V aale le l ncia ciiaa

S

Fllorren F eence cee

Salt

C

Tole T To o do

S

Da

Venice Ve V

Bordeeau ux x Gen G en nooaa noa

Dn iep er R

Budapest udapest

S

Kiev

Vienna ie na

S

Gold

Other metals

R.

Cr o Cracow Nurem g Nuremberg Nurem

Lyon Lyo Lyons L onnss

V is

zi zig S Leipzig

Frra rankffu furrtt

Pariss

Lissbo onn

Da zig Danzig ig

tul a

Lon Lond Lo on oond ndon nd Brug Br B ugges ug e es Gh G Ghen hhen hent nt

A t l an t i c Ocean

S

Ham Hamb Ham mbburg m rg rg

S

Winc W nches hest hest estter es este er

Trade routes

S

A Tabriz Siic Sici Sic ic llyy Mosul

Tunis Cre Cr C rette

Mediterranean

Sea

Cyppr pruss Baghdad ad Damascus

Tripoli Alexandri Alexandria

300

600

900 Kilometers

Pe

rs

600 Miles

n

ia

300

le Ni

G

ul

f

R.

Red Sea MAP 9.1 Medieval Trade Routes. Italian cities and Flanders were the centers of gradually expanding trade in Europe. They fostered the exchange of goods from the Byzantine Empire and the Far East with those of various regions of Europe. The diminishing threats of violence over time greatly helped trade. Q Look at Map 6.2. In what areas had trade expanded, and how can you account for this? View an animated version of this map or related maps at www.cengage.com/history/ spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

The Growth of Cities

to store their goods. Towns had greatly declined in the Early Middle Ages, especially in Europe north of the Alps. Old Roman cities continued to exist but had dwindled in size and population. With the revival of trade, merchants began to settle in these old cities, followed by craft workers or artisans, people who had developed skills on manors or elsewhere and now perceived the opportunity to ply their trade producing objects that could be sold by the merchants. In the course of the eleventh and twelfth centuries, the old Roman cities came alive with new residents.

The revival of trade led to a revival of cities. Merchants needed places where they could live and build warehouses

Founding of New Cities and Towns Beginning in the late tenth century, many new cities and towns were founded,

As trade increased, both gold and silver came to be in demand at fairs and trading markets of all kinds. Slowly, a money economy began to emerge. New trading companies as well as banking firms were set up to manage the exchange and sale of goods. All of these new practices were part of the rise of commercial capitalism, an economic system in which people invested in trade and goods in order to make profits.

182

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

AN ITALIAN BANKER DISCUSSES TRADING BETWEEN EUROPE Working on behalf of a banking guild in Florence, Francesco Balducci Pegolotti journeyed to England and Cyprus. As a result of his contacts with many Italian merchants, he acquired considerable information about long-distance trade between Europe and China. In this account, written in 1340, he provides advice for Italian merchants.

Francesco Balducci Pegolotti, An Account of Traders Between Europe and China In the first place, you must let your beard grow long and not shave. And at Tana [modern Rostov] you should furnish yourself with a guide. And you must not try to save money in the matter of guides by taking a bad one instead of a good one. For the additional wages of the good one will not cost you so much as you will save by having him. And besides the guide it will be well to take at least two good menservants who are acquainted with the Turkish tongue. . . . The road you travel from Tana to China is perfectly safe, whether by day or night, according to what the merchants say who have used it. Only if the merchant, in going or coming, should die

particularly in northern Europe. Usually, a group of merchants established a settlement near some fortified stronghold, such as a castle or monastery. The original meaning of the English borough or burgh and the German Burg as a fortress or walled enclosure is still evident in the names of many cities, such as Edinburgh and Hamburg. Castles were particularly favored because they were usually located along major routes of transportation or at the intersection of two important trade routes; the lords of the castle also offered protection. As the settlement prospered and expanded outward, new walls were built to protect it. Most towns were closely tied to their surrounding territories because they were dependent on the countryside for their food supplies. In addition, they were often part of the territory belonging to a lord and were subject to his jurisdiction. Although lords wanted to treat towns and townspeople as they would their vassals and serfs, cities had totally different needs and a different perspective. Townspeople needed mobility to trade. Consequently, the merchants and artisans of these boroughs and burghs, who came to be called burghers or bourgeois, constituted a revolutionary group who needed their own unique laws to meet their requirements. Since the townspeople were profiting from the growth of trade and sale of their products, they were willing to pay for the right to make their own laws and govern themselves. In many instances, lords and kings saw the potential for vast new sources

AND

CHINA

upon the road, everything belonging to him will become the possession of the lord in the country in which he dies. . . . And in like manner if he dies in China. . . . China is a province which contains a multitude of cities and towns. Among others there is one in particular, that is to say the capital city, to which many merchants are attracted, and in which there is a vast amount of trade; this city is called Khanbaliq [modern Beijing]. And the said city has a circuit of one hundred miles, and is all full of people and houses and of dwellers. . . . Whatever silver the merchants may carry with them as far as China, the emperor of China will take from them and put into his treasury. And to merchants who thus bring silver they give that paper money of theirs in exchange . . . and with this money you can readily buy silk and all other merchandise that you have a desire to buy. And all the people of the country are bound to receive it. And yet you shall not pay a higher price for your goods because your money is of paper.

Q What were Francesco Pegolotti’s impressions of China? Were they positive or negative? Explain your answer.

of revenues and were willing to grant (or sell) to the townspeople the liberties they were beginning to demand. By 1100, burghers were obtaining charters of liberties from their territorial lords that granted them the privileges they wanted, including the right to bequeath goods and sell property, freedom from any military obligation to the lord, written urban law that guaranteed them their freedom, and the right to become a free person after residing a year and a day in the town. The last provision made it possible for a runaway serf who could avoid capture to become a free person in a city. Almost all new urban communities gained these elementary liberties, but only some towns obtained the right to govern themselves by choosing their own officials and administering their own courts of law. City Governments Over time, medieval cities developed their own governments for running the affairs of the community. Citizens (males who had been born in the city or who had lived there for some time) elected members of a city council that ran the affairs of the city and also served as judges and magistrates. The electoral process was carefully engineered to ensure that only members of the wealthiest and most powerful families, who came to be called the patricians, were elected. City governments kept close watch over the activities of their community. To care for the welfare of the community, a government might regulate air and water pollution; provide water barrels and delegate responsibility T HE N EW WORLD

OF

T RADE

AND

C ITIES

183

to people in every section of the town to fight fires, which were an ever-present danger; construct warehouses to stockpile grain in the event of food emergencies; and set the standards of weights and measures used in the various local industries. Urban crime was not a major problem in the towns of the High Middle Ages because the relatively small size of communities made it difficult for criminals to operate openly. Nevertheless, medieval urban governments did organize town guards to patrol the streets by night and the city walls by day. People caught committing criminal acts were quickly tried for their offenses. Serious offenses, such as murder, were punished by execution, usually by hanging. Lesser crimes were punished by fines, flogging, or branding. Medieval cities remained relatively small in comparison to either ancient or modern cities. A large trading city would number about 5,000 inhabitants. By 1300, London was the largest city in England, with almost 40,000 people. On the Continent north of the Alps, only a few great urban centers of commerce, such as Bruges and Ghent, had a population close to that. Italian cities tended to be larger, with Venice, Florence, Genoa, Milan, and Naples numbering almost 100,000 inhabitants each. Even the largest European city, however, seemed insignificant alongside the Byzantine capital of Constantinople or the Arab cities of Damascus, Baghdad, and Cairo. For a long time to come, Europe remained predominantly rural, but in the long run, the rise of towns and the growth of trade laid the foundations for the eventual transformation of Europe from a rural agricultural society to an urban industrial one.

Life in the Medieval City Medieval towns were surrounded by stone walls that were expensive to build, so the space within was precious and tightly filled. This gave medieval cities their characteristic appearance of narrow, winding streets with houses crowded against each other and the second and third stories of the dwellings built out over the streets. Because dwellings were constructed mostly of wood before the fourteenth century and candles and wood fires were used for light and heat, the danger of fire was great. Medieval cities burned rapidly once a fire started. Most of the people who lived in cities were merchants involved in trade and artisans engaged in manufacturing of some kind. Generally, merchants and artisans had their own sections within a city. The merchant area included warehouses, inns, and taverns. Artisan sections were usually divided along craft lines; each craft had its own street where its activity was pursued. The physical environment of many medieval cities was not pleasant. They were often dirty and rife with 184

smells from animal and human waste deposited in backyard privies or on the streets. Air pollution was also a fact of life, not only from the ubiquitous wood fires but also from the use of a cheaper fuel, coal, employed industrially by lime burners, brewers, and dyers, as well as by poor people who could not afford to purchase wood. Cities were also unable to stop water pollution, especially from the tanning and animal-slaughtering industries. Butchers dumped blood and waste products from their animals into the river, while tanners threw in tannic acids, dried blood, fat, hair, and wastes. Because of the pollution, cities were not inclined to use the rivers for drinking water but relied instead on wells. Some communities repaired the system of aqueducts left over from Roman times, and some even constructed new ones. Private and public baths also existed in medieval towns. Paris, for example, had thirty-two public baths for men and women. City laws did not allow lepers and people with ‘‘bad reputations’’ to use them, but such measures did not prevent the public baths from being known for permissiveness. One contemporary commented on what occurred in public bathhouses: ‘‘Shameful things. Men make a point of staying all night in the public baths and women at the break of day come in and through ‘ignorance’ find themselves in the men’s rooms.’’4 Authorities came under increasing pressure to close the baths down, and the great plague of the fourteenth century sealed their fate. There were considerably more men than women in medieval cities. Women, in addition to supervising the household, purchasing food and preparing meals, raising the children, and managing the family finances, were also often expected to help their husbands in their trades. Some women also developed their own trades, such as brewing ale or making glass, to earn extra money. Sometimes when master craftsmen died, their widows carried on their trades. Some women in medieval towns were thus able to lead lives of considerable independence.

Industry in Medieval Cities The revival of trade enabled cities and towns to become important centers for manufacturing a wide range of products, such as cloth, metalwork, shoes, and leather goods. A host of crafts were carried on in houses along the narrow streets of the medieval cities. From the twelfth century on, artisans began to organize themselves into guilds, which came to play a leading role in the economic life of the cities. By the thirteenth century, virtually every group of craft workers, including tanners, carpenters, and bakers, had its own guild, and specialized groups of merchants, such as dealers in silk, spices, wool, or banking, had guilds

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

c

c

Snark/Art Resource, NY

Alinari/The Bridgeman Art Library

IMAGES OF EVERYDAY LIFE

c

British Library, London//HIP/Art Resource, NY

Life in a Medieval Town. Most urban residents were merchants involved in trade and artisans who manufactured a wide variety of products. Master craftspeople had their workshops in the groundlevel rooms of their houses. In the illustration at the left above, two well-dressed burghers are touring the shopping districts of a French town. Tailors, furriers, a barber, and a grocer (from left to right) are visible at work in their shops. Butchers were usually restricted to districts of the town that were downstream and downwind from where most people lived due to the smells from the waste products, many of which were often pitched into a nearby stream. Guild regulations forbade butchers from selling the meat of dogs, cats, and horses, and butchering places were routinely inspected to ensure that no spoiled meat was sold. The illustration at the right shows a medieval butcher shop in an Italian town. Although butchers wore aprons, they were relatively small, extending only below the waist, because medieval butchers were skilled individuals who wasted little of the animals they butchered. Even the blood was collected carefully in order to make a kind of sausage called blood pudding. Because violence was a common feature of medieval life, criminals, if apprehended, were punished quickly and severely, and public executions were considered a deterrent to crime. As one can surmise from the illustration at the right, executions were also a form of entertainment.

T HE N EW WORLD

OF

T RADE

AND

C ITIES

185

as well. Craft guilds directed almost every aspect of the production process. They set standards for the articles produced, specified the methods of production to be used, and fixed the price at which the finished goods could be sold. Guilds also determined the number of men who could enter a specific trade and the procedure they must follow to do so. A person who wanted to learn a trade first became an apprentice to a master craftsman, usually at around the age of ten. After five to seven years of service, in which they learned their craft, apprentices became journeymen (or journeywomen, although most were male), who then worked for wages for other masters. Journeymen aspired to become masters as well. To do so, they were expected to produce a ‘‘masterpiece,’’ a finished piece in their craft that allowed the master craftsmen of the guild to judge whether the journeymen were qualified to become masters and join the guild.

The Intellectual and Artistic World of the High Middle Ages

Q Focus Question: What were the major intellectual and cultural achievements of European civilization in the High Middle Ages?

The High Middle Ages was a time of tremendous intellectual and artistic vitality. The period witnessed the growth of educational institutions, a rebirth of interest in ancient culture, a quickening of theological thought, the development of a vernacular literature, and a burst of activity in architecture. While monks continued to play an important role in intellectual activity, the secular clergy, cities, and courts, whether of kings, princes, or high church officials, began to exert a newfound influence. Especially significant were the new cultural expressions that emerged in towns and cities.

The Rise of Universities The university as we know it---with faculty, students, and degrees---was a product of the High Middle Ages. The word university is derived from the Latin word universitas, meaning a corporation or guild, and referred to either a guild of teachers or a guild of students. Medieval universities were educational guilds or corporations that produced educated and trained individuals. The Origins of Universities The first European university was founded in Bologna, Italy, and coincided with the revival of interest in Roman law, especially the rediscovery of Justinian’s Body of Civil Law. In the twelfth 186

century, Irnerius (1088--1125), a great teacher of Roman law in Bologna, attracted students from all over Europe. Most of them were laymen, usually older individuals who served as administrators to kings and princes and were eager to learn more about law so they could apply it in their jobs. To protect themselves, students at Bologna formed a guild or universitas, which was recognized by Emperor Frederick Barbarossa and given a charter in 1158. Although the faculty also organized itself as a group, the universitas of students at Bologna was far more influential. It obtained a promise of freedom for students from local authorities, regulated the price of books and lodging, and determined the curriculum, fees, and standards for their masters. Teachers were fined if they missed a class or began their lectures late. In northern Europe, the University of Paris became the first recognized university. A number of teachers or masters who had received licenses to teach from the cathedral school of Notre-Dame in Paris began to take on extra students for a fee. By the end of the twelfth century, these masters teaching at Paris had formed a universitas or guild of masters. By 1200, the king of France, Philip Augustus, officially acknowledged the existence of the University of Paris. The University of Oxford in England, organized on the Paris model, appeared in 1208. A migration of scholars from Oxford led to the establishment of Cambridge University the following year. In the Late Middle Ages, kings, popes, and princes vied to found new universities. By the end of the Middle Ages, there were eighty universities in Europe, most of them located in England, France, Italy, and Germany (see Map 9.2). Teachers and Students in the Medieval University A student’s initial studies at a medieval university centered around the traditional liberal arts curriculum, which consisted of grammar, rhetoric, logic, arithmetic, geometry, astronomy, and music. All classes were conducted in Latin, which provided a common means of communication for students, regardless of their country of origin. Basically, medieval university instruction was done by the lecture method. The word lecture is derived from the Latin verb meaning ‘‘to read.’’ Before the development of the printing press in the fifteenth century, books were expensive, and few students could afford them, so masters read from a text (such as a collection of laws if the subject was law) and then added their commentaries. No exams were given after a series of lectures, but when a student applied for a degree, he (women did not attend universities in the Middle Ages) was given a comprehensive oral examination by a committee of teachers. These exams were taken after a four- or six-year period of study. The first degree a student could earn was the artium baccalaureus, or bachelor of arts; later he might receive an artium magister, or master of arts.

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

SC CO OT TLA AND ND

40 400 00

60 6600 0 Kilo loomet me ers me errs er

200 00

440 00 Mil iile l s

North Sea DEN NMAR ARK

Jarrow Du urham

IRELAND IR D

200

Baltic Sea

York

EN NGLAND

Cambr C Cam am mb bri ridge

Oxfo Oxf xfo xford Salisb Salisb Sal isb sbury sb y

Magdeburg Leipzig Cologne Winche Win cheste sterr Fulda Prague SainttSai Mainz D niiss Laon De Den Bamberg Krakow Mo M Mon on nttNot otreree Heidelberg SaintS t-- N Regensburg D am e Michel M Lorch Reims Hirsau Chartres Paris Clairvaux Vienna Orléans Fleury Tou T o rs Saint-Gall Basel Citeaux Poitie iers ie Bourges Cluny FRANC CE HOLY ROMAN EMPIRE Bordeaux Pad adu ad ua Piacenza Grenoble Cahors Feerrarra Fe Avignon Bo ologn gnaa Toulouse Mon Valladolid onntpe tpelli lllliiier er er Val Va alllom al lombro ombro rosa ro os Flo Flo loren rencccee Canter erbu erbu er bur b urry u y

Atlantic Ocean

Sallamanca Sal Coimbra

SPAIN Toledo

MAP 9.2 Main Intellectual Centers of Medieval Europe. Education in the

Early Middle Ages rested primarily with the clergy, especially the monks. Although monastic schools were the centers of learning from the ninth century to the early eleventh, they were surpassed in the course of the eleventh century by the cathedral schools organized by the secular (nonmonastic) clergy. In the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, the universities surpassed both monastic and cathedral schools as intellectual centers. Q In what ways did France qualify as the intellectual capital of Europe?

Cor Co orrsicca Per o eru a erugi eru er Rom Rom Ro o e

Balearric Balea ic Isl I lan Island ands

Seville

Saa arrdinnia ia

Important cathedral school

Nap ap ples es Saalern er o

University Important monastic school

Moo on nttee Cas asssin sino sino si

Mediterranean Sea

All degrees were technically licenses to teach, although most students receiving them did not become teachers. After completing the liberal arts curriculum, a student could go on to study law, medicine, or theology, which was the most highly regarded subject of the medieval curriculum. The study of law, medicine, or theology could take a decade or more. A student who passed his final oral examinations was granted a doctoral degree, which officially allowed him to teach his subject. Students who received degrees from medieval universities could pursue other careers besides teaching that proved to be much more lucrative. A law degree was deemed essential for those who wished to serve as advisers to kings and princes. The growing administrative bureaucracies of popes and kings also demanded a supply of clerks with a university education who could keep records and draw up official documents. Medieval universities provided the teachers, administrators, lawyers, and doctors for medieval society. Medieval universities shared in the violent atmosphere of the age. Records from courts of law reveal numerous instances of disturbances in European universities. One German professor was finally dismissed for stabbing one too many of his colleagues in faculty meetings.

Pal aallerm errrm m moo Sicilyy S

A student in Bologna was attacked in the classroom by another student armed with a sword. Oxford regulations attempted to dampen the violence by forbidding students to bring weapons to class. Not uncommonly, town-andgown struggles (‘‘gown’’ refers to the academic robe worn by teachers and students) escalated into bloody riots between townspeople and students (see the box on p. 188).

A Revival of Classical Antiquity Another aspect of the intellectual revival of the High Middle Ages was a resurgence of interest in the works of Classical antiquity---the works of the Greeks and Romans. In the twelfth century, western Europe was introduced to a large number of Greek scientific and philosophical works, including those of Galen and Hippocrates on medicine, Ptolemy on astronomy, and Euclid on mathematics. Above all, the West now had available the complete works of Aristotle. During the second half of the twelfth century, all of Aristotle’s scientific works were translated into Latin. This great influx of Aristotle’s works had an overwhelming impact on the West. He came to be viewed as the ‘‘master of those who know,’’ the man who seemed to have understood every field of knowledge.

T HE I NTELLECTUAL

AND

A RTISTIC WORLD

OF THE

H IGH M IDDLE A GES

187

UNIVERSITY STUDENTS Medieval universities shared in the violent atmosphere of their age. Town-and-gown quarrels often resulted in bloody conflicts, especially during the universities’ formative period. This selection is taken from an anonymous description of a student riot at Oxford at the end of the thirteenth century.

A Student Riot at Oxford

VIOLENCE

OXFORD

Q Who do you think was responsible for this conflict between town and gown? Why? Why do you think the king supported the university?

c

University Classroom. This illustration shows a university classroom in fourteenthcentury Germany. As was customary in medieval classrooms, the master is reading from a text. The students vary considerably in age and in the amount of attention they are willing to give the lecturer. 188

AT

upon their opponents. Three they slew, and wounded fifty or more. One band . . . took up a position in High Street between the Churches of St. Mary and All Saints’, and attacked the house of a certain Edward Hales. This Hales was a longstanding enemy of the clerks. There were no half measures with him. He seized his crossbow, and from an upper chamber sent an unerring shaft into the eye of the pugnacious rector. The death of their valiant leader caused the clerks to lose heart. They fled, closely pursued by the townsmen and country-folk. Some were struck down in the streets, and others who had taken refuge in the churches were dragged out and driven mercilessly to prison, lashed with thongs and goaded with iron spikes. Complaints of murder, violence and robbery were lodged straightway with the King by both parties. The townsmen claimed three thousand pounds’ damage. The commissioners, however, appointed to decide the matter, condemned them to pay two hundred marks, removed the bailiffs, and banished twelve of the most turbulent citizens from Oxford.

Bildarchiv Preussischer Kulturbesitz/Art Resource, NY

[The townsmen] seized and imprisoned all scholars on whom they could lay hands, invaded their inns [halls of residence], made havoc of their goods and trampled their books under foot. In the face of such provocation the Proctors [university officials] sent their assistants about the town, forbidding the students to leave their inns. But all commands and exhortations were in vain. By nine o’clock next morning, bands of scholars were parading the streets in martial array. If the Proctors failed to restrain them, the mayor was equally powerless to restrain his townsmen. The great bell of St. Martin’s rang out an alarm; oxhorns were sounded in the streets; messengers were sent into the country to collect rustic allies. The clerks [students and teachers], who numbered three thousand in all, began their attack simultaneously in various quarters. They broke open warehouses in the Spicery, the Cutlery and elsewhere. Armed with bow and arrows, swords and bucklers, slings and stones, they fell

AND

The recovery of Greek scientific and philosophical works was not a simple process, however. Little knowledge of Greek had survived in Europe. It was through the Muslim world, especially in Spain, that the West recovered the works of Aristotle and other Greeks. The translation of Greek works into Arabic was one aspect of the brilliant Muslim civilization; in the twelfth century, these writings were translated from Arabic into Latin, making them available to the West. The Islamic world had more to contribute intellectually to the West than translations, however. Scientific work in the ninth and tenth centuries had enabled it to forge far ahead of the Western world, and in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, Arabic works on physics, mathematics, medicine, and optics became available to the West in Latin translations. Adelard of Bath (1090--1150) was one source of these works. Having traveled throughout the Mediterranean world, he later translated an Arabic version of Euclid’s Elements (see Chapter 4) into Latin, as well as the mathematical works of al-Khwarizmi

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

(see Chapter 8). Adelard also introduced to Europeans the astrolabe, an Arabic astronomical instrument of great value to sailors. When Aristotle’s works were brought into the West in the second half of the twelfth century, they were accompanied by commentaries written by outstanding Arabic and Jewish philosophers. One example was Ibn-Rushd, also known as Averroe¨s (1126--1198), who lived in Co´rdoba and composed a systematic commentary on virtually all of Aristotle’s surviving works.

The Revival of Roman Law Another aspect of the revival of Classical antiquity was the rediscovery of the great work of Justinian, the Body of Civil Law, known to the medieval West before 1100 only at second hand. Initially, teachers of law, such as Irnerius of Bologna, were content merely to explain the meaning of Roman legal terms to their students. Gradually, they became more sophisticated so that by the mid-twelfth century, ‘‘doctors of law’’ had developed commentaries and systematic treatises on the legal texts. Italian cities, especially Pavia and Bologna, became prominent centers for the study of Roman law. By the thirteenth century, Italian jurists were systematizing the various professional commentaries on Roman law into a single commentary known as the ordinary gloss. Study of Roman law at the universities came to consist of learning the text of the law along with this gloss. The training of students in Roman law at medieval universities led to further application of its principles as these students became judges, lawyers, scribes, and councillors for the towns and monarchies of western Europe. By the beginning of the thirteenth century, the old system of the ordeal was being replaced by a rational decisionmaking process based on the systematic collection and analysis of evidence, a clear indication of the impact of Roman law on the European legal system.

The Development of Scholasticism The importance of Christianity in medieval society probably made it certain that theology would play a central role in the European intellectual world. Theology, the formal study of religion, was ‘‘queen of the sciences’’ in the new universities. Beginning in the eleventh century, the effort to apply reason or logical analysis to the church’s basic doctrines had a significant impact on the study of theology. The word scholasticism is used to refer to the philosophical and theological system of the medieval schools. A primary preoccupation of scholasticism was the attempt to reconcile faith and reason---to demonstrate that what was accepted on faith was in harmony with what could be learned by reason.

Scholasticism had its beginnings in the theological world of the eleventh and twelfth centuries but reached its high point in the thirteenth. The overriding task of scholasticism in the thirteenth century was to harmonize Christian revelation with the work of Aristotle. The great influx of Aristotle’s works into the West in the High Middle Ages threw many theologians into consternation. Aristotle was so highly regarded that he was called simply ‘‘the Philosopher,’’ yet he had arrived at his conclusions by rational thought---not revelation---and some of his doctrines, such as the mortality of the individual soul, contradicted the teachings of the church. The most famous attempt to reconcile Aristotle and the doctrines of Christianity was that of Saint Thomas Aquinas. Thomas Aquinas (1225--1274) studied theology at Cologne and Paris and taught at both Naples and Paris, and it was at the latter that he finished his famous Summa Theologica (Summa of Theology---a summa was a compendium that attempted to bring together all existing knowledge on a given subject). Aquinas’ masterpiece was organized according to the dialectical method of the scholastics. Aquinas first posed a question, cited sources that offered opposing opinions on the question, and then resolved them by arriving at his own conclusions. In this fashion, Aquinas raised and discussed some six hundred articles or issues. Aquinas’ reputation derives from his masterful attempt to reconcile faith and reason. He took it for granted that there were truths derived by reason and truths derived by faith. He was certain, however, that the two truths could not be in conflict: The light of faith that is freely infused into us does not destroy the light of natural knowledge [reason] implanted in us naturally. For although the natural light of the human mind is insufficient to show us these things made manifest by faith, it is nevertheless impossible that these things which the divine principle gives us by faith are contrary to these implanted in us by nature [reason]. Indeed, were that the case, one or the other would have to be false, and, since both are given to us by God, God would have to be the author of untruth, which is impossible. . . . It is impossible that those things which are of philosophy can be contrary to those things which are of faith.5

The natural mind, unaided by faith, could arrive at truths concerning the physical universe. Without the help of God’s grace, however, reason alone could not grasp spiritual truths, such as the Trinity (the belief that God, Jesus, and the Holy Spirit are three manifestations of the same unique deity) or the Incarnation (the belief that Jesus in his lifetime was God in human form).

Literature in the High Middle Ages Latin was the universal language of medieval European civilization. Used in the church and schools, it enabled

T HE I NTELLECTUAL

AND

A RTISTIC WORLD

OF THE

H IGH M IDDLE A GES

189

learned people to communicate anywhere on the Continent. But in the twelfth century, much new literature was being written in the vernacular (the local language, such as Spanish, French, English, or German). A new market for vernacular literature appeared in the twelfth century when educated laypeople at court and in the new urban society sought fresh avenues of entertainment. Perhaps the most popular vernacular literature of the twelfth century was troubadour poetry, which was chiefly the product of nobles and knights. This poetry focused on the love of a knight for a lady, generally a married noble lady, who inspires him to become a braver knight and a better poet. A good example is found in the laments of the crusading noble Jaufre´ Rudel, who cherished a dream lady from afar whom he said he would always love but feared he would never meet: Most sad, most joyous shall I go away, Let me have seen her for a single day, My love afar, I shall not see her, for her land and mine Are sundered, and the ways are hard to find, So many ways, and I shall lose my way, So wills it God.6

of churches. Then nearly all the cathedrals, the monasteries dedicated to different saints, and even the small village chapels were reconstructed more beautifully by the faithful.7

Hundreds of new cathedrals, abbeys, and pilgrimage churches, as well as thousands of parish churches in rural villages, were built in the eleventh and twelfth centuries. This building spree reflected a revived religious culture and the increased wealth of the period produced by agriculture, trade, and the growth of cities. The cathedrals of the eleventh and twelfth centuries were built in the Romanesque style, a truly international style. The construction of churches required the services of a cadre of professional master builders whose employment throughout Europe guaranteed international unity in basic features. Romanesque churches were normally built in the basilica shape used in the construction of churches in the Late Roman Empire. Basilicas were simply rectangular buildings with flat wooden roofs. Elaborating on this basic plan, Romanesque builders made a significant innovation by replacing the flat wooden roof with a long, round stone

First appearing in southern France, troubadour poetry soon spread to northern France, Italy, and Germany. Another type of vernacular literature was the chanson de geste, or heroic epic. The earliest and finest example is The Song of Roland, which appeared around 1100 and was written in a dialect of French, a language derived from Latin. The chansons de geste were written for a maledominated society. The chief events described in these poems are battles and political contests. Their world is one of combat in which knights fight courageously for their kings and lords. Women play little or no role in this literary genre.

Romanesque Architecture: ‘‘A White Mantle of Churches’’

190

c

[After the] year of the millennium, which is now about three years past, people all over the world, but especially in Italy and France, began to rebuild their churches. Although most of them were well built and in little need of alterations, Christian nations were rivalling each other to have the most beautiful edifices. One might say the world was shaking herself, throwing off her old garments, and robing herself with a white mantle

The Art Archive/Gianni Dagli Orti

The eleventh and twelfth centuries witnessed an explosion of building, both private and public. The construction of castles and churches absorbed most of the surplus resources of medieval society and at the same time reflected its basic preoccupations, God and warfare. The churches were by far the most conspicuous of the public buildings. A chronicler of the eleventh century commented:

Barrel Vaulting. The eleventh and twelfth centuries witnessed an explosion of church construction. Using the basilica shape, master builders replaced flat wooden roofs with long, round stone vaults known as barrel vaults. As this illustration of a Romanesque church in Vienne, France, indicates, the barrel vault limited the size of the church and left little room for windows.

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

Scala/Art Resource, NY

vault called a barrel vault or a cross vault where two barrel vaults intersected (a vault is simply a curved roof made of masonry). The barrel vault was used when a transept was added to create a church plan in the shape of a cross. Although barrel and cross vaults were technically difficult to construct, they were considered aesthetically pleasing and technically proficient. They also had fine acoustics. Because stone roofs were extremely heavy, Romanesque churches required massive pillars and walls to hold them up. This left little space for windows, making Romanesque churches quite dark inside. The massive walls and pillars gave Romanesque churches a sense of solidity and a look reminiscent of a fortress.

Begun in the twelfth century and brought to perfection in the thirteenth, the Gothic cathedral remains one of the great artistic triumphs of the High Middle Ages. Soaring skyward, as if to reach heaven, it was a fitting symbol for medieval people’s preoccupation with God.

c

The Gothic Cathedral

The Gothic Cathedral. The Gothic cathedral was one of the greatest artistic triumphs of the High Middle Ages. Shown here is the cathedral of Notre-Dame in Paris. Begun in 1163, it was not completed until the beginning of the fourteenth century.

c

The Art Archive/Gianni Dagli Orti

Two fundamental innovations of the twelfth century made Gothic cathedrals possible. The combination of ribbed vaults and pointed arches replaced the barrel vault of Romanesque churches and enabled builders to make Gothic churches higher than their Romanesque counterparts. The use of pointed arches and ribbed vaults created an impression of upward movement, a sense of weightless upward thrust that implied the energy of God. Another technical innovation, the flying buttress, basically a heavy arched pier of stone built onto the outside of the walls, made it possible to distribute the weight of the church’s vaulted ceilings outward and downward and thus reduce the thickness of the heavy walls used in Romanesque churches to hold the weight of the massive barrel vaults. The thinner walls of Gothic cathedrals could consequently be filled with magnificent stained-glass windows, which created a play of light inside that varied with the sun at different times of the day. The preoccupation with colored light in Gothic cathedrals was inspired by the belief that natural light was a symbol of the divine light of God.

Interior of a Gothic Cathedral. The use of ribbed vaults and pointed arches gave the Gothic cathedral a feeling of upward movement. Moreover, due to the flying buttress, the cathedral could have thin walls with stained-glass windows that filled the interior with light. The flying buttress was a heavy pier of stone built onto the outside of the walls to bear the brunt of the weight of the church’s vaulted ceiling.

T HE I NTELLECTUAL

AND

A RTISTIC WORLD

OF THE

H IGH M IDDLE A GES

191

The first fully Gothic church was the abbey church of Saint-Denis near Paris, inspired by its famous Abbot Suger and built between 1140 and 1150. A product of northern France, the Gothic style had spread by the midthirteenth century to England, Spain, Germany, and virtually all the rest of Europe. The most brilliant Gothic cathedrals were still to be found in France---in Paris (Notre-Dame), Reims, Amiens, and Chartres. A Gothic cathedral was the work of an entire community. All classes of society contributed to its construction. Money was raised from wealthy townspeople, who had profited from the new trade and industries, as

well as from kings and nobles. Master masons, who were both architects and engineers, designed the cathedrals. They drew up the plans and supervised the work of construction. Stonemasons and other craftspeople were paid a daily wage and provided the skilled labor to build the cathedrals. A Gothic cathedral symbolized the chief preoccupation of a medieval Christian community, its dedication to a spiritual ideal. As we have observed before, the largest buildings of an era reflect the values of its society. The Gothic cathedral, with its towers soaring toward heaven, gave witness to an age when a spiritual impulse still underlay most of existence.

TIMELINE 900

1000

1100

1200

1300

Beginning of fairs in Champagne Work of Thomas Aquinas

Emergence of new towns The Song of Roland

Age of Gothic cathedrals

Growth of guilds

Rise of universities

CONCLUSION The new European civilization that had emerged in the Early Middle Ages began to flourish in the High Middle Ages. Better growing conditions, an expansion of cultivated land, and technological and agricultural changes combined to enable Europe’s food supply to increase significantly after 1000. This increase helped sustain a dramatic rise in population that was apparent in the expansion of towns and cities.

192

The High Middle Ages witnessed economic and social changes that some historians believe set European civilization on a path that lasted until the Industrial Revolution of the late eighteenth century created a new pattern. The revival of trade, the expansion of towns and cities, and the development of a money economy did not mean the end of a predominantly rural European society, but they did open the door to new ways to make a living and new opportunities

C H A P T E R 9 THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH OF EUROPEAN SOCIETY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES

for people to expand and enrich their lives. Eventually, they laid the foundations for the development of a mostly urban industrial society. The High Middle Ages also gave birth to a cultural revival that led to a rediscovery of important aspects of the Classical heritage, to

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING General Histories For a good introduction to this period, see W. C. Jordan, Europe in the High Middle Ages (New York, 2003); J. H. Mundy, Europe in the High Middle Ages, 1150--1309, 3d ed. (New York, 1999); D. Power, ed., Central Middle Ages (Oxford, 2005); and R. Bartlett, The Making of Europe: Conquest, Colonization, and Cultural Change, 950--1350 (Princeton, N.J., 1993). The New Agriculture On peasant life, see R. Fossier, Peasant Life in the Medieval West (New York, 1988). Technological changes are discussed in J. Langdon, Horses, Oxen, and Technological Innovation (New York, 1986). The Aristocracy Works on the function and activities of the nobility in the High Middle Ages include S. Reynolds, Kingdoms and Communities in Western Europe, 900--1300 (Oxford, 1984), and R. W. Barber, The Knight and Chivalry (Rochester, N.Y., 1995). Various aspects of the social history of the nobility can be found in D. Crouch, Tournament (London, 2005), on tournaments; N. J. G. Pounds, The Medieval Castle in England and Wales: A Social and Political History (New York, 1990); and C. B. Bouchard, Life and Society in the West: Antiquity and the Middle Ages (San Diego, Calif., 1988), ch. 6. Women in the High Middle Ages On women, see J. Ward, Women in Medieval Europe, 1200--1500 (London, 2003). An excellent reference work is M. C. Schaus, Women and Gender in Medieval Europe: An Encyclopedia (London, 2006). Revival of Trade and Cities On the revival of trade, see R. S. Lopez, The Commercial Revolution of the Middle Ages, 950--1350 (Englewood Cliffs, N.J., 1971). Urban history is covered in D. Nicholas, The Growth of the Medieval City: From Late Antiquity to the Early Fourteenth Century (New York, 1997), and the classic work by H. Pirenne, Medieval Cities (Princeton, N.J., 1969). On daily life, see C. Frugoi, A Day in a Medieval City, trans.

new centers of learning in the universities, to the use of reason to systematize the study of theology, to the development of a vernacular literature that appealed to both knights and townspeople, and to a dramatic increase in the number and size of churches.

W. McCuaig (Chicago, 2006). On women in the cities, see M. P. P. Cosman, Women at Work in Medieval Europe (New York, 2001). Intellectual Life A general work on medieval intellectual life is M. L. Colish, Medieval Foundations of the Western Intellectual Tradition, 400--1400 (New Haven, Conn., 1997). See also the classic study by F. Artz, The Mind of the Middle Ages, 3d ed. (Chicago, 1980). The development of universities is covered in S. Ferruolo, The Origin of the University (Stanford, Calif., 1985); A. B. Cobban, The Medieval Universities (London, 1975); and the brief older work by C. H. Haskins, The Rise of Universities (Ithaca, N.Y., 1957). Various aspects of the intellectual and literary developments of the High Middle Ages are examined in J. W. Baldwin, The Scholastic Culture of the Middle Ages, 1000--1300 (Lexington, Mass., 1971), and M. Haren, Medieval Thought, 2d ed. (London, 1992). A good biography of Thomas Aquinas is J. Weisheipl, Friar Thomas d’Aquino: His Life, His Thought and Work (New York, 1974). Art and Architecture For a good introduction to the art and architecture of the Middle Ages, see A. Shaver-Crandell, The Middle Ages, in the Cambridge Introduction to Art Series (Cambridge, 1982). A good introduction to Romanesque style is A. Petzold, Romanesque Art, rev. ed. (New York, 2003). On the Gothic movement, see M. Camille, Gothic Art: Glorious Visions, rev. ed. (New York, 2003).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

C ONCLUSION

193

194

CHAPTER 10 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

Q

British Library, London//HIP/Art Resource, NY

The Emergence and Growth of European Kingdoms, 1000--1300 What steps did the rulers of England and France take during the High Middle Ages to reverse the decentralizing tendencies of fief-holding? What were the major developments in Spain, the Holy Roman Empire, and northern and eastern Europe during the High Middle Ages?

Q

What was at issue in the Investiture Controversy, and what effect did the controversy have on the church and on Germany?

Christianity and Medieval Civilization

Q

What were the characteristics of the papal monarchy and the new religious orders of the High Middle Ages, and what role did women play in the religious life of the period? What was the church’s attitude toward heretics and Jews during the High Middle Ages?

The Crusades

Q

What were the reasons for the Crusades, and who or what benefited the most from the experience of the Crusades?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

What factors contributed to the development of centralized kingdoms in some parts of Europe and not in others?

c

The Recovery and Reform of the Catholic Church A medieval abbot and his monks

THE RECOVERY AND GROWTH of European civilization in the High Middle Ages also affected the state and the church. Both lords and vassals and the Catholic church recovered from the invasions and internal dissension of the Early Middle Ages. Although lords and vassals seemed forever mired in endless petty conflicts, some medieval kings began to exert a centralizing authority and inaugurated the process of developing new kinds of monarchical states. By the thirteenth century, European monarchs were solidifying their governmental institutions in pursuit of greater power. The recovery of the Catholic church produced a reform movement that led to exalted claims of papal authority. This increase in church power, coupled with the rise of monarchical states, made it almost inevitable that there would be conflicts between church and state. At the same time, vigorous papal leadership combined with new dimensions of religious life to make the Catholic church a forceful presence in every area of life. The role of the church in the new European civilization was quite evident in the career of a man named Samson, who became abbot or head of the great English abbey of Bury Saint Edmonds in 1182.

195

According to Jocelyn of Brakeland, a monk who assisted him, Abbot Samson was a devout man who wore ‘‘undergarments of horsehair and a horsehair shirt.’’ He loved virtue and ‘‘abhorred liars, drunkards and talkative folk.’’ His primary concern was the spiritual well-being of his monastery, but he spent much of his time working on problems in the world beyond the abbey walls. Since the monastery had fallen into debt under his predecessors, Abbot Samson toiled tirelessly to recoup the abbey’s fortunes by carefully supervising its manors. He also rounded up murderers to stand trial in Saint Edmunds and provided knights for the king’s army. But his actions were not always tolerant or beneficial. He was instrumental in driving the Jews from the town of Saint Edmunds and was not above improving the abbey’s possessions at the expense of his neighbors: ‘‘He built up the bank of the fish-pond at Babwell so high, for the service of a new mill, that by the keeping back the water there is not a man, rich or poor, but has lost his garden and his orchards.’’ The abbot’s worldly cares weighed heavily on him, but he had little choice if his abbey were to flourish and fulfill its spiritual and secular functions. But he did have regrets; as he remarked to Jocelyn: ‘‘If he could have returned to the circumstances he had enjoyed before he became a monk, he would never have become a monk or an abbot.’’1

The Emergence and Growth of European Kingdoms, 1000--1300

Q Focus Questions: What steps did the rulers of England and France take during the High Middle Ages to reverse the decentralizing tendencies of fief-holding? What were the major developments in Spain, the Holy Roman Empire, and northern and eastern Europe during the High Middle Ages?

The domination of society by the nobility reached its apex in the High Middle Ages. During the same period, however, kings began the process of extending their power in more effective ways. Out of these growing monarchies would eventually come the European states that dominated much of later European history. Kings possessed some sources of power that other lords did not. Usually, kings had greater opportunities to increase their lands through war and marriage alliances and then could use their new acquisitions to reward their followers and bind powerful nobles to them. In the High Middle Ages, kings found ways to strengthen governmental institutions and consequently to extend their powers. The growth of cities, the revival of commerce, and the emergence of a money economy enabled monarchs to hire soldiers and officials and to rely less on their vassals. 196

England in the High Middle Ages In 1066, an army of heavily armed knights under William of Normandy landed on the southeastern coast of England and soundly defeated King Harold and his Anglo-Saxon foot soldiers at the Battle of Hastings on October 14. William (1066--1087) was crowned king of England at Christmastime in London and began the process of combining Anglo-Saxon and Norman institutions. Many of the Norman knights were given parcels of land that they held as fiefs from the new English king. William made all nobles swear an oath of loyalty to him and insisted that all people owed loyalty to the king rather than to their lords. Gradually, fusion between the victorious Normans and the defeated Anglo-Saxons transformed England. Although the Norman ruling class spoke French, intermarriage of the Norman-French and the Anglo-Saxon nobility gradually blended the two cultures and vastly enriched the English language. The Normans also took over existing Anglo-Saxon institutions, such as the office of sheriff. William took a census and more fully developed the system of taxation and royal courts begun by the Anglo-Saxon kings of the tenth and eleventh centuries. All in all, William of Normandy created a strong, centralized monarchy. The Norman conquest of England had other repercussions as well. Because the new king of England was still the duke of Normandy, he was both a king (of England) and at the same time a vassal to a king (of France), but a vassal who was now far more powerful than his lord. This connection with France kept England heavily involved in Continental affairs throughout the High Middle Ages. Henry II In the twelfth century, the power of the English monarchy was greatly enlarged during the reign of Henry II (1154--1189), the founder of the Plantagenet dynasty. The new king was particularly successful in strengthening the power of the royal courts. Henry expanded the number of criminal cases tried in the king’s court and also devised ways of taking property cases from local courts to the royal courts. Henry’s goals were clear: expanding the jurisdiction of royal courts extended the king’s power and, of course, brought revenues into his coffers. Moreover, because the royal courts were now found throughout England, a body of common law (law that was common to the whole kingdom) began to replace the local law codes, which differed from place to place. Henry was less successful at imposing royal control over the church. The king claimed the right to punish clergymen in royal courts, but Thomas a` Becket, archbishop of Canterbury and therefore the highest-ranking

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

c

Muse´e de la Tapisserie, Bayeux/The Bridgeman Art Library

Norman Conquest of England. The Bayeux tapestry, which consists of woolen embroidery on a linen backing, was made by English needlewomen before 1082 for Bayeux Cathedral. It depicts scenes from the Norman invasion of England. This segment shows the Norman cavalry charging the shield wall of the Saxon infantry during the Battle of Hastings.

English cleric, claimed that only church courts could try clerics. Attempts at compromise failed, and the angry king publicly expressed the desire to be rid of Becket: ‘‘Who will free me of this priest?’’ he screamed. Four knights took the challenge, went to Canterbury, and murdered the archbishop in the cathedral. Met with public outrage, Henry was forced to allow the right of appeal from English church courts to the papal court. King John and Magna Carta Many English nobles came to resent the continuing growth of the king’s power and rose in rebellion during the reign of Henry’s son, King John (1199--1216). At Runnymede in 1215, John was forced to seal Magna Carta (the ‘‘Great Charter’’). Magna Carta was, above all, a feudal document (see the box on p. 199). Feudal custom had always recognized that the relationship between king and vassals was based on mutual rights and obligations. Magna Carta gave written recognition to that fact and was used in subsequent years to strengthen the idea that the monarch’s power was limited, not absolute. Edward I and the Emergence of Parliament During the reign of Edward I (1272--1307), an institution of great importance in the development of representative government---the English Parliament---emerged. Originally the word parliament was applied to meetings of the king’s Great Council in which the greater barons and chief prelates of the church met with the king’s judges and principal advisers to deal with judicial affairs. But out of a need for money, Edward in 1295 invited two knights from every county and two residents (‘‘burgesses’’) from each town to meet with the Great Council to consent to new taxes. This was the first Parliament. The English Parliament, then, came to be composed of two knights from every county and two burgesses from

every town as well as the barons and eccelesiastical lords. Eventually, barons and church lords formed the House of Lords; knights and burgesses, the House of Commons. The Parliaments of Edward I granted taxes, discussed politics, passed laws, and handled judicial business. By the end of the thirteenth century, the law of the realm was being determined not by the king alone but by the king in consultation with representatives of various groups that constituted the community.

The Growth of the French Kingdom In 843, the Carolingian Empire had been divided into three major sections. The west Frankish lands formed the core of the eventual kingdom of France. In 987, after the death of the last Carolingian king, the west Frankish nobles chose Hugh Capet as the new king, thus establishing the Capetian dynasty of French kings. Although they carried the title of kings, the Capetians had little real power. They controlled as the royal domain (the lands of the king) only the lands around Paris known as the Iˆlede-France. As kings of France, the Capetians were formally the overlords of the great lords of France, such as the dukes of Normandy, Brittany, Burgundy, and Aquitaine. In reality, however, many of the dukes were considerably more powerful than the Capetian kings. It would take the Capetian dynasty hundreds of years to create a truly centralized monarchical authority in France. The reign of King Philip II Augustus (1180--1223) was an important turning point. Philip II waged war against the Plantagenet rulers of England, who also ruled the French territories of Normandy, Maine, Anjou, and Aquitaine, and was successful in gaining control of most of these territories (see Map 10.1 on p. 200). Through these conquests, Philip quadrupled the income of the French monarchy and greatly enlarged its power. To administer

T HE E MERGENCE

AND

G ROWTH

OF

E UROPEAN K INGDOMS , 1000--1300

197

FILM & HISTORY THE LION IN WINTER (1968)

In developing this imaginative re-creation of a royal family’s dysfunctional Christmas gathering, James Goldman had a great deal of material to work with to fashion his story. Henry II was one of the most powerful monarchs of his day, and Eleanor of Aquitaine was one of the most powerful women. She had first been queen of France, but that marriage was annulled. Next she married Henry, who was then count of Anjou, and became queen of England when he became king in 1154. During their stormy marriage, Eleanor and Henry had five sons and three daughters. She is supposed to have murdered Rosamond, one of her husband’s mistresses, and aided her sons in a rebellion against their father in 1173, causing Henry to distrust his sons ever after. But Henry struck back, imprisoning Eleanor for sixteen years. After his death, however, Eleanor returned to Aquitaine and lived on to play an influential role in the reigns of her two sons, Richard and John, who succeeded their father.

justice and collect royal revenues in his new territories, Philip appointed new royal officials, thus inaugurating a French royal bureaucracy. Capetian rulers after Philip II continued to add lands to the royal domain. Although Philip had used military force, other kings used both purchase and marriage to achieve the same end. Much of the thirteenth century was

dominated by Louis IX (1226--1270), considered the greatest of the medieval French kings. A deeply religious man, he was later canonized as a saint by the church, an unusual action. Louis was known for his attempts to bring justice to his people and ensure their rights. Sharing in the religious sentiments of his age, Louis played a major role in two of the later Crusades, but both were

198

Avco Embassy/The Kobal Collection

Directed by Anthony Harvey, The Lion in Winter is based on a play by James Goldman, who also wrote the script for the movie and won an Oscar for best adapted screenplay for it. The action takes place in a castle in Chinon, France, over the Christmas holidays in 1183. The setting is realistic: medieval castles had dirt floors covered with rushes, under which lay, according to one observer, ‘‘an ancient collection of grease, fragments, bones, excrement of dogs and cats, and everything that is nasty.’’ The powerful but world-weary King Henry II (Peter O’Toole), ruler of England and a number of French lands (the ‘‘Angevin Empire’’), wants to establish his legacy and plans a Christmas gathering to decide which of his sons should succeed him. He favors his overindulged youngest son John (Nigel Terry), but he is opposed by his strong-willed and estranged wife, Eleanor of Aquitaine (Katharine Hepburn). She has been imprisoned by the king for leading a rebellion against him but has been temporarily freed for the holidays. Eleanor favors their son Richard (Anthony Hopkins), the most military-minded of the brothers. The middle brother, Geoffrey (John Castle), is not a candidate but manipulates the other brothers to gain his own advantage. All three sons are portrayed as treacherous and traitorous, and Henry is distrustful of them. At one point, he threatens to imprison and even kill his sons; marry his mistress Alais (Jane Merrow), who is also the sister of the king of France; and have a new family to replace them. In contemporary terms, Henry and Eleanor are a dysfunctional married couple, and their family is acutely dysfunctional. Sparks fly as family members plot against each other, using intentionally cruel comments and sarcastic responses in order to wound each other as much as possible. When Eleanor says to Henry, ‘‘What would you me do? Give up? Give in?’’ he responds, ‘‘Give me a little peace.’’ To which Eleanor replies, ‘‘A little? Why so modest? How about eternal peace? Now there’s a thought.’’ At one point, John responds to bad news about his chances for the throne with ‘‘Poor John. Who says, ‘Poor John’? Don’t everybody sob at once? My God, if I went up in flames, there’s not a living soul who’d pee on me to put the fire out.’’ His brother Richard replies, ‘‘Let’s strike a flint and see.’’ Henry can also be cruel to his sons: ‘‘You’re not mine! We’re not connected! I deny you! None of you will get my crown. I leave you nothing, and I wish you plague!’’

Eleanor of Aquitaine (Katharine Hepburn) and Henry II (Peter O’Toole) at dinner at Henry’s palace in Chinon, France

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

MAGNA CARTA After the dismal failure of King John to reconquer Normandy from the French king, some of the English barons rebelled against their king. At Runnymede in 1215, King John agreed to seal Magna Carta, the Great Charter of liberties regulating the relationship between the king and his vassals. What made Magna Carta an important historical document was its more general clauses defining rights and liberties. These were later interpreted in broader terms to make them applicable to all the English people.

Magna Carta John, by the Grace of God, king of England, lord of Ireland, duke of Normandy and Aquitaine, count of Anjou, to the archbishops, bishops, abbots, earls, barons, justiciars, foresters, sheriffs, reeves, servants, and all bailiffs and his faithful people greeting. 1. In the first place we have granted to God, and by this our present charter confirmed, for us and our heirs forever, that the English church shall be free, and shall hold its rights entire and its liberties uninjured. . . . We have granted moreover to all free men of our kingdom for us and our heirs forever all the liberties written below, to be had and holden by themselves and their heirs from us and our heirs. 2. If any of our earls or barons, or others holding from us in chief by military service, shall have died, and when he had died his heir shall be of full age and owe relief, he shall have his inheritance by the ancient relief; that is to say, the heir or heirs of an earl for the whole barony of an earl a hundred pounds; the heir or heirs of a baron for a whole barony a hundred pounds; the heir or heirs of a knight, for a whole knight’s fee, a hundred shillings at most; and who owes less let him give less according to the ancient custom of fiefs. 3. If moreover the heir of any one of such shall be under age, and shall be in wardship, when he comes of age he shall have his inheritance without relief and without a fine. . . .

failures, and he met his death during an invasion of North Africa. Philip IV and the Estates-General One of Louis’s successors, Philip IV the Fair (1285--1314), was particularly effective in strengthening the French monarchy. The machinery of government became even more specialized. French kings going back to the early Capetians had possessed a household staff for running their affairs. Over time, however, this household staff was enlarged and divided into three groups to form three major branches of royal administration: a council for advice, a chamber of

12. No scutage [tax] or aid [tribute] shall be imposed in our kingdom except by the common council of our kingdom, except for the ransoming of our body, for the making of our oldest son a knight, and for once marrying our oldest daughter, and for these purposes it shall be only a reasonable aid. . . . 13. And the city of London shall have all its ancient liberties and free customs, as well by land as by water. Moreover, we will and grant that all other cities and boroughs and villages and ports shall have all their liberties and free customs. 14. And for holding a common council of the kingdom concerning the assessment of an aid otherwise than in the three cases mentioned above, or concerning the assessment of a scutage we shall cause to be summoned the archbishops, bishops, abbots, earls, and greater barons by our letters under seal; and besides we shall cause to be summoned generally, by our sheriffs and bailiffs all those who hold from us in chief, for a certain day, that is at the end of forty days at least, and for a certain place; and in all the letters of that summons, we will express the cause of the summons, and when the summons has thus been given the business shall proceed on the appointed day, on the advice of those who shall be present, even if not all of those who were summoned have come. . . . 39. No free man shall be taken or imprisoned or dispossessed, or outlawed, or banished, or in any way destroyed, nor will we go upon him, nor send upon him, except by the legal judgment of his peers or by the law of the land. . . . 60. Moreover, all those customs and franchises mentioned above which we have conceded in our kingdom, and which are to be fulfilled, as far as pertains to us, in respect to our men; all men of our kingdom as well as clergy as laymen, shall observe as far as pertains to them, in respect to their men.

Q What are the major principles of Magna Carta as seen in this excerpt? Why has Magna Carta been considered such an important historical document?

accounts for finances, and a parlement or royal court. By the beginning of the fourteenth century, the Capetians had established firm foundations for a royal bureaucracy. Philip IV also brought a French parliament into being by summoning representatives of the three estates, or classes---the clergy (First Estate), the nobles (Second Estate), and the townspeople (Third Estate)---to meet with him. They did so in 1302, inaugurating the EstatesGeneral, the first French parliament, although it had little real power. By the end of the thirteenth century, France was the largest, wealthiest, and best-governed monarchical state in Europe.

T HE E MERGENCE

AND

G ROWTH

OF

E UROPEAN K INGDOMS , 1000--1300

199

North Sea

SCOT OT O TLA AN ND D

100

200

300 0 Kilo om met me eetteers

100

200 Milees

French fiefs possessed, 1154

French royal domain, 1180

French fiefs possessed, 1252

I EL IR LAND

French royal acquisitions:

IRELAND

To France, 1214

North Sea

SC CO COT OT TL LAND LA AN ND D

1180–1223

Yorrk

1223–1337 English lands

sh Engli

a Ch

NORMANDY N ORMA AND DY

sh Engli

HOLY ROMAN EMPIRE

Atlantic Ocean

an Ch

B ITTANY BR

Paarris Pa Par is MAINE

ÎÎLEAGNE DE- CHAMPA FRANCE E A ANJOU U BL B LO L OIS TOU T TO OU URAI R NE Bourges Poi Po P oiitiers o rs B BURGUNDY POITOU B URB BOURBON RBON

Atlantic Ocean

MARC CHE E BOU BO BOU URBO R N AQ QU UIT UI IIT TAIN NE AUVER RGNE PER PE ERIGORD D

HOLY ROMAN EMPIRE

FLANDER ER RS R S

NORMANDY Y

BRITT B ITTANY ANY

CH CHA H MPAGNE HA NE MAINE M AINE ÎLEDEFRA F RA ANC ANCE NCE N CE E ANJOU OU BL LOIS S BURGUNDY Y TOURAINE E

l

London

ne

London n

Canterbury y

ENGLAND

l

Oxford

C bri Cam riid dge dg gee

nn e

ENGLAND

POITOU

Boord rde deeaux A UITAINE AQ NE GASCON NY

Lyons

GAS SCO CON CON NY 0 0

100

200 100

NAVARRE

300 Killlo oom meters met rss 200 Miles

SPAIN

L LANGUEDOC C A gnon Avi TOULOUSE Toulo lo lou lo ou use

MAP 10.1 England and France, 1154–1337. King Philip II Augustus of France greatly expanded the power of the Capetian royal family through his victories over the Plantagenet monarchy of England, which enabled Philip to gain control over much of north-central France. Q How might the English Channel have made it more difficult for the English king to rule View an animated version of this map or related maps at his French possessions? www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

Christian Reconquest: The Spanish Kingdoms Much of Spain had been part of the Islamic world since the eighth century. Muslim Spain had flourished in the Early Middle Ages. Co´rdoba became a major urban center with a population exceeding 300,000 people. Agriculture prospered, and Spain became known as well for excellent leather, wool, silk, and paper. Beginning in the tenth century, however, the most noticeable feature of Spanish history was the beginning of a Christian reconquest that lasted until the final expulsion of the Muslims at the end of the fifteenth century. The Reconquista, as the Spaniards 200

called it, became over a period of time a sacred mission to many of the Christian rulers and inhabitants of the peninsula. By the eleventh century, a number of small Christian kingdoms in northern Spain took the offensive against the Muslims. Rodrigo Dı´az de Vivar, known as El Cid (‘‘The Master’’), was the most famous military adventurer of the time. Unlike the Christian warriors of France, El Cid fought under either Christian or Muslim rulers. He carved out his own kingdom of Valencia in 1094 but failed to create a dynasty when it was reconquered by the Muslims after his death.

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

MAP 10.2 Christian Reconquests in the Western Mediterranean. Muslims seized most of Spain in the eighth century, near the end of the period of rapid Islamic expansion. In the eleventh century, small Christian kingdoms in the north began the Reconquista, finally conquering the last Moors near the end of the fifteenth century. Q How can you explain the roughly north-to-south conquest of the Muslim View an animated lands in Spain? version of this map or related maps at www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/

Christian reconquests, 1000–1100

A t l ant i c Oc e a n

Christian reconquests, 1100–1250 Christian reconquests, 1492 0

LEON

NAV 0 Py NAVARRE ren e e s PO ORTUG OR U AL L IA AR RA RAGON ON L Tagus do R. Toledo TA Barrcelona Ba ce Lis isbon is sbon boonn bo CA a adi na R. CASTILE Val Va V aallen enc nccia ia AND A DALU A SIA S Eb ro

200 20

4400 Mil iles ile les le

.

Las L a Nav va vas Cór órddo ór dob oob bbaa de Tolosa osa sa sa

G Granada

600 K Kilom Ki il eters il

R

R.

400

Corrsic icca Rome

Gu

Douro

200

Sarrdinniia

westcivbrief 7e

Mediterranean

Sea

Algiers Tunis

By the end of the twelfth century, the northern half of Spain had been consolidated into the Christian kingdoms of Castile, Navarre, Aragon, and Portugal, the last of which had emerged by 1179 as a separate kingdom (see Map 10.2). The southern half of Spain remained under the control of the Muslims. In the thirteenth century, Christian rulers took the offensive again in the reconquest of Muslim territory. Aragon and Castile had become the two strongest Spanish kingdoms, and Portugal had reached its modern boundaries. All three states made significant conquests of Muslim territory. Castile subdued most of Andalusia in the south, down to the Atlantic and the Mediterranean; at the same time, Aragon conquered Valencia. The crucial battle occurred in 1212 at Las Navas de Tolosa. Alfonso VIII of Castile (1155-1214) had amassed an army of sixty thousand and crushed the Muslim forces, leading to Christian victories over the next forty years. By the mid-thirteenth century, the Muslims remained only in the kingdom of Granada, along the southeastern edge of the Iberian peninsula. The Spanish kingdoms followed no consistent policy in the treatment of the conquered Muslim population. Muslim farmers continued to work the land but were forced to pay very high rents in Aragon. In Castile, King Alfonso X (1252--1284), who called himself the ‘‘King of Three Religions,’’ encouraged the continued development of a cosmopolitan culture shared by Christians, Jews, and Muslims.

The Lands of the Holy Roman Empire: Germany and Italy In the tenth century, the powerful dukes of Saxony became kings of the lands of the eastern Frankish kingdom

Pallerm Palerm ermoo

SICIL IL LY L Y

(or Germany, as it came to be known). The best known of the Saxon kings of Germany was Otto I (936--973), who intervened in Italian politics and for his efforts was crowned emperor of the Romans by the pope in 962, reviving a title that had not been used since the time of Charlemagne. Otto’s creation of a new ‘‘Roman Empire’’ in the hands of the eastern Franks (or Germans, as they came to be called) added a tremendous burden to the kings of Germany, who now took on the onerous task of ruling Italy as well. In the eleventh century, German kings created a strong monarchy and a powerful empire by leading armies into Italy. To strengthen their power, German kings had come to rely on their ability to control the church and select bishops and abbots, whom they could then use as royal administrators. But the struggle between church and state during the reign of Henry IV (1056--1106) weakened the king’s ability to use church officials in this way. The German kings also tried to bolster their power by using their position as emperors to exploit the resources of Italy. But this tended to backfire; many a German king lost armies in Italy in pursuit of a dream of empire, and no German dynasty demonstrates this better than the Hohenstaufens. Frederick I Both Frederick I (1152--1190) and Frederick II (1212--1250), the two most famous members of the Hohenstaufen dynasty, tried to create a new kind of empire. Previous German kings had focused on building a strong German kingdom, to which Italy might be added as an appendage (see Map 10.3). Frederick I, known as Barbarossa (‘‘Redbeard’’) to the Italians, however, planned to get his chief revenues from Italy as the center of a

T HE E MERGENCE

AND

G ROWTH

OF

E UROPEAN K INGDOMS , 1000--1300

201

his court brought together a brilliant array of lawyers, poets, artists, and North scientists. His main goal was to esPapal States tablish a strong centralized state in Sea Baltic Kingdom of Sicily Italy dominated by his kingdom in DEN NM MA ARK AR RK Sea Sicily. Frederick’s major task was to Republic of Venice gain control of northern Italy. In FR RIIS ISI SIA S SI POMERA RA R AN NII NIA ENGLAND EN D reaching to extend his power in Italy, SAXONY POLAND LUSATIA A he became involved in a deadly SILESI ESI ESI SIA LOWER struggle with the popes, who realized THURINGIA IN NG LORRAINE that a single ruler of northern and F FRANCONIA A BOHEMIA UP PPER southern Italy meant the end of papal MORAVI VIA VI LORR O R RAI RA A NE BAVARIA A secular power in central Italy. The Atlantic SWABIA AUSTRIA A Carpathian M northern Italian cities were also unOc e a n ts. FRANCE E BU Alps UR U RGUNDY willing to give up their freedom. ARLES HUNGARY N Frederick waged a bitter struggle in Ven V Ve een nice ce LO LOMBARDY R REP RE EP E P UBL UB U B BL IC I C northern Italy, winning many battles Dan Pyr ube O OF F ene but ultimately losing the war. es P VEN PRO ENC EN CE E V VEN ENICE EN R. Frederick’s preoccupation with the TUSC TUS CANY Se creation of an empire in Italy left Gera Rom me Co orsi siicca many in confusion and chaos until 1273, when the major German princes, Naples les es Sard ardinia serving as electors, chose an insignifiAPU PULIA PU LIA cant German noble, Rudolf of HabsKING GDOM Mediterranea burg, as the new German king. In OF OF n SICIL SICI SIC ILY IL ILY choosing a weak king, the princes were S e a Sicily 0 2200 20 0 400 600 Kilo illo lomet etters er er ensuring that the German monarchy 0 200 400 Miles would remain impotent and incapable of reestablishing a centralized monarMAP 10.3 The Holy Roman Empire in the Twelfth Century. The Hohenstaufen chical state. The failure of the Hohenrulers Frederick I and Frederick II sought to expand the Holy Roman Empire to staufens had led to a situation where include all of Italy. Frederick II had only fleeting success: after his death, several his exalted majesty, the German king independent city-states arose in northern Italy, while at home, German nobles had and Holy Roman Emperor, had no real virtually free rein within their domains. power over either Germany or Italy. Q Why did the territorial conquests of the Holy Roman Empire cause alarm in Unlike France, England, and even the papacy? Spain, neither Germany nor Italy created a unified national monarchy in the Middle Ages. ‘‘holy empire,’’ as he called it (hence the name Holy Both became geographical designations for loose conRoman Empire). But his attempt to conquer northern federations of hundreds of petty states under the vague Italy ran into severe difficulties. The pope opposed him, direction of king or emperor. In fact, neither Germany fearful that the emperor wanted to incorporate Rome and nor Italy would become united until the nineteenth the Papal States into his empire. The cities of northern century. Italy, which had become used to their freedom, were Following the death of Frederick II, Italy fell into also not willing to be Frederick’s subjects. An alliance of political confusion. While the papacy remained in these northern Italian cities, with the support of the pacontrol of much of central Italy, the defeat of imperial pacy, defeated the forces of Emperor Frederick at Legnano power left the cities and towns of northern Italy indein 1176. pendent of any other authority. Gradually, the larger ones began to emerge as strong city-states. Florence Frederick II Frederick II was the most brilliant of the assumed the leadership of Tuscany, and Milan, under Hohenstaufen rulers. King of Sicily in 1198, king of the guidance of the Visconti family, took control of the Germany in 1212, and crowned emperor in 1220, Lombard region. With its great commercial wealth, the Frederick II was a truly remarkable man who awed his republic of Venice dominated the northeastern part of contemporaries. Frederick had been raised in Sicily, the peninsula. with its diverse peoples, languages, and religions, and Holy Roman Empire

tic

R.

ria

ro

Ad

Eb

202

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

Sea

NORWAY

tic

SWEDEN

DENMARK

ESTONIANS

al

LITHUANIANS

POMERANIA Vi PRUSSIANS

Elb e

Rh

B

Novgorod

s tu la R.

O

HOLY ROMAN EMPIRE

r

de

ine R.

R.

POLAND R

Lublin

.

Krakow

Prague

ube Dan

Vienna

Giraudon/Art Resource, NY

R.

CROATS

Belgrade

SERBS

c

KINGDOM OF SICILY

The Coronation of Frederick II. Shown here is the coronation of Frederick II of Germany as Holy Roman Emperor by Pope Honorius II in Rome on November 22, 1220. The pope agreed to the coronation after Frederick promised to lead a Crusade to the Holy Land, a promise that he took years to fulfill. This scene is taken from a fifteenth-century French manuscript on the monarchs of Europe.

New Kingdoms in Northern and Eastern Europe The Scandinavian countries of northern Europe had little political organization before 1000, and it was not until around that time that the three Scandinavian kingdoms--Denmark, Norway, and Sweden (see Map 10.4)---emerged with a noticeable political structure. The three kingdoms were converted to Christianity by kings who believed that an organized church was a necessary accompaniment to an organized state. The adoption of Christianity, however, did not eliminate the warlike tendencies of the Scandinavians. Not only did the three kingdoms fight each other in the eleventh and twelfth centuries, but rival families were in regular conflict over the throne in each state. This period also witnessed the growth of a powerful noble landowning class. To the south, in eastern Europe, Hungary, which had been a Christian state since 1000, remained relatively stable throughout the High Middle Ages, but the history of Poland and Russia was far more turbulent. In the thirteenth century, eastern Europe was beset by two groups of invaders, the Teutonic Knights from the west and the Mongols from the east.

200

400 200

n

R.

M

MOLDAVIA .

HUNGARY

Dn iep er

ts

Po

Carpathia

R.

Alps

KINGDOM OF RUS

WALLACHIA BULGARIANS

BYZANTINE EMPIRE

600 Kilometers 400 Miles

MAP 10.4 Northern and Eastern Europe, c. 1150. Acceptance

of Christianity gave many northern and eastern European kingdoms greater control over their subjects. Warfare was common in the region: dynastic struggles occurred in Scandinavia, and the Teutonic Knights, based in East Prussia, attacked the pagan Slavs. Q Which areas of northern and eastern Europe had large Slavic populations? (Look back at Map 8.4.)

In the eleventh century, a Polish kingdom existed as an independent state but with no natural frontiers. German settlers encroached on its territory on a regular basis, leading to considerable intermarriage between Slavs and Germans. During the thirteenth century, relations between the Germans and the Slavs of eastern Europe worsened due to the aggression of the Teutonic Knights. The Teutonic Knights had been founded near the end of the twelfth century to protect the Christian Holy Land. In the early thirteenth century, however, these Christian knights found greater opportunity to the east of Germany, where they attacked the pagan Slavs. East Prussia was given to the military order in 1226, and by the end of the thirteenth century, Prussia had become German and Christian as the pagan Slavs were forced to convert.

T HE E MERGENCE

AND

G ROWTH

OF

E UROPEAN K INGDOMS , 1000--1300

203

Central and eastern Europe had periodically been subject to invasions from fierce Asiatic nomads, including the Huns, Avars, Bulgars, and Magyars. In the thirteenth century, the Mongols exploded on the scene, causing far more disruption than earlier invaders.

Impact of the Mongol Empire

England Battle of Hastings

1066--1087

Henry II, first of the Plantagenet dynasty

1154--1189

John Magna Carta Edward I First Parliament

SIBERIA Volg a

MONGOLIA KHANATE OF THE Dan ube R. Black Sea KHANATE OF GREAT KHAN Khanbaliq MESO CHAGHADAI (EAST ASIA) (Beijing) POT o Yell AM KOREA Mediterran IA KHANATE ean Sea Lhasa Baghdad OF PERSIA Bra bmaputra NAN-CHAO R . R. tze ang (IL-KHANS) YUNNAN INDIA ARABIA AFRICA BURMA VIETNAM C

as

pi

an

Y

w

R.

Sea

Arabian Sea

1170 1199--1216 1215 1272--1307 1295

France Hugh Capet, French king

987

Philip II Augustus

1180--1223

Louis IX

1226--1270

Philip IV First Estates-General

1285--1314 1302

Spain El Cid in Valencia

1094--1099

Alfonso VIII of Castile

1155--1214

Establishment of Portugal

1179

Alfonso X of Castile

1252--1284

Germany, the Holy Roman Empire, and Italy Otto I

936--973

Henry IV

1056--1106

Frederick I Barbarossa

1152--1190

Lombard League defeats Frederick at Legnano

KHANATE OF KIPCHAK R. (GOLDEN HORDE)

1066

William the Conqueror Murder of Thomas a` Becket

The Mongols rose to power in Asia with stunning speed. They were a pastoral people in the region of modern-day Outer Mongolia organized loosely in clans and tribes, often warring with each other. This changed when one leader, Temuchin, unified the Mongol tribes and gained the title of Genghis Khan (c. 1162--1227), which means ‘‘universal ruler.’’ From that time on, Genghis Khan created a powerful military force and devoted himself to fighting. ‘‘Man’s highest joy,’’ Genghis Khan remarked, ‘‘is in victory: to conquer one’s enemies, to pursue them, to deprive them of their possessions, to make their beloved weep, to ride on their horses, and to embrace their wives and daughters.’’2 Genghis Khan was succeeded by equally competent sons and grandsons. In the thirteenth century, the Mongols advanced eastward, eventually conquering China and Korea. One of Genghis Khan’s grandsons, Khubilai Khan, completed the conquest of China and established a new Chinese dynasty of rulers known as the Yuan. In 1279, Khubilai Khan moved the capital of China northward to Khanbaliq (‘‘city of the Khan’’), which would later be known by the Chinese name Beijing.

Aden

CHRONOLOGY Growth of the European Kingdoms

1176

Frederick II

1212--1250

Election of Rudolf of Habsburg as king of Germany

1273

Eastern Europe Alexander Nevsky, prince of Novgorod

c. 1220--1263

East Prussia given to the Teutonic Knights

1226

Mongol conquest of Russia

1230s

The Mongol Empire in the Thirteenth Century

The Mongols also moved westward against the Islamic empire. Persia fell in 1233, and by 1258, the Mongols had conquered Baghdad and destroyed the Abbasid caliphate. In the 1230s, the Mongols also began moving into Europe. They conquered Russia, advanced into Poland and Hungary, and destroyed a force of Poles and Teutonic Knights in Silesia in 1241. At that point, the Mongol hordes turned back because of internal fighting; western and southern Europe escaped their wrath. Overall, the Mongols had little lasting impact in Europe, although their occupation of Russia had some residual effect. 204

The Development of Russia The Kiev Rus state, which had become formally Christian in 987, prospered considerably afterward, reaching its high point in the first half of the eleventh century. Kievan society was dominated by a noble class of landowners known as the boyars. Kievan merchants maintained regular trade with Scandinavia to the north and the Islamic and Byzantine worlds to the south. But destructive civil wars and new invasions by Asiatic nomads caused the principality of Kiev to collapse, and the sack of Kiev

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

by north Russian princes in 1169 brought an inglorious end to the first Russian state. The fundamental civilizing and unifying force of early Russia was the Christian church. The Russian church imitated the liturgy and organization of the Byzantine Empire, whose Eastern Orthodox priests had converted the Kievan Rus to Christianity at the end of the tenth century. The Russian church became known for its rigid religious orthodoxy. Although Christianity provided a common bond between Russian and European civilization, Russia’s religious development guaranteed an even closer affinity between Russian and Byzantine civilization. In the thirteenth century, the Mongols conquered Russia and cut it off even more from western Europe. The Mongols were not numerous enough to settle the vast Russian lands but were content to rule directly an area along the lower Volga and north of the Caspian and Black Seas to Kiev and rule indirectly elsewhere. In the latter territories, Russian princes were required to pay tribute to the Mongol overlords. One Russian prince soon emerged as more powerful than the others. Alexander Nevsky (c. 1220--1263), prince of Novgorod, defeated a German invading army in northwestern Russia in 1242. His cooperation with the Mongols won him their favor. The khan, leader of the western part of the Mongol empire, rewarded Nevsky with the title of grand prince, enabling his descendants to become the princes of Moscow and eventually leaders of all Russia.

The Recovery and Reform of the Catholic Church

Q Focus Question: What was at issue in the Investiture Controversy, and what effect did the controversy have on the church and on Germany?

In the Early Middle Ages, the Catholic church had played a leading role in converting and civilizing first the Germanic invaders and later the Vikings and Magyars. Although highly successful, this effort brought challenges that undermined the spiritual life of the church itself.

High officials of the church, such as bishops and abbots, came to hold their offices as fiefs from nobles. As vassals, they were obliged to carry out the usual duties, including military service. Of course, lords assumed the right to choose their vassals, even when those vassals included bishops and abbots. Because lords often selected their vassals from other noble families for political reasons, these bishops and abbots were often worldly figures who cared little about their spiritual responsibilities. The monastic ideal had also suffered during the Early Middle Ages. Benedictine monasteries had sometimes been exemplary centers of Christian living and learning, but the invasions of Vikings, Magyars, and Muslims wreaked havoc with many monastic establishments. Discipline declined, and with it the monastic reputation for learning and holiness. At the same time, a growing number of monasteries fell under the control of local lords, as did much of the church. A number of people believed that the time for reform had come.

The Cluniac Reform Movement Reform of the Catholic church began in Burgundy in eastern France in 910 when Duke William of Aquitaine founded the abbey of Cluny. The monastery began with a renewed dedication to the highest spiritual ideals of the Benedictine rule and was fortunate in possessing a series of abbots in the tenth century who maintained these ideals. Cluny was deliberately kept independent from secular control. As Duke William stipulated in his original charter, ‘‘It has pleased us also to insert in this document that, from this day, those same monks there congregated shall be subject neither to our yoke, nor to that of our relatives, nor to the sway of the royal might, nor to that of any earthly power.’’3 The Cluniac reform movement sparked an enthusiastic response, first in France and eventually in all of western and central Europe. New monasteries were founded on Cluniac ideals, and existing monasteries rededicated themselves by adopting the Cluniac program. The movement also began to reach beyond monasticism and into the papacy itself, which was in dire need of help.

Reform of the Papacy The Problems of Decline Since the eighth century, the popes had reigned supreme over the affairs of the Catholic church. They had also come to exercise control over the territories in central Italy known as the Papal States; this kept popes involved in political matters, often at the expense of their spiritual obligations. At the same time, the church became increasingly entangled in the evolving lord-vassal relationships.

By the eleventh century, church leaders realized the need to free the church from the interference of lords in the appointment of church officials. This issue of lay investiture, the practice by which secular rulers both chose and invested their nominees to church offices with the symbols of their office, was dramatically taken up by the greatest of the reform popes of the eleventh century, Gregory VII (1073--1085). T HE R ECOVERY

AND

R EFORM

OF THE

C ATHOLIC C HURCH

205

Elected pope in 1073, Gregory was convinced that he had been chosen by God to reform the church. In pursuit of those aims, Gregory claimed that he, as pope, was God’s ‘‘vicar on earth’’ and that the pope’s authority extended over all Christians, including rulers. Gregory sought the elimination of lay investiture. Only then could the church regain its freedom, by which Gregory meant the right to appoint its own clergy and run its own affairs. If rulers did not accept these ‘‘divine’’ commands, they could be deposed by the pope in his capacity as the vicar of Christ. Gregory VII soon found himself in conflict with King Henry IV (1056--1106) of Germany over these claims. For many years, German kings had appointed high-ranking clerics, especially bishops, as their vassals in order to use them as administrators. Without them, the king could not hope to maintain his own power vis-a`-vis the powerful German nobles. In 1075, Pope Gregory issued a decree forbidding important clerics from receiving their investiture from lay leaders: ‘‘We decree that no one of the clergy shall receive the investiture with a bishopric or abbey or church from the hand of an emperor or king or of any lay person.’’4 Henry had no intention of obeying a decree that challenged the very heart of his administration. The struggle between Henry IV and Gregory VII, which is known as the Investiture Controversy, was one of the great conflicts between church and state in the High Middle Ages. It dragged on until 1122, when a new German king and a new pope achieved a compromise in the Concordat of Worms. Under this agreement, a bishop in Germany was first elected by church officials. After election, the nominee paid homage to the king as his lord, who in turn invested him with the symbols of temporal office. A representative of the pope then invested the new bishop with the symbols of his spiritual office.

Growth of the Papal Monarchy The popes of the twelfth century did not abandon the reform ideals of Gregory VII, but they were less dogmatic and more inclined to consolidate their power and build a strong administrative system. By the twelfth century, the Catholic church possessed a clearly organized hierarchical structure. The pope and papal curia (staffed by high church officials known as cardinals, the pope’s major advisers and administrators) were at the center of the administrative structure. Below them were the bishops; all of Christendom was divided into dioceses under their direction. Archbishops were in principle more powerful than the bishops, but at this time they were unable to exercise any real control over the internal affairs of the bishops’ dioceses. In the thirteenth century, the Catholic church reached the height of its political, intellectual, and secular power. The papal monarchy extended its sway over both ecclesiastical and temporal affairs, as was especially evident during the papacy of Pope Innocent III (1198--1216). At the beginning of his pontificate, in a letter to a priest, Innocent made a clear statement of his views on papal supremacy: As God, the creator of the universe, set two great lights in the firmament of heaven, the greater light to rule the day, and the lesser light to rule the night, so He set two great dignities in the firmament of the universal church, . . . the greater to rule the day, that is, souls, and the lesser to rule the night, that is, bodies. These dignities are the papal authority and the royal power. And just as the moon gets her light from the sun, and is inferior to the sun . . . so the royal power gets the splendor of its dignity from the papal authority.5

Christianity and Medieval Civilization

Q Focus Questions: What were the characteristics of the

206

c

Christianity was an integral part of the fabric of medieval European society and the consciousness of Europe. Papal directives affected the actions of kings and princes alike, while Christian teaching and practices touched the economic, social, intellectual, cultural, and daily lives of all Europeans.

Scala/Art Resource, NY

papal monarchy and the new religious orders of the High Middle Ages, and what role did women play in the religious life of the period? What was the church’s attitude toward heretics and Jews during the High Middle Ages?

Pope Innocent III. Innocent III was an active and powerful pope during the High Middle Ages. He approved the creation of the Franciscan and Dominican religious orders and inaugurated the Fourth Crusade.

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

A MIRACLE

OF

Saint Bernard of Clairvaux has been called the most widely respected holy man of the twelfth century. He was an outstanding preacher, wholly dedicated to the service of God. His reputation reportedly influenced many young men to join the Cistercian order. He also inspired a myriad of stories dealing with his miracles.

A Miracle of Saint Bernard A certain monk, departing from his monastery . . . , threw off his habit and returned to the world at the persuasion of the Devil. . . . Because sin is punished with sin, the deserter from his Order lapsed into the vice of lechery. He took a concubine to live with him, as in fact is done by many, and by her he had children. But as God is merciful and does not wish anyone to perish, it happened that many years after, the blessed abbot [Saint Bernard] was passing through the village in which this same monk was living, and went to stay at his house. The renegade monk recognized him, and received him very reverently, and waited on him devoutly . . . but as yet the abbot did not recognize him. On the morrow, the holy man said Matins and prepared to be off. But as he could not speak to the priest, since he had got up and gone to the church for Matins, he said to the priest’s son, ‘‘Go, give this message to your master.’’ Now the boy had been born [mute]. He obeyed the command and feeling in himself the power of him who had given it, he ran to his father and uttered the words of the Holy Father clearly and exactly. His father, on hearing his son’s voice for the

Innocent’s actions were those of a man who believed that he, as pope, was the supreme judge of European affairs. He forced King Philip Augustus of France to take back his wife and queen after Philip had tried to have the marriage annulled. The pope intervened in German affairs and installed his candidate as emperor. He compelled King John of England to accept the papal choice for the position of archbishop of Canterbury. To achieve his political ends, Innocent did not hesitate to use the spiritual weapons at his command, especially the interdict, which forbade priests to dispense the sacraments of the church in the hope that the people, deprived of the comforts of religion, would exert pressure against their ruler. Pope Innocent’s interdict was so effective that it caused Philip to restore his wife to her rightful place as queen of France.

New Religious Orders and Spiritual Ideals In the second half of the eleventh century and the first half of the twelfth, a wave of religious enthusiasm seized Europe, leading to a spectacular growth in the number of

SAINT BERNARD first time, wept for joy, and made him repeat the same words . . . and he asked what the abbot had done to him. ‘‘He did nothing to me,’’ said the boy, ‘‘except to say, ‘Go and say this to your father.’’’ At so evident a miracle the priest repented, and hastened after the holy man and fell at his feet saying, ‘‘My Lord and Father, I was your monk so-and-so, and at such-and-such a time I ran away from your monastery. I ask your Paternity to allow me to return with you to the monastery, for in your coming God has visited my heart.’’ The saint replied unto him, ‘‘Wait for me here, and I will come back quickly when I have done my business, and I will take you with me.’’ But the priest, fearing death (which he had not done before), answered, ‘‘Lord, I am afraid of dying before then.’’ But the saint replied, ‘‘Know this for certain, that if you die in this condition, and in this resolve, you will find yourself a monk before God.’’ The saint [eventually] returned and heard that the priest had recently died and been buried. He ordered the tomb to be opened. And when they asked him what he wanted to do, he said, ‘‘I want to see if he is lying as a monk or a clerk in his tomb.’’ ‘‘As a clerk,’’ they said; ‘‘we buried him in his secular habit.’’ But when they had dug up the earth, they found that he was not in the clothes in which they had buried him; but he appeared in all points, tonsure and habit, as a monk. And they all praised God.

Q What two miracles occur in this excerpt from the life of Saint Bernard? What does this document reveal about popular religious practices during the Middle Ages?

monasteries and the emergence of new monastic orders. Most important was the Cistercian order, founded in 1098 by a group of monks dissatisfied with the lack of strict discipline at their Benedictine monastery. Cistercian monasticism spread rapidly from southern France into the rest of Europe. The Cistercians were strict. They ate a simple diet and possessed only a single robe each. All decorations were eliminated from their churches and monastic buildings. More time for prayer and manual labor was provided by shortening the number of hours spent at religious services. The Cistercians played a major role in developing a new, activist spiritual model for twelfth-century Europe. A Benedictine monk often spent hours in prayer to honor God; the Cistercian ideal had a different emphasis: ‘‘Arise, soldier of Christ, arise! Get up off the ground and return to the battle from which you have fled! Fight more boldly after your flight, and triumph in glory!’’6 These were the words of Saint Bernard of Clairvaux (1090--1153), who more than any other person embodied the new spiritual ideal of Cistercian monasticism (see the box above). C HRISTIANITY

AND

M EDIEVAL C IVILIZATION

207

c

Archives Charmet/The Bridgeman Art Library

Women in Religious Orders Women were active participants in the spiritual movements of the age. The number of women joining religious houses increased perceptibly with the spread of the new orders of the twelfth century. In the High Middle Ages, most nuns were from the ranks of the landed aristocracy. Convents were convenient for families unable or unwilling to find husbands for their daughters and for aristocratic women who did not wish to marry. Female intellectuals found them a haven for their activities. Most of the learned women of the Middle Ages, especially in Germany, were nuns. One of the most distinguished was Hildegard of Bingen (1098--1179), who became abbess of a convent at Disibodenberg in western Germany. Hildegard shared in the religious enthusiasm of the twelfth century. Soon after becoming abbess, she began to write an account of the mystical visions she had experienced for years. ‘‘A great flash of light from heaven pierced my brain and . . . in that instant my mind was imbued with the meaning of the sacred books,’’7 she wrote in a description typical of the world’s mystical literature. Eventually, she produced three books based on her visions. Hildegard gained considerable renown as a mystic and prophet, and popes, emperors, kings, dukes, and bishops eagerly sought her advice.

strove to provide a more personal religious experience. Like their founder, Saint Francis of Assisi (1182--1226), the Franciscan friars lived among the people, preaching repentance and aiding the poor. Their calls for a return to the simplicity and poverty of the early church, reinforced by their own example, were especially effective and made them very popular. The Dominicans arose out of the desire of a Spanish priest, Dominic de Guzma´n (1170--1221), to defend church teachings from heresy. The spiritual revival of the High Middle Ages had also led to the emergence of heretical movements, which became especially widespread in southern France. Unlike Francis, Dominic was an intellectual who was appalled by the growth of heresy within the church. He believed that a new religious order of men who lived lives of poverty but were learned and capable of preaching effectively would best be able to attack heresy.

Monasticism and Social Services Monastic life in all of its different forms was the most important component of religious life in the Middle Ages. Monks and nuns performed a remarkable variety of tasks, including praying for themselves and others, copying manuscripts, maintaining libraries and schools, acting as missionaries to the heathen, preaching to the poor, and fighting heresy. But in an age unlike our own, when governments Living the Gospel Life In the thirteenth century, two provide basic social services, monks and nuns also new religious orders emerged that had a profound impact worked for society by providing a number of social on the lives of ordinary people. The friars were particuwelfare services. larly active in the cities, where, by their example, they Monasteries often provided both food and clothing for the poor. Otto of Freising, a German writer of history in the twelfth century, declared, ‘‘There is always a pious, God-fearing friar sitting [at the gate] receiving all arriving guests, pilgrims, and poor people, as friendly and kind-hearted as Christ himself.’’ Due to a shortage of inns, monasteries also provided refuge for pilgrims and other travelers. As the Rule of Saint Benedict noted, ‘‘All who arrive as guests are to be welcomed like Christ.’’ Monks and nuns also took care of the sick. They planted herb gardens so that they could prepare the plant remedies that were commonly used in medieval medicine. In addition, monks and nuns ran hospitals, A Group of Nuns. Although still viewed by the medieval church as inferior to men, women were especially for poor people who could as susceptible to the spiritual fervor of the twelfth century as men, and female monasticism grew not receive care elsewhere. Unlike accordingly. This manuscript illustration shows at left a group of nuns welcoming a novice (dressed modern-day hospitals, medieval hosin white) to their order. At the right, a nun receives a sick person on a stretcher for the order’s pitals were primarily residences for the hospital care. 208

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

elderly, the terminally ill, or the blind. Separate quarters were provided for lepers. There were about two thousand leper houses in France in the thirteenth century, a good indication of the widespread nature of the disease.

Popular Religion in the High Middle Ages We have witnessed the actions of popes, bishops, and monks. But what of ordinary clergy and laypeople? What were their religious hopes and fears? What were their spiritual aspirations? The sacraments of the Catholic church ensured that the church was an integral part of people’s lives, from birth to death. There were (and still are) seven sacraments, administered only by the clergy. Sacraments---such as baptism and the Eucharist (the Lord’s Supper) were viewed as outward symbols of an inward grace (grace was God’s freely given gift that enabled humans to be saved) and were considered imperative for a Christian’s salvation. Therefore, the clergy were seen to have a key role in the attainment of salvation. Other church practices were also important to ordinary people. Saints, it was believed, were men and women who, through their holiness, had achieved a special position in heaven, enabling them to act as intercessors before God. The saints’ ability to protect poor souls enabled them to take on great importance at the popular level. Jesus’ apostles were recognized throughout Europe as saints, but there were also numerous local saints who had special significance. New cults developed rapidly, particularly in the intense religious atmosphere of the eleventh and twelfth centuries. The English introduced Saint Nicholas, the patron saint of children, who remains instantly recognizable today through his identification with Santa Claus. Of all the saints, the Virgin Mary occupied the foremost position in the High Middle Ages. Mary was viewed as the most important mediator with her son Jesus, the judge of all sinners. Moreover, from the eleventh century on, a fascination with Mary as Jesus’ human mother became more evident. A sign of Mary’s importance was the growing number of churches all over Europe that were dedicated to her in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. Emphasis on the role of the saints was closely tied to the use of relics, which also increased noticeably in the High Middle Ages. Relics were the bones of saints or objects intimately connected to saints that were considered worthy of veneration by the faithful. A twelfthcentury English monk began his description of the abbey’s relics by saying, ‘‘There is kept there a thing more precious than gold, . . . the right arm of St. Oswald. . . .

This we have seen with our own eyes and have kissed, and have handled with our own hands. . . . There are kept here also part of his ribs and of the soil on which he fell.’’8 The monk went on to list additional relics possessed by the abbey, which purported to include two pieces of Jesus’ swaddling clothes, pieces of Jesus’ manger, and part of the five loaves of bread with which Jesus fed five thousand people. Because the holiness of the saint was considered to be inherent in his relics, these objects were believed to be capable of healing people or producing other miracles.

Voices of Protest and Intolerance The desire for more personal and deeper religious experience, which characterized the spiritual revival of the High Middle Ages, also led people in directions hostile to the institutional church. From the twelfth century on, heresy---the holding of religious doctrines different from the orthodox teachings of the church as determined by church authorities---became a serious problem for the Catholic church. The best-known heresy of the twelfth and thirteenth centuries was Catharism. The Cathars (from the Greek word for ‘‘pure’’) were also called Albigensians, after the city of Albi, one of their strongholds in southern France. They believed in a dualist system in which good and evil were separate and distinct. The things of the spirit were good because they were created by God, the source of light; the things of the world were evil because they were created by Satan, the prince of darkness. Humans, too, were enmeshed in dualism. Their souls, which were good, were trapped in material bodies, which were evil. According to the Cathars, the Catholic church, itself a materialistic institution, had nothing to do with God and was essentially evil. There was no need to follow its teachings or recognize its authority. The Cathar movement gained valuable support from important nobles in southern France and northern Italy. The spread of heresy in southern France alarmed the church authorities. Pope Innocent III appealed to the nobles of northern France for a Crusade (a military campaign in defense of Christianity) against the heretics. The Crusade against the Albigensians, which began in the summer of 1209 and lasted for almost two decades, was a bloody fight. Thousands of heretics (and innocents) were slaughtered, including entire populations of some towns. In Be´ziers, for example, seven thousand men, women, and children were massacred when they took refuge in the local church. Southern France was devastated, but Catharism remained, which caused the Catholic church to devise a regular method for discovering and dealing with heretics. C HRISTIANITY

AND

M EDIEVAL C IVILIZATION

209

c

British Library Board. All Rights Reserved/The Bridgeman Art Library

CHRONOLOGY The Catholic Church in the High Middle Ages

Expulsion of Albigensian Heretics. In 1209, Pope Innocent III authorized a Crusade against the heretical Albigensians. In this medieval illustration, French knights are shown expelling Albigensian heretics from the town of Carcassonne near Albi, an Albigensian stronghold in southern France.

This led to the emergence of the Holy Office, as the papal Inquisition was called, a formal court whose job it was to ferret out and try heretics. Anyone accused of heresy who refused to confess was considered guilty and was turned over to the secular authorities for execution. To the Christians of the thirteenth century, who believed that there was only one path to salvation, heresy was a crime against God and against humanity, and force was justified to save souls from damnation. The fanaticism and fear unleashed in the struggle against heretics were also used against others, especially the Jews. Persecution of the Jews The Jews were the only religious minority in medieval Europe that was allowed to practice a non-Christian religion. But the religious enthusiasm of the High Middle Ages produced an outburst of intolerance against the supposed enemies of Christianity. After Crusades were launched against the Muslims starting in 1096, European Christians took up the search for enemies at home, persecuting Jews in France and the Rhineland. Jews in Speyer, Worms, Mainz, and Cologne were all set on by bands of Christian crusaders. In the thirteenth century, in the supercharged atmosphere of fear created by the struggle with the heretics, Jews were persecuted more and more (see the box on p. 211). Friars urged action against these ‘‘murderers of Christ,’’ contending that the Jews, having turned Jesus 210

Foundation of abbey of Cluny

910

Pope Gregory VII

1073--1085

Decree against lay investiture

1075

Pope Urban II

1088--1099

Founding of Cistercians

1098

Pope Innocent III

1198--1216

Start of Crusade against the Albigensians

1209

Fourth Lateran Council

1215

over to the Roman authorities, were responsible for his death, and organized the public burning of Jewish books. The Fourth Lateran Council in 1215 decreed that Jews must wear distinguishing marks, such as ribbons, yellow badges, and special veils and cloaks, to differentiate themselves from Christians. The same council encouraged the development of Jewish ghettos, neighborhoods built behind walled enclosures to isolate Jews from Christians. The persecution and demonization of Jews stimulated a tradition of anti-Semitism that proved to be one of Christian Europe’s most insidious contributions to the Western heritage. European kings, who had portrayed themselves as protectors of the Jews, had so fleeced the Jewish communities of their money by the end of the thirteenth century that they no longer had reason to resist the mob fury. Edward I expelled all Jews from England in 1290. The French followed suit in 1306. As the policy of expulsion spread into central Europe, most northern European Jews were driven into Poland. Intolerance and Homosexuality The climate of intolerance that characterized thirteenth-century attitudes toward Muslims, heretics, and Jews was also evident toward homosexuals. Although the church had condemned homosexuality in the Early Middle Ages, it had not been overly concerned with homosexual behavior, reflecting the attitude prevalent in the secular world. But by the thirteenth century, these tolerant attitudes had altered drastically. Some historians connect this change to the century’s climate of fear and intolerance against any group that deviated from the standards of the now strictly Catholic majority. A favorite approach of the critics was to identify homosexuals with other detested groups. Homosexuality was portrayed as a regular practice of Muslims and such notorious heretics as the Albigensians. Between 1250 and 1300, what had been tolerated in most of Europe became a criminal act deserving of death.

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

TREATMENT The development of new religious sensibilities in the High Middle Ages also had a negative side—the turning of Christians against their supposed enemies. Although the Crusades provide the most obvious example, Christians also turned on the ‘‘murderers of Christ,’’ the Jews. As a result, Jews suffered increased persecution. These three documents show different sides of the picture. The first is Canon 68 of the decrees of the Fourth Lateran Council called by Pope Innocent III in 1215. The decree specifies the need for special dress, one of the ways Christians tried to separate Jews from their community. The second excerpt is a chronicler’s account of the most absurd charge levied against the Jews—that they were guilty of the ritual murder of Christian children to obtain Christian blood for the Passover service (in which blood in fact plays no part). This charge led to the murder of many Jews. The third document, taken from a list of regulations issued by the city of Avignon, France, illustrates the contempt Christian society held for the Jews.

Canon 68 In some provinces a difference in dress distinguishes the Jews or Saracens [Muslims] from the Christians, but in certain others such a confusion has grown up that they cannot be distinguished by any difference. Thus it happens at times that through error Christians have relations with the women of Jews or Saracens, and Jews or Saracens with Christian women. Therefore, that they may not, under pretext of error of this sort, excuse themselves in the future for the excesses of such prohibited intercourse, we decree that such Jews and Saracens of both sexes in every Christian province and at all times shall be marked off in the eyes of the public from other peoples through the character of their dress. . . . Moreover, during the last three days before Easter and especially on Good Friday, they shall not go forth in public at all, for the reason that some of them on these very days, as we hear, do not

The legislation against homosexuality commonly referred to it as a ‘‘sin against nature.’’ This is precisely the argument developed by Thomas Aquinas (see Chapter 9), who formed Catholic opinion on the subject for centuries to come. In his Summa Theologica, Aquinas argued that because the purpose of sex was procreation, it could only legitimately take place in ways that did not exclude this possibility. Hence homosexuality (like all other sexual practices that could not result in pregnancy) was ‘‘contrary to nature’’ and a deviation from the natural order established by God. This argument and laws prohibiting homosexual activity on pain of death remained the norm in Europe until the twentieth century.

OF THE JEWS blush to go forth better dressed and are not afraid to mock the Christians who maintain the memory of the most holy Passion by wearing signs of mourning.

The Jews and Ritual Murder of Christian Children [The eight-year-old-boy] Harold, who is buried in the Church of St. Peter the Apostle, at Gloucester . . . , is said to have been carried away secretly by Jews, in the opinion of many, on Feb. 21, and by them hidden till March 16. On that night, on the sixth of the preceding feast, the Jews of all England coming together as if to circumcise a certain boy, pretend deceitfully that they are about to celebrate the feast [Passover] appointed by law in such case, and deceiving the citizens of Gloucester with the fraud, they tortured the lad placed before them with immense tortures. It is true no Christian was present, or saw or heard the deed, nor have we found that anything was betrayed by any Jew. But a little while after when the whole convent of monks of Gloucester and almost all the citizens of that city, and innumerable persons coming to the spectacle, saw the wounds of the dead body, scars of fire, the thorns fixed on his head, and liquid wax poured into the eyes and face, and touched it with the diligent examination of their hands, those tortures were believed or guessed to have been inflicted on him in that manner. It was clear that they had made him a glorious martyr to Christ, being slain without sin, and having bound his feet with his own girdle, threw him into the river Severn.

The Regulations of Avignon, 1243 We declare that Jews or whores shall not dare to touch with their hands either bread or fruit put out for sale, and that if they should do this they must buy what they have touched.

Q What do these documents reveal about Christian attitudes toward the Jews?

The Crusades

Q Focus Question: What were the reasons for the

Crusades, and who or what benefited the most from the experience of the Crusades?

Another manifestation of the religious enthusiasm that seized Europe in the High Middle Ages was the series of Crusades mounted against the Muslims. These campaigns gave the revived papacy of the High Middle Ages yet another opportunity to demonstrate its influence over European society. The Crusades were a curious mix of God and warfare, two of the chief concerns of the Middle Ages. T HE C RUSADES

211

Background to the Crusades Although European civilization developed in relative isolation, it had never entirely lost contact with the lands and empires to the east. At the end of the eleventh century, that contact increased, in part because developments in the Islamic and Byzantine worlds prompted the first major attempt of the new European civilization to expand beyond Europe proper. Islam and the Seljuk Turks By the mid-tenth century, the Islamic empire led by the Abbasid caliphate in Baghdad was in the process of disintegration. A Shi’ite dynasty known as the Fatimids managed to conquer Egypt and establish the new city of Cairo as their capital. In establishing a Shi’ite caliphate, they became rivals to the Sunni caliphate of Baghdad, exacerbating the division in the Islamic world. Nevertheless, the Fatimid dynasty prospered and eventually surpassed the Abbasid caliphate as the dynamic center of the Islamic world. The Fatimids created a strong army by using nonnative peoples as mercenaries. One of these peoples, the Seljuk Turks, soon posed a threat to the Fatimids themselves. The Seljuk Turks were a nomadic people from Central Asia who had been converted to Islam and flourished as military mercenaries for the Abbasid caliphate. Moving gradually into Persia and Armenia, they grew in number until by the eleventh century they were able to take over the eastern provinces of the Abbasid empire. In 1055, a Turkish leader captured Baghdad and assumed command of the Abbasid empire with the title of sultan (‘‘holder of power’’). By the second half of the eleventh century, the Seljuk Turks were exerting military pressure on Egypt and the Byzantine Empire. When the Byzantine emperor foolishly challenged the Turks, the latter routed the Byzantine army at Manzikert in 1071. In dire straits, the Byzantines turned to the west for help, setting in motion the papal pleas that led to the Crusades. To understand the complexities of the situation, however, we need to look first at the Byzantine Empire. The Byzantine Empire The Macedonian dynasty of the tenth and eleventh centuries had restored much of the power of the Byzantine Empire; its incompetent successors, however, reversed most of the gains. After the Macedonian dynasty was extinguished in 1056, the empire was beset by internal struggles for power between ambitious military leaders and aristocratic families who attempted to buy the support of the great landowners of Anatolia by allowing them greater control over their peasants. The growing division between the Catholic church of the west and the Eastern Orthodox church of the Byzantine Empire also weakened the Byzantine state. The Eastern Orthodox church was unwilling to accept the pope’s claim that he was the sole head of the church. This 212

issue reached a climax when Pope Leo IX and the Patriarch Michael Cerularius, head of the Byzantine church, formally excommunicated each other in 1054, initiating a schism between the two great branches of Christianity that has not been healed to this day. The Byzantine Empire faced external threats to its security as well. The greatest challenge came from the Seljuk Turks who had moved into Asia Minor, the heartland of the empire and its main source of food and manpower. After defeating Byzantine forces in 1071, the Turks advanced into Anatolia, where many peasants, already disgusted by their exploitation at the hands of Byzantine landowners, readily accepted Turkish control. Another dynasty, however, soon breathed new life into the Byzantine Empire. The Comneni, under Alexius I Comnenus (1081--1118), were victorious on the Greek Adriatic coast against the Normans, defeated the Pechenegs in the Balkans, and stopped the Turks in Anatolia. Lacking the resources to undertake additional campaigns against the Turks, Emperor Alexius I turned to the west for military assistance. It was the positive response of the west to the emperor’s request that led to the Crusades.

The Early Crusades The Crusades were based on the idea of a holy war against the ‘‘infidel,’’ or unbeliever. The wrath of Christians was directed against the Muslims and had already found some expression in the attempt to reconquer Spain from the Muslims. At the end of the eleventh century, Christian Europe found itself with a glorious opportunity to attack the Muslims. The immediate impetus for the Crusades came when the Byzantine emperor, Alexius I, asked Pope Urban II (1088--1099) for help against the Seljuk Turks. The pope saw a golden opportunity to provide papal leadership for a great cause: to rally the warriors of Europe for the liberation of Jerusalem and the Holy Land from the Muslim infidel. At the Council of Clermont in southern France near the end of 1095, Urban challenged Christians to take up their weapons against the infidel and join in a holy war to recover the Holy Land. The pope promised remission of sins: ‘‘All who die by the way, whether by land or by sea, or in battle against the pagans, shall have immediate remission of sins. This I grant them through the power of God with which I am invested.’’9 The initial response to Urban’s speech reveals how appealing many people found this combined call to military arms and religious fervor. A self-appointed leader, Peter the Hermit, who preached of his visions of the Holy City of Jerusalem, convinced a large mob, most of them poor and many of them peasants, to undertake a Crusade to the east. One person who encountered Peter described him in these words: ‘‘Outdoors he wore a woolen tunic,

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

inclined to trust knights who had been well-trained in the art of war. The warriors of western Europe, particularly France, formed the first ‘‘official’’ crusading armies. The knights who made up this crusading host were motivated by religious fervor, but there were other attractions as well. Some sought adventure and welcomed a legitimate opportunity to pursue their favorite pastime---fighting. Others saw an opportunity to gain territory, riches, status, possibly a title, and even salvation--had the pope not offered a full remission of sins for those who participated in these ‘‘armed pilgrimages’’? From the perspective of the pope and European monarchs, the Crusades offered a way to rid Europe of contentious young nobles who disturbed the peace and wasted lives and energy fighting each other. And merchants in many Italian cities relished the prospect of new trading opportunities in Muslim lands. In the First Crusade, launched in 1096, three organized bands of noble warriors, most of them French, made their way to the east (see Map 10.5). This first crusading

which revealed his ankles, and above it a hood; he wore a cloak to cover his upper body, a bit of his arms, but his feet were bare. He drank wine and ate fish, but scarcely ever ate bread. This man, partly because of his reputation, partly because of his preaching, [assembled] a very large army.’’10 This so-called Peasants’ Crusade or Crusade of the Poor comprised a ragtag rabble that moved through the Balkans, terrorizing natives and looting for their food and supplies. Their misplaced religious enthusiasm led to another tragic by-product as well, the persecution of the Jews, long depicted by the church as the murderers of Christ. As a contemporary chronicler described it, ‘‘They persecuted the hated race of the Jews wherever they were found.’’ Two bands of peasant crusaders, led by Peter the Hermit, managed to reach Constantinople. Emperor Alexis wisely shipped them over to Asia Minor, where the Turks massacred the undisciplined and poorly armed mob. The First Crusade Pope Urban II did not share the wishful thinking of the peasant crusaders but was more

Rh i ne

Bruges

R. Rati Ratisbon

Paris

Danube

R.

V Vézelay

Atlantic Oc e a n

Po R. G Genoa Pisa

Marseiille l s

Eb

r

o

Venice Zara

Black Sea

Corssicca Cor

R.

Consta t nti ntino tino nop no o le Manzikert

Sarrdinia ia Lisbon

Si ily Sic

R.

COUNTY UNT TY T Y OF OF Tigri EDE E ESSA A s Ede deesss ssa s An Ant nnttioc oocch SELJUKS PR P RINCIPALITY NCIPA Cyp pruss OF ANTIOCH OC Trippol Tripo Tri ollii oli COUNTY OF TRIPOLI Acr Ac A cree Hattin Je usaalem Jer m KI KIN K I GDOM OF Alexan Ale x dri xan drriaa JJER JE E USALEM Damieeettta Cairo

Tunis

Creete Cre Cret te

Mediterranean

Se a

Crusader states First Crusade, 1096–1099 Second Crusade, 1147–1149 Third Crusade, 1189–1192

600 300

900 Kilometers 600 Miles

l

R.

300

e Ni

Battle site

Red Sea

MAP 10.5 The Early Crusades. Pope Urban II launched the Crusades to recapture the Holy Land from the ‘‘enemies of God,’’ a call met with great enthusiasm in Europe. The fighters of the First Crusade massacred the inhabitants of Jerusalem and established four Crusader States. Q In the Third Crusade, which countries sent crusaders by land and which by sea, and why View an animated version of this map or would they choose these methods of travel? related maps at www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e T HE C RUSADES

213

THE SIEGE

OPPOSING VIEWPOINTS OF JERUSALEM: CHRISTIAN AND MUSLIM PERSPECTIVES

During the First Crusade, Christian knights laid siege to Jerusalem in June 1099. The first excerpt is taken from an account by Fulcher of Chartres, who accompanied the crusaders to the Holy Land. The second selection is from an account of the First Crusade by the Muslim historian Ibn al-Athir.

Fulcher of Chartres, Chronicle of the First Crusade The Franks entered the city magnificently at the noonday hour on Friday, the day of the week when Christ redeemed the whole world on the cross. With trumpets sounding and with everything in an uproar, exclaiming: ‘‘Help, God!’’ they vigorously pushed into the city, and straightway raised the banner on the top of the wall. All the heathen, completely terrified, changed their boldness to swift flight through the narrow streets of the quarters. The more quickly they fled, the more quickly they put to flight. Count Raymond and his men, who were bravely assailing the city in another section, did not perceive this until they saw the Saracens [Muslims] jumping from the top of the wall. Seeing this, they joyfully ran to the city as quickly as they could, and helped the others pursue and kill the wicked enemy. Then some, both Arabs and Ethiopians, fled into the Tower of David; others shut themselves in the Temple of the Lord and of Solomon, where in the halls a very great attack was made on them. Nowhere was there a place where the Saracens could escape swordsmen. On the top of Solomon’s Temple, to which they had climbed in fleeing, many were shot to death with arrows and cast down headlong from the roof. Within this Temple, about ten thousand were beheaded. If you had been there, your feet would have been stained up to the ankles with the blood of the slain. What more shall I tell? Not one of them was allowed to live. They did not spare the women and children.

army probably numbered several thousand cavalry and as many as ten thousand foot soldiers. After the capture of Antioch in 1098, much of the crusading host proceeded down the coast of Palestine, evading the garrisoned coastal cities, and reached Jerusalem in June 1099. After a fiveweek siege, the Holy City was taken amid a horrible massacre of the inhabitants, men, women, and children (see the box above). After further conquest of Palestinian lands, the crusaders ignored the wishes of the Byzantine emperor (who foolishly believed the crusaders were working on his behalf) and organized four Crusader States (Edessa, Antioch, Tripoli, and Jerusalem). Because the Crusader States were surrounded by Muslim enemies, they grew increasingly 214

Account of Ibn al-Athir In fact Jerusalem was taken from the north on the morning of Friday 22 Sha’ban 492/15 July 1099. The population was put to the sword by the Franks, who pillaged the area for a week. A band of Muslims barricaded themselves into the Oratory of David and fought on for several days. They were granted their lives in return for surrendering. The Franks honored their word, and the group left by night for Ascalon. In the Masjid al-Aqsa the Franks slaughtered more than 70,000 people, among them a large number of Imams and Muslim scholars, devout and ascetic men who had left their homelands to live lives of pious seclusion in the Holy Place. The Franks stripped the Dome of the Rock of more than forty silver candelabra, each of them weighing 3,600 drams, and a great silver lamp weighing forty-four Syrian pounds, as well as a hundred and fifty smaller candelabra and more than twenty gold ones, and a great deal more booty. Refugees from Syria reached Baghdad in Ramadan, among them the qadi Abu sa’d al-Harawi. They told the Caliph’s ministers a story that wrung their hearts and brought tears to their eyes. On Friday they went to the Cathedral Mosque and begged for help, weeping so that their hearers wept with them as they described the sufferings of the Muslims in that Holy City: the men killed, the women and children taken prisoner, the homes pillaged. Because of the terrible hardships they had suffered, they were allowed to break the fast.

Q What happened to the inhabitants of Jerusalem when the Christian knights captured the city? How do you explain the extreme intolerance and brutality of the Christian knights? How do these two accounts differ, and how are they similar?

dependent on the Italian commercial cities for supplies from Europe. Some Italian cities, such as Genoa, Pisa, and especially Venice, became rich and powerful in the process. The Second Crusade The Crusader States had a hard time maintaining themselves. Already by the 1120s, the Muslims had begun to strike back. In 1144, Edessa became the first of the four Latin states to be recaptured. Its fall led to renewed calls for another Crusade, especially from the monastic firebrand Saint Bernard of Clairvaux, who exclaimed, ‘‘Now, on account of our sins, the sacrilegious enemies of the cross have begun to show their faces. . . . What are you doing, you servants of the cross?

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

c

Scala/Art Resource, NY

The First Crusade. Recruited from the noble class of western Europe, the first crusading army reached Constantinople in 1097. By 1098, the crusaders had taken Antioch. Working down the coast of Palestine, they captured Jerusalem the following year. Shown here in a fifteenth-century Flemish painting is a fanciful re-creation of the punishments that were meted out to the defeated Muslim forces. Seen in the background is a panoramic view of mutilations, crucifixions, and hangings.

Will you throw to the dogs that which is most holy? Will you cast pearls before swine?’’11 Bernard aimed his message at knights and even managed to enlist two powerful rulers, King Louis VII of France and Emperor Conrad III of Germany. Their Second Crusade, however, proved a total failure. The Third Crusade The Third Crusade was a reaction to the fall of the Holy City of Jerusalem in 1187 to Muslim forces under Saladin. Now all of Christendom was ablaze with calls for a new Crusade in the east. Three major monarchs agreed to lead new crusading forces in person: Emperor Frederick Barbarossa of Germany (1152--1190), Richard I the Lionhearted of England (1189--1199), and Philip II Augustus, king of France (1180--1223). The crusaders, who finally arrived in the east in 1189, encountered nothing but problems. Frederick Barbarossa drowned while swimming in a local river, and his army quickly fell apart. The English and French arrived by sea and met with success against the coastal cities, where they had the support of their fleets, but when they moved inland, they failed miserably. Eventually, after Philip went home, Richard negotiated a settlement whereby Saladin agreed to allow Christian pilgrims free access to Jerusalem.

The Crusades of the Thirteenth Century After the death of Saladin in 1193, Pope Innocent III initiated the Fourth Crusade. On its way to the east,

the crusading army became involved in a dispute over the succession to the Byzantine throne. The Venetian leaders of the Fourth Crusade saw an opportunity to neutralize their greatest commercial competitor, the Byzantine Empire. Diverted to Constantinople, the crusaders sacked that great capital city in 1204 and declared the new Latin Empire of Constantinople. Not until 1261 did a Byzantine army recapture Constantinople. The Byzantine Empire had been saved, but it was no longer a great Mediterranean power. The restored empire now consisted only of the city of Constantinople and its surrounding territory along with some lands in Asia Minor. Though reduced in size, the empire limped along for another 190 years until its weakened condition finally enabled the Ottoman Turks to conquer it in 1453. Despite the failures, the crusading ideal was not yet completely lost. In Germany in 1212, a youth known as Nicholas of Cologne announced that God had inspired him to lead a Children’s Crusade to the Holy Land. Thousands of young people joined Nicholas and made their way down the Rhine and across the Alps to Italy, where the pope told them to go home. Most tried to do so. At about the same time, a group of about twenty thousand French children, also inspired by the desire to free the Holy Land from the Muslims, made their way to Marseilles, where two shipowners agreed to transport them to the Holy Land. Seven ships packed with hymnsinging youths soon left the port. Two of the ships sank in T HE C RUSADES

215

Effects of the Crusades

CHRONOLOGY The Crusades Pope Urban II calls for a Crusade

1095

First Crusade

1096--1099

Fall of Edessa

1144

Second Crusade

1147--1149

Saladin’s conquest of Jerusalem

1187

Third Crusade

1189--1192

Fourth Crusade---sack of Constantinople

1204

Latin Empire of Constantinople

1204--1261

Children’s Crusade

1212

Fifth Crusade

1219--1221

Frederick II occupies Jerusalem (Sixth Crusade)

1228

First Crusade of Louis IX (Seventh Crusade)

1248--1254

Second Crusade of Louis IX (Eighth Crusade)

1270

Surrender of Acre and end of Christian presence in the Holy Land

1291

a storm near Sardinia; the other five sailed to North Africa, where the children were sold into slavery. Four more Crusades of adult warriors over the next half-century were no more successful. Finally, Europe’s Christians grudgingly accepted that they were not to be the guardians of the the Holy Land.

Whether the Crusades had much effect on European civilization is debatable. The crusaders made little longterm impact in Asia Minor and the Middle East, where the only visible remnants of their conquests were the castles they erected. Some broadening of perspective may have come from the exchange between cultures, but the interaction of Christian Europe with the Muslim world was actually both more intense and more meaningful in Spain and Sicily than in the Holy Land. Did the Crusades help stabilize European society by removing large numbers of young warriors who would have fought each other in Europe? Some historians think so and believe that western monarchs established their control more easily as a result. There is no doubt that the Italian seaports, especially Genoa, Pisa, and Venice, benefited economically from the Crusades, but even without them, Italian merchants would have pursued new trade contacts with the world to the east. The Crusades did, however, have unfortunate side effects that would afflict European society for generations. The first widespread attacks on the Jews occurred during the Crusades. Some Christians argued that to undertake holy wars against Muslims while the ‘‘murderers of Christ’’ ran free at home was unthinkable. From that time on, the massacre of Jews became a regular feature of medieval European life.

CONCLUSION The period from 1000 to 1300 was a dynamic time in the development of Western civilization. The nobles, whose warlike attitudes were rationalized by labeling themselves the defenders of Christian society, continued to dominate the medieval world politically, economically, and socially. But kings gradually began to expand their powers. Although the popes sometimes treated rulers condescendingly, by the thirteenth century, the monarchs were developing the machinery of government that would enable them to challenge exalted claims of papal power and assume political authority in Europe. The actions of these medieval monarchs laid the foundation for the European kingdoms that in one form or another have dominated the European political scene ever since. The Catholic church shared in the challenge of new growth by reforming itself and striking out on a path toward greater papal power, both within the church and over European society. The High Middle Ages witnessed a spiritual renewal that led to numerous and even divergent paths: revived papal leadership, the development of centralized administrative machinery that buttressed papal authority, and new dimensions to the religious life of the clergy and laity. At the same time, this spiritual renewal also gave rise to the

216

crusading ‘‘holy warrior’’ who killed for God, which created an animosity between Christians and Muslims that still has repercussions to this day. The religious enthusiasm of the twelfth century continued well into the thirteenth as new orders of friars gave witness to spiritual growth and passion, but underneath lay seeds of discontent and change. Dissent from church teaching and practices grew, leading to a climate of fear and intolerance as the church responded with inquisitorial procedures to enforce conformity to its teachings. At the same time, papal claims of supremacy over secular authorities were increasingly challenged by the rising power of monarchical authorities, who, because of the growth of cities, the revival of trade, and the emergence of a money economy, were now able to hire soldiers and officials to carry out their wishes. The High Middle Ages of the eleventh, twelfth, and thirteenth centuries had been a period of great innovation, evident in significant economic, social, political, religious, intellectual, and cultural changes. And yet by the end of the thirteenth century, certain tensions had begun to creep into European society. As we shall see in the next chapter, these tensions would soon bring a torrent of troubles.

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

TIMELINE 1050

1100

1150

1200

1250

1300

Reconquest of Spain

Magna Carta Norman conquest of England

Henry II, first of the Plantagenets

First Parliament in England

Frederick I and the Hohenstaufen dynasty

Reign of Pope Gregory VII

Innocent III and papal power

Frederick II Investiture Controversy

Louis IX (Saint Louis) Mongol conquest of Russia

First Crusade

Second Crusade

Third Crusade

First Estates-General in France

Crusade against the Albigensians Sack of Constantinople Children’s Crusade

SUGGESTIONS FOR FURTHER READING The Medieval States There are numerous works on the different medieval states. On England, see R. Frame, The Political Development of the British Isles, 1100--1400, 2d ed. (Oxford, 1995). On France, see J. Dunbabin, France in the Making, 843--1180, 2d ed. (Oxford, 2000), and M. Bull, France in the Central Middle Ages, 900--1200 (Oxford, 2003). On Spain, see B. F. Reilly, The Medieval Spains (Cambridge, 1993), and M. R. Menocal, The Ornament of the World (Boston, 2002). On Germany, see H. Fuhrmann, Germany in the High Middle Ages, c. 1050--1250 (Cambridge, 1986), an

End of Christian presence in the Holy Land

excellent account, and B. Arnold, Princes and Territories in Medieval Germany, 2d ed. (Cambridge, 2005). On Italy, see P. Jones, The Italian City-State: From Commune to Signoria (Oxford, 1997). On eastern Europe and Scandinavia, see N. Davies, God’s Playground: A History of Poland, vol. 1, The Origins to 1795, rev. ed. (New York, 2004); T. K. Derry, A History of Scandinavia (London, 1979); J. Fennell, The Crisis of Medieval Russia, 1200-1304 (New York, 1983); and the books listed for Chapter 8. For specialized studies in the political history of the thirteenth century, see D. Abulafia, Frederick II: A Medieval Emperor (London, 1987),

C ONCLUSION

217

and C. J. Halperin, Russia and the Golden Horde: The Mongol Impact on Medieval Russian History (Bloomington, Ind., 1987). Religion in Medieval Europe For good surveys of religion in medieval Europe, see B. Hamilton, Religion in the Medieval West, 2d ed. (London, 2003), and J. H. Lynch, The Medieval Church (London, 1995). For a general survey of church life, see R. W. Southern, Western Society and the Church in the Middle Ages, rev. ed. (New York, 1990). The Papacy On the papacy in the High Middle Ages, see the general surveys by C. Morris, The Papal Monarchy (Oxford, 1989), and I. S. Robinson, The Papacy (Cambridge, 1990). The papacy of Innocent III is covered in J. C. Moore, Pope Innocent III (New York, 2003). Monasticism and Popular Religion Good works on monasticism include B. Bolton, The Medieval Reformation (London, 1983), and C. H. Lawrence, Medieval Monasticism, 3d ed. (London, 2000), a good general account. On the impact of the Franciscans and Dominicans, see C. H. Lawrence, The Friars: The Impact of the Early Mendicant Movement on Western Society (New York, 1994). On Saint Francis, see A. House, Francis of Assisi: A Revolutionary Life (London, 2001). S. Flanagan, Hildegard of Bingen, 2d ed. (London, 1998), is a good account of the twelfthcentury mystic. For an introduction to popular religion in the eleventh and twelfth centuries, see R. Brooke and C. N. L. Brooke, Popular Religion in the Middle Ages (London, 1984). Dissent and Heresy On dissent and heresy, see M. Lambert, Medieval Heresy, 3d ed. (New York, 2002), and J. Strayer, The Albigensian Crusades, 2d ed. (New York, 1992). On the Inquisition,

218

see B. Hamilton, The Medieval Inquisition (New York, 1981). The persecution of Jews in the thirteenth century can be examined in R. Chazan, The Jews of Medieval Western Christendom (Cambridge, 2006). The basic study on intolerance and homosexuality is J. Boswell, Christianity, Social Tolerance, and Homosexuality (Chicago, 1980). The Crusades For a detailed survey of the Crusades, see C. Tyerman, God’s War: A New History of the Crusades (Cambridge, Mass., 2006). Also see J. Riley-Smith, ed., The Oxford Illustrated History of the Crusades (New York, 1995), and N. Housley, Contesting the Crusades (Oxford, 2006), which discusses historical issues about the Crusades. On the First Crusade, see T. Asbridge, The First Crusade: A New History (Oxford, 2004). For works on the Byzantine and Islamic empires, see the reading suggestions at the end of Chapter 8 and J. Harris, Byzantium and the Crusades (London, 2003). The disastrous Fourth Crusade is examined in J. Phillips, The Fourth Crusade and the Sack of Constantinople (New York, 2004). On the later Crusades, see N. Housley, The Later Crusades, 1274--1580 (New York, 1992).

WESTERN CIVILIZATION RESOURCES Visit the Web site for Western Civilization: A Brief History to access study aids such as Flashcards, Critical Thinking Exercises, and Chapter Quizzes: www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

C H A P T E R 1 0 THE RISE OF KINGDOMS AND THE GROWTH OF CHURCH POWER

219

CHAPTER 11 THE LATER MIDDLE AGES: CRISIS AND DISINTEGRATION IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY

CHAPTER OUTLINE AND FOCUS QUESTIONS

A Time of Troubles: Black Death and Social Crisis What impact did the Black Death have on the society and economy of Europe? The Art Archive/Gianni Dagli Orti

Q

War and Political Instability

Q

What major problems did European states face in the fourteenth century?

Q

How and why did the authority and prestige of the papacy decline in the fourteenth century?

c

The Decline of the Church Mass burial and cremation of plague victims

Culture and Society in an Age of Adversity

Q

What were the major developments in art and literature in the fourteenth century? How did the adversities of the fourteenth century affect urban life?

CRITICAL THINKING

Q

220

Make an argument either for or against the idea that climate and disease had a major impact in producing social, economic, and political changes in the fourteenth century.

AS A RESULT of their conquests in the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries, the Mongols assembled a vast empire stretching from Russia in the west to China in the east. Mongol rule brought stability to the Eurasian trade routes; increased trade brought prosperity but also avenues for the spread of flea-infested rats that carried bubonic plague to both East Asia and Europe. In the mid-fourteenth century, one of the most destructive natural disasters in history erupted---the Black Death. One contemporary observer named Henry Knighton, a canon of Saint Mary-of-the-Meadow Abbey in Leicester, England, was simply overwhelmed by the magnitude of the catastrophe. Knighton began his account of the great plague with these words: ‘‘In this year [1348] and in the following one there was a general mortality of people throughout the whole world.’’ Few were left untouched; the plague struck even isolated monasteries: ‘‘At Montpellier, there remained out of a hundred and forty friars only seven.’’ Knighton was also stunned by the economic and social consequences of the Black Death. Prices dropped: ‘‘And the price of everything was cheap, because of the fear of death; there were very few who took any care for their wealth, or for anything else.’’ Meanwhile, laborers were scarce, so their wages increased: ‘‘In the following autumn, one could not hire a reaper at a lower wage

than eight pence with food, or a mower at less than twelve pence with food. Because of this, much grain rotted in the fields for lack of harvesting.’’ So many people died that some towns were deserted and some villages disappeared altogether: ‘‘Many small villages and hamlets were completely deserted; there was not one house left in them, but all those who had lived in them were dead.’’ Some people thought the end of the world was at hand. Plague was not the only disaster in the fourteenth century, however. Signs of disintegration were everywhere: famine, economic depression, war, social upheaval, a rise in crime and violence, and a decline in the power of the universal Catholic church. Periods of disintegration, however, are often fertile grounds for change and new developments. Out of the dissolution of medieval civilization came a rebirth of culture that has come to be known as the Renaissance.

A Time of Troubles: Black Death and Social Crisis

Q Focus Question: What impact did the Black Death have on the society and economy of Europe?

For much of the thirteenth century, Europe had experienced good harvests and an expanding population. By century’s end, however, a succession of disastrous events had begun. For one thing, there were noticeable changes in weather patterns as Europe entered a ‘‘little ice age.’’ Shortened growing seasons and miserable weather conditions, including heavy storms and constant rain, led to widespread famine and hunger. The great famine of 1315--1317 in northern Europe began an all-too-familiar pattern, as is evident in this scene described by a contemporary chronicler: We saw a larger number of both sexes, not only from nearby places but from as much as five leagues away, barefooted and maybe even, except for women, in a completely nude state, together with their priests coming in procession at the Church of the Holy Martyrs, their bones bulging out, devoutly carrying bodies of saints and other relics to be adorned hoping to get relief.1

Some historians have pointed out that famine could have led to chronic malnutrition, which in turn contributed to increased infant mortality, lower birthrates, and higher susceptibility to disease because malnourished people are less able to resist infection. This, they argue, helps explain the virulence of the great plague known as the Black Death.

The Black Death The Black Death of the mid-fourteenth century was the most devastating natural disaster in European history,

ravaging the population and causing economic, social, political, and cultural upheaval. Contemporary chroniclers lamented how parents abandoned their children; one related the words: ‘‘Oh father, why have you abandoned me? . . . Mother, where have you gone?’’2 People were horrified by an evil force they could not understand and by the subsequent breakdown of all normal human relations. Bubonic plague, the most common form of plague at the time, was spread by black rats infested with fleas that were host to the deadly bacterium Yersinia pestis. Symptoms of bubonic plague included high fever, aching joints, swelling of the lymph nodes, and dark blotches caused by bleeding beneath the skin. Bubonic plague was actually the least toxic form of plague but nevertheless killed 50 to 60 percent of its victims. In pneumonic plague, the bacterial infection spread to the lungs, resulting in severe coughing, bloody sputum, and the relatively easy spread of the bacillus from human to human by coughing. Spread of the Plague The Black Death was the first major epidemic disease to strike Europe in seven centuries, an absence that helps explain medieval Europe’s remarkable population growth. Having disappeared from Europe and the Middle East in the Middle Ages, bubonic plague continued to haunt parts of southwestern China, especially isolated rural territories. The arrival of Mongol troops in this area in the mid-thirteenth century became the means for the spread of the plague as flea-infested rats accompanied the Mongols into central and northwestern China and Central Asia. From there, trading caravans brought the plague to Caffa on the Black Sea in 1346. The plague reached Europe in October 1347 when Genoese merchants brought it from Caffa to the island of Sicily off the coast of southern Italy. It quickly spread to southern Italy and southern France and Spain by the end of 1347 (see Map 11.1). Diffusion of the Black Death followed commercial trade routes. In 1348, the plague spread through France and the Low Countries and into Germany. By the end of that year, it had moved to England, ravaging it in 1349. By the end of 1349, the plague had reached Scandinavia. Eastern Europe and Russia were affected by 1351, although mortality rates were never as high there as they were in western and central Europe. Mortality figures for the Black Death were incredibly high. Italy was especially hard hit. Its crowded cities suffered losses of 50 to 60 percent (see the box on p. 223). In northern France, farming villages suffered mortality rates of 30 percent, and cities such as Rouen experienced losses as high as 40 percent. In England and Germany, entire villages disappeared. In Germany, of approximately 170,000 inhabited locations, 40,000 had disappeared by the end of the fourteenth century. A T IME

OF

T ROUBLES : B LACK D EATH

AND

S OCIAL C RISIS

221

December 1347 June 1348 December 1348

ic S Balt

Dur Du D urham h Laaan Lan nccas caster ttee

Yo Yor Y orrk o

Dublin

June 1349

e

a

Nort h Sea

December 1349 June 1350

Hambur Ham Ha ug ur Norrwic No N w h

Leeicester L

Lon on o ond ndo d don Brrrist B Bri sto t l

Erfurt

Area partially or totally spared

Nur urremberg u

R.

Ca aiss Cal

December 1350

R h i ne Liè Liè Li iège C lo Cologne

St Strasbourg Paris ris

Carpathian

Zurich h

Angers A

Alp

s

Venice Po R. Floorren encee Avignon Marsei seille lees Pis Pisa Montpellier Siena Pyrene Ebro Cor Corsic orssi sic iicca es Romee R. Ba Barcelona Naples es es Sa ardin ar dinia Minorca Min Val alen al enc ncia ia

Oc e an

Bordeaux

Genoa enoa

Majorca Majo Maj Seville

M

ts.

At l an t ic

Danu b

e

Dubrovnik

Caf C Ca aafffa fa

R.

B l a ck Consta Con Constanti stanti nti nt ttiinople

Me sin Mes na

. Taurus Mts

Sicily S

C te Cr Cre

0 0

250

500 250

S ea

750 Kilometers

M ed i t erra n ea n

Sea

Cyp Cypru yprus

500 Miles

MAP 11.1 Spread of the Black Death. The plague entered Europe through Sicily in 1347

and within three years had killed between one-quarter and one-half of the population. Outbreaks continued into the early eighteenth century, and it took Europe two hundred years to return to the population level it had before the Black Death. Q Is there a general pattern between distance from Sicily and the elapsed time before a View an animated version of this map or related region was infected with the plague? maps at www.cengage.com/history/spielvogel/westcivbrief 7e

It has been estimated that the European population declined by 25 to 50 percent between 1347 and 1351. If we accept the recent scholarly assessment of a European population of 75 million in the early fourteenth century, this means a death toll of 19 to 38 million people in four years. And the plague did not end in 1351. There were major outbreaks again in 1361--1362 and 1369 and then regular recurrences during the remainder of the fourteenth century and all of the fifteenth century. The European population did not start to recover until the end of the fifteenth century; not until the mid-sixteenth century did Europe return to thirteenth-century population levels. 222

Life and Death: Reactions to the Plague Attempts to explain the Black Death and mitigate its harshness led to extreme sorts of behavior. Many people believed that the plague had either been sent by God as a punishment for humans’ sins or been caused by the devil. Some resorted to extreme asceticism to cleanse themselves of sin and gain God’s forgiveness. Such was the flagellant movement, which became popular in 1348, especially in Germany. Groups of flagellants, both men and women, wandered from town to town, flogging each other with whips to win the forgiveness of a God whom they felt had sent the plague to punish humans for their

C H A P T E R 1 1 THE LATER MIDDLE AGES: CRISIS AND DISINTEGRATION IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY

THE BLACK DEATH The Black Death was the most terrifying natural calamity of the Middle Ages. It has been estimated that 25 to 50 percent of the population died as the plague spread throughout Europe between 1347 and 1351. This contemporary description of the great plague in Florence is taken from the preface to the Decameron by the fourteenth-century Italian writer Giovanni Boccaccio.

Giovanni Boccaccio, Decameron In the year of Our Lord 1348 the deadly plague broke out in the great city of Florence, most beautiful of Italian cities. Whether through the operation of the heavenly bodies or because of our own iniquities which the just wrath of God sought to correct, the plague had arisen in the East some years before, causing the death of countless human beings. It spread without stop from one place to another, until, unfortunately, it swept over the West. Neither knowledge nor human foresight availed against it, though the city was cleansed of much filth by chosen officers in charge and sick persons were forbidden to enter it, while advice was broadcast for the preservation of health. Nor did humble supplications serve. Not once but many times they were ordained in the form of processions and other ways for the propitiation of God by the faithful, but, in spite of everything, toward the spring of the year the plague began to show its ravages. . . . It did not manifest itself as in the East, where if a man bled at the nose he had certain warning of inevitable death. At the onset of the disease both men and women were afflicted by a sort of swelling in the groin or under the armpits which sometimes attained the size of a common apple or egg. Some of these swellings were larger and some smaller, and were commonly called boils. From these two starting points the boils began in a little while to spread and appear generally all over the body. Afterwards, the manifestation of the disease changed into black or livid spots on the arms, thighs, and the whole person. In many these blotches were large and far apart, in

sinful ways. One contemporary chronicler described a flagellant procession: The penitents went about, coming first out of Germany. They were men who did public penance and scourged themselves with whips of hard knotted leather with little iron spikes. Some made themselves bleed very badly between the shoulder blades and some foolish women had cloths ready to catch the blood and smear it on their eyes, saying it was miraculous blood. While they were doing penance, they sang very mournful songs about the nativity and the passion of Our Lord. The object of this penance was to put a stop to the mortality, for in that time . . . at least a third of all the people in the world died.3

The flagellants attracted attention and caused mass hysteria wherever they went. The Catholic church,

others small and closely clustered. Like the boils, which had been and continued to be a certain indication of coming death, these blotches had the same meaning for everyone on whom they appeared. Neither the advice of physicians nor the virtue of